Skip to main content

Full text of "Confederation; or, The political and parliamentary history of Canada, from the conference at Quebec, in October, 1864, to the admission of British Columbia, in July, 1871... By the Hon. John Hamilton Gray... v.1"

See other formats


CONFEDERATION; 

OR, 

THE   POLITICAL   AND   PAKLIAMENTAKY 

HISTORY  OF  CANADA, 

FROM 

THE   CONFERENCE   AT   QUEBEC,   IN   OCTOBER,   1864, 

TO   THE 

ADMISSION  OF  BRITISH  COLUMBIA,  IN  JULY,  1871. 

TWO  VOLUMES. 


BY  THE 

HON.  JOHN  HAMILTON  GRAY,  D.C.L.,  M.P. 

Umpire  between  Great  Britain  and  the  United  States  under  the  Treaty  of  Washington, 

1857-1858. 

//.  M.'s  Commissioner  on  the  Tenant  Question  in  Prince  Edward's  Island,  1860-1861. 
Dominion  A  rbitrator  between  the  Provinces  of  Ontario  and  Quebec,  under  the  British 

North  American  Act,  1867. 
Formerly  Attorney-General,  and  Speaker  of  the  House  of  Assembly  in  New  Brunswick. 

One  of  the  Delegates  to  the  Charlotte  Town  and  Quebec  Conventions,  in  1864. 
And  Member  for  the  City  and  County  of  Saint  John,  New  Brunswick,  from  1850  to  1872. 


FIRST  VOLUME. 


TORONTO: 

COPP,  CLARK  &  CO.,  PRINTERS,  KING  STREET  EAST. 
1872. 


Entered  according  to  Act  of  Parliament  of  Canada,  in  the  year  one  thousand  eight 
hundred  and  seventy-two,  by  JOHN  HAMILTON  GRAY,  D.C.L.,  M.P.,  in  the 
Office  of  the  Minister  of  Agriculture. 


<       V> 


/  28  1 


TO   THE    MEMBERS 


HOUSE     OF     COMMONS 


CANADA. 


"  Si  quid  novisti  rcctius  is  (is, 
Candidus  imperil.    Si  non-his  utere  mecum" 

Hor.  Epist.  6. 


J.  H.   GRAY. 


OTTAWA,  April  n,  1872. 


F 

5-077 

673 


CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Preliminary  observations  as  to  the  Imperial  Colonial  Policy,  from  the  time  of 
the  American  Revolution  to  the  adoption  of  Free  Trade  —  Progress  of 
opinion  in  England — Concurrent  progress  of  opinion  and  political  deve- 
lopment in  Canada  and  the  Maritime  Provinces — Lord  Durham's -mis- 

\  ^.jsion  —  Intercolonial  Trade  —  Intercolonial  Railway  —  Frontier  disputes 
ith  the  United  States — Ashburton  Treaty — Consequences — Intercolo- 
nial negotiations  respecting  commercial  union — Abortive — Gait's  policy 
on  joining  the  cabinet  in  1858 — Imperial  policy  undecided — American 
troubles  in  1862 — Trent  affair — Effect  on  Imperial  policy — Dead  locjsJn 
Canada — Brown  joins  the  government  in  1864 — Ministerial  explanations 
— ^lavements  in  the  Maritime  Provinces  towards  Legislative  Union — 
Charlottetown  Convention  —  Attendance  of  Canadian  Ministers  —  Dis- 
cussions—  Halifax — Macdonald  and  Brown's  speeches  —  Saint  John — 
Cartierand  Gait — Aj).  1776  to  1864. 

CHAPTER  II. 

Meeting  of  Delegates  at  Quebec,  October  10,  1864 — Reflections  on  the  time, 
place  and  circumstances  —  American  war — Sittings  with  closed  doors — 
Reasons  for  — Voting  by  Provinces  —  Adoption  of  Federal  instead  of 
Legislative  Union — Submission  of  Resolutions  defining  proposed  Consti- 
tution— Discussion  of  do  —  Contrast  of  source  of  power  in  the  proposed 
Constitution  and  that  of  the  United  States — Policy  of  free  trade — No 
distinction  in  political  rights — Difficulties  in  representative  and  financial 
arrangements — Electoral  Divisions  of  Lower  Canada — Representation  by 
Population — Rule  exceptional  on  entering  Confederation — Absolute  for 
subsequent  guidance — Similarity  to  original  provision  in  the  American 
Constitution — Upper  House,  territorial  and  nominative — Provision  for 
primary  selection  —  Admission  of  North- West  Territories  and  British 
Columbia — Adjustment  of  the  financial  arrangements — FJirect  taxation 
for  genqral  purposes  unknown  in  Maritime  Provinces — Crisis — Sub- 


VI  CONTENTS. 

Committee  of  Finance  Ministers  —  Report  —  Apportionment  of  powers  — 
Crown  Lands  and  Minerals  to  Local  Governments  —  Reasons  for  —  Judi- 
ciary —  Court  of  Appeal  —  Uniformity  of  Laws  —  Intercolonial  Railway  — 
Crown  Landsin  Newfoundland  —  Exceptions  for  Prince  Edward  Island- 
Export  duty  on  lumber  in  New-  Brunswick—  Royajtiesin  Nova  Scotia  —  • 
Resolutions  —  b  inancIaTSlatement  ol  the  position  of  Canada  as  competed 
with  the  other  Provinces  —  A.D.  1864. 

CHAPTER  III. 

Banquets  at  Quebec  and  Montreal  —  Public  sentiment  in  Lower  Canada  — 
Conduct  of  the  Press  —  Custom  of  the  ancient  Germans  followed  by  the 
English  —  Speeches  at  Quebec  —  Reception  by  the  Laval  University  — 
Reception  at  Montreal  —  Education  of  the  public  mind  —  Remarks  of  Dele- 
gates and  Local  Members  at  Montreal  —  A.D.  1864. 

CHAPTER  IV. 

v  Public  sentiment  in  Upper  Canada  (now  Ontario)  —  Selection  of  Ottawa  as  the 
seat  of  Government  —  Description  —  Reasons  for  —  Propriety  of  —  Ultimate 
future  and  requisites  for,  as  the  Capital  of  the  Dominion  —  American  legis- 
lation and  action  on  the  selection  of  Washington  —  Banquet  at  Ottawa  — 
Observations  of  speakers  —  Banquet  at  Toronto  —  Ditto  —  Explanations  of 
details  by  Hon.  Geo.  Brown-^fRucle  awakening  of  the  Maritime  Delegates 

"  —  ^    jon  their  return  toNova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick  —  A.  D.  1864. 

CHAPTER  V. 

Assent  of  the  Imperial  Government  —  Despatch  from  the  Colonial  Secretary, 
December,  1864  —  Public  sentiment  in  England,  Scotland  and  the  United 
States  on  the  proposed  Confederation  —  Seward  —  A.D.  1864. 

CHAPTER  VI. 

The  Situation  —  Relative  position  of  Great  Britain  and  the  B.  N.  American 
Provinces  as  to  the  internal  government  of  the  latter  —  As  to  Trade  Re- 
lations with  Foreign  Countries  —  Despatch  to  Lord  Elgin,  December, 
1846  —  Objection  to  policy  by  manufacturing  interests  in  England  and 
Scotland  —  Reiteration  of  policy  by  the  Imperial  Government  —  Excep- 
tional and  liberal  conduct  towards  the  Provinces  in  matters  of  Recipro- 
city with  the  United  States  —  Position  of  Inter-Provincial  Trade  —  Objec- 
.Jions  to  Confederation  from  different  stand-points  —  Political  aspect  — 

Canada  from  Great 


Britain  —  Observations  in  the  Imperial   Parliament  —  Mr.    Roebuck  —  Mr. 
Adderley  —  Sir   Cornwall   Lewis  —  Mr.    D'Israeli  —  Lord  Palmerston,  and 


CONTENTS.  Vll 

Mr.  Baring — The  Times —Pamphlets — Irritative  effect  in  Canada — 
Examination  of  the  subject — Position  20  years  hence— Views  of  the  "  Com- 
mittee on  Commerce"  of  the  House  of  Representatives  of  the  United 
States — Free  Trade  Policy  of  Canada — Hincks — Imports — Exports — 
Character  of  Comparison — Breadstuffs  to  England — Change  in  17  years 
— Export  trade  to  the  United  States — Change — Effect  on  British  producer 
— Tea  trade — Affected  by  Pacific  Railway — Returns — Pumpelly  on 
Russian  Asiatic  Trans-continental  Railway — Canada  as  a  market — United 
States  diminution  of  shipping — Internal  trade — Merger  of  Canada  in  the 
United  States — Loss  of  Asiatic  trade  to  England — Action  of  United  States 
not  to  be  tested  by  ordinary  rules  of  reasoning — Interest  of  Canada  as 
separate — Intercontinental  carrying  trade — Effect  of  separation  upon  Great 
Britain  in  case  of  war — Canadian  neutrality — Effect  on  Canada — Loss — 
Loss  greater  to  Great  Britain — Mutual  interest  to  continue  the  connection 
— Blackwood — Letter  of  an  American  statesman. 

CHAPTER  VII. 

Debate  in  the  Canadian  Legislature  on  Confederation  —  The  Governor- 
General's  Speech — Motion  in  the  Legislative  Council — Do.  in  the  House 
of  Assembly — Character  of  the  Debate — Division  in  the  Council  on  the 
main  motion — Names — Do.  in  the  House — Names — Synopsis  of  speeches 
of  men  representing  views  of  all  parties — A.  D.  1865. 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

Death  of  Sir  E.  P.  Tache — Character — Reconstruction  of  the  Government — 
Ministerial  negotiations — Action  of  the  Government  after  reconstruc- 
tion— Confederate  Council  on  Trade — Resolutions — Deputation  to  Wash- 
ington— Negotiations  at  Washington  for  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty — Failure — Report  to  the  British  Minister  at  Washington— Terms 
proposed  by  Canada — Counter  terms  by  the  United  States — Public 
satisfaction  at  the  rejection  of  the  latter— EJf(e^t_joji__^onfederation — 
A.  D.  1865  &  1866. 

CHAPTER  IX. 

Resignation  of  Mr.  Brown — Parliamentary  explanations — Reasons  assigned — 
Examination  of  minutes  of  Council  and  Mr.  Gait's  memorandum — 
Reasons  existing — Subsequent  conduct — A.  D.  1865  &  1866. 

CHAPTER  X. 

Deputation  to  England — Defence — J[mperia|  policy  on^Confederation  after 
defeat  in  New  Brunswick — The  West  Indian  and  BrazilianCommis- 
sion — Instructions — Report — Imperial  Despatches — Relaxation  of  the 
rule  with  reference  to  the  Inter-Provincial  Trade  as  to  British  North 


\1U  CONTENTS. 

America  —  Constitutional  question  —  Gait  —  Macdougall  —  Difficulty  of 
dealing  with  the  West  Indies  —  Gait  on  Colonial  Taxation  —  Action  of 
the  Imperial  Government  —  Negotiations  in  1862  with  France  —  Remon- 
strance —  Removal  of  Baron  Boilleau  —  Importance  jjfJTjade  question  — 
Necessity  of  concession  to  Canada  by  the  Imperial  Government  to 
make  exceptional  reciprocal  arrangements  with  South  America,  and 
with  all  the  British  Colonies  wherever  situate  —  Changed  position  of 
Canada  —  Increased  responsibilities  necessitate  increased  powers  — 
A.D.  1865. 

CHAPTER  XL 

The  Fenian-4»*^§ionof  i366-^Lower  Canada  Education  Bill  —  Action  of  the 
Government—Gait's  resignation  —  Subsequent  conduct  —  Constitution  of 
the  Local  Governments  and  Legislatures  for  Upper  and  Lower  Canada  — 
Resolutions  and  amendments  —  Parliamentary  action  of  prominent  Upper 
Canadian  Politicians  on  Representation  by  Population  —  Address  to  the 
Queen  —  Announcement  of  Deputation  —  Expiry  of  the  Parliament  of  Old 
Canada—  A.  D.  1866. 


CHAPTER  XII. 

Vancouver  Island  —  Canadian  Pacific  Railway  —  Thunder  Bay  Mining  Region  — 
Departure  of  Deputation  for  England  —  Legislative  action  of  Nova  Scotia 
and  New  Brunswick  —  -Future  consideration  of  details  of  contest  inthose 
Provinces  —  Political  Acrobats  —  Departure  of  Deputations  from  New 
Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia  —  Remonstrance  on  non-arrival  of  Canadian 
Deputation  —  Reply  —  Proposition  relative  to  Prince  Edward  Island  — 
Formation  of  London  Conference  —  Resolutions  —  Differences  from  Quebec 
Resolutions  —  Discussions  and  Bills  framed  —  Additional  Clauses  in  Act  as 
ultimately  passed  —  Propositions  on  Intercolonial  Railway  —  Guarantee  — 
Imperial  Legislation  —  Return  of  Deputation  —  Legislation1!!!  New  Bruns- 
jvickand  Nova  Scptiapn  Dual  Representation  —  Resignations  of  Members 
—  Imperial  Honours—  Royal  Proclamation  —  Charge  of  corruption  against 
Canadian  statesmen  —  First  of  July,  1867  —  A.D.  1866  and  1867. 


CONFEDERATION : 

OR, 

THE   POLITICAL  AND    PARLIAMENTARY 

HISTORY  OF  CANADA, 

FROM 

OCTOBER,  1864,  TO  JULY,  1871. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Preliminary  observations  as  to  the  Imperial  Colonial  Policy,  from  the  time  of 
the  American  Revolution  to  the  adoption  of  Free  Trade  —  Progress  of 
opinion  in  England — Concurrent  progress  of  opinion  and  political  deve- 
lopment in  Canada  and  the  Maritime  Provinces — Lord  Durham's  mis- 
sion—  Intercolonial  Trade  —  Intercolonial  Railway — Frontier  disputes 
with  the  United  States — Ashburton  Treaty — Consequences — Intercolo- 
nial negotiations  respecting  commercial  union — Abortive — Gait's  policy 
on  joining  the  cabinet  in  1858 — Imperial  policy  undecided — American 
troubles  in  1862 — Trent  affair — Effect  on  Imperial  policy — Dead  lock  in 
Canada — Brown  joins  the  government  in  1864 — Ministerial  explanations 
—  Movements  in  the  Maritime  Provinces  towards  Legislative  Union — 
Charlottetown  Convention  —  Attendance  of  Canadian  Ministers  —  Dis- 
cussions —  Halifax  —  Macdonald  and  Brown's  speeches  —  Saint  John — 
Carder  and  Gait — A.D.  1776  to  1864. 

The  policy  of  the  Imperial  Government  towards  its  possessions 
in  British  North  America  for  many  years  after  the  American 
Revolution,  was  one  of  disintegration,  rather  than  consolidation. 
"  Ships,  Colonies  and  Commerce,"  remained  the  chosen  motto  of 
the  Empire.  The  strength  acquired  by  the  union  of  the  thirteen 
United  States  indicated,  as  it  was  conceived,  future  dismember- 
ment and  severance  of  the  remaining  Colonies,  should  they  be 
allowed  to  coalesce  too  much. 

Convenience  for  the  administration  of  local  affairs  in  countries 

so  widely  extended  and  so  sparsely  settled,  also  in  some  degree 

tended  to  keep  the  remaining  Provinces  apart.     New  Brunswick 

was  separated  from  Nova  Scotia ;  the  two  Canadas  were  divided ; 

2 


10  CONFEDERATION. 

Cape  Breton  was  constituted  a  distinct  government;  Prince 
Edward  Island,  with  its  scant  population  and  limited  area, 
retained  its  old  isolation,  and  Newfoundland  was  made  a  post 
captain's  appointment.  Separate  governments,  separate  parlia- 
ments, different  laws,  and  hostile  tariffs  fostered  local  prejudices 
and  created  divergent  interests. 

Thirty-five  years  ago  the  voice  of  Free  Trade  was  heard  in 
England.  Protection  was  assailed.  The  change  was  rapid.  In  a 
few  years  the  preferential  duties  in  favour  of  colonial  timber  were 
abolished.  The  old  idea  of  restricting  the  trade  of  the  Colonies 
to  the  mother  country  was  abandoned.  The  Cromwell  code  of  the 
navigation  laws  lost  its  hold  upon  the  country ;  the  corn  laws  were 
swept  away.  "  Buy  in  the  cheapest  market,  sell  in  the  dearest," 
was  heard  from  Manchester  and  Birmingham,  echoed  in  Liverpool 
and  London,  and  rolled  back  from  the  Solway  and  the  Clyde. 
The  policy  of  the  Empire  was  changed.  The  United  States  were 
better  customers  than  the  British  North  American  Provinces. 
Why,  then,  it  was  asked,  retain  the  latter  at  the  expense  of  the 
over-taxed  citizens  of  England?  British  interests,  it  was  said, 
required  that  they  should  be  severed  from  the  parent  state. 
British  honor  forbade  that  they  should  be  abandoned,  until  able 
to  take  care  of  themselves.  They  must  be  taught  self-reliance ; 
to  share  largely,  nay,  to  bear  almost  entirely,  the  burden  of  their 
own  defence.  Having  the  entire  and  absolute  control  of  all  local 
sources  of  wealth,  with  unrestricted  powers  of  legislation  in  all 
matters  save  those  affecting  Imperial  interests,  they  had  been  for 
fifteen  years  past,  in  all  but  the  tie  of  a  willing  allegiance,  inde- 
pendent countries.  But  they  must  not  be  allowed  to  fall  into  the 
United  States,  and  add  to  the  aggressive  power  of  that  already 
•great  Republic.  The  loyal  sentiment  of  the  people  must  be 
nurtured ;  the  attachment  of  a  free  people  to  the  mother  country 
must  not  be  rudely  rent  asunder.  Sustained  and  strengthened  by 
the  Imperial  connection,  they  must  be  guided  on  to  a  development 
of  power,  of  nationality,  that  would  enable  them  at  a  future  day 
to  take  their  place  amid  the  nations  of  the  earth,  the  friend,  and 
not  the  foe  of  England.  Opinion  changed.  Union  is  strength ; 
and  Consolidation  becomes  the  policy  of  the  Empire. 


CONFEDERATION.  11 

Such  was  the  working  of  the  public  mind  in  England.  But 
during  these  same  thirty-five  years,  the  public  mind  in  British 
North  America  had  not  been  stationary.  Equally  progressive,  it 
had  passed  from  the  weakness  of  infancy  and  pupilage  to  the 
strength  of  maturity  and  manhood.  Thirty-five  years  ago,  these 
Provinces  were  governed  from  England;  local  appointments  of 
honor  and  emolument  were  made  from  England.  A  few  favored 
families  held  the  patronage  of  the  country.  The  debates  of  the 
legislative  councils  were  held  with  closed  doors.  Irresponsible 
office-holders,  bishops  and  judges  were  members.  They  admitted 
no  right  in  the  people  to  question  the  sacred  character  of  their 
proceedings.  The  public  lands  and  public  revenues,  the  mines  and 
minerals,  were  Imperial  property,  and  disposed  of  by  Imperial 
direction ;  sometimes  to  pay  the  debts  of  a  spendthrift  duke,  some- 
times to  provide  for  a  needy  baronet,  and  sometimes  for  the  colony. 
Treaties  were  made  by  which  Provinces  were  dismembered  without 
consulting  the  Colonial  authorities  or  considering  the  Colonial 
interests ;  engendering  future  complications  with  foreign  countries, 
and  leaving  to  the  Colonies  the  seeds  of  future  permanent  injury, 
though  giving  to  the  mother  country  a  temporary  relief  from 
anxiety.  Measures  of  internal  vital  importance,  passed  by  the 
local  legislatures,  were  ignored.  Complaints  against  public  officers 
were  studiously  disregarded,  or,  if  acceded  to,  neutralized  by  the 
action  of  irresponsible  ministers,  holding  their  appointments  from 
abroad,  irrespective  of  the  wishes  of  the  people  whose  interests 
they  were  to  serve.  Sustained,  though  condemned,  the  official 
retained  his  place.  "  Hie  est  damnatus  inani  judicio  at  tu  victrix 
Provincia  ploras" 

This  could  not  last.  Howe  in  Nova  Scotia,  Wilmot  in  New 
Brunswick,  Papineau  in  Lower,  and  Baldwin  in  Upper  Canada, 
struggled  for  reform.  They  demanded  for  the  people  the  control 
of  the  local  revenues,  the  appointment  of  Provincial  officers,  and 
the  constitutional  selection  of  ministers  responsible  to  the  people 
of  the  country  for  the  adnrnistration  of  local  affairs.  Theirs  was 
no  pigmy  contest  in  those  days ;  every  vested  interest  arrayed  its 
hydra  head  against  them.  Persons  whose  families  had  held  office 
until  they  deemed  the  succession  should  be  hereditary,  denounced 


12  CONFEDERATION. 

them  as  rebels  —  as  disloyal.  Misrepresentation  and  calumny 
followed  them  abroad,  social  ostracism  at  home.  The  Lieutenant- 
Governors,  regardless  of  their  duty,  became  partizans  in  the 
contest,  and  put  themselves  in  personal  antagonism  to  the  friends 
of  progress.  To  such  an  extent  did  this  go,  that  Sir  Archibald 
Campbell,  the  sturdy  old  conqueror  of  Burmah,  the  then  Lieu- 
tenant-Governor  of  New  Brunswick,  coolly  informed  the  Legis- 
lature of  that  Province,  in  answer  to  an  overwhelming  address 
from  that  body  for  his  removal,  "  that  he  had  served  his  Sovereign 
so  long  abroad,  that  he  did  not  care  for  their  opinion."  Between 
Mr.  Howe  and  Lord  Falkland,  the  Lieutenant-Governor,  the  alter- 
cation went  so  far,  that  the  indignant  Nova  Scotian  threatened  to 
hire  a  black  man  to  horsewhip  the  representative  of  the  Sovereign. 
Papineau  did  not  stop  on  the  verge  of  rebellion,  and  the  language 
of  Rolph  and  Baldwin  had  the  ring  of  Massachusetts  Bay  in 
1776. 

American  experience  was  not  thrown  away  on  England.  The 
broad  intellect  of  Lord  Durham  and  the  constitutional  knowledge 
of  Charles  Buller  quieted  the  storm.  The  practical  concession  of 
their  rights  having  been  established,  the  people  of  British  North 
America  set  themselves  to  work,  each  Province  in  its  own  way,  to 
develope  the  resources  of  its  own  locality.  A  healthy  climate 
and  great  natural  advantages  bore  them  onward,  but  no  one 
common  direction  governed  the  general  movement.  Each  did 
what  was  best  for  itself,  regulated  its  tariif  by  its  own  immediate 
wants,  built  its  little  Chinese  wall  round  its  own  frontier,  and 
taxed  the  manufactures  of  a  sister  Province  as  readily  as  those  of 
Russia  or  the  United  States.  Resting  on  its  mother's  leading 
hand,  each  toddled  along  in  its  own  harmless  way.  But  science, 
steam,  telegraphs  and  railways,  had  taught  a  new  education.  The 
stupendous  progress  of  the  United  States,  with  an  unrestricted 
commerce  from  Florida  to  Maine,  stood  out  in  bold  contrast  to 
the  narrow  policy  of  Provincial  isolation ;  and  thinking  minds,  in 
advance  of  their  time,  conceived  that  if  all  the  Provinces  of 
British  North  America  were  united,  with  a  common  tariff  and  an 
unrestricted  internal  trade,  a  similar  result,  to  a  certain  extent, 
might  be  obtained. 


CONFEDERATION.  13 

The  dream  of  the  political  economist  was  brought  about  by 
ca  uses,  the  effect  of  which,  at  their  inception,  was  not  foreseen 
Many  years  previous  to  the  Ashburton  treaty — as  far  back  as 
1834  or  1835 — John  Wilson,  an  enterprising  merchant  of  St.' 
Andrews,  in  the  Province  of  New  Brunswick,  had  originated  a 
company  for  the  construction  of  a  railway  from  St.  Andrews  to 
Quebec;  and  a  survey  of  the  same  had  been  made,  under  the 
direction  of  Major  Yule,  an  officer  of  the  Royal  Engineers.  This 
line,  though  countenanced  by  the  British  Government,  owed  its 
contemplation  more  to  its  commercial  than  to  its  military  impor- 
tance. Its  course  was  comparatively  straight  and  short.  But, 
pending  this  survey,  the  United  States  Government  claimed  the 
territory  through  which  it  passed.  The  border  difficulties  of  1839 
and  1840 — during  which  war  was  only  averted  by  the  prudence  of 
Sir  John  Harvey  and -General  Scott — terminated  in  disgraceful 
concession.  The  "Ashburtoii  capitulation,"  as  Lord  Palmerston 
called  it,  was  signed  in  1842.  A  wedge  of  foreign  territory  was 
thrust  up  between  Canada  and  New  Brunswick,  without  consulting 
those  Provinces ;  and  the  opportunity  of  constructing,  on  British 
soil,  speedy  and  direct  land  communication  between  the  two,  was 
lost  forever. 

Resulting  from  the  disturbances  in  Canada  previous  to  and 
during  the  years  1837  and  1838,  the  circumstances  attending  the 
claim  of  the  United  States  to  the  frontier  boundary,  and  other 
occurrences  about  the  same  time,  the  attention  of  the  British 
Government,  which  had  before  been  turned  to  the  construction  of 
a  military  road  from  Halifax  to  Quebec,  sufficiently  far  removed 
from  the  American  frontier  to  be  always  available,  was  materially 
strengthened.  The  proposition  to  substitute  a  railroad  in  lieu  of 
such  military  road  had  been  thrown  out  by  Lord  Durham,  but  in 
no  way  acted  upon.  In  1845,  the  Governor  of  Nova  Scotia  applied 
to  Her  Majesty's  Government  to  conduct  a  survey  under  the 
direction  of  competent  military  engineers,  either  at  the  expense  of 
the  British  or  Colonial  Governments ;  suggesting  at  the  same  time 
that  the  importance  of  the  ultimate  object  was  so  great,  that  he 
hoped  this  preparatory  step  might  be  deemed  worthy  of  Imperial 
assistance.  Her  Majesty's  Government  assented  to  the  application, 


14  CONFEDERATION. 

but  declined  granting  Imperial  aid ;  and  a  survey  and  exploration 
of  a  line  from  Halifax  to  Quebec,  through  the  northern  part  of 
New  Brunswick,  made  at  the  joint  expense  of  the  three  Provinces 
of  Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick  and  Canada,  under  the  direction 
of  Major  Robinson,  an  officer  of  the  Royal  Engineers,' was  com- 
menced -in  1846,  and  completed  in  1848.  No  immediate  action 
was  taken  on  this  survey ;  but,  after  several  years  of  negotiations, 
principally  through  the  exertions  of  Mr.  Howe,  the  Imperial 
Government,  in  1851,  by  the  Colonial  Secretary,  Lord  Grey,  made 
a  specific  offer  to  aid  with  an  Imperial  guarantee  the  construction 
of  a  railway  on  the  route  surveyed  by  Major  Robinson,  if  the 
Provinces  of  Canada,  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia  would 
undertake  to  build  one,  subject  to  the  approval  of  Her  Majesty's 
Government.  A  re-formation  of  the  Government  of  New  Bruns- 
wick, in  1851,  based  upon  a  demand  for  a  similar  extension  of  the 
Imperial  guarantee  to  the  construction  through  New  Brunswick  of 
the  European  and  North  American  Railway,  then  lately  originated 
at  a  railway  convention  held  at  Portland,  in  the  State  of  Maine, 
and  legislated  upon  by  the  Provinces  of  New  Brunswick  and  Nova 
Scotia  and  the  State  of  Maine;  and  the  refusal  of  the  British 
Government  to  extend  that  guarantee — upon  the  ground  that  the 
newly  proposed  road  could  not  be  regarded  as  of  the  same  Imperial 
character  or  importance  as  the  Intercolonial,  and  that  the  language 
of  the  despatch,  upon  which  such  demand  had  been  made,  was 
misunderstood — prevented  at  that  time  any  action  upon  the  offer. 
In  the  subsequent  year,  1852,  Canada  (through  the  instrumentality 
of  Messrs.  Hincks,  Young  and  Tache,  members  of  the  Government) 
and  New  Brunswick  agreed  upon  a  line  to  be  built  by  their  Govern- 
ments, through  the  valley  of  the  St.  John ;  but  to  this  Nova  Scotia 
objected ;  and  the  Colonial  Minister  having  refused  the  guarantee 
to  the  new  route,  upon  the  ground  that  the  negotiations  had  been 
based  upon  the  Major  Robinson  line,  or  an  approximation  to  it, 
efforts  for  its  construction  ultimately  died  out.  The  three  Pro- 
vinces, therefore,  if  they  desired  to  act  conjointly  and  obtain  the 
Imperial  guarantee,  were  compelled  to  adopt  a  line  sufficiently 
removed  from  the  American  frontier  to  comply  with  the  military 
character  of  the  work  for  which  the  guarantee  was  originally  offered. 


CONFEDERATION.  15 

Though,  owing  to  these  different  complications  in  the  Provinces, 
the  work  was  thus  retarded,  the  idea  was  never  abandoned,  and  at 
various  times  between  that  period  and  1860,  numerous  negotiations 
were  had  between  the  Provinces  touching  its  construction.  In 
1862-3,  these  had  proceeded  so  far,  that  an  apportionment  of  the 
relative  expense  to  be  borne  by  the  Provinces  separately  had  been 
agreed  upon,  and  laws  passed  in  the  Legislatures  of  New  Bruns- 
wick and  Nova  Scotia  to  confirm  the  arrangement.  From  some 
cause,  which  to  the  maritime  Provinces  was  never  satisfactorily 
accounted  for,  the  arrangement  was  not  adhered  to  by  Canada. 
During  the  same  period  efforts  had  also  been  repeatedly  made  by 
the  several  Governments  to  bring  about  a  union  of  postal  and 
fiscal  regulations,  and  a  similarity  of  tariffs,  but  the  local  necessi- 
ties of  each,  and  the  supposed  divergence  of  interests,  had  rendered 
those  efforts  ineffectual. 

No  serious  attempt,  however,  at  a  political  union  had  been 
made;  but  the  public  mind  was  rapidly  expanding  both  to  its 
importance  and  necessity.  In  1854  the  question  had  been  brought 
up  in  the  Nova  Scotia  House  of  Assembly,  and  the  great  leaders 
of  the  Conservative  and  Liberal  parties,  Messrs.  Johnston  and 
Howe,  throwing  aside  the  rivalry  of  party,  had  delineated  with 
equal  power  the  advantages  that  would  result  from  combining  the 
scattered  elements  of  prosperity  and  strength  separately  possessed 
by  the  several  Provinces. 

In  1858,  in  the  Canadian  Parliament,  the  movement  assumed  a 
more  tangible  shape,  and  union  was  made  a  part  of  the  policy  of 
the  Government.  Mr.  Gait,  on  his  becoming  a  member  of  the 
administration,  insisted  on  its  being  made  a  cabinet  question ;  and 
Sir  Edmund  Head,  in  his  speech  at  the  close  of  the  session, 
intimated  that  his  government,  during  the  recess,  would  take 
action  in  the  matter.  These  tendencies,  however,  were  all  abor- 
tive ;  they  produced  nothing.  On  this  subject,  at  that  time,  the 
Imperial  Government  itself  had  no  definite  policy.  In  1857, 
when,  in  furtherance  of  the  movement  in  the  Nova  Scotia  Parlia- 
ment, the  Hon.  Messrs.  Johnston  and  Adams  G.  Archibald  had  gone 
to  England  to  confer  with  Her  Majesty's  Government  on  that  as 
well  as  on  other  matters,  Mr.  Labouchere,  the  Secretary  of  State 


16  CONFEDERATION. 

for  the  Colonies,  intimated  to  them  that  it  was  a  question  entirely 
for  the  Colonies  themselves,  and  that  no  obstacle  to  its  accomplish- 
ment would  be  thrown  in  their  way.  In  1858,  when,  in  further- 
ance of  the  then  adopted  policy  of  the  Canadian  Government, 
Messrs.  Cartier,  Gait  and  Ross  specially  waited  upon  the  Imperial 
Government,  requesting  authority  for  a  meeting  of  delegates  from 
each  of  the  Colonies,  to  take  the  question  into  consideration,  Sir 
Edward  Bulwer  Lytton,  the  then  Secretary,  replied  that  the  ques- 
tion "  was  necessarily  one  of  an  Imperial  character,"  and  declined 
to  authorize  the  meeting  because,  with  the  exception  of  one,  he 
had  received  no  expression  of  sentiment  from  the  Lower  Provinces 
on  the  subject.  In  1862,  the  Duke  of  Newcastle,  the  then  Colo- 
nial Secretary,  in  a  dispatch  to  the  Governor-General,  after  stating 
in  explicit  terms  that  Her  Majesty's  Government  was  not  prepared 
to  announce  any  definite  policy  on  this  question  for  a  similar 
reason,  added  that  "  if  a  union,  either  partial  or  complete,  should 
hereafter  be  proposed,  with  the  concurrence  of  all  the  Provinces 
to  be  united,  I  am  sure  that  the  matter  would  be  weighed  in  this 
country,  both  by  the  public,  by  Parliament,  and  by  Her  Majesty's 
Government,  with  no  other  feeling  than  an  anxiety  to  discern  and 
promote  any  course  which  might  be  the  most  conducive  to  the 
prosperity,  the  strength  and  harmony  of  all  the  British  communi- 
ties in  North  America." 

The  war  in  the  United  States,  however,  and  the  Trent  affair  of 
1861-2,  put  an  end  to  all  vacillation  on  the  part  of  the  Imperial 
Government ;  and  from  the  Prime  Minister  to  the  peasant,  whether 
Liberal  or  Conservative,  whether  Tory  or  Radical,  but  one  policy 
.  for  the  future  was  to  prevail.  British  America  was  to  be  consoli- 
^  dated ;  British  America  was  to  be  made  self-reliant ;  British 
America  was  to  be  put  in  a  position  to  require  as  little  from  the 
British  Government  as  was  possible,  with  an  allegiance  that  was 
voluntary,  and  a  connection  that  was  almost  nominal.  The  integ- 
rity of  the  Empire  was  to  be  preserved,  but  the  outlying  frontier 
was  to  be  mainly  instrumental  in  preserving  it.  Union  received 
an  astounding  impulse.  It  perhaps  never  before  occurred  that 
two  independent  bodies,  moving  in  their  own  orbits,  so  suddenly 
and  so  simultaneously  received  an  influence  from  different  causes, 


CONFEDERATION.  17 

impelling  them  in  the  same  direction,  and  that  direction  to  result 
in  their  mutual  good.  The  force  was  irresistible ;  it  was  to  the 
same  end,  but  neither  body  was  to  be  coercive  of  the  other.  The 
outward  pressure  of  mutual  necessity  and  mutual  advantage  broke 
like  light  upon  the  public  mind.  Both  parties  were  to  be  strength- 
ened, but  the  result  was  to  be  obtained  by  the  voluntary  action  of 
a  free  people,  the  exercise  of  their  constitutional  rights,  the  assent 
of  the  national  judgment.  Events  moved  on  with  startling 
rapidity.  What,  up  to  1861,  had  been  the  shadowy  outline  of  a 
patriot's  broad  conceptions,  or  the  enthusiast's  dream,  suddenly 
sprang  into  a  tangible  creation,  "rudis  indigestaque  moles"  at 
first,  but  soon  to  be  moulded  into  shape,  each  fragment  taking  its 
proper  place,  each  individual  part  fitting  to  its  proper  sphere,  and 
standing  forth  a  compact  and  substantial  fabric. 

In  the  winter  of  1864,  though  the  public  mind  was  thus  agitated, 
all  reasonable  hopes  of  effecting  any  arrangement  with  Canada, 
either  of  a  fiscal  nature  or  for  the  construction  of  the  intercolonial 
road  at  an  early  day,  seemed  to  have  been  abandoned  in  the  Lower 
Provinces ;  and  the  Legislatures  of  New  Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia 
and  Prince  Edward  Island  had,  at  their  sessions  in  that  year, 
severally  passed  resolutions  authorising  their  respective  Govern- 
ments to  enter  into  negotiations,  and  hold  a  Convention  for  the 
purpose  of  effecting  a  union  of  the  Maritime  Provinces,  political, 
legislative  and  fiscal.  That  Convention  was  appointed  to  meet  at 
Charlottetown,  in  Prince  Edward  Island,  in  the  month  of  September 
following. 

It  is  necessary  here  to  retrace  our  steps  for  a  moment,  and  take 
a  rapid  glance  at  the  position  of  Canada.  •  During  the  previous 
ten  or  fifteen  years,  though  politically  united,  the  conflicting 
interests  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada  had  become  more  divergent. 
At  the  union  of  the  two  Provinces,  under  Lord  Sydenham,  in 
1841,  the  Parliamentary  representation  was  rather  in  favor  of 
Lower  Canada;  and  the  rule  of  equal  territorial  representation, 
which,  in  the  interests  of  Upper  Canada,  was  at  that  time  adopted, 
in  order  to  neutralize  the  supposed  inequality,  was,  -owing  to  the 
more  rapid  increase  in  wealth  and  population  of  that  Province, 
found  soon  to  operate  to  its  disadvantage.  In  a  short  time  Upper 
exceeded  Lower  Canada  in  its  population  by  many  hundred  thou- 


1 8  CONFEDERATION . 

sands  (nearly  half  a  million),  without  having  received  any  corres- 
ponding increase  in  representation,  or  influence  in  the  raising  or 
disbursement  of  the  revenues  obtained  from  the  taxation  of  both. 
Thus,  prominent  among  the  political  questions  of  the  day  became 
Representation  by  Population. 

But  the  governing  by  double  majorities  was  equally  a  source  of 
difficulty.  It  was  necessary  that  the  portion  of  the  cabinet  formed 
from  each  Province  should  carry  with  it  the  support  of  the  majority 
of  the  representatives  of  the  Province  from  which  it  came.  A  more 
absurd  mode  of  government  could  hardly  be  conceived  ;  for  while 
the  leading  ministers  and  statesmen  of  both  Provinces  might  be 
thoroughly  united  on  a  question  of  general  importance  to  the 
whole,  the  local  jealousy  of  a  part  of  either  one  particularly 
affected  might  deprive  the  portion  of  the  cabinet  belonging  to  that 
Province  of  its  support,  and  thus  defeat  a  ministry  commanding 
the  confidence  of  the  whole  country,  and  a  majority  of  the  Parlia- 
ment, but  unable,  from  some  local  cause,  to  carry  a  particular 
section.  Under  such  a  system,  local  jealousies  are  fostered,  broad 
and  liberal  views  are  abandoned,  sections  become  powers,  principles 
degenerate  into  personalities,  consistency  is  sacrificed  for  place,  and 
the  parliamentary  debates  become  remarkable  for  the  acerbity  they 
display,  rather  than  for  the  talent  they  evolve. 

The  jealousies  between  the  Upper  and  Lower  Canadas  increased; 
party  lines  became  more  clearly  defined  (if  adherence  to  persons 
and  sections  more  than  to  principle  can  be  called  party) ;  and 
government,  in  a  parliamentary  sense,  became  practically  impos- 
sible. In  the  session  of  1863,  on  all  questions  affecting  the  then 
existing  ministry,  under  the  leadership  of  the  Hon.  John  Sandfield 
Macdonald,  the  divisions  were  so  nearly  equal  that  the  Government 
ceased  to  command  its  proper  influence.  At  the  re-assembling  of 
Parliament  in  February,  1864,  finding  that  no  additional  strength 
had  been  acquired  during  the  recess,  though  a  dissolution  had 
taken  place  and  a  general  election  had  been  held  for  the  purpose  of 
testing  public  opinion,  the  Government  resigned ;  and  in  March, 
1864,  a  new  administration,  under  Sir  E.  P.  Tache,  was  formed. 
Up  to  June  the  divisions  shewed  a  similar  position  for  the  new 
Government.  On  the  14th  of  June  the  Journals  of  the  Legislative 
Assembly  have  the  following  entry: — "The  Hon.  Mr.  Brown 


CONFEDERATION.  1 9 

from  the  select  Committee  appointed  to  enquire  into  tlie  important 
subjects  embraced  in  a  dispatch,  to  the  Colonial  Minister,  addressed 
to  him  on  the  2nd  Feb.,  1864,  by  the  Hon.  Geo.  E.  Cartier — the 
Hon.  A.  T.  Gait  and  the  Hon.  John  Ross,  then  members  of  the 
Executive  Council  of  the  Province,  while  in  London,  acting  on 
behalf  of  the  Government  of  which  they  were  members,  in  which 
they  declared  that  'very  grave  difficulties  now  present  themselves 
in  conducting  the  Government  of  Canada  in  such  a  manner  as 
to  show  due  regard  to  the  wishes  of  its  numerous  populations.' 
That  '  differences  -exist  to  an  extent  which  prevents  any  perfect 
and  complete  assimilation  of  the  views  of  the  two  sections/  That 
'  the  progress  of  population  has  been  more  rapid  in  the  western 
section,  and  claims  are  now  being  made  on  behalf  of  its  inhabi- 
tants for  giving  them  representation  in  the  Legislature  in  propor- 
tion to  their  numbers.'  That  '  the  result  is  shewn  by  an  agitation 
fraught  with  great  danger  to  the  peaceful  and  harmonious  work- 
ing of  our  constitutional  system,  and  consequently  detrimental  to 
the  progress  of  the  Province,' — and  that  '  the  necessity  of  provid- 
ing a  remedy  for  a  state  of  things  that  is  yearly  becoming  worse, 
and  of  allaying  feelings  that  are  daily  being  aggravated  by  the 
contention  of  political  parties,  has  impressed  the  advisers  of  Her 
Majesty's  Representative  in  Canada  with  the  importance  of  seek- 
ing such  a  mode  of  dealing  with  the  difficulties  as  may  forever 
remove  them,' — and  the  best  means  of  remedying  the  evils  therein 
set  forth,  presented  to  the  House  the  Report  of  said  Committee, 
which  was  read  as  followeth  :  "  That  the  Committee  have  held 
eight  meetings,  and  have  endeavoured  to  find  some  solution  for 
existing  difficulties  likely  to  receive  the  assent  of  both  sections  of 
the  Province." — "  A  strong  feeling  was  found  to  exist  among  the 
members  of  the  Committee  in  favor  of  changes  in  the  direction  of 
a  Federative  system,  applied  either  to  Canada  alone,  or  to  the 
whole  British  North  American  Provinces,  and  such  progress  has 
been  made  as  to  warrant  the  Committee  in  recommending  that  the 
subject  be  again  referred  to  a  Committee  at  the  next  Session  of 
Parliament. 

"  The  whole  respectfully  submitted. 

"  GEORGE  BROWN, 

"  Chairman" 


20  CONFEDERATION, 

On  the  same  day  the  Government  was  defeated  by  60  to  58,  on 
a  vote  of  censure  relative  to  some  transactions  connected  with 
bonds  of  the  City  of  Montreal,  and  to  the  Grand  Trunk  Railway 
in  1859,  five  years  before,  under  a  previous  administration.  The 
contest  was  personal, — the  Dead  Lock  had  come.  Between  that 
day  and  the  30th  of  June  the  supplies  were  hurried  through, 
and  the  House  was  prorogued.  On  the  23rd  of  June,  previous  to 
the  prorogation,  when  the  Orders  of  the  Day  were  called,  the 
Hon.  Attorney-General  Macdonald  rose  to  make  ministerial  ex- 
planations in  regard  to  the  recent  negotiations  for  strengthening 
the  Government.  He  read  the  following  statement  of  what  had 
passed  between  the  Government  and  Mr.  Brown  from  the  com- 
mencement to  the  close  of  the  negotiations. 

"  Immediately  after  the  defeat  of  the  Government  on  Tuesday 
night  (the  14th),  and  on  the  following  morning,  Mr.  Brown 
spoke  to  several  supporters  of  the  Administration,  strongly  urging 
that  the  present  crisis  should  be  utilized  in  settling  forever  the 
constitutional  difficulties  between  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  and 
assuring  them  that  he  was  prepared  to  co-operate  with  the  exist- 
ing, or  any  other  Administration  that  would  deal  with  the  ques- 
tion promptly  and  firmly,  with  a  view  to  its  final  settlement. 

"  Messrs.  Morris  and  Pope  asked,  and  obtained  leave,  to  com- 
municate these  conversations  to  Mr.  John  A.  Macdonald  and 
Mr.  Gait. 

.  "  On  Thursday,  at  three,  P.M.,  just  before  the  Speaker  took  the 
chair,  Mr.  John  A.  Macdonald  said  to  Mr.  Brown  while  standing 
in  the  centre  of  the  Assembly  Room,  that  he  had  been  informed 
of  what  he,  Mr.  Brown,  had  stated,  and  he  wished  to  know  if 
Mr.  Brown  had  any  objections  to  meet  Mr.  Gait  and  discuss  the 
matter  ?  He  replied,  certainly  not. 

"Mr.  Morris  accordingly  arranged  an  interview  with  Mr. 
Brown;  and  on  Friday,  the  17th  June,  about  one,  P.M.,  Messrs. 
Macdonald  and  ,Galt  called  on  Mr.  Brown,  at  the  St.  Louis  Hotel. 
Mr.  Brown  stated  that  nothing  but  the  extreme  urgency  of  the 
present  crisis,  and  the  hope  of  settling  the  sectional  troubles  of 
the  Province  for  ever,  could,  in  his  opinion,  justify  their  meeting 


CONFEDERATION.  21 

together  with  a  view  to  common  political  action.  Messrs.  Mac- 
donald  and  Gait  were  equally  impressed  with  this,  and  stated  that 
on  that  footing  alone  the  present  meeting  had  been  invited. 

"  Mr.  Brown  asked  in  what  position  these  gentlemen  came  to 
him,  whether  as  deputed  by  the  Administration,  or  simply  as 
leading  members  of  the  Ministerial  party.  They  replied  they 
were  charged  by  their  colleagues  formally  to  invite  his  aid  in 
strengthening  the  Administration,  with  a  view  to  the  settlement 
of  the  sectional  difficulties  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada.  Mr. 
Brown  then  stated  that,  on  grounds  purely  personal,  it  was  quite 
impossible  that  he  could  be  a  member  "of  any  Administration  at 
present,  and  that  even  had  this  been  otherwise,  he  would  have 
conceived  it  highly  objectionable  that  parties  who  had  been  so 
long  and  so  strongly  opposed  to  each  other,  as  he  and  some  mem- 
bers of  the  Administration  had  been,  should  enter  the  same  cabi- 
net. He  thought  the  public  mind  would  be  shocked  by  such  an 
arrangement,  but  he  felt  very  strongly  that  the  present  crisis  pre- 
sented an  opportunity  of  dealing  with  this  question  that  might 
never  occur  again.  Both  political  parties  had  tried  in  turn  to 
govern  the  country,  but  without  success,  and  repeated  elections 
only  arrayed  sectional  majorities  against  each  other  more  strongly 
than  before.  Another  general  election  at  this  moment  presented 
little  hope  of  a  much  altered  result ;  and  he  believed  that  both 
parties  were  far  better  prepared  than  they  had  ever  been  before, 
to  look  the  true  cause  of  all  the  difficulties  firmly  in  the  face,  and 
endeavour  to  settle  the  Representation  question  on  an  equitable  and 
permanent  basis.  Mr.  Brown  added  that  if  the  Administration 
were  prepared  to  do  this,  and  would 'pledge~themselves  clearly  and 
publicly  to  bring  in  a  measure  next  Session  that  would  be  accept- 
able to  Upper  Canada,  the  basis  to  be  now  settled  and  announced 
in  Parliament,  he  would  heartily  co-operate  with  them,  and  try  to 
induce  his  friends  (in  which  he  hoped  to  be  successful)  to  sustain 
them  until  they  had  an  opportunity  of  presenting  their  measure 
next  session. 

"  Mr.  Macdonald  replied  that  he  considered  it  would  be  essen- 
tial that  Mr.  Brown  himself  should  become  a  Member  of  the 
Cabinet,  with  a  view  to  give  guarantees  to  the  Opposition  and  to 
the  country  for  the  earnestness  of  the  Government. 


22  CONFEDERATION. 

"  Mr.  Brown  rejoined  that  other  Members  of  the  Opposition 
could,  equally  with  himself,  give  that  guarantee  to  their  party 
and  the  Country,  by  entering  the  Government  in  the  event  of  a 
satisfactory  basis  being  arrived  at.  He  felt  that  his  position  had 
been  such  for  many  years  as  to  place  a  greater  bar  in  the  way  of 
his  entering  the  Government,  than  in  that  of  any  other  Member 
of  the  Opposition. 

"  Mr.  Macdonald  then  said  that  he  thought  it  would  be  neces- 
sary that  Mr.  Brown,  himself  should,  in  any  case,  be  identified 
with  the  negotiations  that  would  necessarily  have  to  take  place, 
and  that,  if  he  did  not  himself  enter  the  Cabinet,  he  might  un- 
dertake a  mission  to  the  Lower  Provinces,  or  to  England,  or  both, 
in  order  to  identify  himself  with  the  action  of  the  Canadian  Go- 
vernment in  carrying  out  the  measure  agreed  upon. 

"  It  was  then  suggested  by  Mr.  Brown,  and  agreed  to,  that  all 
questions  of  a  personal  character,  and  the  necessary  guarantees, 
should  be  waived  for  the  present,  and  the  discussion  conducted 
with  the  view  of  ascertaining  if  a  satisfactory  solution  of  the  sec- 
tional difficulty  could  be  agreed  upon. 

"  Mr.  Brown  asked  what  the  Government  proposed  as  a  remedy 
for  the  injustice  complained  of  by  Upper  Canada,  and  as  a  settle- 
ment of  the  sectional  troubles.  Mr.  Macdonald  and  Mr.  Gait 
replied  that  their  remedy  was  a  Federal  Union  of  all  the  British 
North  American  Provinces ;  local  matters  being  committed  to 
local  bodies,  and  matters  common  to  all  to  a  General  Legislature, 
constituted  on  the  well-understood  principles  of  Federal  Govern- 
ment. 

"  Mr.  Brown  rejoined  that  this  would  not  be  acceptable  to  the 
people  of  Upper  Canada  as  a  remedy  for  existing  evils.  That  he 
believed  that  Federation  of  all  the  Provinces  ought  to  come,  and 
would  come  about  ere  long,  but  it  had  not  yet  been  thoroughly  con- 
sidered by  the  people ;  and  even  were  this  otherwise,  there  were 
so  many  parties  to  be  consulted,  that  its  adoption  was  uncertain 
and  remote. 

"  Mr.  Brown  was  then  asked  what  his  remedy  was,  when  he 
stated  that  the  measure  acceptable  to  Upper  Canada  would  be 
Parliamentary  Reform,  based  on  population,  without  regard  to  a 
•separating  line  between  Upper  and  Lower  Canada. 


CONFEDERATION.  23 

"  To  this  both  Mr.  Macdonald  and  Mr.  Gait  stated  that  it  was 
impossible  for  them  to  accede,  or  for  any  government  to  carry 
such  a  measure,  and  that  unless  a  basis  could  be  framed  on  the 
Federative  principle  suggested  by  the  report  of  Mr.  Brown's  Com- 
mittee, it  did  not  appear  to  them  likely  that  anything  could  be 
settled. 

"  After  much  discussion  on  both  sides,  it  was  found  thart  a  com- 
promise might  probably  be  had  in  the  adoption  either  of  the 
Federal  principle  for  all  the  British  North  American  Provinces, 
as  the  larger  question,  or  for  Canada  alone,  with  provision  for  the 
admission  of  the  Maritime  Provinces  and  the  North  Western 
Territory,  when  they  should  express  the  desire.  I  Mr.  Brown  con- 
tended that  the  Canadian  Confederation  sHould  be  constituted 
first,  in  order  that  such  securities  might  be  taken,  in  regard  to 
the  position  of  Upper  Canada,  as  would  satisfy  that  section  of  the 
country ;  that  in  the  negotiations  with  the  Lower  Provinces,  the 
interests  of  Upper  Canada  would  in  110  case  be  overlooked. 

"  Further  conversation  ensued,  but  as  the  hour  for  the  meeting 
of  the  House  had  nearly  arrived,  an  understanding  was  come  to 
that  the  state  of  the  negotiations  was  such  as  to  warrant  the  hope 
of  an  ultimate  understanding ;  and  it  was  agreed  that  that  fact 
should  be  communicated  to  Parliament,  and  an  adjournment  until 
Monday  asked  for. 

"  On  Friday  evening  Mr.  Gait  saw  Mr.  Brown,  and  arranged 
for  an  interview  next  morning,  at  which  Sir  Etienne  Tache  and 
Mr.  Cartier  should  be  present. 

"  On  Saturday,  at  ten,  A.  M.,  other  engagements  requiring  a 
change  in  the  hour  appointed,  Mr.  Macdonald  and  Mr.  Gait  called 
on  Mr.  Brown,  and  after  further  discussion  a  second  appointment 
was  made  for  one,  p.  M.,  when  the  gentlemen  named,  with  Mr. 
Cartier,  met  in  the  Provincial  Secretary's  room,  Sir  Etienne  Tactic* 
being  out  of  town. 

"  The  consideration  of  the  steps  most  advisable  for  the  final 
settlement  of  the  sectional  difficulties  was  then  entered  upon  fully, 
and  a  general  accord  seemed  to  exist  that,  as  the  views  of  Upper 
Canada  could  not  be  met  under  our  present  system,  the  remedy 
must  be  sought  in  the  adoption  of  the  Federal  principle. 


24  CONFEDERATION. 

"  Mr.  Brown  then  requested  to  have  the  views  of  the  Adminis- 
tration, as  expressed  to  him,  reduced  to  writing,  for  the  purpose 
of  being  submitted  confidentially  to  his  friends.  The  following 
memorandum  was  then  proposed,  and  having  to  be  submitted  to 
the  Cabinet  and  to  the  Governor-General,  Mr.  Brown  enquired 
whether  any  objection  existed  to  his  seeing  His  Excellency,  where- 
upon he  was  informed  that  no  objection  whatever  existed. 

"  Mr.  Brown,  accordingly,  waited  on  the  Governor-General,  and 
on  his  return  the  memorandum  approved  by  Council  and  by  the 
Governor-General  was  handed  to  him,  and  another  interview  ap- 
pointed for  six,  P.  M.,  Mr.  Brown  stating  that  he  did  not  feel  at 
liberty  either  to  accept  t>r  reject  the  proposal  without  consulting 
his  friends. 

"  *  MEMORANDUM. CONFIDENTIAL. 

"  '  The  Government  are  prepared  to  state  that  immediately 
after  the  prorogation  they  will  address  themselves,  in  the  most 
earnest  manner,  to  the  negotiations  for  a  confederation  of  all  the 
British  North  American  Provinces. 

"  '  That  failing  a  successful  issue  to  such  negotiations,  they  are 
prepared  to  pledge  themselves  to  legislation  during  the  next  Ses- 
sion of  Parliament,  for  the  purpose  of  remedying  existing  difficul- 
ties by  introducing  the  Federal  principle  for  Canada  alone,  coupled 
with  such  provisions  as  will  permit  the  Maritime  Provinces  and 
the  North- Western  Territory  to  be  hereafter  incorporated  into  the 
Canadian  system. 

"  '  That  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  on  the  negotiations,  and 
settling  the  details  of  the  promised  legislation,  a  Royal  Commis- 
sion shall  be  issued,  composed  of  three  members  of  the  Govern, 
ment  and  three  members  of  the  Opposition,  of  whom  Mr.  Brown 
shall  be  one ;  and  the  Government  pledge  themselves  to  give  all 
the  influence  of  the  Administration  to  secure  to  the  said  Commis. 
sion  the  means  of  advancing  the  great  object  in  view. 

"  '  That  subject  to  the  House  permitting  the  Government  to 
carry  through  the  public  business,  no  dissolution  of  Parliament 
shall  take  place,  but  the  Administration  will  again  meet  the  pre- 
sent House.'  " 


CONFEDERATION.  25 

"  Shortly  after  six,  p.  M.,  the  parties  met  at  the  same  place, 
when  Mr.  Brown  stated  that,  without  communicating  the  contents 
of  the  confidential  paper  entrusted  to  him,  he  had  seen  a  sufficient 
number  of  his  friends  to  warrant  him  in  expressing  the  belief  that 
the  bulk  of  his  friends  would,  as  a  compromise,  accept  a  measure 
for  the  Federative  Union  of  Canada,  with  provision  for  the  future 
admission  of  the  Maritime  Colonies  and  the  North- West  Territory. 
To  this  it  was  replied  that  the  Administration  could  not  consent 
to  waive  the  larger  question,  but  after  considerable  discussion  an 
amendment  to  the  original  proposal  was  agreed  to  in  the  fol- 
lowing terms,  subject  to  the  approval,  on  Monday,  of  the  Cabinet 
and  His  Excellency. 


"  '  The  Government  are  prepared  to  pledge  themselves  to  bring 
in  a  measure,  next  Session,  for  the  purpose  of  removing  existing 
difficulties  by  introducing  the  Federal  principle  into  Canada, 
coupled  with  such  provision  as  will  permit  the  Maritime  Provinces 
and  the  North- West  Territory  to  be  incorporated  into  the  same 
system  of  government. 

"  '  And  the  Government  will  seek,  by  sending  representatives 
to  the  Lower  Provinces,  and  to  England,  to  secure  the  assent  of 
those  interests  which  are  beyond  the  control  of  our  own  Legisla- 
tion, to  such  a  measure  as  may  enable  all  British  North  America 
to  be  united  under  a  general  Legislature  based  upon  the  Federal 
principle.'  " 

"  Mr.  Brown  then  stated  that  having  arrived  at  a  basis  which 
he  believed  would  be  generally  acceptable  to  the  great  mass  of 
his  political  friends,  he  had  to  add  that,  as  the  proposition  was 
so  general  in  its  terms,  and  the  advantage  of  the  measure  depend- 
ed so  entirely  on  the  details  that  might  finally  be  adopted,  it  was 
the  very  general  feeling  of  his  friends  that  security  must  be  given 
for  the  fairness  of  those  details,  and  the  good  faith  with  which 
the  whole  movement  would  be  prosecuted  by  the  introduction  into 
the  Cabinet  of  a  fair  representation  of  his  political  friends.  Mr. 
Brown  stated  that  he  had  not  put  this  question  directly  to  his 
friends,  but  that  he  perceived  very  clearly  that  this  was  the  strong 
3 


26  CONFEDERATION. 

opinion  of  a  large  majority  of  them,  and  that  his  own  personal 
opinion  on  this  (to  which  he  still  adhered)  was  participated  in  by 
only  a  small  number.  Messrs.  Macdonald,  Cartier  and  Gait  re- 
plied that  they  had  of  course  understood  in  proposing  that  Mr. 
Brown  should  enter  the  Government,  that  he  would  not  come 
alone,  but  that  the  number  of  seats  at  his  disposal  had  not  been 
considered  by  their  colleagues.  Mr.  Brown  was  requested  to 
state  his  views  on  this  point,  and  he  replied  that  the  Opposition 
were  half  of  the  House,  and  ought  to  have  an  equal  influence  in 
the  Government,  Messrs.  Macdonald,  Cartier  and  Gait  said  this 
was  impossible,  but  they  would  see  their  colleagues  and  state  their 
views  on  Monday. 

"  On  Monday,  at  10.30,  A.M.,  Messrs.  Macdonald,  Cartier  and 
Gait  called  on  Mr.  Brown  at  the  St.  Louis  Hotel,  and  stated  that 
Sir  E.  P.  Tach6  had  returned  to  town.  Mr.  Brown  accompanied 
them  to  the  Provincial  Secretary's  room,  when  Mr.  Brown  having 
been  asked  to  explain  how  he  proposed  to  arrange  equal  represen- 
tion  in  the  Cabinet,  replied  that  he  desired  to  be  understood  as 
meaning  four  members  for  Upper  Canada,  and  two  for  Lower 
Canada,  to  be  chosen  by  the  Opposition. 

"  In  reply  Messrs.  Cartier  and  Gait  stated  that  as  far  as  related 
to  the  constitution  of  the  Cabinet  for  Lower  Canada,  they  be- 
lieved it  already  afforded  ample  guarantees  for  their  sincerity,  and 
that  a  change  in  its  personnel  would  be  more  likely  to  produce 
embarrassment  than  assistance,  as  the  majority  of  the  people  of 
Lower  Canada,  both  French  Canadians  and  English,  had  implicit 
confidence  in  their  leaders,  which  it  would  not  be  desirable  to 
shake  in  any  way.  That  in  approaching  the  important  question 
of  settling  the  sectional  difficulties,  it  appeared  to  them  essential 
that  the  party  led  by  Sir  E.  P.  Tache  should  have  ample  assurance 
that  their  interests  would  be  protected,  which,  it  was  feared,  would 
not  be  strengthened  by  the  introduction  into  the  Cabinet  of  the 
Lower  Canada  Opposition. 

"  Mr.  Macdonald  stated  that  as  regards  Upper  Canada,  that  in 
his  opinion  the  reduction  to  two  of  the  number  of  the  gentlemen 
in  the  Cabinet  who  now  represented  Upper  Canada,  would  involve 
the  withdrawal  of  the  confidence  of  those  who  now  support  them 


CONFEDERATION.  27 

in  the  House  of  Assembly,  but  that  he  would  be  prepared  for 
the  admission  into  the  Cabinet  of  three  gentlemen  of  the  Oppo- 
sition, on  its  being  ascertained  that  they  would  bring  with  them  a 
support  equal  to  that  now  enjoyed  by  the  Government  from  Upper 
Canada. 

"  Mr.  Brown  asked  in  what  manner  it  was  proposed  the  six 
Upper  Canada  ministers  should  be  selected, — was  each  party  to 
have  carte-blanche  in  suggesting  to  the  head  of  the  Government 
the  names  to  be  chosen  1  To  which  Mr.  Macdonald  replied  that, 
as  a  matter  of  course,  he  would  expect  Mr.  Brown  to  be  himself  a 
member  of  the  Administration,  as  affording  the  best,  if  not  the 
only,  guarantee  for  the  adhesion  of  his  friends.  That  Mr.  Mac- 
donald, on  Mr.  Brown  giving  his  consent,  would  confer  with  him 
as  to  the  selection  of  Upper  Canada  colleagues  from  both  sides, 
who  would  be  the  most  acceptable  to  their  respective  friends,  and 
most  likely  to  work  harmoniously  for  the  great  object,  which  alone 
could  justify  the  arrangement  proposed. 

"  Mr.  Brown  then  enquired  what  Mr.  Macdonald  proposed  in 
regard  to  the  Upper  Canada  leadership.  Mr.  Macdonald  said  that, 
as  far  as  he  was  concerned,  he  could  not  with  propriety,  or  with- 
out diminishing  his  usefulness,  alter  his  position,  but  that  he  was, 
as  he  had  been  for  some  time,  anxious  to  retire  from  the  Govern- 
ment, and  would  be  quite  ready  to  facilitate  arrangements  by 
doing  so.  Of  course  he  could  not  retire  from  the  Government 
without  Sir  Etienne  TachS's  consent. 

"  Mr.  Brown  then  stated  that  without  discussing  the  propriety 
or  reasonableness  of  the  proposition,  he  would  consult  his  friends 
and  give  an  early  reply. 

"  Tuesday. — The  respective  parties  being  occupied  during  the 
forenoon  in  consulting  their  friends,  a  meeting  was  held  at  two, 
P.M.,  at  which  were  present  Sir  E.  P.  Tache,  Mr.  Macdonald,  Mr. 
Cartier,  Mr.  Gait  and  Mr.  Brown. 

"  Mr.  Brown  stated  that  his  friends  had  held  a  meeting,  and 
approved  of  the  course  he  had  pursued,  and  the  basis  arrived  at, 
and  authorized  him  to  continue  the  negotiation. 

"  Mr.  Macdonald  and  Mr.  Cartier  also  said  that  they  had  re- 
ceived satisfactory  assurances  from  their  friends. 


28  CONFEDERATION. 

"A  further  meeting  was  appointed  at  half-past  eight,  P.M., 
at  which  the  details  of  the  arrangements,  in  case  Mr.  Brown  and 
his  friends  accepted  office,  were  discussed  at  much  length. 

"  Mr.  Brown  contended  strongly  that  the  Government  should 
concede  a  larger  representation  in  the  Cabinet  than  three  mem- 
bers. To  which  it  was  replied,  that  the  Administration  believed 
that  it  was  quite  impossible  to  satisfy  their  own  friends  with  a 
different  arrangement. 

"  Mr.  Brown  then  asked  whether  he  could  be  sworn  in  as  an 
Executive  Councillor,  without  department  or  salary, — in  addition 
to  the  three  departmental  offices  to  be  filled  by  his  friends.  Mr. 
Macdonald  replied  that  the  principle  of  equality  would  in  this 
case  be  destroyed,  and  he  was  satisfied  it  could  not  be  done. 

"Mr.  Brown  asked  whether  it  was  a  sine  qua  non,  that  he 
should  himself  enter  the  Cabinet.  To  which  it  was  replied  that 
to  secure  a  successful  issue  to  the  attempt  to  settle  the  sectional 
difficulties,  it  was  considered  that  Mr.  Brown's  acceptance  of  office 
was  indispensable. 

"  Mr.  Brown  then  stated  that  it  was  now  for  him  to  consider 
what  course  he  should  pursue,  entertaining  as  he  still  did  the 
strongest  repugnance  to  accepting  office. 

"A  meeting  was  then  appointed  for  the  following  day. 

"On  Wednesday  a  little  after  one,  the  same  parties  met — when 
Mr.  Brown  stated  as  his  final  decision,  that  he  would  consent  to 
the  reconstruction  of  the  Cabinet  as  proposed,  but  inasmuch  as 
he  did  not  wish  to  assume  the  responsibility  of  the  Government 
business  before  the  House,  he  preferred  leaving  till  after  the  pro- 
rogation, the  consideration  of  the  acceptance  of  office  by  himself 
and  the  two  gentlemen  who  might  be  ultimately  selected  to  enter 
the  Administration  with  him. 

"Sir  E.  P.  Tache  and  Mr.  Macdonald  thereon  stated  that  after 
the  prorogation,  they  would  be  prepared  to  place  three  Seats  in 
the  Cabinet  at  the  disposal  of  Mr.  Brown." 

On  the  30th  of  June,  simultaneously  with  the  prorogation,  a 
new  Government  was  announced.  The  Hon.  George  Brown,  with 
Messrs.  Mowat  and  -Macdougall,  two  other  prominent  Reformers, 


CONFEDERATION.  29 

had  taken  the  place  of  Messrs.  Foley,  Buchanan,  and  Simpson, 
in  the  existing  Administration.  A  coalition  had  been  formed 
between  the  leaders  of  the  Reform  and  Conservative  parties,  with 
the  general  assent  of  their  supporters.  They  agreed  to  unite  to 
bring  about  a  measure,  which  they  hoped  and  believed  would 
remove  the  difficulties  then  obstructing  the  successful  administra- 
tion of  Constitutional  Government  of  Canada.  That  measure  was 
the  Confederation  of  the  Provinces  of  British  North  America,  on 
the  Atlantic  side,  with  the  prospect,  at  some  ultimate  day  of 
bringing  in  the  North  West  and  Hudson  Bay  Territories,  and 
British  Columbia. 

We  now  resume  the  current  of  events  in  the  Maritime  Pro- 
vinces. The  action  of  Canada  had  not  been  unnoticed,  but  the 
Governments  of  New  Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia  and  Prince  Edward 
Island  proceeded  with  their  original  design.  In  order  that  the 
question  of  their  Union  might,  as  much  as  possible,  be  removed 
beyond  the  pale  of  party  conflict,  the  delegates  to  attend  the 
Convention  at  Charlottetown  were  selected  from  the  Liberal  and 
Conservative  ranks  alike.  Dr.  Tupper,  the  leader  of  the  Govern- 
ment of  Nova  Scotia,  with  his  own  colleague  Attorney-General 
Henry,  and  Mr.  Dickey,  a  Conservative  supporter,  had  included 
the  Hons.  Adams  G.  Archibald  and  Jonathan  McCully,  long  and 
well-known  leaders  of  the  Liberal  party.  Mr.  Tilley,  the  leader 
of  the  Government  in  New  Brunswick,  with  his  own  colleagues, 
Messrs.  Johnston  and  Steves,  had  included  the  Hons.  Edward 
Barren  Chandler  and  John  Hamilton  Gray,  prominent  and  well- 
known  leaders  of  the  Conservative  party  there ;  whilst  in  Prince 
Edward  Island  the  Premier  had,  with  equal  consideration,  selected 
the  Island  delegates  from  both  sides  of  the  House.  The  recom- 
mendations of  the  respective  Governments  were  approved  by  the 
Lieutenant-Governors,  and  the  Convention  was  opened  in  due 
form  at  Charlottetown,  September  8th,  in  the  Chamber  of  the 
House  of  Assembly. 

The  Premier  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  the  Hon.  John  Hamilton 
Gray,  was  unanimously  chosen  Chairman,  and  the  Convention  as 
organized,  stood  thus : 

Nova  Scotia — The  Hon.  Messrs.  Tupper,  Henry,  Dickey,  Archi- 
bald and  McCully. 


30  CONFEDERATION. 

New  Brunswick — The  Hon.  Messrs.  Tilley,  Steves,  Johnston, 
Chandler,  and  Gray. 

Prince  Edward  Island — The  Hon.  Messrs.  Gray,  Coles,  Pope, 
Palmer,  and  Macdonald. 

The  first  question  submitted  was,  whether  the  sittings  of  the 
Convention  and  its  deliberations  should  be  with  closed  doors,  or 
open  to  the  public?  After  consideration  it  was  determined  that 
the  proceedings  should  be  with  closed  doors,  to  avoid  as  much  as 
possible,  any  undue  pressure  upon  the  Island  delegates  from  their 
constituencies,  which  surrounded  them, — to  ensure  an  unrestrained 
freedom  of  discussion, — and  a  clear,  candid,  and  business  like 
consideration  of  the  important  questions  involved, — in  a  word,  to 
remove  all  inducements  to  "buncombe."  There  being  no  occasion 
for  display,  the  speeches  were  practical  and  to  the  point.  It  is  to 
be  borne  in  mind  that  this  Convention  was  not  a  public  represen- 
tative body  having  power  to  legislate,  determine,  or  finally  affect 
the  public  interests,  but  rather  a  committee  of  public  men,  deputed 
by  their  several  Governments  to  enquire  and  report  upon  a  pro- 
position which  might  or  might  not  ultimately  be  adopted,  but 
which  before  either  its  adoption  or  rejection,  would  be  subject  to, 
a  searching  and  exhaustive  public  discussion  in  the  several  Legis- 
latures of  the  Provinces. 

The  departure  from  Quebec  of  certain  members  of  the  Canadian 
Government  who  had  been  deputed  by  the  Governor-General  to 
attend  the  Convention,  having  been  announced  by  telegram,  and 
it  having  been  determined  to  receive  the  deputation,  and  to  consider 
any  propositions  they  might  make  with  all  fairness,  it  was  agreed 
to  postpone  the  consideration  of  the  union  of  the  Maritime  Pro- 
vinces, until  after  the  Canadian  deputation  had  been  heard.  The 
following  morning  the  Canadian  Government  steamer  arrived,  the 
deputation  was  received  with  a  cordial  welcome,  and  in  due  time 
introduced  to  the  Convention.  The  Hons.  John  A.  Macdonald, 
Geo.  Brown,  Geo.  E.  Cartier,  Alex.  T.  Gait,  Thos.  D'Arcy  McGee, 
Hector  L.  Langevin,  Wm.  McDougall  and  Alex.  Campbell,  were 
men  who  had  made  their  mark  in  their  own  country,  and  had 
been  wisely  selected  to  put  the  case  of  the  broader  union  of  British 
North  America  as  contra-distinguished  to  the  more  limited  one  of 


CONFEDERATION.  31 

the  Maritime  Provinces  before  the  Convention  in  a  clear  and 
comprehensive  manner.  The  advantages  of  such  a  union,  and  the 
outlines  of  the  proposed  constitution — should  a* union  be  effected — 
were  submitted  by  the  Hon.  John  A.  McSSonald,  ably  supported 
by  Messrs.  Brown  and  Cartier.  The  financial  position  of  Canada 
was  contrasted  with  the  several  Provinces,  their  several  sources  of 
wealth,  their  comparative  increase,  the  detrimental  way  in  which 
their  conflicting  tariffs  operated  to  each  other's  disadvantage,  the 
expansion  of  their  commerce,  the  expansion  of  their  manufactures, 
and  the  development  of  the  various  internal  resources  that  would 
be  fostered  by  a  free  intercourse  of  trade,  and  a  greater  unity  of 
interest  were  pointed  out  with  great  power  by  Mr.  Gait.  In  a 
speech  of  three  hours,  statistics  were  piled  upon  statistics  con- 
firming his  various  positions,  and  producing  a  marked  effect  upon 
the  Convention.  It  might  almost  be  said  of  him  on  this  occasion 
as  was  once  said  of  Pope  though  speaking  of  figures  in  a  different 
sense  "He  lisped  in  numbers — for  the  numbers  came."  Messrs. 
McGee,  Langevin,  and  McDougall  briefly  but  strenuously  corrobo- 
rated the  views  of  their  colleagues,  and  after  two  days  command 
of  the  undivided  attention  of  the  Convention,  the  Canadian  depu- 
tation withdrew. 

Before  doing  so,  however,  they  had  proposed,  that  the  Conven- 
tion should  suspend  its  deliberations  upon  the  immediate  subject 
for  which  they  had  met,  and  should  adjourn  to  Quebec  at  an  early 
day,  to  be  subsequently  named  by  the  Governor-General,  there, 
further  to  consider  the  wider  and  broader  Union  which  had  been 
proposed.  On  the  following  day  the  Convention  deemed  it  better 
for  the  general  interests  of  British  North  America  that  an  adjourn- 
ment should  take  place,  and  agreed  to  report  to  their  respective 
Governments  what  had  occurred. 

During  the  sitting  of  the  Convention  the  well-known  hospitalities 
of  the  Island  had  been  extended  to  the  members  of  the  Convention 
and  the  Canadian  deputation.  At  a  public  festival  given  in  the 
Government  Buildings  the  proposed  coming  Union  of  the  Colonies 
had  been  toasted  and  received  with  the  most  enthusiastic  cheers, 
and  the  general  expression  of  Union  sentiments  was  warm  and 
strong.  Mr.  Dundas,  the  Lieutenaiit-Govemor  of  the  Island, 


32  CONFEDERATION. 

cordially  cheered  on  the  movement,  but  it  was  well-known  to  the 
New  Brunswick  delegation,  that  Mr.  Gordon,  the  Lieuteiiant- 
Governor  of  New  Brunswick  (who  was  on  a  visit  to  the  Governor 
of  the  Island  during  the  first  day  of  the  sitting  of  the  Convention, ) 
was  not  friendly,  though  with  diplomatic  reticence  he  was  most 
cautious  in  expressing  his  opinions,  and  it  was  believed  that  the 
Lieutenant-Governor  of  Nova  Scotia  was  equally  unfriendly. 

From  Charlottetown,  the  members  of  the  Convention  and  the 
Canadian  deputation,  went  to  Halifax,  a  pro  forma  meeting  of  the 
Convention  was  held  on  the  10th  September  in  the  Legislative 
Council  Chamber,  no  business  of  any  consequence  was  done,  and 
the  further  .consideration  of  Confederation  was  by  unanimous 
consent  postponed  until  after  the  details  should  be  fully  entered 
into  at  the  proposed  Conference  at  Quebec.  A  short  report  to 
that  effect  to  be  presented  to  their  several  Governments  by  the 
delegates,  was  agreed  upon.  On  Monday,  the  1 2th  of  September, 
the  Canadian  deputation  and  the  delegates  were  entertained  at  a 
magnificent  banquet  in  the  Halifax  Hotel.  The  Hon.  Dr.  Tupper, 
one  of  the  delegates,  and  Premier  of  Nova  Scotia,  acted  as  chair- 
man. The  Lieutenant-Governor,  Sir  Richard  Graves  McDonell, 
the  Admiral  commanding  on  the  Station,  Sir  James  Hope,  the 
leading  public  men  of  all  parties,  the  merchants  and  prominent 
citizens  attended,  a  buoyant  feeling  seemed  to  pervade  the  com- 
munity and  the  union  of  British  North  America,  in  one  great 
political  Confederation,  was  the  apparent  and  expressed  wish .  of 
those  representing  the  Imperial  Government,  and  those  represent- 
ing the  influential  masses  in  the  Province  of  Nova  Scotia.  At  the 
banquet,  Sir  Graves  McDonell,  speaking  with  the  guarded  caution 
of  the  representative  of  a  Sovereign,  whose  desire  was  to  act  in 
accordance  with  the  best  interests  and  wishes  of  the  people,  as 
testified  by  themselves,  stated :  "  That,  whatever  might  be  the 
result  of  the  deliberations  of  the  delegates  of  the  British  Provinces, 
the  Crown  of  England,  and  the  British  Government  had  but  one 
object  in  view,  namely  to  give  the  most  indulgent  consideration  to 
whatever  plan  they  might  themselves  devise,  with  a  reasonable 
hope  and  prospect  of  promoting  the  social  welfare  and  material 
progress  of  Her  Majesty's  subjects  in  British  America,"  while  Sir 


CONFEDERATION.  33 

James  Hope,  with  the  characteristic  bluntness  of  a  sailor,  taking 
a  sweeping  view  of  the  extended  Empire  of  Great  Britain,  and 
boldly  relying  on  the  loyalty  and  devotion  of  the  people,  declared, 
"  That  it  was,  therefore — that  he,  looking  to  the  glory  and  interest 
of  his  country,  was  able  to  say  to  them,  in  this  project  as  in  any 
other,  which  was  for  their  advantage  and  welfare — GO  ON  AND 
PROSPER." 

The  Hon.  George  Brown,  President  of  the  Executive  Council  of 
Canada,  replied  to  the  toast  of  "  The  Provincial  Delegates,"  in  a 
speech  of  great  power.  We  give  it  in  full,  not  only  for  the  valu- 
able statistical  information  with  which  it  abounds,  but  as  being 
the  first  of  a  series  of  speeches,  which,  delivered  then  and  during 
the  subsequent  month  by  the  delegates  throughout  the  Provinces, 
gave  a  practical  shape  and  mould  to  the  agitation  of  the  public 
mind,  and,  gathering  the  floating  ideas  respecting  Union  into  a 
tangible  form,  found  for  them  at  last  "  a  local  habitation  and  a 
name."  After  a  few  introductory  remarks,  complimentary  to  the 
people  of  Halifax  for  their  large  and  generous  hospitality,  he  said : 

"  It  may  be  expected  that  I  should  say  a  few  words  as  to  the 
object  of  our  present  mission ;  and  perhaps  I  cannot  begin  better 
than  by  noticing  certain  statements  that  have  appeared  in  the 
public  press,  and  which  have  received  some  credence,  in  reference 
to  our  visit.  It  has  been  said  that  we  have  had  the  opportunity 
before  now  of  entering  into  closer  union  with  Nova  Scotia  and 
New  Brunswick,  but  we  did  not  avail  ourselves  of  it ;  that  we 
were  offered  an  intercolonial  railway,  but  refused  to  undertake  it ; 
and  that  we  only  come  now  seeking  union  with  these  Provinces  to 
escape  from  our  own  sectional  difficulties  at  home.  Now,  I  am 
a  member  of  the  party  in  Canada  which  up  to  this  moment  has 
been  most  strenuous  in  its  resistance  to  the  intercolonial  railway ; 
and  I  am  persuaded  there  is  not  one  man  in  this  assembly  who, 
under  similar  circumstances,  would  riot  have  acted  precisely  as  we 
did.  In  these  -Lower  Provinces  you  have  all  had  your  political 
troubles,  but  we  in  Canada  have  had  sectional  difficulties  to  distract 
us  vastly  more  serious  than  any  you  have  had  to  contend  with. 
Our  constitution  of  1840  brought  together  under  one  government 


34  CONFEDERATION. 

two  countries  peopled  by  two  races,  with  different  languages, 
different  creeds,  and  different  laws  and  customs  ;  and  unfortunately, 
while  making  us  nominally  one  people,  it  retained  the  line  of 
demarcation  between  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  and  gave  the 
same  number  of  representatives  in  Parliament  to  each  section, 
without  regard  to  their  respective  populations,  their  contributions 
to  the  general  revenue,  or  any  other  consideration.  The  dispro- 
portion between  the  two  sections  gradually  increased,  until  Upper 
Canada  has  400,000  people  more  than  Lower  Canada,  and  pays 
full  three-fourths  of  the  whole  national  taxation ;  but  all  the  while 
the  Lower  Canadians  had  equal  representation  with  us  in  both 
Houses  of  Parliament.  A  systematic  agitation  for  the  redress  of 
this  great  wrong  was  commenced  in  Upper  Canada ;  and  as  the 
only  means  of  enforcing  justice,  we  resisted  all  large  schemes  of 
improvement;  we  refused  to  enter  into  any  new  undertakings, 
involving  an  increase  of  our  public  debt,  until  a  reform  of  our 
constitutional  system  was  obtained,  and  we  knew  what  our  future 
position  as  a  people  was  to  be.  We  regarded  the  apparently  far-off 
scheme  of  federation  of  the  whole  Provinces  as  no  remedy  for  our 
present  wrongs,  and  we  scouted  the  idea  of  building  more  railroads 
from  the  public  chest  until  the  tax-payers  who  were  to  bear  the 
burden  of  their  construction  had  their  just  share  of  control  over 
the  public  purse.  Long  and  earnestly  did  we  fight  for  the  justice 
we  demanded ;  but  at  last  light  broke  in  upon  us.  Parties  were 
nearly  equally  balanced ;  the  wheels  of  government  had  nearly 
ceased  to  move;  a  dead  lock  was  almost  inevitable;  when  Mr. 
Cartier,  who  wields  great  power  in  Lower  Canada,  boldly  and 
manfully  took  the  ground,  that  this  evil  must  be  met,  and  he 
would  meet  it.  On  this  basis,  I  and  two  political  friends  joined 
the  administration,  and  the  existing  coalition  was  formed,  expressly 
for  the  purpose  of  settling  justly  and  permanently  the  constitu- 
tional relations  between  Upper  and  Lower  Canada.  We  have 
agreed  to  a  principle  of  settlement  acceptable  to  a  large  majority 
of  the  representatives  in  Parliament,  and,  I  am  also  persuaded,  to 
the  great  mass  of  our  people  in  both  sections  of  the  Province. 
We  are  pledged  as  a  government  to  place  before  Parliament,  at  its 
next  session,  a  bill  giving  effect  to  the  conditions  of  our  compact ; 


CONFEDERATION. 

37 

and  should  the  union  of  the  whole  Provinces  not  be  proc^ 
with,  our  Canadian  Reform  Bill  will  go  on,  and  our  grievances  fioii 
redressed.  You  will  therefore  clearly  perceive  that  we  have  not 1 
come  here  to  seek  relief  from  our  troubles,  for  the  remedy  of  our 
grievances  is  already  agreed  upon ;  and,  come  what  may  of  the 
larger  scheme  now  before  us,  our  smaller  scheme  will  certainly  be 
accomplished.  Our  sole  object  in  coming  here  is  to  say  to  you  : 
We  are  about  to  amend  our  constitution ;  and  before  finally  doing 
so,  we  invite  you  to  enter  with  us  frankly  and  earnestly  into  the 
inquiry,  whether  it  would  or  would  not  be  for  the  advantage  of  all 
the  British  American  Colonies  to  be  embraced  under  one  political 
system.  IfLet  us  look  the  whole  question  steadily  in  the  face.  If 
we  find  it  advantageous,  let  us  act  upon  it;  but  if  not,  let  the 
whole  thing  drop.  This  is  the  whole  story  of  our  being  here ;  this 
is  the  full  scope  and  intention  of  our  present  visit.  But,  there 
is  another  objection  raised.  It  is  said  that  the  debt  of  Canada  is 
very  great,  that  our  taxation  is  heavy,  and  that  we  seek  to  throw 
a  portion  of  our  burdens  on  the  shoulders  of  our  neighbours. 
Now,  I  belong  to  the  party  of  economy  in  Canada ;  the  party  that 
has  resisted  the  increase  of  the  public  debt  and  taxation,  and  has 
loudly  complained  of  their  rapid  advance.  But,  large  as  our  debt 
and  taxation  undoubtedly  are,  for  a  young  country,  the  people 
of  Canada  are  abundantly  able  to  bear  it  all,  and  much  more, 
without  assistance  from  any  quarter  whatever.  Were  our  bur- 
dens much  greater  than  they  are,  we  would  have  but  to  stand  still 
in  our  extraordinary  expenditures  for  a  few  years,  and  the  rapid 
increase  of  our  population,  industrial  energy  and  wealth,  would 
easily  enable  us  to  overcome  it  all.  And  if  gentlemen  who  make 
this  suggestion  would  look  narrowly  into  the  finances  of  their  own 
Provinces,  and,  having  regard  to  the  populations  of  their  respective 
countries,  will  compare  them  with  ours,  I  fancy  they  will  find  no 
great  disparity  between  our  respective  burdens.  It  ought  not  to 
excite  any  surprise  that  the  federation  of  all  the  British  North 
American  Provinces  is  at  last  presented  to  us  as  a  practical  ques- 
tion. The  subject  has  often  and  again  been  discussed  in  the  press 
and  in  Parliament ;  but  at  no  time  has  any  provincial  statesman 
ever  expressed  a  doubt  that  the  fitting  future  of  these  Colonies  was, 


34 


CONFEDERATION. 


two  CO"  united  under  one  government  and  legislature,  under  the 
diffoereignty  of  Great  Britain.  But  two  questions  ever  sprang  up 
"at  once  in  considering  so  great  a  movement : — Have  the  Colonies 
yet  gained  such  a  strength  as  to  warrant  their  undertaking  such  a 
charge?  and,  could  such  terms  be  agreed  upon,  and  such  a  consti- 
tution be  framed,  as  would  be  acceptable  to  the  whole  of  the 
Provinces  1  These  questions  are  as  serious,  and  as  needful  to  be 
met,  at  this  hour,  as  they  ever  were  in  the  past.  It  is  no  light 
matter  to  change  the  whole  political  and  commercial  relations  of 
&ny  country.  In  these  Colonies,  as  heretofore  governed,  we  have 
enjoyed  great  advantages  under  the  protecting  shield  of  the  mother 
country.  "We  have  had  no  army  or  navy  to  sustain,  no  foreign 
diplomacy  to  maintain;  our  whole  resources  have  gone  to  our 
internal  improvement ;  and  notwithstanding  our  occasional  strifes 
with  the  Colonial  Office,  we  have  enjoyed  a  degree  of  self-govern- 
ment and  generous  consideration  such  as  no  colonies  in  ancient  or 
modern  history  ever  enjoyed  at  the  hands  of  a  parent  state.  Is  it 
any  wonder  that  thoughtful  men  should  hesitate  to  countenance  a 
step  that  might  change  the  happy  and  advantageous  relations  we 
have  occupied  towards  the  mother  country  1  I  am  persuaded  there 
never  was  a  moment  in  the  history  of  these  Colonies,  when  the 
hearts  of  our  people  were  so  firmly  attached  to  the  parent  state  by 
the  ties  of  gratitude  and  affection,  as  at  this  moment ;  and  for  one 
I  hesitate  not  to  say,  that  did  this  movement  for  colonial  union 
endanger  the  connection  that  has  so  long  and  so  happily  existed, 
it  would  have  my  firm  opposition.  But,  far  from  fearing  such 
a  result,  a  due  consideration  of  the  matter  must  satisfy  every  one 
that  the  more  united  we  are,  the  stronger  will  we  be;  and  the 
stronger  we  are,  the  less  trouble  we  will  give  the  Imperial  Govern- 
ment, the  more  advantageous  will  be  our  commerce,  and  the  more 
proud  they  will  be  of  us  as  a  portion  of  the  Empire.  Our  relation 
to  the  mother  country  does  not,  therefore,  enter  into  the  question. 
Whether  the  right  time  for  a  general  union  has  arrived,  must  be 
determined  by  a  close  examination  into  the  present  position  of  all 
the  Provinces,  and  the  possibility  of  such  an  arrangement  being 
matured  as  will  be  satisfactory  to  all  concerned.  And  that  has 
been  the  work  in  which  the  conference  has  been  engaged  for 


CONFEDERATION.  37 

two  weeks  past.  We  have  gone  earnestly  into  the  consideration 
of  the  question  in  all  its  bearings,  and  our  unanimous  conclusion 
is,  that  if  terms  of  union  fair  to  all  and  acceptable  to  all  could  be 
devised,  a  union  of  all  the  British  American  Provinces  would  be 
highly  advantageous  to  every  one  of  the  Provinces.  In  the  first 
place,  from  the  attitude  of  half  a  dozen  inconsiderable  colonies, 
we  would  rise  at  once  to  the  position  of  a  great  and  powerful  state. 
At  the  census  taken  on  the  12th  January,  1861,  the  population  of 
the  Provinces  was  as  follows  : 

Upper  Canada 1,396,091 

Lower  Canada ?.  ..1,111,566 

Nova  Scotia 330,857 

New  Brunswick 202,047 

Newfoundland 122,635 

Prince  Edward  Island 80,857 

Total  in  1861 3,244.053 

But  since  then  nearly  four  years  have  elapsed,  and  the  average 
increase  meanwhile,  calculated  at  fifteen  per  cent.,  makes  the  popu- 
lation of  the  six  Provinces  at  this  moment  3,787,750.  And  if  to 
this  we  add  the  large  numbers  necessarily  omitted  in  countries  so 
vast  and  sparsely  settled,  we  will  find  that  our  total  population, 
in  the  event  of  a  union,  would  from  the  start  be  not  much  less 
than  four  millions  of  souls.  And  there  is  perhaps  a  better 
way  of  measuring  our  strength  than  by  mere  numbers,  and  that 
is  by  comparing  ourselves  with  other  countries.  Now,  there  are 
in  Europe  forty-eight  sovereign  states.  Of  these  there  are  no 
fewer  than  thirty-seven  containing  less  population  than  would  the 
united  British  North  American  Provinces ;  and  among  them  are 
no  less  prominent  countries  than  Portugal,  Holland,  Denmark, 
Switzerland,  Saxony,  Hanover  and  Greece,  all  of  which  are 
inferior  to  us  in  population.  There  are  but  eleven  states  in 
Europe  superior  to  us  in  population,  and  three  of  these  are  so  little 
in  advance  of  us  that  a  very  few  years  would  undoubtedly  send 
us  far  ahead  of  them.  The  three  are,  Sweden  and  Norway,  con- 
taining 6,349,775  people;  Belgium,  containing  4,782,255;  and 
Bavaria,  >vitli  4,689,837.  These  three  once  passed,  and  but  eight 


38  CONFEDERATION. 

European  states  would  be  in  advance  of  us.  And  let  us  see  how 
we  would  stand  in  regard  to  the  question  of  defence.  I  find  by 
the  census  returns  of  1861,  that  the  male  persons  then  in  the 
Provinces  were  as  follows  : 

Upper  Canada From  20  to  30—128,740 

30  to  40—  84,178 
40  to  50—  59,660 
50  to  60—  36,377 

L_  308,955 

Lower  Canada From  20  to  30—  93,302 

30  to  40—  59.507 
40  to  50—  42,682 
50  to  60—  30,129 

225,620 

Nova  Scotia From  20  to  60 67,367 

New  Brunswick From  21  to  40—  33,574 

40  to  50—  10,739 
50  to  60—  7,312 

51,625 

Newfoundland From  50  to  60 25,532 

Prince  Edward  Island From  21   to  45—  11,144 

45  to  60—    3,675 

14,819 


Total  Males  from  20  to  60 693,918 

Of  this  enormous  body  of  men,  about  150,000  were  between 
the  years  of  45  and  60  ;  but  striking  them  all  off,  and  throwing 
off  fifty  thousand  for  the  lame  and  the  halt,  we  would  have  still 
left  half  a  million  of  able-bodied  men  ready  and  willing  to  defend 
their  country.  But  let  us  look  at  the  aspect  we  should  present 
to  the  world  in  an  industrial  and  commercial  point  of  view. 
And  first  let  us  examine  the  agricultural  interests.  From  the 
census  returns  it  appears  that  there  were  in  1861  no  fewer  than 
333,604  farmers  in  the  six  British  American  Provinces,  and 
160,702  laborers,  of  which,  doubtless,  a  very  large  proportion  are 
farm  laborers.  It  also  appears  that  the  land  granted  by  Govern- 
ment, and  now  held  by  private  parties  in  the  Provinces,  is  not  less 


CONFEDERATION. 


39 


than  45,638,854  acres,  of  which  13,128,229  are  under  cultiva- 
tion, and  the  balance  has  yet  to  be  brought  into  use.  These  lands 
are  thus  distributed  : 

HELD.  CULTIVATED. 

Upper  Canada 17,708,232  6,051,619 

Lower  Canada 13,680,000  4,804,235 

Nova  Scotia 5,748,893  1,028,032 

New  Brunswick 6,636,329  835,108 

Newfoundland,  about 100,000  41,108 

Prince  Edward  Island 1,365,400  368,127 


45,638,854      13,128,229 

And  mark  the  enormous  amount  of  produce  obtained  from  these 
cultivated  lands.  I  compile  from  the  Census  Returns  of  the 
several  Colonies  the  following  results  as  our  united  crop  in  the 
year  1860 : 

Wheat bushels, 

Barley 

Rye 

Peas 

Oats 

Buckwheat 

Indian  Corn 

Beans 

Potatoes. , 

Other  Roots 

Grass  Seed 

Hay 

Hops 

Maple  Sugar 

Wool 

Flax  and  Hemp 

Butter 

Cheese 

Beef bbls.,  200  Ibs. 

Pork , 

At  a  fair  valuation  these  crops  will  be  found  to  sum  up  to  the 
enormous  amount  of  nearly  one  hundred  and  twenty  millions  of 
dollars ;  and  if  to  this  we  add  the  increase  on  the  number  and 
value  of  the  farm  stock  during  the  year,  and  the  value  of  garden 


ishels, 

28,212,760 

u 

5,692,991 

it 

1,934,583 

ik 

12,302,183 

ii 

45,634,472 

u 

3,648,450 

u 

2,624,163 

(( 

75,755 

u 

39,845,246 

(( 

23,730,706 

u 

115,345 

tons, 

2,242,596 

Ibs. 

300,439 

i 

» 

17,782,872 

n 

7,010,914 

n 

2,183,759 

M 

52,570,886 

it 

4,602,065 

00  Ibs. 

134,562 

u 

581,b02 

40  CONFEDERATION. 

and  orchard  produce  during  the  year,  and  the  improvements  in 
clearing  and  fencing  and  buildings  during  the  year — we  will  come 
safely  to  the  conclusion  that  the  product  of  our  fields  and  gar- 
dens in  1860  was  not  less  than  $150,000,000.  The  assessed 
value  of  our  farm  lands  in  1860  was  upwards  of  $550,000,000. 
And  then,  if  we  consider  that  our  agriculture  is  yet  in  its 
infancy  j  that  only  a  small  portion  of  the  thirteen  millions  of 
acres  in  pasture  and  under  the  plough  is  yet  in  high  cultivation, 
and  much  of  it  almost  in  a  state  of  nature ;  that  thirty  millions 
of  good  lands,  over  which  the  plough  has  not  passed,  are  yet  in 
private  hands,  and  that  vast  quantities  still  remain  with  Govern- 
ment for  disposal ;  some  slight  conception  may  be  gained  of  the 
future  agricultural  capabilities  of  the  united  British  American 
Provinces.  But  if  our  position  would  be  so  remarkable  as  an 
agricultural  people,  our  union  would  give  us  almost  as  high  an 
attitude  before  the  world  as  a  great  Maritime  State.  By  the 
census  of  1861  it  appears  that  four  years  ago  the  sailors  and  fisher- 
men of  the  six  Colonies  summed  up  no  fewer  than  69,256.  They 
were : — 

In  Upper  Canada 808 

In  Lower  Canada 5,150 

In  Nova  Scotia 19,637 

In  New  Brunswick 2,765 

In  Newfoundland 38,578 

In  Prince  Edward  Island 2,318 


Total  sailors  and  fishermen 69,256 

Setting  aside  the  unspeakable  value  of  such  a  body  of  men  in 
defence  of  the  country,  the  commercial  returns  from  their  industry 
must  be  very  great.  The  exports  of  fish  alone  from  the  united 
Provinces  amounted  to  no  less  a  sum  than  nearly  ten  millions  of 
dollars.  I  have  been  unable  to  ascertain  with  accuracy  the  num- 
ber and  tonnage  of  the  shipping  owned  and  sailed  in  British 
America  ;  but  this  we  do  know,  that  last  year  no  fewer  than  628 
vessels  were  built  within  our  borders,  having  an  aggregate  ton- 
nage of  230,312  tons.  These  vessels  were  distributed  thus  : 


CONFEDERATION.  41 

Built  in  Canada 158  vessels 67,209  tons. 

Nova  Scotia ....- 207        "         46,862     " 

"        New  Brunswick 137        "        85,250     " 

"        Newfoundland 26        "       about     6,000     " 

"        Prince  Edward  Island. ..  100        "         24,991     " 

Total 628        "        230,312     " 

And  highly  gratifying  as  are  these  results,  they  are  the  pro- 
duct of  two  branches  but  yet  in  their  infancy,  and  both  capable  of 
great  extension.  I  might  continue  this  analysis  through  our 
whole  industrial  pursuits,  and  show  you  one  and  all  of  them  in  the 
same  high  state  of  efficiency ;  I  might  tell  you  how  we  exported 
last  year  $15,000,000  in  timber  alone ;  I  might  expose  to  you  the 
rapidly  increasing  importance  of  our  coal  mines,  our  gold  fields, 
our  copper  mines,  our  iron  works,  and  our  petroleum  wells. 
I  might  enlarge  on  the  fast  rising  importance  of  our  manufac- 
tures ;  but  already  I  have  detained  you  far  longer  than  I  intended, 
and  must  come  to  a  close.  Let  me,  however,  wind  up  with  this, 
that  were  the  Provinces  all  united  to-morrow,  they  would  have 
an  annual  export  trade  of  no  less  than  sixty-five  millions  of 
dollars,  and  an  import  traffic  to  an  equal  amount ;  they  would 
have  two  thousand  five  hundred  miles  of  railway ;  telegraph 
wires  extending  to  every  city  and  town  throughout  the  country, 
and  an  annual  government  revenue  of  nearly  thirteen  millions 
of  dollars.  It  needs  no  special  wisdom  to  perceive  that  a  state 
presenting  such  resources,  and  offering  such  varied  and  lucrative 
employment  to  the  immigrant  and  capitalist,  would  at  once  occupy 
a  high  position,  and  attract  to  it  the  marked  attention  of  other 
countries.  It  would  be  something  to  be  a  citizen  of  such  a  state.. 
Heretofore  we  have  been~known  as  separate  colonies,  and  the  me- 
rits and  disadvantages  of  each  compared  and  set  off  against  the 
other ;  but  with  union  the  advantages  of  each  would  pertain  to 
the  whole — a  citizen  of  one  would  ?be  a  citizen  of  all — and  the 
foreign  emigrant  would  come  with  very  different  feelings  of  con- 
fidence to  our  shores.  In  England  we  should  occupy  a  very  dif- 
ferent position  from  what  we  have  ever  done  as  separate  and 
feeble  colonies.  I  cannot  agree  with  my  hon.  friend,  Mr.  Cartier, 
4 


42  CONFEDERATION. 

in  his  opinion  as  to  the  great  political  party  in  Great  Britain  that 
lias  done  so  much  to  break  the  fetters  of  trade,  and  raise  the  com- 
merce of  England  to  its  present  unexampled  point  of  high  pros- 
perity. But  regretting,  as  all  must  do,  the  extreme  colonial  views 
of  Messrs.  Bright  and  Cobden  and  their  political  friends,  who 
can  fail  to  see  that  a  union  of  the  whole  Provinces  would  have 
the  effect  of  inspiring  respect  even  with  that  school  of  public  men, 
and  commanding  confidence  in  our  commercial  future  ]  The  doubt 
and  uncertainty  as  to  the  future  of  these  colonies  that  have  hung 
so  long  and  so  injuriously  over  us,  would  be  greatly  modified  by 
the  union ;  and  our  securities  would  sensibly  feel  the  effect  in  the 
money  market  of  the  world.  How  different  a  position,  too,  would 
we  occupy  in  the  eyes  of  our  American  neighbors.  Instead  of 
appearing  in  their  commercial  returns  as  separate  buyers,  we 
would  stand  out  unitedly  as  their  very  best  customer ;  and  we 
would  be  able  to  deal  with  them  for  a  permanent  renewal  of  the 
Reciprocity  Treaty,  under  advantages  that  we  have  not  enjoyed 
before.  But  far  in  advance  of  all  other  advantages  would  be  this,' 
that  union  of  all  the  Provinces  would  break  down  all  trade  bar- 
riers between  us,  and  throw  open  at  once  to  all  a  combined  mar- 
ket of  four  millions  of  people.  You  in  the  east  would  send  us 
your  fish,  and  your  coals,  and  your  West  India  procluce,  while  we 
would  send  you  in  return  the  flour  and  the  grain  and  the  meats 
you  now  buy  in  Boston  and  New  York.  Our  merchants  and 
manufacturers  would  have  a  new  field  before  them — the  barrister 
in  the  smallest  provinces  would  have  the  judicial  honors  of  all 
of  them  before  him  to  stimulate  his  ambition — a  patentee  could 
secure  his  right  over  all  British  America — and  in  short  all  the 
advantages  of  free  intercourse  which  has  done  so  much  for  the 
United  States,  would  be  open  to  us  all.  One  other  argument 
there  is  in  favor  of  the  Union  that  ought  with  all  of  us  to 
weigh  most  seriously,  and  that  argument  is,  that  it  would 
elevate  the  politics  and  the  politicians  of  our  country.  It  would 
lift  us  above  the  petty  strifes  of  small  communities,  and  give  to 
our  public  affairs  a  degree  of  importance,  and  to  our  leading  pub- 
lic men  a  status  very  different  from  what  they  have  heretofore 
occupied.  On  a  survey  of  the  whole  case,  I  do  think  there  is  no 


CONFEDERATION.  43 

doubt  as  to  the  high  advantages  that  would  result  from  a  union 
of  all  the  Colonies,  provided  that  terms  of  union  could  be  found 
just  to  all  the  contracting  parties,  and  so  framed  as  to  secure  har- 
mony in  the  future  administration  of  affairs.  That  is  the  unani- 
mous conclusion  of  the  Conference,  and  I  am  persuaded  that  when 
the  facts  are  before  the  country,  it  is  a  conclusion  that  will  be 
cordially  endorsed  by  the  people  of  all  the  provinces.  But  it  were 
wrong  to  conceal  for  a  moment  that  the  whole  merit  of  the  scheme 
of  union  may  be  completely  marred  by  the  character  of  its  details. 
The  consideration  of  the  details  has  already  received,  in  an  infor- 
mal manner,  the  earnest  attention  of  the  Convention.  I  commit 
no  indiscretion  in  saying  that  as  yet  we  have  arrived  at  no  formal 
conclusion  as  to  any  of  those  details  ;  and  I  am  sure  you  will  feel 
we  are  right  in  studiously  refraining  at  present  from  all  discussion 
of  our  views  in  regard  to  them.  A  formal  meeting  for  their 
earnest  and  mature  deliberation  will  be  held  at  an  early  day ;  and 
when  difficulties  have  been  removed  and  our  plans  matured,  the 
whole  scheme  will  be  placed  fully  and  frankly  before  our  consti- 
tuents in  all  the  Provinces." 

The  honorable  gentleman  resumed  his  seat  amid  applause. 

The  Hon.  Mr.  Cartier,  in  following,  after  a  brief  but  vigorous 
resumi  of  the  population  and  territory  of  Canada,  enunciated  that 
idea  which  has  since  become  so  well  known  and  popular,  and 
regarded  as  so  eminently  characteristic  of  his  mode  of  dealing 
with  great  public  questions  : 

"  I  need  hardly  bring  to  your  notice,  gentlemen,"  said  he,  "that 
we  in  Canada  have  those  two  great  elements  of  nationality,  the 
personal  and  territorial  elements.  But  we  know  our  shortcomings. 
Though  great  in  territory  and  population,  we  want  the  other 
element,  which  is  absolutely  necessary  to  make  a  nation,  that  is, 
the  maritime  element.  What  nation  on  earth  has  obtained  any 
amount  of  greatness,  unless  it  has  been  united'  with  a  maritime 
element  ? " 

In  replying  to  the  toast  of  "  Colonial  Union,"  the  Hon.  John 
A.  Macdonald,  Attorney-General  of  Canada  West,  remarked : 


44         )  CONFEDERATION. 


ie  question  of  colonial  union  was  one  of  such  magnitude, 
that  it  dwarfed  every  other  question  on  this  portion  of  the  conti- 
nent. It  had  assumed  a  position  that  demanded  and  commanded 
the  attention  of  all  the  Colonies  of  British  America.  He  was 
able  to  announce  that  they  had  arrived  unanimously  at  the  opinion 
that  the  union  of  the  Provinces  was  for  the  advantage  of  all ;  and 
the  only  question  remaining  to  be  settled  was,  whether  it  could  be 
arranged  with  a  due  regard  to  sectional  and  local  interests.  We 
were  at  present  states  of  one  sovereign,  and  all  paid  allegiance  to 
the  great  central  authority ;  but  as  between  ourselves,  there  was 
no  political  connection,  and  we  were  as  wide  apart  as  British 
America  was  from  Australia.  But  we  must  have  one  common 
organization,  one  political  government.  It  has  been  said  that  the 
United  States  government  is  a  failure.  I  do  not  go  so  far.  On 
the  contrary,  I  consider  it  a  marvellous  exhibition  of  human 
wisdom.  It  was  as  perfect  as  human  wisdom  could  make  it,  and 
under  it  the  American  States  greatly  prospered  until  very  recently. 
But  being  the  work  of  men,  it  had  its  defects ;  and  it  is  for  us  to 
take  advantage  of  experience,  and  endeavour  to  see  if  we  cannot 
arrive,  by  careful  study,  at  such  a  plan  as  will  avoid  the  mistakes 
of  our  neighbours.  In  the  first  place,  we  know  that  every  indivi- 
dual State  was  an  individual  sovereignty ;  that  each  had  its  own 
army  and  navy,  and  political  organization ;  and  when  they  formed 
themselves  into  a  confederation,  they  only  gave  the  central  autho- 
rity certain  specific  powers,  reserving  to  the  individual  States  all 
the  other  rights  appertaining  to  sovereign  powers.  The  dangers 
that  have  risen  from  this  system  we  will  avoid,  if  we  can  agree 
upon  forming  a  strong  central  government,  a  great  central  legisla- 
ture, a  constitution  for  a  union  which  will  have  all  the  rights  of 
sovereignty  except  those  that  are  given  to  the  local  governments. 
Then  we  shall  have  taken  a  great  step  in  advance  of  the  American 
Republic.  If  we  can  only  obtain  that  object,  a  vigorous  general 
government,  we  shall  not  be  New  Brunswickers,  nor  Nova 
Scotians,  nor  Canadians,  but  British  Americans,  under  the  sway 
of  the  British  sovereign.  In  discussing  the  question  of  colonial 
union,  we  must  consider  what  is  desirable  and  practicable ;  we 
must  consult  local  prejudices  and  aspirations.  It  is  our  desire  to 


CONFEDERATION.  45 

do  so.  I  hope  that  we  will  be  enabled  to  work  out  a  constitution 
that  will  have  a  strong  central  government,  able  to  offer  a  powerful 
resistance  to  any  foe  whatever,  and  at  the  same  time  will  preserve 
for  each  Province  its  own  identity,  and  will  protect  every  local 
ambition ;  and  if  we  cannot  do  this,  we  shall  not  be  able  to  carry 
out  the  object  we  have  in  view.  In  the  conference  we  have  had, 
we  have  been  united  as  one  man ;  there  was  no  difference  of 
feeling,  no  sectional  prejudices  or  selfishness  exhibited  by  any  one. 
We  all  approached  the  subject  feeling  its  importance,  feeling  that 
in  our  hands  were  the  destinies  of  a  nation ;  and  great  would  be 
our  sin  and  shame  if  any  different  motive  had  intervened  to 
prevent  us  carrying  out  the  noble  object  of  founding  a  great 
British  monarchy,  in  connection  with  the  British  Empire,  and 
under  the  British  Queen.  *  *  *.  *  „  *  *  I  do  not  hesitate 
to  say  that  with  respect  to  the  intercolonial  railway,  it  is  under- 
stood by  the  people  of  Canada  that  it  can  only  be  built  as  a  means 
of  political  union  for  the  Colonies.  It  cannot  be  denied  that  the 
railway,  as  a  commercial  enterprise,  would  be  of  comparatively 
little  commercial  advantage  to  the  people  of  Canada.  Whilst  we 
have  the  St.  Lawrence  in  summer,  and  the  American  ports  in  time 
of  peace,  we  have  all  that  is  requisite  for  our  purposes.  We 
recognize,  however,  the  fact  that  peace  may  not  always  exist,  and 
that  we  must  have  some  other  means  of  outlet  if  we  do  not  wish 
to  be  cut  off  from  the  ocean  for  some  months  in  the  year.  We 
wish  to  feel  greater  security — to  know  that  we  can  have  assistance 
readily  in  the  hour  of  danger.  In  the  case  of  a  union,  this  railway 
must  be  a  national  work ;  and  Canada  will  cheerfully  contribute 
to  the  utmost  extent,  in  order  to  make  that  important  link  without 
which  no  political  connection  can  be  complete.  *•*".*  Here 
we  are  now  in  a  state  of  peace  and  prosperity.  We  can  now  sit 
down  without  any  danger  threatening  us,  and  consider  and  frame 
a  scheme  advantageous  to  each  of  these  Colonies.  If  we  allow  so 
favourable  an  opportunity  to  pass,  it  may  never  come  again.  But 
I  believe  we  have  arrived  at  such  a  conclusion  in  our  deliberations, 
that  I  may  state,  without  any  breach  of  confidence,  that  we  all 
unitedly  agree  that  such  a  measure  is  a  matter  of  the  first  neces- 
sity, and  that  only  a  few  (imaginary,  I  believe)  obstacles  stand  in 


46  CONFEDERATION. 

the  way  of  its  consummation.  I  shall  feel  that  I  have  not  served 
in  public  life  without  a  reward,  if,  before  I  enter  into  private  life, 
I  am  a  subject  of  a  great  British  American  nation,  under  the 
government  of  Her  Majesty,  and  in  connection  with  the  Empire 
of  Great  Britain  and  Ireland." 

From  Halifax,  the  Canadian  members  and  delegates  went  over 
to  St.  John,  in  New  Brunswick,  and  in  that  large  and  thriving 
commercial  city  again  availed  themselves  of  the  opportunity  of 
speaking  on  the  question  of  the  day.  On  the  12th  September 
they  were  handsomely  entertained  at  a  public  dinner  at  Stubb's 
hotel.  As  in  Halifax,  the  leading  public  men,  the  prominent 
merchants,  politicians  of  all  shades,  and  the  representatives  of  the 
press,  were  present.  The  chair  was  occupied  by  the  Hon.  John 
H.  Gray,  the  member  for  the  county  of  St.  John  and  one  of  the 
delegates.  A  warm  feeling  towards  the  guests,  and  a  spirit  of 
enthusiasm  on  the  subject  of  Union,  pervaded  the  meeting.  The 
speeches  were  listened  to  with  deep  and  earnest  attention.  There 
was  no  Governor  present,  and  no  Admiral.  But  there  were 
business  men ;  men  of  energy  and  enterprise ;  men  of  trade,  whose 
ships  were  far  away,  carrying  the  commerce  of  the  world ;  men  of 
science ;  mechanics — men  of  the  steam  engine  and  the  forge,  whose 
works  of  toil  and  labour  were  telling  on  the  progress  of  a  young 
country ;  men  of  the  railway  and  the  telegraph ;  men  whose  life 
was  work. 

In  answer  to  the  toast,  "  Our  friends  from  Canada,  Nova  Scotia 
and  Prince  Edward  Island,"  the  Attorney-General  for  Canada  East, 
Hon.  George  E.  Cartier,  said  : 

"  Prosperity  such  as  this  great  country  was  capable  of  attaining 
to,  could  never  be  fully  enjoyed  until  the  several  sectional  parts  of 
it  were  united  under  the  same  political  and  commercial  systems, 
their  respective  popiilations  brought  into  closer  relations  with  each 
other,  and  all  the  maritime  facilities  alike  afforded  to  all,  which 
nature  had  so  bountifully  bestowed  upon  some  of  the  parts.  This 
was  what  Confederation  proposed  to  accomplish.  Canada  has 
population  and  territory  sufficient  to  make  a  great  nation  in  course 


CONFEDERATION.  47 

of  time;  but  she  wants  what  the  Lower  Provinces  possess,  an 
outlet  to  the  sea.  As  the  Lower  Provinces  now  stand,  they  are 
comparatively  weak  and  powerless;  and  the  wealth,  labour  and 
industry  which  Canada  possesses,  go  in  a  great  measure  to  enrich 
such  cities  as  New  York,  Boston  and  Portland.  This  must  con- 
tinue to  be  the  case  until  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  of  which  he 
had  ever  been  an  advocate,  shall  be  built;  and  as  soon  as  the 
Colonies  were  confederated,  the  construction  of  that  work  would 
undoubtedly  commence.  With  regard  to  the  question  of  defence, 
which  was  inseparable  from  the  general  subject,  he  was  confident 
that  when  England  saw  we  were  self-reliant  to  a  great  extent,  and 
capable  of  organizing  a  large  military  and  naval  force  for  mutual 
protection,  and  which  union  only  would  enable  us  to  do,  she  would 
cheerfully  come  to  our  assistance,  with  all  her  vast  power,  in  any 
difficulty  that  might  arise.  Canada  had  been  accused  of  insincerity 
in  her  dealings  with  the  Maritime  Provinces,  and  this  led  to  the 
formation  of  a  strong  prejudice  against  accepting  the  proposals  of 
his  Provirice  for  confederation ;  but  he  assured  every  one  who 
listened  to  him,  that  Canada  was  unjustly  accused,  and  that  her 
ministers  did  not  come  there  to  urge  them  by  undue  means  into 
the  adoption  of  any  scheme  of  union,  but  fairly  to  point  out  to 
them  the  enormous  advantages  which,  in  a  commercial  point  of 
view,  their  merchants,  traders  and  manufacturers  would  derive 
from  having  a  market  of  four  millions  of  people  for  the  exchange 
of  their  several  commodities,  instead  of  being  restricted  to  the 
small  and  scattered  populations  which  now  compose  the  Lower 
Provinces,  where  their  industry  is  hampered  by  custom-house 
regulations  different  in  each." 

Hon.  George  Brown  followed  Mr.  Cartier,  reiterating  with  much 
effect  his  arguments  reported  so  fully  as  delivered  at  Halifax. 

Hon.  A.  T.  Gait,  Finance  Minister  of  Canada,  in  answer  to 
a  call  made  upon  him,  reviewed  the  financial  condition  of  the 
several  Provinces,  referred  to  the  efforts  that  had  been  made  in 
Canada  to  improve  the  communication  between  the  St.  Lawrence 
and  the  ocean,  the  large  expenditure  for  the  construction  of  rail- 
ways, and  to  the  advantages  that  were  resulting,  and  must  continue 


48  CONFEDERATION. 

to  result  from  these  expenditures.  He  referred  to  the  relative 
taxation  of  the  several  Provinces :  Nova  Scotia  $2.32  per  head, 
Canada  $2.50,  New  Brunswick  $2.56.  In  answer  to  the  objection 
that  Canada  sought  the  union  to  be  relieved  of  her  burdens,  spoke 
of  the  Intercolonial  Hailway,  of  the  benefit  it  would  confer  on  the 
Maritime  Provinces,  whilst  the  expense  under  the  proposed  union 
must  be  borne  principally  by  Canada,  an  arrangement  entirely 
different  from  that  which  had  been  contemplated  while  the  Pro- 
vinces were  separate.  He  then  referred  to  the  commercial  advan- 
tages of  a  union,  which  would  confer  upon  the  Colonies  benefits 
similar  to  those  which  have  been  enjoyed  by  the  United  States  in 
consequence  of  their  union,  their  free  trade  and  uniform  tariff. 
In  framing  the  constitution  for  British  America,  the  errors  of  the 
Republican  Union  were  to  be  avoided.  The  rebellion  which  distract- 
ed that  Union  was,  in  some  measure,  caused  by  slavery,  and  to  a 
very  great  extent,  by  what  was  known  as  State  rights.  Of  course, 
the  question  of  slavery  could  never  be  an  element  of  discord  with 
the  united  Provinces,  and  as  regards  "State  rights,"  collision  might 
be  easily  avoided  in  reference  to  that  subject  by  clearly  defining 
the  powers  of  the  Central  Government  as  totally  distinct  from  the 
authority  which  should  be  vested  in  the  Local  Legislatures. 

Hons.  Mr.  Me  Cully  and  Dr.  Tupper  of  Nova  Scotia,  Messrs. 
Palmer,  Coles  and  Gray  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  and  Messrs. 
McDougall  and  McGee  of  Canada,  with  the  Chairman,  and  Mr. 
Tilley,  also  spoke  briefly  on  the  occasion,  supporting  the  views 
that  had  been  expressed,  and  urging  the  adoption  of  the  measure 
by  the  public. 

Shortly  afterwards  the  delegates  presented  their  report  to  their 
respective  Governments,  and  the  Prince  Edward  Island  Conven- 
tion was  at  an  end. 


CHAPTER  II. 

Meeting  of  Delegates  at  Quebec,  October  10,  1864  —  Reflections  on  the  time, 
place  and  circumstances  —  American  war  —  'Sittings  with  closed  doors  — 
Reasons  for  —  Voting  by  Provinces  —  Adoption  of  Federal  instead  of 
Legislative  Union  —  Submission  of  Resolutions  defining  proposed  Consti- 
tution —  Discussion  of  do  —  Contrast  of  source  of  power  in  the  proposed 
Constitution  and  that  of  the  United  States  —  Policy  of  free  trade  —  No 
distinction  in  political  rights  —  Difficulties  in  representative  and  financial 
arrangements  —  Electoral  Divisions  of  Lower  Canada  —  Representation  by 
Population  —  Rule  exceptional  on  entering  Confederation  —  Absolute  for 
subsequent  guidance  —  Similarity  to  original  provision  in  the  American 
Constitution  —  Upper  House,  territorial  and  nominative  —  Provision  for 
primary  selection  —  Admission  of  North-West  Territories  and  British 
Columbia  —  Adjustment  of  the  financial  arrangements  —  Direct  taxation 
for  general  purposes  unknown  in  Maritime  Provinces  —  Crisis  —  Sub- 
Committee  of  Finance  Ministers  —  Report  —  Apportionment  of  powers  — 
Crown  Lands  and  Minerals  to  Local  Governments  —  Reasons  for  —  Judi- 
ciary —  Court  of  Appeal  —  Uniformity  of  Laws  —  Intercolonial  Railway  — 
Ne 


.Crpwn  T.npfk  jp  Newfoundland—  -Exception  s  for  Prince  Edward  Island  — 
^Exportcluty  on  Dumber  in  New  Brunswick  —  Royalties  in  Nova  Scotia  — 

ResoTuTTorTfT^Fmancial  Statement  of  the  position  of  Canada  as  compared 

with  the  other  "Provinces  —  A.D.  1864. 

In  accordance  with  the  recommendation  of  the  Canadian  Minis- 
try, the  Governor-General  had  addressed  the  several  Lieutenant- 
Goveriiors  of  the  Maritime  Provinces,  including  Newfoundland, 
to  send  delegates  to  a  Convention  to  be  held  at  Quebec  on  the 
10th  October.  The  request  had  been  responded  to.  The  same 
gentlemen  had  been  re-appointed,  with  the  addition  in  New  Bruns- 
wick of  the  Hon.  Peter  Mitchell,  a  member  of  the  Legislative 
Council  and  of  the  Government,  and  the  Hon.  Charles  Fisher,  a 
prominent  member  of  the  Liberal  party,  twice  Attorney-General 
in  the  Government  of  New  Brunswick  with  Mr.  Tilley  and  one  of 
the  oldest  members  of  the  House  of  Assembly  ;  in  Prince  Edward 
Island,  of  the  Hon.  T.  Heath  Haviland,  a  Conservative,  and  the 
Hon.  Edward  Whelan,  a  Liberal,  and  editor  of  the  "  Charlotte- 
town  Examiner."  In  Newfoundland,  the  Hon.  F.  B.  T.  Carter, 
Speaker  of  the  House  of  Assembly,  and  the  Hon.  Ambrose  Shea, 
had  been  appointed. 

The  Canadian  Government  steamer  "  Victoria  "  had  been  sent 
down  to  Pictou  for  the  delegates.  On  the  5th  October,  Sir  Richard 

* 


50  CONFEDERATION. 

Graves  McDonell  and  Lady  McDonell,  and  the  Nova  Scotia  dele- 
gates, embarked.  On  the  6th  she  called  at  Charlottetown  for  the 
Prince  Edward  Island  delegates,  and  thence  proceeded  to  Shediac 
for  the  New  Brunswick  delegates.  On  the  7th  she  bore  away  for 
Quebec.  Many  ladies  were  on  board,  members  of  the  families  of 
the  gentlemen  from  Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick  and  Prince 
Edward  Island.  Every  provision  had  been  made  for  comfort.  Oil 
Sunday  evening,  the  9th,  she  arrived  at  Quebec ;  and  on  Monday, 
the  10th  October,  1864,  at  11  a.m.,  in  the  Parliament  House  of 
old  Canada,  the  Conference  was  opened. 

The  respective  Provinces  were  represented  as  follows  : 

CANADA. — Hon.  Sir  Etienne  P.  Tache,  Premier,  M.L.C. ;  Hon. 
John  A.  Macdonald,  Attorney-General  West,  M.P.P.;  Hon.  George 
E.  Cartier,  Attorney-General  East,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  George  Brown, 
President  of  the  Executive  Council,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  Alex.  T.  Gait, 
Finance  Minister,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  Alex.  Campbell,  Commissioner 
of  Crown  Lands,  M.L.C. ;  Hon.  William  McDougall,  Provincial 
Secretary,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  Thomas  D'Arcy  McGee,  Minister  of 
Agriculture,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  Hector  Langevin,  Solicitor-General 
East,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  J.  Cockburn,  Solicitor-General  West,  M.P.P. ; 
Hon.  Oliver  Mowat,  Postmaster-General,  M.  P.  P. ;  Hon.  J.  C. 
Chapais,  Commissioner  of  Public  Works,  M.L.C. 

NOVA  SCOTIA. — -Hon.  Chas.Tupper,  Provincial  Secretary,  M.P.P.; 
Hon.  W.  A.  Henry,  Attorney-General,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  R.  B.  Dickey, 
M.L.C. ;  Hon.  Adams  G.  Archibald,  M.P.P.;  Hon.  Jonathan 
McCully,  M.L.C. 

NEW  BRUNSWICK. — Hon.  Samuel  L.  Tilley,  Provincial  Secretary, 
M.  P.  P. ;    Hon.  John  M.   Johnson,   Attorney-General,   M.  P.  P. ; 
Hon.  Edward  B.  Chandler,  M.L.C.  ;  Hon.  John  Hamilton  Gray,  • 
M.P.P.;   Hon.   Peter  Mitchell,  M.L.C.;    Hon.   Charles  Fisher, 
M.P.P. ;  Hon.  William  H.  Steves,  M.L.C. 

NEWFOUNDLAND. — Hon.  F.  B.  T.  Carter,  M.P.P.,  Speaker  of  the 
House  of  Assembly  ;  Hon.  Ambrose  Shea,  M.P.P. 


CONFEDERATION.  51 

PRINCE  EDWARD  ISLAND. — Hon.  John  Hamilton  Gray,  Premier, 
M.P.P. ;  Hon.  Edward  Palmer,  Attorney-General,  M.P.P. ;  Hon. 
W.  H.  Pope,  Provincial  Secretary,  M.P.P. ;  Hon.  George  Coles, 
M.P.P.  •  Hon.  A.  A.  Macdonald,  M.L.C.  ;  Hon.  T.  H.  Haviland, 
M.P.P.  ;  Hon.  Edward  Whelan,  M.L.C. 

Sir  Etienne  P.  Taclie,  Premier  of  Canada,  was  unanimously 
chosen  President ;  and  Major  Hewitt  Bernard,  of  the  Staff  of  the 
Attorney- General  "West,  Private  and  Confidential  Secretary. 

Thus  was  organized  a  Convention,  whose  deliberations  were  to 
have  a  marked  bearing  upon  the  future  of  British  North  America. 
The  time,  the  men,  the  circumstances,  were  peculiar.  The  place 
of  meeting  was  one  of  historic  interest.  Beneath  the  shadow  of 
Cape  Diamond,  on  the  ruins  of  the  old  Castle  of  St.  Louis,  with 
the  broad  St.  Lawrence  stretching  away  in  front,  the  Plains  of 
Abraham  in  sight,  and  the  St.  Charles  winding  its  silvery  course 
through  scenes  replete  with  the  memories  of  old  France,  where 
scarce  a  century  gone  the  Fleur  de  Lys  and  the  Cross  of  St.  George 
had  waved  in  deadly  strife,  now  stood  the  descendants  of  those 
gallant  races,  the  Saxon  and  the  Gaul,  hand  in  hand,  with  a 
common  country  and  a  common  cause.  Met  with  the  full  sanction 
of  their  Sovereign  and  the  Imperial  Government,  attended  by  the 
representatives  and  ministers  of  the  Crown,  sent  from  the  Parlia- 
ments chosen  by  the  people,  they  were  called  upon  to  lay  in  peace  the 
foundations  of  a  State  that  was  to  take  its  place  in  friendly  posi- 
tion beside  that  Republic,  which  wrenched  from  the  parent  land  in 
strife,  had  laid  the  foundations  of  its  greatness  with  the  sword  and 
baptized  its  power  in  blood. 

Ninety  years  before,  when  the  first  Congress  of  the  thirteen 
States  met  at  Philadelphia,  it  was  in  defiance  of  the  authority  and 
of  the  country  from  which  their  people  sprung.  How  different  f 
How  much  more  auspicious  was  the  gathering  of  the  Provincial 
representatives  at  Quebec  !  In  their  deliberations  and  the  fram- 
ing of  their  constitution  they  would  have  the  benefit  of  the  expe- 
rience of  the  working  of  that  constitution,  which  under  conditions 
in  some  degree  similar  to  their  own  as  to  country,  institutions, 
and  people,  had  carried  the  United  States  through  half  a  century 


52  CONFEDERATION. 

of  triumphant  progress.  It  would  be  for  them  to  avoid  those 
causes  of  dissension  which  had  created  the  then  existing  troubles 
of  that  country. 

But  apart  from  this,  the  time  at  which  they  had  assembled  was 
one  of  deep  import.  The  civil  war  in  the  United  States,  between 
the  North  and  South,  was  raging  in  all  its  fury.  No  one  could 
tell  how  soon  its  crimson  flood  might  burst  upon  our  shores. 
Causes  of  great  irritation  were  already  existing.  The  imperious 
demand  of  England  for  the  immediate  surrender  of  Mason  and 
Slidell,  and  the  disavowal  of  the  act  of  the  officer  who  had  boarded 
the  "  Trent,"  and  violated  the  sanctity  of  her  flag ;  the  sympathy 
of  a  portion  of  her  people  with  the  Southern  cause,  and  the  preda- 
tory character  of  the  "Alabama"  and  other  cruisers,  fitted  out  and 
leaving  her  ports  through  the  alleged  indifference  of  her  officers  or 
the  insufficiency  of  her  laws,  were  rankling  in  the  breasts  of  large 
numbers  of  the  American  people. 

The  piratical  seizure  of  the  steamer  "  Chesapeake,"  her  subse- 
quent escape  to  Nova  Scotia,  the  alleged  plottings  of  Southern 
refugees  in  Canada,  and  the  St.  Albans  raid,  notwithstanding  the 
vigilance  of  the  Canadian  authorities,  and  their  prompt  efforts  to 
apprehend  and  punish  the  offenders — all  tended,  however  unjustly, 
to  intensify  the  bitterness  of  the  national  mind  in  the  United 
States,  and  little,  but  very  little,  was  wanted  to  cause  a  war 
between  the  two  countries. 

Under  such  circumstances,  great  prudence  should  govern  the 
deliberations  of  men,  who,  however  limited  their  authority,  or  how- 
ever remote  from  the  cause  of  dissension  the  subject  referred  to 
them,  might  yet  by  some  unguarded  act  precipitate  difficulties 
which  it  should  be  the  interest  and  object  of  all  to  avoid. 

On  the  men  who  formed  the  Conference  was  directed  the  atten- 
tion of  British  America.  They  had  all  served  many  years  in  pub- 
lic and  parliamentary  life  in  their  several  Provinces.  All  had 
filled  prominent  public  positions — had  had  the  cares  and  respon- 
sibilities of  government,  and  the  stimulus  of  opposition.  From 
fifteen  to  twenty  years  had  been  the  average  of  their  public  ser- 
vices. All  were  young  enough  to  feel  that,  contrasting  the  past 
with  the  future,  there  was  still  before  them  a  career  of  honorable 


CONFEDERATION.  53 

ambition  in  a  greater  country  and  a  greater  cause.  All  were  old 
enough  to  know  that  rashness  was  the  folly  of  a  statesman,  and 
that  the  future  influence,  character  and  position,  as  well  as  the 
prosperity  of  their  country,  would  depend  on  the  wisdom  and 
practicability  of  their  conclusions. 

The  venerable  chairman  and  two  others  might  perhaps  claim 
exemption  from  any  personal  ambition  for  the  future.  To  Sir  E. 
P.  Tache  half  a  century  of  public  life  had  brought  gravity  with 
age,  and  had  given  to  a  spotless  name  the  right  to  command 
respect,  and  to  preside  with  dignity  over  the  councils  of  his  coun- 
try. The  Hon.  E.  B.  Chandler,  by  his  quick  and  restless  move- 
ments, showed  that  seventy  years  had  no,t  dulled  the  activity  of 
his  mind  or  body  ;  but  forty  years  as  a  representative  and  member 
of  the  Legislative  Council  of  his  own  Province  he  declared  had 
rendered  him  personally  indifferent  to  the  future  ;  whilst  the  gal- 
lant Premier  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  the  rugged  outlines  of 
whose  gaunt  frame  still  bore  the  vigorous  impress  of  its  Scotch 
lineage,  seemed  to  glory  only  in  the  future  greatness  of  his  coun- 
try, and  to  hope  that  the  prowess  of  her  sons  might  rival  the 
glories  of  that  land  whose  flag  he  had  followed  for  so  many  years 
in  every  quarter  of  the  globe. 

We  will  now  proceed  to  the  work  of  this  Convention.  After 
much  consideration  it  was  determined,  as  in  Prince  Edward  Island, 
that  the  Convention  should  hold  its  deliberations  with  closed  doors. 
In  addition  to  the  reasons  which  had  governed  the  Convention  at 
Charlottetown,  it  was  further  urged,  that  the  views  of  individual 
members,  after  a  first  expression,  might  be  changed  by  the  discus- 
sion of  new  points,  differing  essentially  from  the  ordinary  current 
of  subjects  that  came  under  their  consideration  in  the  more  limited 
range  of  the  Provincial  Legislatures ;  and  it  was  held  that  no  man 
ought  to  be  prejudiced,  or  be  liable  to  the  charge  in  public  that  he 
had  on  some  other  occasion  advocated  this  or  that  doctrine,  or  this 
or  that  principle,  inconsistent  with  the  one  that  might  then  be 
deemed  best,  in  -view  of  the  future  union  to  be  adopted.  The 
relation  of  a  federation  of  Provinces  towards  each  other — the  con- 
stitutional necessities  operating  upon  the  united  body,  might  be  so 
different  from  the  necessities  hitherto  operating  upon  .each  in  the 


54  CONFEDERATION. 

separate  administration  of  its  local  affairs,  that  it  was  well  held 
that  no  man  should  be  governed  by  opinions  given  under  phases  of 
circumstances  entirely  dissimilar,  and  which  might  be  altogether 
inapplicable.  Liberals  and  Conservatives  had  there  met  to  deter- 
mine what  was  best  for  the  future  guidance  of  half  a  continent,  not 
to  fight  old  party  battles,  or  stand  by  old  party  cries,  and  candour 
was  sought  for  more  than  mere  personal  triumph.  The  conclusion 
arrived  at,  it  is  thought,  was  judicious.  It  insured  the  utmost 
freedom  in  debate ;  the  more  so,  inasmuch  as  the  result  would  be 
in  no  way  binding  upon  those  whose  interests  were  to  be  affected, 
until  and  unless  adopted  after  the  greatest  publicity  and  the  fullest 
public  discussion. 

As  the  course  pursued  by  the  Convention  on  this  point  was  at 
the  time  made  the  subject  of  much  mis-aiiimad version,  and  in  some 
of  the  Provinces,  of  grave  censure,  iipon  the  ground  that  the 
discussion  of  its  proceedings  by  the  press  and  public  pending  its 
sittings  would  have  been  of  great  advantage,  it  is  as  well  to 
observe,  that  in  addition  to  the  reasons  influencing  the  members 
at  the  time,  history  afforded  an  excellent  precedent.  In  the 
convention  of  1787,  which  sat  at  Philadelphia  by  authority  of  the 
then  existing  Congress,  for  the  purpose  of  devising  a  constitution 
for  the  more  perfect  confederation  of  the  United  States,  a  conven- 
tion, presided  over  by  Washington,  led  by  Hamilton,  and  sustained 
by  the  wisdom  and  experience  of  Franklin,  then  eighty-four  years 
of  age — men  who,  if  the  men  of  any  nation  or  time  could  be  con- 
sidered as  above  sordid  or  selfish  motives,  must  be  so  regarded — 
the  proceedings,  though  lasting  four  months,  were  conducted  in 
secret ;  and  all  that  is  known  of  what  was  then  said  and  done, 
save  the  constitution  devised  and  adopted,  was  known  by  notes 
kept  by  Madison,  and  which  he  some  time  after  made  public.* 

It  was  further  determined,  after  debate,  that,  inasmuch  as  the 
Canadian  representation  in  the  Convention  was  numerically  so 
much  greater  than  that  of  any  of  the  other  Provinces — indeed 
equal  to  that  of  any  two  combined — the  voting  in  case  of  division 
should  be  by  Provinces,  and  not  by  members ;  Canada,  as  composed 

*  "  Alexander  Hamilton's  Times,"  by  Muller. 


CONFEDERATION.  55 

of  two  Provinces,  having  two  votes ;  thus  ensuring  to  the  smaller 
Provinces  that  in  the  adoption  of  any  proposition,  equal  weight 
should  be  given  to  all.  Consequently,  on  each  particular  proposi- 
tion on  which  a  difference  of  opinion  was  expressed,  the  represen- 
tatives of  each  Province  consulted  thereon  apart,  determined  by  a 
majority  its  acceptance  or  rejection,  and  reported  the  result  by 
their  chairman  to  the  Convention.  In  the  arrangement  of  the 
sittings,  Canada  occupied  the  central  position,  with  New  Bruns- 
wick and  Nova  Scotia  on  one  side,  and  Prince  Edward  Island  and 
Newfoundland  on  the  other. 

It  was  in  a  very  short  time  decided  that  a  Federal  in  preference 
to  a  Legislative  Union  would  be  best  suited  to  the  exigencies  of  the 
country;  its  extended  area  and  comparatively  sparse  population 
rendering  it  utterly  impossible  that  the  local  wants  of  distant 
districts  could  be  attended  to  in  the  General  Parliament,  parti- 
cularly as  in  several  of  the  Provinces  municipalities  were  not 
established,  direct  taxation  was  unknown,  and  the  people  were 
accustomed  to  look  to  their  local  legislatures  for  all  those  measures 
which  would  increase  the  settlement,  open  the  communications, 
afford  education,  and  tend  to  develope  the  resources  of  their 
Provinces. 

On  the  second  day,  the  outlines  of  a  contemplated  Confederation 
were  submitted,  in  a  series  of  resolutions,  by  the  Hon.  John  A. 
Macdonald,  substantially  in  accordance  with  the  views  that  had 
been  more  generally  expressed  in  the  meeting  at  Charlottetpwn. 
They  were  elaborated  in  a  clear  and  comprehensive  speech,  pointing 
out  with  minuteness  the  distinction  between  the  constitution  pro- 
posed and  the  model  from  which  it  might  be  supposed  to  have 
been  framed — that  of  the  United  States — and  claiming  emphati- 
cally that  it  was  intended '  to  be,  as  far  as  circumstances  would 
permit,  similar  to  that  of  the  Imperial  Government,  and  recog- 
nizing the  Sovereign  of  Great  Britain  as  its  sole  and  only  head. 

In  the  course  of  the  arguments  that  followed  on  the  submission 
of  these  resolutions,  and  which  extended  over  several  days,  it  was 
clearly  shown  that  whereas  in  the  United  States  all  powers  not} 
specifically  conceded  by  the  several  States  to  the  Federal  Govern- 
ment were  still  to  remain  with  the  several  States,  here,  on  the 


56  CONFEDERATION. 

contrary,  all  powers  not  specifically  conceded  by  the  Imperial  Par- 
liament in  the  proposed  constitution  to  the  separate  Provinces  were 
to  remain  with  the  Federal  Government.  The  source  of  power 
was  exactly  reversed.  At  the  time  of  the  framing  of  their  consti- 
tution, the  United  States  were  a  congeries  of  independent  States, 
which  had  been  united  for  a  temporary  purpose,  but  which  recog- 
nized 110  paramount  or  sovereign  authority.  The  fountain  of  con- 
cession therefore  flowed  upward  from  the  several  states  to  the 
united  government.  The  Provinces,  on  the  contrary,  were  not 
independent  States ;  they  still  recognized  a  paramount  and  sove- 
reign authority,  without  whose  consent  and  legislative  sanction 
the  Union  could  not  be  framed.  True,  without  their  assent  their 
rights  would  not  be  taken  from  them  ;  but  as  they  could  not  part 
with  them  to  other  Provinces  without  the  Sovereign  assent,  the 
source  from  which  those  rights  would  pass  to  the  other  Provinces 
when  surrendered  to  the  Imperial  Government  for  the  purposes  of 
confederation,  would  be  through  »the  supreme  authority.  Thus 
the  fountain  of  concession  would  flow  downward,  and  the  lights 
not  conceded  to  the  separate  Provinces  would  vest  in  the  Federal 
Government,  to  which  they  were  to  be  transferred  by  the  para- 
mount or  sovereign  authority. 

This  was  in  accordance  with  the  theory  of  the  British  constitu- 
tion, which,  while  boasting  its  old  Saxon  popular  origin,  yet 
claims  the  unparalleled  expansion  of  its  present  freedom  as 
wrenched  from  the  sovereign  authority  by  the  struggles  of  a  thou- 
sand years,  and  recognizes  that  authority  as  the  source  of  power. 

"  That  land  of  old  and  fair  renown, 
Where  Freedom  slowly  broadens  down 
From  precedent  to  precedent." 

In  the  United  States,  on  the  contrary,  the  theory  is  that  the  power 
springs  from  the  people,  and  what  they  have  not  chosen  to  part 
with  they  still  retain. 

Practically,  in  both  countries  the  result  is  the  same.  The  peo- 
ple are  the  source  of  power,  and  in  them  the  power  resides,  under 
whatever  name  it  may  be  called  ;  but  in  the  framing  of  a  consti- 
tution for  a  congeries  of  states,  to  be  governed  by  one  central  au- 
thority, the  result  is  different.  In  the  one  case  the  separate 


CONFEDERATION.  57 

states,  in  their  individual  capacities,  retain  the  undefined  and  un- 
conceded  power.  In  the  other  the  central  authority  holds  it. 
The  latter  form,  it  was  contended,  gave  greater  strength,  com- 
pactness and  facilities  for  intercourse  with  other  countries,  and 
removed  causes  of  disintegration. 

The  question  of  states  rights,  which  led  to  the  frightful  war  in 
the  United  States,  was  forcibly  enlarged  upon,  and  an  earnest  de- 
sire expressed  that,  in  the  framing  of  the  new  constitution,  defects 
which  might  lead  to  such  results  should  be  avoided. 

It  was  well  observed,  that  in  British  America  no  taint  of  slav- 
ery existed  to  create  a  hostility  of  sections,  or  raise  the  cry  of 
"  squatter  sovereignty," — that  no  diverse  productions  of  climate 
suggested  a  diversity  of  tariffs,  —  that  no  manufactures  of  the 
North  would  demand  an  antagonism  to  the  productions  of 
those  fertile  lands  whose  southern  sun  gave  forth  spontaneous 
wealth,  which  asked  for  exchange  and  not  protection, — that  lying 
in  almost  one  continuous  line  on  the  same  parallel  of  latitude 
from  the  Atlantic  to  the  Pacific,  the  interests  of  all  parts  of  the 
country  for  which  the  new  constitution  was  to  be  framed  would 
be  identical, — that  its  trade  should  be  free,  and  the  surplus  of  its 
products  not  used  for  home  consumption  should  with  equal  privi- 
lege seek  the  markets  of  the  world, — that  no  distinction  of  race 
or  color  or  creed  was  known,  and  that  therefore  it  was  sound  that 
that  body  which  would  be  vested  with  the  responsibility  of  guard- 
ing the  interests  of  the  whole  country,  should  be  clothed  with 
power  adequate  to  the  circumstances  with  which  it  might  have  to 
deal.  Thus  the  Central  Government  took  all,  and  the  powers  of 
the  Provincial  Governments  were  to  be  exercised  strictly  within 
the  limits  defined. 

But  it  was  in  the  apportionment  of  the  representation  in  the 
Federal  Parliament,  and  of  the  financial  burdens  and  benefits,  that 
the  greatest  difficulties  arose.  Representation  by  Population  had 
been  for  many  years  the  demand  of  the  most  populous  and  most 
powerful  of  the  Provinces,  and  had  indeed  been  one  of  the  causes, 
if  not  the  main  cause,  of  that  constitutional  embarrassment  which 
on  the  part  of  Canada  had  led  to  the  proposition  for  federation. 
5 


58  CONFEDERATION. 

The  principle,  therefore,  was  recognized,  and  was  proposed  to  be 
acted  upon,  so  far  as  consistently  with  existing  arrangements  in 
the  several  Provinces  it  could  be. 

The  Electoral  Divisions  of  the  Province  of  Lower  Canada  (now 
Quebec)  at  the  time  were  sixty-five.  In  New  Brunswick  the 
fourteen  counties,  with  the  city  of  Saint  John  in  addition,  making 
fifteen  constituted  Electoral  Districts.  In  Nova  Scotia  there  were 
nineteen,  the  county  of  Halifax  being  divided  into  two.  It  was 
considered  politic  not  to  disturb  these  divisions,  but  making  Que- 
bec as  the  pivot,  to  give  to  each  district  or  division,  as  then  exist- 
ing, one  representative  ;  and  taking  Upper  Canada,  (now  Ontario,) 
to  give  to  her  eighty-two  representatives,  the  number  that  her 
presumed  population  would  entitle  her  to. 

The  actual  proportions  throughout  the  four  Provinces  were  not 
the  same,  for  while  taking  the  then  last  census  of  the  several  Pro- 
vinces as  f  the  guide,  Quebec  would  have  one  representative  to 
about  16,500  of  her  population — New  Brunswick  would  have  one 
to  16,800 — Nova  Scotia,  one  to  17,500— Prince  Edward  Island, 
one  to  16,000 — Newfoundland,  one  to  18,750 — and  Ontario,  one 
to  17,070  ;  but  it  was  determined  that  every  future  re-adjustment 
of  the  representation  in  the  several  Provinces,  at  the  completion 
of  each  decennial  census,  should  be,  as  to  the  number  of  members, 
upon  the  same  proportion  to  the  population  of  the  Province  that 
the  number  65  bore  to  the  population  of  Quebec  at  the  same  cen- 
sus, the  number  for  Quebec  being  fixed  at  65. 

Thus  at  the  first  inception  on  entering  into  the  Union,  population 
was  not  intended  to  be  held  as  the  only  rule  for  representation. 
Though  taken  as  a  guide,  the  apportionment  must  be  more  or  less 
arbitrary.  Existing  arrangements,  territorial  and  other  consider- 
ations must  be  taken  into  account,  and  modifications  to  suit  cir- 
cumstances necessarily  made ;  but,  after  entering  the  union, 
future  changes  of  the  entire  representation  were  to  be  governed 
by  that  principle.  Such  seemed  to  be  the  views  on  this  subject. 
The  principle  itself  was  affirmed  simply  and  explicitly  in  the  17th 
Resolution  in  the  Conference  at  Quebec  ;  but  in  the  constitution 
as  subsequently  settled  at  Westminster,  and  enacted  by  the  Bri- 
tish North  America  Act,  1867,  while  the  re-adjustment  made  by 


CONFEDERATION.  59 

the  Quebec  Resolution  is  adhered  to,  the  principle  so  explicitly 
laid  down,  "  That  the  basis  of  representation  in  the  House  of 
Commons  shall  be  by  population  "  is  not  re-declared.  So  marked 
a  distinction,  it  must  be  presumed,  was  intentional — to  remove 
any  doubt  that  the  confederation  of  the  four  Provinces  then  formed 
should  have  free  scope  for  terms  that  might  be  necessaiy  there- 
after to  bring  in  other  portions  of  British  North  America. 

In  the  United  States  representation  by  population  is  simply 
numerical.  Each  so  many  thousand  of  recognized  voters  is 
entitled  to  a  representative ;  though  by  such  calculation  twenty 
representatives  might  come  from  one  city  or  place,  New  York, 
Philadelphia,  or  Brooklyn,  for  instance.  But  in  the  plan  adopted 
at  the  Conference  the  electoral  districts  would  have  the  same  repre- 
sentation, though  one  district  might  number  50,000  and  another 
only  5000.  For  instance,  the  County  of  St.  John,  with  a  popula- 
tion of  nearly  50,000,  would  have  only  one  representative,  while 
Cornwall,  Sherbrooke,  Niagara,  Montreal  Centre,  Hestigouche  or 
Algoma,  with  populations  under  7000,  would  each  equally  have 
one.  To  meet  any  objections  arising  of  this  nature,  it  was  pro- 
posed and  declared  that  the  Local  Legislature  of  each  Province 
should  divide  its  own  Province  into  constituencies,  and  define 
their  boundaries,  and  should  have  power  from  time  to  time  to 
alter  the  electoral  districts  for  the  purposes  of  representation  in  the 
House  of  Commons,  and  to  distribute  the  representation  to  which 
each  Province  might  be  entitled  in  such  manner  as  its  Local 
Legislature  might  see  fit.  It  is  but  proper,  however,  to  state, 
that  from  a  correspondence  which  subsequently  passed  between 
the  Lieutenant-Governor  of  New  Brunswick  and  the  Governor- 
General,  it  appeared  that  this  stipulation  had  been  altered  by  the 
'Canadian  Ministry,  and  was,  in  the  resolutions  laid  before  the 
Canadian  Parliament,  restricted  to  the  representation  in  the  Local 
Legislatures  only  ;  it  being  alleged  that  the  error  arose  from  an 
improper  wording  of  the  resolution  at  the  Conference,  and  that 
the  power  was  not  intended  to  apply  to  the  representation  in  the 
Federal  Parliament. 

The  Conference,  therefore,  while  taking  population  as  the  basis, 
and  laying  down  that  strictly  as  the  rule,  acted  upon  the  principle 


60  CONFEDERATION. 

that  in  the  first  instance  territorial  area  and  local  circumstances 
must  also  be  considered. 

Something  of  a  similar  character  seems  to  have  taken  place  at 
the  formation  of  the  original  constitution  of  the  United  States, 
for  in  the  second  section  an  arbitrary  number  of  representatives 
was  assigned  to  the  thirteen  states  separately,  though  the  rule  was 
strictly  defined  as  to  the  subsequent  increase  or  decrease — the 
franchise  at  the  same  time  being  expressly  denied  to  Indians  and 
slaves.* 

The  representation  in  the  Upper  House  was  a  matter  much 
more  easily  disposed  of.  It  was  at  once  arranged  territorially, 
the  Provinces  being  formed  into  three  divisions,  namely,  Quebec 
(Lower  Canada),  Ontario  (Upper  Canada),  and  the  Maritime  Pro- 
vinces (New  Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia  and  Prince  Edward  Island), 
with  equal  representation,  24  to  each  division.  An  exceptional 
provision  was  made  for  Newfoundland,  with  a  representation  of 
four  members.  The  selections  in  the  first  instance  were  to  be 
from  the  existing  Legislative  Councils  of  the  several  Provinces, 
(excepting  Prince  Edward  Island),  as  fairly  as  possible  from  all 
political  parties.  This  provision,  it  being  naively  expected,  would 
facilitate  the  passage  of  the  necessary  measures  to  effectuate  the 
Union  in  those  branches  of  the  Local  Legislatures. 

The  question  of  an  elective  or  a  nominative  Legislative  Council 
was  fully  discussed,  and  decided  by  an  overwhelming  majority  in 
favor  of  the  [latter,  the  President  of  the  Canadian  Council,  the 
Hon.  George  Brown,  leading  the  liberal  section  of  the  Canadian 
Cabinet  strongly  in  support.  A  particular  exception  of  the  mode 
of  selection  of  the  members  for  this  branch  was  made  as  regards 
Prince  Edward  Island,  at  the  urgent  demand  of  its  delegates. 

With  reference  to  the  North-west  Territories  and  British  Colum- 
bia, inasmuch  as  they  were  in  no  way  represented  at  the  Confer- 
ence, and  their  admission  at  the  time  seemed  remote,  no  observa- 
tion of  any  kind  was  made  as  to  their  representation  in  either 
branch  ;  but  all  matters  relative  to  them  were  left  to  future  con- 
sideration, and  "such  terms  as  might  be  deemed  equitable  or 


*Shephard's  "  Constitutional  Text  Book."    Edition  of  1856. 


CONFEDERATION.  61 

agreed  upon,  when  they  were  admitted  or  applied  for  admission 
into  the  contemplated  union." 

Concurrently  with  the  consideration  of  these  questions  the  adjust- 
ment of  the  financial  burdens  was  also  under  discussion. 

The  simplest  and  the  shortest  mode  would  have  been  at  once  to 
determine  that  each  Province  should  by  its  own  direct  taxation 
bear  the  burden  of  its  own  local  expenditure  and  wants,  and  that 
the  general  revenues  should  all  be  distributed  solely  for  general 
purposes.  But  this  was  simply  out  of  the  question.  The  system 
existing  in  Upper  Canada  of  governing  by  municipalities,  and  pro- 
viding for  local  wants  by  local  taxation,  though  fully  understood 
had  never  been  adopted  by  the  people  of  the  Maritime  Provinces. 
The  Government  was  to  them  "a  nursing  mother"  of  children. 
Bridges,  roads,  schools,  wharves,  piers,  bye-roads,  internal  improve- 
ments and  communications  of  all  kinds,  in  addition  to  the  Legis- 
lative, fiscal,  postal,  and  executive  expenses  of  every  kind,  were 
paid  out  of  the  general  revenues,  arising  from  customs,  sales  of 
crown  lands,  or  other  public  revenues.  A  toll-gate  did  not  exist 
in  the  Provinces,  and  if  a  bridge  were  built  across  a  public  navi- 
gable river  like  the  Petitcodiac  by  a  company  for  its  own  private 
gain,  under  the  sanction  of  an  Act  of  the  Legislature  and  aided  by 
public  grants,  the  members  for  and  the  inhabitants  of  the  adjoining 
counties  rebelled  at  the  idea  of  being  charged  for  crossing  it,  and 
agitated  until  the  $20,000  or  $30,000,  that  it  was  said  to  have 
cost,  was  paid  to  the  company  out  of  the  public  funds,  and  the 
bridge  thrown  open  to  the  public  free  of  charge.  But  two  toll 
bridges  existed  in  the  Province  of  New  Brunswick,  both  expensive 
suspension  bridges  at  the  Upper  and  Lower  Falls  of  the  River  St. 
John  240  or  250  miles  apart,  and  from  the  Restigouche  to  the 
St.  Croix  in  the  other  direction,  300  miles  along  the  sea  coast, 
across  the  mouths  of  broad  rivers,  and  over  deep  ravines,  well 
roaded  and  well  bridged,  except  at  one  of  these  suspension  bridges 
no  toll-gatherer  stopped  the  traveller.  The  same  might  be  said  of 
Nova  Scotia. 

It  was  absurd,  therefore,  to  suppose  that  the  delegates  from 
those  Provinces  could  consent  to  any  propositions  for  union  that 
did  not  make  adequate  provisions  for  meeting  the  existing  wants 


62  CONFEDERATION. 

and  contributions  to  which  their  people  had  been  accustomed.  It 
was  equally  hard  to  make  the  representatives  of  the  people  of 
Upper  Canada  understand  that  that  was  right.  In  vain  was 
argument  used.  It  amounted  to  nothing.  Unless  some  compro- 
mise could  be  effected  the  discussion  about  union  might  as  well 
cease.  Subsidies  were  proposed,  the  expenses  of  each  Local  Gov- 
ernment were  in  calculation,  reduced  to  the  smallest  figure — the 
General  Government  assumed  the  burden  of  every  expenditure 
that  could  possibly  be  considered  of  a  general  character — but  still 
as  the  distribution  was  to  be  by  population  the  Province  of  Upper 
Canada  would  receive  what  it  did  not  want,  while  the  others  did  not 
get  what  they  did  want.  Agreement  seemed  hopeless,  and  on  or 
about  the  tenth  morning  after  the  Convention  met,  the  conviction 
was  general  that  it  must  break  up  without  coming  to  any  conclu- 
sion. The  terms  of  mutual  concession  and  demand  had  been  drawn 
to  their  extremist  tension,  and  silence  was  all  around.  At  last  a 
proposition  was  made  that  the  Convention  should  adjourn  for  the 
day,  and  that  in  the  meantime,  the  Finance  Ministers  of  the  several 
Provinces  should  meet,  discuss  the  matter  among  themselves,  and 
see  if  they  could  not  agree  upon  something.  Accordingly,  Messrs. 
Brown  and  Gait  on  behalf  of  Canada,  Dr.  Tupper  and  Mr. 
Archibald  of  Nova  Scotia,  Mr.  Tilley  of  New  Brunswick,  Mr. 
Pope  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  and  Mr.  Shea  of  Newfoundland, 
withdrew  for  that  purpose. 

On  the  following  morning  they  reported  the  conclusions  at  which 
they  had  arrived.  These  with  some  modifications,  after  discussion, 
were  ultimately  adopted^  by  the  Convention,  reduced  to  resolutions, 
and  the  "financial  crisis"  passed  away. 

The  Convention  resumed  its  labors  and  proceeded  to  define  the 
respective  powers  of  the  General  and  Local  Parliaments,  and  of 
the  rights  and  properties  under  their  control.  The  retention  of 
the  ungranted  Crown  lands  and  of  the  mines  and  minerals  by  the 
several  Provinces,  in  which  they  were  situated  was  deemed  best, 
as  affording  to  them  severally  additional  sources  of  revenue, 
stimulus  for  local  improvements,  and  the  means  of  encouraging 
immigration;  but  more  particularly  as  removing  causes  of  conflict 
and  dissension  between  the  Local  and  General  Governments,  and 


CONFEDERATION.  63 

relieving  the  latter  of  duties  which  ought  to  be  municipal.  The 
regulation  and  management  of  lands  and  royalties  within  a  Pro- 
vince by  a  Government  other  than  that  of  the  Province  would 
only  be  creating  an  "imperium  in  imperio,"  which  would  surely 
become  antagonistic. 

The  question  of  the  judiciary  was  not  so  easily  settled,  and  led 
to  long  and  animated  discussions.  Wliile  it  was  admitted  that 
the  public  interests  would  be  best  promoted  by  having  the  highest 
tribunals  of  the  countiy  deriving  their  authority  from  the  highest 
source  of  power  in  the  country,  and  that  a  uniform  Bar  extending 
throughout  the  whole  would  tend  to  its  elevation,  by  the  greater 
conflict  of  talent,  and  the  wider  sphere  of  action,  it  was  urged  that 
until  the  laws  were  in  some  measure  assimilated  the  benefit  with 
reference  to  the  Bar  would  be  more  seeming  than  real.  And  with 
reference  to  the  Bench,  a  vague  dread  of  the  overawing  power  of 
Canada,  led  some  of  the  delegates  from  the  Maritime  Provinces  to 
fear  that  the  courts  of  their  Provinces  might  be  filled  with  judges 
who  were  strangers  to  their  laws,  and  whose  traditions  were  with 
other  lands.  The  representatives  from  Lower  Canada  at  once  put 
their  Province  beyond  the  pale  of  consideration.  Their  juris- 
prudence was  governed  by  the  Civil  Law,  and  admitted  of  no 
uniformity  with  the  codes  of  the  other  Provinces.  The  result  was 
a  provision  for  rendering  uniform  the  laws  of  the  five  otbor^  • — ' 
Provinces,  Upper  Canada,  New  Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia,  New- ! 
foundland,  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  relative  to  property  and ; 
civil  rights,  and  that  until  such  uniformity  took  place,  the  judges 
of  the  Courts  of  those  Provinces  should  be  selected  from  the 
respective  Bars  of  those  Provinces;  the  power  of  appointment  of 
the  judges  in  all — Lower  Canada  included — with  this  restriction 
being  placed  in  the  hands  of  the  General  Government,  to  which 
already  the  duty  of  paying  their  salaries  had  been  assigned.  It 
was  admitted  with  one  voice,  that  the  criminal  law  must  be  the 
same  throughout  the  whole,  and  that  the  Parliament  of  the  General 
Government  must  form  the  criminal  code. 

Thus  was  this  question  disposed  of,  but  temporarily  only,  for 
the  time  must  come  when  substantially  one  code,  and  a  similar 
administration  must  pervade  the  tribunals  of  those  Provinces,  the 
basis  of  whose  jurisprudence  is  the  Common  Law  of  England. 


64  CONFEDERATION. 

Provision  was  made  for  the  establishment  of  a  Court  of  Appeal, 
and  for  the  completion  without  delay  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway 
from  the  Riviere  du  Loup  through  New  Brunswick  to  Truro  in 
Nova  Scotia,  without  an  express  understanding  to  which  effect 
those  two  Provinces  would  not  have  assented  to  enter  the  union. 
An  expression  of  opinion  was  also  given  as  to  the  importance  of  the 
communications  with  the  North- West  Territories  and  the  improve- 
ments in  the  canals  requisite  to  develop  the  trade  of  the  West  with 
the  sea-board,  and  a  declaration  made  that  they  should  be  prose- 
cuted at  the  earliest  possible  period,  that  the  finances  of  the  country 
would  permit. 

Other  provisions,  with  reference  to  existing  laws  in^the  several 
Provinces,  and  some  contingent  liabilities,  for  which,  under  their 
existing  laws,  they  might  become  responsible,  were  also  made. 
The  necessities  of  Newfoundland  compelled  a  departure,  with 
reference  to  that  colony,  from  the  principle  the  Convention  had 
adopted  as  regards  the  ungranted  Crown  lands  in  the  other  Pro- 
vinces. The  agreement  for  the  transfer  of  those  in  that  island  to 
the  General  Government  was  only  carried  after  much  discussion. 
It  was  stoutly  urged  that  if  Newfoundland  required  $150,000  per 
annum  more  than  the  general  plan  proposed,  it  was  better  to  give 
it  at  once,  or  forego  her  admission ;  but  the  former  could  not  be 
conceded  without  injustice  to  the  other  Provinces,  and  a  departure 
from  the  terms  on  which  they  were  induced  to  come  in ;  and  the 
latter  could  not  be  assented  to  without  a  departure  from  the  broad 
scheme  of  the  consolidation  of  all  British  North  America.  The 
acceptance  of  her  lands  was  therefore  carried ;  and,  at  the  request 
of  her  delegates  and  those  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  an  exception 
was  made,  that  the  qualification  for  members  of  the  Legislative 
Council  from  the  two  Islands  might  consist  pf  personal  as  well  as 
real  property,  leaseholds  being  extensively  in  use  in  both. 

No  other  exceptional  provision  was  made  with  reference  to 
Prince  Edward  Island,  save  as  to  the  members  of  the  Legislative 
Council  not  being  in  the  first  instance  selected  from  the  existing 
Council,  that  body  in  the  Island  being  elective,  and  her  delegates 
especially  requesting  that  with  reference  to  that  Island  the  question 
of  nomination  or  election  might  be  left  open  for  further  considera- 
tion ;  and  as  to  any  particular  claim  she  might  have  on  the  British 


CONFEDERATION.  6  5 

Government  for  the  Lieutenant-Governor's  salary,  in  consequence 
of  that  salary  having  been  always  paid  by  the  British  Government, 
and  not  by  the  Island;  though  during  the  discussion  on  the  repre- 
sentation in  Parliament,  and  on  the  financial  arrangements,  her 
representatives  were  restive  and  perhaps  exacting ;  but  after  the 
report  of  the  committee  appointed  to  devise  the  financial  arrange- 
ments, on  which  she  was  represented  by  her  Provincial  Secretary, 
no  dissatisfaction  was  expressed. 

Among  the  provisions  relating  to  the  imposition  or  regulation 
of  duties  on  imports  and  exports,  for  which  power  was  to  be  given 
exclusively  to  the  General  Government,  was  an  exception,  which 
led  to  much  discussion,  and  demands  explanation,  namely,  the 
exemption  from  the  power  of  the  General  Government  of  affecting 
(if  not  increased)  the  export  duty  on  timber,  logs  and  lumber  from 
New  Brunswick,  and  of  coal  and  other  minerals  in  Nova  Scotia. 
Not  only  was  the  principle  of  export  duties  denounced,  but  it  was 
observed  that  no  such  power  was  permitted  to  the  other  Provinces, 
and  that  most  of  them  dealt  quite  as  largely  in  the  lumber  trade 
as  New  Brunswick,  and  the  reason  for  such  exception  was  not 
apparent.  It  must  be  remembered  that  the  Crown  lands  and 
mines  and  minerals  in  each  Province  were  to  remain  the  property 
of  each  Province,  as  a  part  of  its  source  of  local  revenue.  Many 
years  previously,  the  Legislature  of  New  Brunswick,  finding  the 
expenses  of  collecting  the  stumpage  dues  unnecessarily  great — in 
fact,  so  far  as  the  public  revenue  went,  rendering  her  forests 
entirely  unproductive — had  simplified  the  matter  by  the  substitu- 
tion of  an  export  duty  in  lieu  of  stumpage ;  and  that  law  having 
been  in  successful  operation  for  many  years,  and  still  being  in 
force,  could  not  be  interfered  with.  It  was  simply  another  mode 
of  collecting  cullers'  dues,  as  known  at  the  port  of  Quebec,  and 
was  more  the  irregular  application  of  a  term  or  expression,  than 
the  adoption  of  a  general  principle  in  trade.  The  same  observa- 
tion is  applicable  to  the  exemption  in  favour  of  coal  and  other 
minerals  in  Nova  Scotia,  being  simply  a  more  convenient  mode 
there  in  use  of  collecting  the  royalties.  In  this  way  an  exception 
was  introduced  into  the  constitution,  which  would  otherwise  appear 
inconsistent. 


66  CONFEDERATION. 

The  foregoing  details,  with  others  deemed  essential,  were  embo- 
died in  seventy-two  resolutions,  which  were  to  be  authenticated  by 
the  signatures  of  the  delegates,  to  be  transmitted  to  their  respec- 
tive Governments  for  submission  to  their  Legislatures,  and  to  the 
Governor-General  for  the  Secretary  of  State  for  the  Colonies. 
Throughout  the  resolutions  the  present  Provinces  of  Ontario  and 
Quebec  were  spoken  of  as  Upper  and  Lower  Canada.  Though,  as 
at  present,  more  generally  recognized  under  the  former  designation, 
they  are  indifferently  so  referred  to  in  this  work. 

The  Resolutions  were  as  follows  : 

i 

1.  The  best  interests  and  present  and  future  prosperity  of  Bri- 
tish North  America  will  be  promoted  by  a  Federal  Union  under 
the  Crown  of  Great  Britain,  provided  such  Union  can  be  effected 
on  principles  just  to  the  several  Provinces. 

2.  In  the  Federation  of  the  British  North  American  Provinces 
the  system  of  government  best  adapted  under  existing  circum- 
stances to  protect  the  diversified  interests  of  the  several  Provinces, 
and  secure  efficiency,  harmony  and  permanency  in  the  working  of 
the  Union,  would  be  a  General  Government  charged  with  matters 
of  common  interest  to  the  whole  country,  and  Local  Governments 
for  each  of  the  Canadas,  and  for  the  Provinces  of  Nova  Scotia,  New 
Brunswick  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  charged  with  the  control  of 
local  matters  in  their  respective  sections ;  provision  being  made  for 
the  admission  into  the  Union,  on  equitable  terms,  of  Newfound- 
land, the  North-West  Territory,  British  Columbia  and  Vancouver. 

3.  In  framing  a  Constitution  for  the  General  Government,  the 
Conference,  with  a  view  to  the  perpetuation  of  our  connection  with 
the  mother  country,  and  to  the  promotion  of  the  best  interests  of 
the  people  of  these  Provinces,  desire  to  follow  the  model  of  the 
British  Constitution,  so  far  as  our  circumstances  will  permit. 

4.  The  executive  authority  or  government  shall  be  vested  in  the 
Sovereign  of  the  United  Kingdom  of  Great  Britain  and  Ireland, 
and  be  administered  according  to  the  well-understood  principles  of 
the  British  Constitution  by  the   Sovereign  personally,  or  by  the 
representative  of  the  Sovereign  duly  authorized. 

5.  The  Sovereign  or  representative  of  the  Sovereign  shall  be 
Commander-in-Chief  of  the  Land  and  Naval  Militia  Forces. 


CONFEDERATION.  67 

6.  There  shall  be  a  General  Legislature  or  Parliament  for  the 
Federated  Provinces,  composed  of  a   Legislative    Council  and  a 
House  of  Commons. 

7.  For  the  purpose  of  forming  the   Legislative   Council,   the 
Federated  Provinces  shall  be  considered    as  consisting  of  three 
divisions:  1st,  Upper  Canada;  2nd,  Lower  Canada;  3rd,  Nova 
Scotia,  New  Brunswick  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  each  division 
with  an  equal  representation  in  the  Legislative  Council. 

8.  Upper  Canada  shall  be  represented  in  the  Legislative  Council 
by  twenty-four  members,  Lower  Canada  by  twenty-four  members, 
and  the  three  Maritime  Provinces  by  twenty-four  members,  of 
which  Nova  Scotia  shall  have  ten,  New  Brunswick  ten,  and  Prince 
Edward  Island  four  members. 

9.  The  colony  of  Newfoundland  shall  be,  entitled  to  enter  the 
proposed  Union  with  a  representation  in  the  Legislative  Council 
of  four  members. 

10.  The  North- West  Territory,  British  Columbia,  and  Van- 
couver,  shall   be  admitted  into  the  Union  on  such  terms  and 
conditions  as  the  Parliament  of  the  federated  Provinces  shall  deem 
equitable,  and  as  shall  receive  the  assent  of  Her  Majesty ;  and  in 
the  case  of  the  Province  of  British  Columbia  or  Vancouver,  as 
shall  be  agreed  to  by  the  Legislature  of  such  Province. 

11.  The  members  of  the  Legislative  Council  shall  be  Appointed 
by  the  Crown,  under  the  Great  Seal  of  the  General  Government, 
and  shall  hold  office  during  life.     If  any  Legislative  Councillor 
shall,  for  two  consecutive  sessions  of  Parliament,  fail  to  give  his 
attendance  in  the  said  Council,  his  seat  shall  thereby  become  vacant. 

12.  The  members  of  the  Legislative  Council  shall  be  British 
subjects  by  birth  or  naturalization,  of  the  full  age  of  thirty  years, 
shall  possess  a  continuous  real  property  qualification  of  four  thou- 
sand dollars  over  and  above  all  incumbrances,  and  shall  be  and 
continue  worth  that  sum  over  and  above  their  debts  and  liabilities ; 
but  in  case  of  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  the  pro- 
perty may  be  either  real  or  personal. 

1 3.  If  any  question  shall  arise  as  to  the  qualification  of  a  Legis- 
lative Councillor,  the  same  shall  be  determined  by  the  Council. 


68  CONFEDERATION. 

14.  The  first  selection  of  the  members  of  the  Legislative  Council 
shall  be  made,  (except  as  regards  Prince  Edward  Island,)  from  the 
Legislative  Councils  of  the  various  Provinces,  so  far  as  a  sufficient 
number  be  found  qualified  and  willing  to  serve  :  such  members 
shall  be  appointed  by  the  Crown,  at  the  recommendation  of  the 
General  Executive  Government,  upon  the  nomination  of  the  res- 
pective Local  Governments ;  and  in  such  nomination  due  regard 
shall  be  had  to  the  claims  of  the  members  of  the   Legislative 
Council  of  the  Opposition  in  each  Province,  so  that  all  political 
parties  may  as  nearly  as  possible  be  fairly  represented. 

15.  The  Speaker  of  the  Legislative  Council  (unless  otherwise 
provided  by  Parliament)  shall  be  appointed  by  the  Crown  from 
among  the  members  of  the  Legislative  Council,  and  shall  hold 
office  during  pleasure,  and  shall  only  be  entitled  to  a  casting  vote 
on  an  equality  of  votes. 

16.  Each  of  the  twenty-four  Legislative  Councillors  representing 
Lower  Canada  in  the  Legislative  Council  of  the  General  Legislature 
shall  be  appointed  to  represent  one  of  the  twenty-four  Electoral 
Divisions  mentioned  in  schedule  A  of  chapter  1  of  the  Consolidated 
Statutes  of  Canada,  and  such  Councillor  shall  reside  or  possess  his 
qualification  in  the  division  he  is  appointed  to  represent. 

17.  The  basis  of  representation  in  the  House  of  Commons  shall 
be  population,  as  determined  by  the  official  census  every  ten  years; 
and  the  number  of  members  at  first  shall  be  one  hundred  and 
ninety-four,  distributed  as  follows  : 

Upper  Canada    82 

Lower  Canada „ 65 

Nova  Scotia 19 

New  Brunswick 15 

Newfoundland 8 

Prince  Edward  Island 5 

18.  Until  the  official  census  of  1871  has  been  made  up,  there 
shall  be  no  change  in  the  number  of  representatives  from  the 
several  sections. 

19.  Immediately  after  the  completion  of  the  census  of  1871, 
and  immediately  after  every  decennial  census  thereafter,  the  repre- 


CONFEDERATION.  69 

sentation  from  each  section  in  the  House  of  Commons  shall  be 
readjusted  on  the  basis  of  population. 

20.  For  the  purpose  of  such  readjustments,  Lower  Canada  shall 
always  be  assigned  sixty-five  members  ;  and  each  of  the  other  sec- 
tions shall,  at  each  readjustment,  receive,  for  the  ten  years  then 
next  succeeding,   the  number  of   members  to  which  it  will  be 
entitled  on  the  same   ratio  of  representation  to   population  as 
Lower  Canada  will  enjoy  according  to  the  census  last  taken  by 
having  sixty-five  members. 

21.  No  reduction  shall  be  made  in  the  number  of  members 
returned  by  any  section,  unless  its  population  shall  have  decreased, 
relatively  to  the  population  of  the  whole  Union,  to  the  extent  of 
five  per  centum. 

22.  In  computing,   at  each  decennial  period,   the  number  of 
members  to  which  each  section  is  entitled,  no  fractional  parts  shall 
be  considered,  unless  when  exceeding  one  half  the  number  entitling 
to  a  member,  in  which  case  a  member  shall  be  given  for  each  such 
fractional  part. 

23.  The  Legislature  of  each  Province  shall  divide  such  Province 
into  the  proper  number  of  constituencies,  and  define  the  boundaries 
of  each  of  them. 

24.  The  Local  Legislature  of  each  Province  may,  from  time  to 
time,  alter  the  Electoral  Districts  for  the  purposes  of  representa- 
tion in  the  House  of  Commons,  and  distribute  the  representatives 
to  which  the  Province  is  entitled  in  any  manner  such  Legislature 
may  think  fit. 

25.  The  number  of  members  may  at  any  time  be  increased  by 
the  General  Parliament,  regard  being  had  to  the  proportionate 
rights  then  existing. 

26.  Until  provisions  are  made  by  the  General  Parliament,  all 
the  laws  which,  at  the  date  of  the  proclamation  constituting  the 
Union,  are  in  force  in  the  Provinces  respectively,  relating  to  the 
qualification  and  disqualification  of  any  person  to  be  elected  or  to 
sit  or  vote  as  a  member  of  the  Assembly  in  the  said  Provinces 
respectively;  and  relating  to  the  qualification  or  disqualification  of 
voters,  and  to  the  oaths  to  be  taken  by  voters,  and  to  Returning 
Officers  and  their  powers  and  duties ;  and  relating  to  the  proceed- 


70  CONFEDERATION. 

ings  at  elections,  and  to  the  period  during  which  such  elections 
may  be  continued ;  and  relating  to  the  trial  of  controverted  elec- 
tions, and  the  proceedings  incident  thereto  ;  and  relating  to  the 
vacating  of  seats  of  members,  and  to  the  issuing  and  execution  of 
new  writs  in  case  of  any  seat  being  vacated  otherwise  than  by  a 
dissolution,  shall  respectively  apply  to  elections  of  members  to 
serve  in  the  House  of  Commons  for  places  situate  in  those  Pro 
vinces  respectively. 

27.  Every  House  of  Commons  shall  contimie  for  five  years  from 
the  day  of  the  return  of  the  writs   choosing  the  same,  and  no 
longer;  subject  nevertheless,  to  be  sooner  prorogued  or  dissolved 
by  the  Governor. 

28.  There  shall  be  a  session  of  the  General  Parliament  once  at 
least  in  every  year,  so  that  a  period  of  twelve  calendar  months 
shall  not  intervene  between  the  last  sitting  of  the  General  Parlia- 
ment in  one  session  and  the  first  sitting  thereof  in  the  next  session. 

29.  The  General  Parliament  shall  have  power  to  make  laws  for 
the  peace,  welfare  and  good  government  of  the  federated  Provinces 
(saving  the  sovereignty  of  England),  and  especially  laws  respecting 
the  following  subjects : 

1.  The  public  debt  and  property. 

2.  The  regulation  of  trade  and  commerce. 

3.  The  imposition  or  regulation  of  duties  of  customs  on 

imports  and  exports,  except  on  exports  of  timber,  logs, 
masts,  spars,  deals  and  sawn  lumber,  and  of  coal  and 
other  minerals. 

4.  Tl^e  imposition  or  regulation  of  excise  duties. 

5.  The  raising  of  money  by  all  or  any  other  modes  or  systems 

of  taxation. 

6.  The  borrowing  of  money  on  the  public  credit. 

7.  Postal  service. 

8.  Lines  of  steam  or  other  ships,  railways,  canals  and  other 

works  connecting  any  two  or  more  of  the  Provinces 
together,  or  extending  beyond  the  limits  of  any  Pro- 
vince. 

9.  Lines  of  steamships  between  the  federated  Provinces  and 

countries. 


CONFEDERATION.  71 

10.  Telegraphic    communication,    and   the   incorporation    of 

telegraphic  companies. 

11.  .All  such  works  as  shall,  although  lying  wholly  within 

any  Province,  be  specially  declared,  by  the  Acts  autho- 
rizing them,  to  be  for  the  general  advantage. 

12.  The  census. 

1 3.  Militia  ;  Military  and  Naval  service  and  defence. 

14.  Beacons,  buoys  and  light-houses. 

15.  Navigation  and  shipping. 

16.  Quarantine. 

17.  Sea-coast  and  inland  fisheries. 

18.  Ferries  between  any  Province  and  a  foreign  country,  or 

between  any  two  Provinces. 

19.  Currency  and  coinage. 

20.  Banking,  incorporation  of  Banks,  and  the  issue  of  paper 

money.  . 

21.  Savings  Banks. 

22.  Weights  and  measures. 

23.  Bills  of  exchange  and  promissory  notes. 

24.  Interest. 

25.  Legal  tender. 

26.  Bankruptcy  and  insolvency. 

27.  Patents  of  invention  and  discovery. 

28.  Copyrights. 

29.  Indians,  and  lands  reserved  for  the  Indians. 

30.  Naturalization  and  aliens. 

31.  Marriage  and  divorce. 

32.  The  Criminal    Law,   excepting  the  constitution  of  the 

Courts  of  criminal  jurisdiction,  but  including  the 
procedure-  in  criminal  matters. 

33.  Rendering  uniform  all   or  any  of  the  laws  relative  to 

property  and  civil  rights  in  Upper  Canada,  Nova 
Scotia,  New  Brunswick,  Newfoundland  and  Prince 
Edward  Island,  and  rendering  uniform  the  procedure 
of  all  or  any  of  the  Courts  in  these  Provinces ;  but 
any  statute  for  this  purpose  shall  have  no  force  or 
authority  in  any  Province  until  sanctioned  by  the 
Legislature  thereof. 


72  CONFEDERATION. 

34.  The  establishment  of  a  General  Court  of  Appeal  for  the 

federated  Provinces. 

35.  Immigration. 

36.  Agriculture. 

37.  And  generally  respecting  all  matters  of  a  general  charac- 

ter, not  specially  and  exclusively  reserved  for  the  Local 
Governments  and  Legislatures. 

30.  The  General  Government  and  Parliament  shall  have  all 
powers  necessary  or  proper  for  performing  the  obligations  of  the 
federated  Provinces,  as  part  of  the  British  Empire,  to  foreign 
countries,  arising  imder  treaties  between  Great  Britain  and  such 
countries. 

31.  The  General  Parliament   may  also,   from   time   to   time, 
establish  additional  Courts;  and  the  General  Government  may 
appoint  Judges  and  officers  thereof,  when  the  same  shall  appear 
necessary  or  for  the  public  advantage,  in  order  to  the  due  execution 
of  the  laws  of  Parliament. 

32.  All  Courts,  Judges  and  officers  of  the  several  Provinces 
shall  aid,  assist  and  obey  the  General  Government  in  the  exercise 
of  its  rights  and  powers,  and  for  such  purposes  shall  be  held  to  be 
Courts,  Judges  and  Officers  of  the  General  Government. 

33.  Thie  General  Government  shall  appoint  and  pay  the  Judges 
of  the  Superior  Courts  in  each  Province,  and  of  the  County  Courts 
of  Upper  Canada,  and  Parliament  shall  fix  their  salaries. 

34.  Until  the  consolidation  of  the  laws  of  Upper  Canada,  New 
Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia,  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward  Island, 
the  Judges  of  these  Provinces  appointed  by  the  General  Govern- 
ment shall  be  selected  from  their  respective  Bars. 

35.  The  Judges  of  the  Courts  of  Lower  Canada  shall  be  selected 
from  the  Bar  of  Lower  Canada. 

36.  The  Judges  of  the  Court  of  Admiralty  now  receiving  sala- 
ries shall  be  paid  by  the  General  Government. 

37.  The  Judges  of  the  Superior  Courts  shall  hold  their  offices 
during  good  behaviour,  and  shall  be  removable  only  on  the  address 

of  both  Houses  of  Parliament. 

X 


CONFEDERATION.  73 

LOCAL    GOVERNMENT. 

38.  For  each  of  the  Provinces  there  shall  be  an  executive  officer 
styled  the  Lieutenant-Governor,  who  shall  be  appointed  by  the 
Governor-General  in  Council,  under  the  Great  Seal  of  the  Fede- 
rated Provinces,  during  pleasure  ;  such  pleasure  not  to  be  exercised 
before  the  expiration  of  the  first  five  years,  except  for  cause ;  such 
cause  to  be  communicated  in  writing  to  the  Lieutenant-Governor 
immediately  after  the  exercise  of  the  pleasure  as  aforesaid,  and 
also  by  message  to  both  Houses  of  Parliament,  within  the  first 
week  of  the  first  session  afterwards. 

39.  The  Lieutenant-Governor  of  each  Province  shall  be  paid  by 
the  General  Government. 

40.  In   undertaking   to   pay  the   salaries  of   the   Lieutenant- 
Go  vernors,  the  Conference  does  not  desire  to  prejudice  the  claim 
of    Prince    Edward    Island   upon    the    Imperial   Government  for 
the  amount  now  paid  for  the  salary  of  the  Lieutenant-Governor 
thereof. 

41.  The  Local  Government  and  Legislature  of  each  Province 
shall  be  constructed  in  such  manner  as  the  existing  Legislature  of 
such  Province  shall  provide. 

42.  The  Local  Legislatures  shall  have  power  to  alter  or  amend 
their  constitution  from  time  to  time. 

J^43.-    The  Local   Legislatures  shall  have  power  to  make  laws 
respecting  the  following  subjects  : 

1.  Direct  taxation  and  the  imposition  of  duties  on  the  export 

of  timber,  logs,  masts,  spars,  deals  and  sawn  lumber, 
and  of  coals  and  other  minerals. 

2.  Borrowing  money  on  the  credit  of  the  Province. 

3.  The  establishment  and  tenure  of  local   offices,  and  the 

appointment  and  payment  of  local  officers. 

4.  Agriculture. 

5.  Immigration. 

6.  Education ;  saving  the  rights  and  privileges  which  the 

Protestant  or  Catholic  minority  in  both  Canadas  may 
possess  as  to  their  denominational  Schools,  at  the  time 
when  the  Union  goes  into  operation. 
6 


74  CONFEDERATION. 

7.  The  sale  and  management  of  public  lands,  excepting  lands 

belonging  to  the  General  Government. 

8.  Sea-coast  and  inland  fisheries. 

9.  The  establishment,  maintenance  and  management  of  peni- 

tentiaries, and  of  public  and  reformatory  prisons. 

10.  The  establishment,  maintenance  and  management  of  hospi- 

tals, asylums,  charities,  and  eleemosynary  institutions. 

11.  Municipal  institutions. 

12.  Shop,  saloon,  tavern,  auctioneer  and  other  licenses. 

13.  Local  works. 

14.  The  incorporation  of  private  and  local  companies,  except 

such  as  relate  to  matters  -assigned  to  the  General 
Parliament. 

15.  Property  and  civil  rights,  excepting  those  portions  thereof 

assigned  to  the  General  Parliament. 

16.  Inflicting  punishment  by  fines,  penalties,  imprisonment, 

or  otherwise  for  the  breach  of  laws  passed  in  relation 
to  any  subject  within  their  jurisdiction. 

17.  The  administration  of  justice,  including  the  constitution, 

maintenance  and  organization  of  the  courts — both  of 
civil  and  criminal  jurisdiction,  and  including  also  the 
procedure  in  civil  matters. 

18.  And  generally  all  matters  of  a  private  or  local  nature, 

not  assigned  to  the  General  Parliament. 

44.  The  power  of  respiting,  reprieving  and  pardoning  prisoners 
convicted  of  crimes,  and  of  commuting  and  remitting  of  sentences, 
in  whole  or  in  part,  which  belongs  of  right  to  the  Crown,  shall  be 
administered  by  the  Lieutenant-Governor  of  each  Province  in 
Council,  subject  to  any  instructions  he  may  from  time  to  time 
receive  from  the  General  Government,  and  subject  to  any  provi- 
sions that  may  be  made  in  his  behalf  by  the  General  Parliament. 

« 
MISCELLANEOUS. 

^45)  In  regard  to  all  subjects  over  which  jurisdiction  belongs  to 
both  the  General  and  Local  Legislatures,  the  laws  of  the  General 
Parliament  shall  control  and  supersede  those  made  by  the  Local 


CONFEDERATION.  .    75 

Legislature,  and  the  latter  shall  be  void  so  far  as  they  are  repug- 
nant to,  or  inconsistent  with  the  former. 

46.  Both  the  English  and  French  language  may  be  employed  in 
the  General  Parliament  and  in  its  proceedings,  and  in  the  Local 
Legislature  of  Lower  Canada,  and  also  in  the  Federal  Courts  and 
in  the  Courts  of  Lower  Canada. 

47.  No   lands  or  property  belonging  to  the  General  or  Local 
Government  shall  be  liable  to  taxation. 

48.  All  bills  for  appropriating  any  part  of  the  public  revenue, 
or  for  imposing  any  new  tax  or  impost,  shall  originate  in  the 
House  of  Commons,  or  in  the  House  of  Assembly,  as  the  case 
may  be. 

49.  The  House  of  Commons  or  House  of  Assembly  shall  not 
originate   or   pass  any  vote,    resolution,  address  or  bill,  for   the 
appropriation  of  any  part  of  the  public  revenue,  or  of  any  tax  or 
impost  to  any  purpose,  not  first  recommended  by  message  of  the 
Governor-General,  or  the  Lieutenant-Governor,  as  the  case  may 
be,  during  the  session  in  which '  such  vote,  resolution,  address  or 
bill  is  passed. 

(&lJi  Any  bill  of  the  General  Parliament  may  be  reserved  in  the 
usual  manner  for  Her  Majesty's  assent;  and  any  bill  of  the  Local 
Legislatures  may  in  like  manner  be  reserved  for  the  consideration 
of  the  Governor-General. 

51.  Any  bill  passed  by  the  General  Parliament  shall  be  subject 
to  disallowance  by  Her  Majesty  within  two  years,  as  in  the  case 
of  bills  passed  by  the  Legislatures  of  the  said  Provinces  hitherto ; 
and  in  like  manner  any  bill  passed  by  a  Local  Legislature  shall  be 
subject  to  disallowance  by  the  Governor-General  within  one  year 
after  the  passing  thereof. 

52.  The  Seat  of  Government  of  the  Federated  Provinces  shall 
be  Ottawa,  subject  to  the  Royal  Prerogative. 

53.  Subject  to  any  future  action  of  the  respective  Local  Govern- 
ments, the  Seat  of  the  Local  Government  in  Upper  Canada  shall 
be  Toronto;  of  Lower  Canada,  Quebec;  and  the  Seats  of  the  Local 
Governments  in  the  other  Provinces  shall  be  as  at  present. 


76  CONFEDERATION. 

PROPERTY  AND  LIABILITIES. 

54.  All  stocks,  cash,  bankers'  balances  and  securities  for  money 
belonging  to  each  Province,  at  the  time  of  the  union,  except  as 
hereinafter  mentioned,  shall  belong  to  the  General  Government. 

55.  The  following  public  works  and  property  of  each  Province, 
shall  belong  to  the  General  Government,  to  wit : 

1.  Canals. 

2.  Public  harbours. 

3.  Light-houses  and  piers. 

4.  Steamboats,  dredges  and  public  vessels. 

5.  Biver  and  lake  improvements. 

6.  Railways  and  railway  stocks,  mortgages  and  other  debts 

due  by  railway  companies. 

7.  Military  roads. 

8.  Custom  houses,  post  offices  and  other  public  buildings, 

except  such  as  may  be  set  aside  by  the  General  Gov- 
ernment for  the  use  of  the  Local  Legislatures  and 
Governments. 

9.  Property  transferred  by  the  Imperial  Government  and 

known  as  ordnance  property. 

10.  Armories,  drill  sheds,  military  clothing  and  munitions 

of  war. 

11.  Lands  set  apart  for  public  purposes. 

56.  All  lands,  mines,  minerals  and   royalties   vested   in   Her 
Majesty  in  the  Provinces  of  Upper  Canada,  Lower  Canada,  Nova 
Scotia,  New  Brunswick  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  for  the  use  of 
such  Provinces,  shall  belong  to  the  Local  Government  of  the  terri- 
tory in  which  the  same  are  so  situate ;  subject  to  any  trusts  that 
may  exist  in  respect  to  any  of  such  lands,  or  to  any  interest  of 
other  persons  in  respect  of  the  same. 

57.  All  sums  due  from  purchasers   or  lessees    of  such   lands, 
mines  or  minerals  at  the  time  of  the  union,  shall  also  belong  to  the 
Local  Governments. 

58.  All  assets  connected  with  such  portions  of  the  public  debt 
of  any  Province  as  are  assumed  by  the  Local  Governments  shall 
also  belong  to  those  Governments  respectively. 


CONFEDERATION.  77 

59.  The  several  Provinces  shall  retain  all  other  public  property 
therein,  subject  to  the  right  of  the  General  Government  to  assume 
any  lands  or  public  property  required  for  fortifications  or  the 
defence  of  the  country. 

'60.  The  General  Government  shall  assume  all  the  debts  and 
liabilities  of  each  Province. 

61.  The  debt  of  Canada,  not  specially  assumed  by  Upper  and 
Lower  Canada  respectively,  shall  not  exceed  at  the  time  of  the 
union,  $62,500,000;  Nova  Scotia  shall  enter  the  union  with  a 
debt  not  exceeding  $8,000,000,  and  New  Brunswick  with  a  debt 
not  exceeding  $7,000,000. 

^62.  In  case  Nova  Scotia  or  New  Brunswick  do  not  incur 
liabilities  beyond  those  for  which  their  Governments  are  now 
bound,  and  which  shall  make  their  debts  at  the  date  of  the  union 
less  than  $8,000,000  and  $7,000,000  respectively,  they  shall  be 
entitled  to  interest  at  five  per  cent,  on  the  amount  not  so  incurred, 
in  like  manner  as  is  hereinafter  provided  for  Newfoundland  and 
Prince  Edward  Island  ;  the  foregoing  resolution,  being  in  no  respect 
intended  to  limit  the  powers  given  to  the  respective  Governments 
of  those  Provinces  by  Legislative  authority,  but  only  to  limit 
the  maximum  amount  of  charge  to  be  assumed  by  the  General 
Government.  Provided  always  that  the  powers  so  conferred  by 
the  respective  Legislatures  shall  be  exercised  within  five  years 
from  this  date  or  the  same  shall  then  lapse. 

*7"63.  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward  Is-land  not  having  in- 
curred debts  equal  to  those  of  the  other  Provinces,  shall  be  enti- 
tled to  receive,  by  half-yearly  payments,  in  advance,  from  the 
General  Government,  the  interest  at  five  per  cent,  on  the  differ- 
ence between  the  actual  amount  of  their  respective  debts  at  the 
time  of  the  union,  and  the  average  amount  of  indebtedness  per 
head  of  the  population  of  Canada,  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick. 

?>64.  In  consideration  of  the  transfer  to  the  General  Parliament 
of  the  powers  of  taxation,  an  annual  grant  in  aid  of  each  Province 
shall  be  made,  equal  to  80  cents  per  head  of  the  population,  as  es- 
tablished by  the  census  of  1861, — the  population  of  Newfound- 
land being  estimated  at  130,000.  Such  aid  shall  be  in  full 
settlement  of  all  future  demands  upon  the  General  Government 


78  CONFEDERATION. 

for  local  purposes,  and  shall  be  paid  half-yearly  nTadvance  to  each 
Province. 

65.  The  position  of  New  Brunswick   being"  such  as  to  entail 
large  immediate  charges  upon  her  local  revenues,  it  is  agreed  that 
for  the  period  of  ten  years  from  the  time  when  the  union  takes 
effect,   an  additional  allowance   of  $63,000  rper  annum  shall  be 
made  to  that  Province.     But  that  so  long  as  the  , liability  of  that 
Province  remains   under  $7,000,000,   a  deduction  equal  to   the 
interest  on  such  deficiency  shall  be  made  from  the  $63,000. 

66.  In  consideration  of  the  surrender  to  the  General  Govern- 
ment by  Newfoundland  of  all  its  rights  in  the  mines  and  minerals, 
and  of  all  the  ungranted  and  unoccupied  lands^of  the  Crown,  it  is 
agreed  that  the  sum  of  $150,000  shall  each' year  be  paid  to  that 
Province,  by  semi-annual  payments.     Provided  .that  that  Colony 
shall   retain   the  right  of  opening,   constructing  and  controlling 
roads  and  bridges  through  any  of  the  said  lands,   subject  to  any 
laws  which  the  General  Parliament  may  pass  in  respect  of  the 
same. 

67.  All  engagements  that  may,  before  the  union,  be  entered 
into  with  the  Imperial  Government  for  the  defence  of  the  country, 
shall  be  assumed  by  the  General  Government. 

68.  The  General  Government  shall  secure,  without  delay,  the 
completion  of  the   Intercolonial   Railway  from  Riviere-du-Loup, 
through  New  Brunswick,  to  Truro  in  Nova  Scotia. 

69.  The  communications  with  the   North- Western   Territory, 
and  the  improvements  required  for  the  development  of  the  trade 
of  the  great  West  with  the  seaboard,  are  regarded  by  this  Confer- 
ence  as   subjects  of   the   highest   importance   to   the    Federated 
Provinces,  and  shall  be  prosecuted  at  the  earliest  possible  period 
that  the  state  of  the  finances  will  permit. 

70.  The  sanction  of  the  Imperial  and  Local  Parliaments  shall 
be  sought  for  the  Union  of  the  Provinces,  on  the  principles  adopted 
by  the  Conference. 

71.  That  Her  Majesty  the  Queen  be  solicited  to  determine  the 
rank  and  name  of  the  Federated  Provinces. 

72.  The  proceedings  of  the  Conference  shall  be  authenticated 
by  the  signatures  of  the  delegates,  and  submitted  by  each  delega- 


CONFEDEKATION.  79 

tion  to  its  own  Government,  and  the  Chairman  is  authorized  to 
submit  a  copy  to  the  Governor-General  for  transmission  to  the 
Secretary  of  State  for  the  Colonies. 

It  will  be  observed  that  these  resolutions  differ  in  some  material 
respects  from  those  ultimately  adopted  at  Westminster,  which 
formed  the  final  basis  of  the  articles  of  Confederation,  and  were 
embodied  in  the  British  North  America  Act  1867. 

As  the  financial  arrangements  constituted  the  principal  difficulty 
throughout  the  preliminary  negotiations,  and  were  afterwards  in 
the  Confederated  Parliament  frequently  made  the  subject  of  much 
discussion,  and  of  many  very  different  constructions,  it  would  be 
as  well  to  preserve  the  statements  and  figures  made  and  used  at 
the  Quebec  Conference.  They  were  subsequently  tabulated*  and 
arranged  under  the  direction  of  Mr.  Gait,  the  Finance x  Minister, 
and  were  officially  published  in  the  early  part  of  the  winter  of  1865. 

*  Vide  APPENDIX  A. 


[80] 


CHAPTER  III. 

Banquets  at  Quebec  and  Montreal — Public  sentiment  in  Lower  Canada — 
Conduct  of  the  Press — Custom  of  the  ancient  Germans  followed  by  the 
English — Speeches  at  Quebec — Reception  by  the  Laval  University  — 
Reception  at  Montreal — Education  of  the  public  mind — Remarks  of  Dele- 
gates and  Local  Members  at  Montreal — A.D.  1864. 

On  the  28th  October,  the  Convention  closed  its  sittings  at 
Quebec,  and  adjourned  to  Montreal. 

We  will  now  pause,  and,  looking  at  the  current  events  that 
surrounded  the  Convention  while  at  Quebec,  endeavour  to  trace 
the  formation  of  public  opinion  on  the  important  subject  under 
the  consideration  of  its  members. 

The  Resolutions  themselves  were  not  made  public  in  extenso, 
because  the  delegates  had  first  to  report  them  to  their  respective 
Governments ;  but  the  purport  of  them  was  sufficiently  known, 
through  the  instrumentality  of  the  press,  to  enable  a  tolerably 
correct  .estimate  to  be  formed  of  their  character.  The  one  broad 
fact,  at  any  rate,  was  proclaimed — that  the  representatives  of  the 
several  Provinces  had  agreed  upon  a  plan  for  union  of  all  British 
North  America,  and  that  its  future  consolidation  was  to  some 
degree  secured.  It  is  with  the  reception  of  this  one  fact  by  the 
public,  rather  than  with  the  details  of  the  plan,  that  we  have  at 
present  to  deal. 

It  would  be  superfluous  to  observe,  that  during  the  sitting  of  the 
Convention,  the  well-known  hospitalities  of  Quebec  were  extended 
to  its  members.  Those  graceful  courtesies  which  in  private  life 
had  made  its  society  the  delight  of  strangers,  and  the  capital  of 
old  Canada  the  most  acceptable  station  to  Her  Majesty's  forces 
when  serving  abroad,  were  offered  in  profusion.  But  it  is  to  public 
matters  our  attention  must  be  turned. 

The  proceedings  of  the  Convention  were  watched  with  intense 
interest  by  the  representatives  of  the  press  from  the  different 
centres  of  influence  throughout  the  country ;  and  though,  by  the 
determination  of  the  Convention  to  sit  with  closed  doors,  the 


CONFEDERATION.  81 

individual  action  of  members  was  but  little  known,  the  results,  in 
some  way,  were  always  sure  to  reach  the  public  ear.  Thus  day 
by  day  the  public  mind  became  imbued  with  the  nature  of  those 
changes  which  were  being  suggested ;  and  though  the  actual  tran- 
script might  not  go  abroad,  yet  sufficient  information  was  obtained 
to  indicate  their  tendency  and  character.  The  conduct  of  the  press 
was  most  admirable.  No  attempt  was  made  to  foster  party  preju- 
dice, or  create  local  jealousies ;  no  effort  to  advance  the  individual 
triumph  of  one  politician  over  another ;  no  fulsome  eulogy.  All 
was  fair — a  determination  to  wait  until  the  whole  projet  was 
promulgated;  not  to  anticipate,  not  to  prejudge  from  objections 
to  any  particular  part.  The  fabric  must  stand  from  its  general 
solidity,  what  was  weak  sustained  by  what  was  strong,  or  it  must 
fall,  from  its  entire  insufficiency  to  accomplish  the  end  proposed. 

Tacitus,  in  his  "  De  Moribus  Germanorum,"  states  that  it  was 
the  custom  of  that  ancient  people,  when  any  great  measure  was  to 
be  proposed,  or  any  great  work  undertaken,  to  gather  together  in 
general  assembly,  when  much  feasting  took  place,  and  great  drunk- 
enness prevailed,  and  there  and  then  to  discuss  with  the  fullest 
freedom  the  subject  matter  they  had  met  to  consider,  but  not  to 
determine  upon  it  until  the  day  after.  Thus,  he  tersely  observes, 
"  Deliberant  dum  fingere  nesciunt,  constituunt  dum  errare  non 
possunt."  They  deliberate  while  they  cannot  feign ;  they  deter- 
mine when  they  cannot  err. 

Whether  it  be  that  this  custom  has  descended,  in  some  modified 
form,  to  our  ancestors  or  not,  we  cannot  exactly  say ;  but  true  it 
is,  that  it  is  the  habit  of  the  English-speaking  race  and  their 
descendants  in  every  part  of  the  world,  to  inaugurate  great  under- 
takings with  eating  and  drinking.  If  a  railroad  is  to  be  built,  a 
constitution  to  be  framed,  a  lord-mayor  to  be  sworn  in,  a  states- 
man to  be  complimented,  a  prince  to  be  received,  a  charitable 
institution  to  be  founded,  a  dock  to  be  opened,  an.  asylum  to  be 
built,  a  call  for  money  for  any  great  work  to  be  made,  a  banquet 
must  be  held.  An  Englishman  is  a  queer  man.  Hard-fisted, 
hard-headed,  hard-hearted,  you  may  nevertheless  lead  him  to  any- 
thing— you  can  drive  him  to  nothing.  He  has  plenty  of  money — 
he  will  refuse  it ;  he  has  certain  political  rights — he  will  defy  you 


82  CONFEDERATION. 

to  touch  them ;  things  are  good  enough  as  they  are — he  does  not 
want  any  change.  But  reason  with  him,  show  him  that  a  thing  is 
right ;  he  is  a  gregarious  animal ;  convince  his  neighbours  with 
himself ;  make  out  your  plan ;  prove  it  to  be  solid  and  sensible, 
and  likely  to  be  productive  of  good;  appeal  to  his  generosity; 
give  him  time,  and  he  will  become  as  enthusiastic  as  before  he  was 
obdurate,  as  liberal  as  before  he  was  close,  as  generous  in  the 
concession  of  rights  as  before  he  was  reserved,  and  as  ready  to  go 
heart  and  soul  into  the  great  change  as  before  he  was  opposed. 
Have  a  banquet — he  becomes  uncontrollable ;  and  mid  the  cheers 
of  the  wine-cup,  and  the  flowers  of  speech,  his  heart  and  hand  and 
purse  are  open.  But  try  to  take  his  money  from  him  against  his 
will,  and^  he  would  not  yield  it,  if  it  was  to  build  a  pathway  to 
heaven ;  try  to  trample  upon  a  right,  and  no  power  on  earth  would 
make  him  concede  it. 

This  utilizing  of  a  banquet  is  characteristic  of  the  race  in  every 
part  of  the  world,  from  Australia  to  Hudson's  Bay.  By  its 
means  the  movers  in  any  great  measure  of  progress  become  the 
expounders  of  their  own  proposition,  and  the  public  receive 
authoritatively  the  outlines  thus  announced.  Fortunately,  unlike 
the  ancient  Germans,  we  have  not  to  discuss  or  determine  at  or 
after  the  banquet.  The  work  is  in  some  measure  moulded  before. 
It  is  only  for  heralding  the  birth  we  make  use  of  the  banquet,  and 
to  ask  the  public  to  become  sponsors  for  the  organism,  whose  sub- 
sequent attainment  to  maturity  must  depend  upon  their  approval. 

Quebec  had  its  banquet  under  the  auspices  of  the  Board  of 
Trade  ;  its  citizens  gathered  together  to  do  honor  to  the  occasion 
a  day  or  two  before  the  Convention  adjourned,  and  there,  amid 
fruit  and  flowers,  mid  the  drapery  of  friendly  flags,  mid  the  strains 
of  martial  music,  and  the  cheers  of  excited  men,  the  proposed 
Federation  of  British  North  America  was  first  authoritatively 
announced  by  the  representatives  of  the  several  Provinces  to  their 
people. 

It  is  not  proposed  to  give  in  full  the  speeches  made  on  this  and 
similar  occasions,  or  in  any  of  the  parliamentary  debates  or  public 
demonstrations  throughout  the  three  succeeding  years  immediately 
preceding  Confederation.  Selecting  the  leading  points,  condensing 


CONFEDERATION.  83 

without  weakening  the  information  conveyed,  and  avoiding,  as 
far  as  possible,  the  reiteration  by  different  speakers  of  the  same 
idea,  will  afford,  it  is  believed,  a  correct  estimate  of  the  gradual 
process  by  which  a  change  in  the  constitutional  government  of 
the  Provinces  was  brought  about — a  change  for  which  the  public 
mind  was  prepared,  and  to  which  its  tendencies  were  directed. 

On  this  occasion  Mr.  Joseph,  the  President  of  the  Board  of 
Trade,  who  presided  over  the  hospitable  board,  in  giving  the 
toast  of  the  evening,  "  Our  Guests,  the  Delegates  from  the  Mari- 
time Provinces,"  declared  : 

"  That  while  the  merchants  of  Quebec  did  not  think  they 
were  called  upon  to  express  an  opinion  on  the  question  of 
confederation  itself,  they  all  heartily  desired  some  change  in 
their  then  position.  They  desired  a  thorough  commercial  union. 
They  desired  that  the  unequal  and  hostile  tariffs  of  the  several 
Provinces  should  disappear.  They  wanted  one  tariff  instead  of 
five.  They  wanted  a  commercial  union  under  the  nag  of  Eng- 
land, strengthened  still  further  by  the  iron  ties  of  the  Intercolo- 
nial Railway.  They  had  long  been  in  the  habit  of  calling  the 
Maritime  Provinces  sister  colonies ;  but  notwithstanding  this 
appellation,  they  were  strangers  1;o  each  other,  as  was  shown  by 
the  diversity  of  tariffs  ;  but  they  hoped  a  new  era  was  about 
dawning  upon  them." 

The  Hon.  Dr.  Tupper,  the  Provincial  Secretary  of  Nova  Scotia, 
on  behalf  of  that  Province  remarked  : 

"  That  assembled  as  the  delegates  were  in  an  endeavour  to  devise, 
under  the  authority  and  with  the  sanction  of  the  Crown  of  Great 
Britain,  a  better  system  for  their  country,  they  were  obliged  to 
observe  that  confidence  as  to  their  proceedings  which  was  so  ma- 
terial to  the  success  of  the  undertaking.  It  would  be  very  embar- 
rassing if  the  opinions  of  the  Conference  were  sent  broadcast 
throughout  the  country,  and  made  a  bone  of  contention  before 
they  were  matured.  They  believed  that  the  time  had  come  when 
it  was  desirable  to  choose  a  sounder  and  more  judicious  system  for 
the  British  North  American  Provinces.."  He  briefly  referred  to 


84  CONFEDERATION. 

a  few  of  the  advantages  likely  to  accrue  from  a  union  with  the  Mari- 
time Provinces.  "  It  was  true,"  he  observed,  "  that  the  Canadians 
possessed  a  boundless  country  and  a  large  population  ;  but  with 
all  their  territory,  population  and  resources,  the  Maritime  Pro- 
vinces could  offer  them  something  necessary  in  forming  a  great 
nation.  They  would  bring  with  them  fifty  or .  sixty  thousand 
square  miles  of  country,  and  an  additional  population  of  eight 
hundred  thousand  souls  ;  and  it  was  needless  to  say  that  an  addi- 
tion of  eight  hundred  thousand  consumers  of  the  growing  manu- 
factures of  Canada  was  no  small  item.  They  did  not  require  to 
unite  with  Canada  for  the  purpose  of  taking  anything  from  it,  or 
of  drawing -upon  its  wealth  or  its  resources.  It  was  needless  to 
say  what  Canada  owed  to  the  St.  Lawrence,  that  great  natural 
highway  between  the  productive  regions  of  the  West  and  the 
ocean  ;  but  great  as  it  undoubtedly  was,  it  was  imperfect,  inas- 
much as  it  was  closed  to  navigation  for  five  months  of  the  year. 
The  remedy  for  this  state  of  things  was  the  construction  of  the 
Intercolonial  Railway.  This  work  would  provide  a  highway  to 
the  ocean  over  British  territory,  giving  not  political  greatness  alone, 
but  commercial  greatness  likewise.  The  question  under  consider- 
ation was,  however,  a  great  and  important  question  in  all  its  bear- 
ings. It  was  so  great  that  the  voice  of  faction  was  hushed. 
Throughout  the  whole  of  British  North  America  the  feeling  pre- 
vailed that  the  magnitude  of  this  question  demanded  that  all 
partisanship  should  cease  while  the  matter  was  being  discussed." 

The  Hon.  Mr.  Tilley,  the  Provincial  Secretary  of  New  Bruns- 
wick, replied  for  that  Province  with  equal  frankness,  and  remark 
ing  upon  the  cordial  feeling,  observed  : 

"  The  delegates  from  the  Lower  Provinces  were  not  seeking  this 
union.  They  had  assembled  at  Charlottetown  in  order  to  see 
whether  they  could  not  extend  their  own  family  relations,  and 
then  Canada  intervened,  and  the  consideration  of  the  larger  ques- 
tion was  the  result.  He  considered  it  right  to  make  this  remark, 
inasmuch  as  it  had  been  asserted  that  the  Maritime  Provinces, 
weak  and  impoverished,  were  endeavouring  to  attach  themselves 
to  Canada,  in  order  to  reap  the  benefits  arising  from  such  a  union. 


CONFEDERATION.  85 

This  was  not  the  case.  He  was  in  a  position  to  state  that,  for  the 
year  1864,  after  paying  the  interest  on  all  their  debts,  and  after 
providing  liberally  for  roads,  bridges  and  other  public  works,  they 
would  have  a  surplus  of  half  a  million."  *  *  *  Next  alluding 
to  the  Intercolonial  Railway  project,  he  said,  "  their  feeling  on  this 
subject  was  :  '  We  wont  have  this  union  unless  you  give  us  the 
railway.'  It  was  utterly  impossible  we  could  have  either  a  politi- 
cal or  commercial  union  without  it." 

In  replying  to  the  toast  of  "  The  Commercial  Prosperity  of 
British  North  America,"  which  had  been  given  by  Mr.  James  Bell 
Forsyth,  one  of  the  most  prominent  and  respected  merchants  of 
Quebec,  accompanied  with  the  fervent  wish  that  "  we  would  have 
not  only  a  railroad,  but  a  uniform  tariff,  and  not  only  a  uniform 
tariff,  but  such  a  union,  whether  federal  or  legislative,  as  would 
give  us  unity  of  sentiment  and  community  of  interest,"  Mr.  Gait, 
then  Finance  Minister  of  Canada,  said  : 

"  With  regard  to  the  question  of  commercial  prosperity  arising 
out  of  this  subject,  he  might  remark,  that  in  commerce  we  should 
never  be  contented  with  the  minor  advantages  if  we  could  get  the 
major.  What  depressed  the  commercial  energies  of  this  country  ] 
Because  we  had  hitherto  been  confined  to  two  markets — English 
and  the  United  States.  Now  a  union  with  the  Lower  Provinces 
would  not  only  give  the  benefit  of  their  local  markets,  but  would 
also  open  up  to  us  the  benefit  of  their  foreign  trade — a  trade 
which,  in  one  or  two  instances,  Canada  had  once  possessed,  but 
lost.  We  had  in  our  own  Province  a  certain  amount  of  the 
maritime  element ;  but  not  so  much  as  we  should  have  after  a 
union  with  the  sister  Provinces.  In  these  circumstances  it  was 
gratifying  that  those  points  in  which  they  might  be  deficient 
would  be  amply  supplied  by  the  other  Provinces.  They  were 
trying  to  encourage  manufacturing  in  Canada.  A  supply  of  coal 
was  a  most  important  element  of  success  in  this  respect,  and  Nova 
Scotia  possessed  that  element.  The  great  resources  of  the  Mari- 
time Provinces  had  been  amply  shown,  and  it  had  been  abundantly 
proved  that  they  came  not  as  seeking  assistance,  but  in  a  broad 
and  national  spirit.  He  was  glad  their  speeches  would  go  forth 


86  CONFEDERATION. 

to  the  public,  and  that  it  would  be  seen  that  the  Provinces  came 
together  with  a  liberal  and  patriotic  desire  for  mutual  advance- 
ment, and  to  perpetuate  and  preserve  British  institutions  in  a  truly 
British  spirit." 

Sir  Etienne  Tache,  the  venerable  Chairman  of  the  Convention, 
in  replying  to  "  Her  Majesty's  Ministers,"  remarked  : 

"  The  existing  administration  in  Canada  had  been  formed  for  the 
express  purpose  of  cariying  out  the  important  measure  for  which 
the  delegates  from  the  other  Provinces  were  then  assembled  at 
Quebec — the  Confederation  of  the  British  American  Provinces. 
The  union  of  British  America  had  been  recommended  by  Lord 
Durham,  and  though  not  then  adopted,  yet  that  portion  of  his 
report  which  had  been  adopted,  namely,  the  union  of  Upper  and 
Lower  Canada,  had  doubled  our  population  and  trebled  our 
resources  in  twenty  years." 

With  equal  frankness,  Hon.  Mr.  Carter,  from  Newfoundland; 
and  the  Hon.  and  gallant  Colonel  Gray,  the  Premier  of  Prince 
Edward  Island,  and  Chairman  of  the  Charlottetown  Convention, 
replied  for  their  respective  Provinces. 

But  it  was  not  solely  at  public  dinners  and  on  festive  occasions 
that  the  public  approbation  of  the  proposed  change  in  the  position 
and  constitution  of  the  Provinces  was  manifested.  The  literary 
institutions  were  equally  earnest  in  their  cordial  expressions  of 
concurrence.  Among  others,  the  Laval  University,  renowned  in 
the  old  city  of  Quebec  for  the  number  of  distinguished  scholars 
and  able  men  it  had  already  supplied  to  Canada,  arranged  a  public 
reception  at  the  University,  and  presented  the  Delegates  from  the 
Maritime  Provinces  with  an  address  which  is  well  worthy  of  being 
remembered.  The  venerable  Bishop  of  Tloa,  the  administrator  of 
the  diocese  of  Quebec,  the  Rector,  Deans,  Professors  and  officers 
of  the  institution,  with  the  pupils  from  the  Quebec  Seminary, 
assembled  in  their  hall,  and  gave  to  the  occasion  the  solemnity 
which  their  presence  among  their  fellow  citizens  always  commanded. 
The  Rector  then  read  the  following  address  : 


CONFEDERATION.  87 

HONORABLE  GENTLEMEN, — There  are  in  the  lives  of  nations,  as 
in  those  of  individuals,  moments  of  solemn  import,  on  which  their 
destiny  hangs. 

The  British  Colonies  of  North  America  are  now  in  one  of  those 
critical  periods,  the  influence  of  which  may  even  surpass  our 
prevision. 

History  will  hand  down  to  posterity  the  names  of  those  whom 
the  confidence  of  their  fellow-citizens  has  entrusted  with  this  great 
mission  of  examining  the  basis  of  our  political  constitution,  and 
of  proposing  fundamental  modifications. 

It  is  not  the  part  of  a  literary  and  scientific  institution  to  ex- 
press an  opinion  on  the  all-important  questions  of  the  day ;  yet  it 
cannot  remain  indifferent  to  debates  which  concern  our  common 
country,  understanding  as  it  does  how  well  worthy  of  the  best 
wishes  of  all  are  the  eminent  personages  on  whoso  shoulders  weighs 
so  heavy  a  responsibility. 

Moreover,  the  prosperity  of  an  institution  such  as  this  is  too 
closely  connected  with  the  future  of  the  country  not  to  partake  in 
the  anxiety  with  which,  from  the  sources  to  the  mouth  of  the  St. 
Lawrence,  five  millions  of  British  subjects  await  the  result  of  your 
important  labors. 

The  students  of  the  Quebec  Seminary  and  those  of  Laval  Uni-  ^s 
versity,  whom  you  see  here  united,  also  share  in  our  emotion  ;  in     / 
after  years  some  of  them  may,  in  their  turn,  be  called  on  to  guide    < 
the  ship  of  the  state,  and  to  continue  the  construction,  the  foun-    \ 
dations  of  which  it  is  your  mission  to  lay. 

"Whatever  may  be  the  issue  of  your  deliberations,  pemit  us  to 
assure  you,  honorable  gentlemen,  in  the  name  of  all  our  pupils 
and  alumni,  that  your  visit  will  be  long  borne  in  mind  by  them. 
Nor  will  it  be  without  result,  for,  while  engaged  in  the  task  of 
developing  their  intelligence,  they  will  be  animated  by  the  grateful 
remembrance  of  the  honor  conferred  on  their  alma  mater  by  the 
presence  of  the  most  eminent  and  most  influential  men  of  this 
immense  territory. 

Hon.  Dr.  Tapper,  on  behalf  of  himself  and  associate  delegates, 
read  the  following  reply  : 


88  CONFEDERATION. 

To  the  Very  Rev.  E.  A.  Taschereau,  D.C.L.,  Rector  of  the  University 

of  Laval. 

VERY  REVEREND  SIR, — We  beg  to  express  our  grateful  estimate 
of  the  very  flattering  terms  in  which  we  have  been  addressed  by 
you  on  behalf  of  the  Faculties  and  Alumni  of  this  distinguished 
University,  and  of  the  Professors  and  Students  of  the  Quebec 
Seminary. 

Engaged  as  we  are  in  the  important  duty  of  endeavouring,  in 
conjunction  with  the  Government  of  Canada,  so  to  improve  the 
political  institutions  of  the  British  American  Provinces  as  to  pro- 
mote the  common  interests  of  all,  we  are  much  gratified  to  learn 
that  our  high  mission  is  duly  appreciated  at  a  great  seat  of  learning 
from  which  the  public  sentiment  of  the  country  must  be  largely 
influenced. 

The  Students  of  the  Quebec  Seminary,  as  also  the  Faculties  and 
Alumni  of  Laval  University,  may  rest  assured  that  our  best  efforts 
will  be  exerted  to  find  a  wise  solution  of  the  great  question  which 
has  been  submitted  to  our  deliberations ;  but  in  any  event,  we  will 
not  soon  forget  the  distinguished  mark  of  respect  which  you  have 
been  pleased  to  offer  us  on  the  present  occasion. 

(Signed) 

CHARLES  TUPPER,  W.  A.  HENRY,  J.  McCuLLY,  R.  B.  DICKEY, 
A.  G.  ARCHIBALD,  Nova  Scotia. 

S.  L.  TILLEY,  W.  H.  STEEVES,  J.  M.  JOHNSTON,  E.  B. 
CHANDLER,  J.  fl.  GRAY,  CHAS.  FISHER,  New  Brunswick. 

F.  B.  T.  CARTER,  J.  AMBROSE  SHEA,  Newfoundland. 

J.  H.  GRAY,  E.  PALMER,  W.  H.  POPE,  A.  A.  MCDONALD; 
GEORGE  COLES,  T.  HEATH  HAVILAND,  EDWARD  WHELAN, 
Prince  Edward  Island. 

Thus,  in  every  way  in  which  public  opinion  could  be  judged 
of  in  Quebec,  the  movement  in  favour  of  Union  was  cordially 
approved  of. 

But  the  enthusiasm  was  not  less  warm  as  the  Convention  moved 
its  deliberations  westward.  On  the  28th  October  the  sittings  were 


CONFEDERATION.  89 

adjourned  to  Montreal.  The  press  was  to  a  great  degree  united  in 
its  approbation  of  the  contemplated  measure.  The  citizens  of 
Montreal  were  not  less  generous  in  their  public  demonstrations 
and  hospitalities,  than  had  been  the  citizens  of  Quebec.  Public 
receptions  and  municipal  courtesies  were  extended  on  every  side. 
A  magnificent  banquet  was  given  at  'the  St.  Lawrence  Hall.  The 
Ministers  of  State,  the  Commander  of  the  Forces  (Sir  Fenwick 
Williams),  the  Governor  of  Nova  Scotia  (Sir  R  G.  McDonnell), 
the  Mayor,  prominent  merchants  and  leading  citizens  of  all  shades 
of  politics  attended. 

When  in  the  Maritime  Provinces,  the  members  of  the  Canadian 
Government,  at  the  request  of  the  delegates  of  those  Provinces, 
had  availed  themselves  of  similar  occasions  to  explain  to  the  people 
of  those  Provinces  the  reasons  and  advantages  which  appeared  to 
them  to  render  the  Union  desirable  for  the  Maritime  Provinces. 
On  thev  occasion  of  the  public  demonstrations  in  Canada,  they,  in 
return,  called  upon  the  delegates  from  the  Maritime  Provinces  to 
point  out  to  their  people  the  reasons  which  would  render  the 
Union  desirable  for  Canada;  and  thus,  as  it  were,  we  have  an 
outline  of  that  education  of  the  public  mind  on  this  subject  which, 
commenced  with  a  definite  aim  at  the  Prince  Edward  Island 
Convention,  was  followed  up  until  it  terminated  in  the  successful 
accomplishment  of  Confederation  a  few  years  after. 

But  there  is  yet  another  reason  why  the  observations  made  on 
these  occasions  should  jbe  recorded.  Public  men  ought  to  be  as 
much  bound  by  their  public  declarations,  openly  made,  on  the 
public  affairs  of  their  country,  as  private  individuals  are  by  theirs 
in  the  affairs  of  private  life.  All  confidence  in  negotiations,  all 
combinations  of  states  or  communities  for  their  common  good, 
would  be  utterly  worthless,  if  those  who  are  vested  with  power  to 
act,  and  do  act,  can  repudiate  compacts  solemnly  made  and  publicly 
announced,  because  some  unexpected  circumstance  may  make  what 
they  have  done  temporarily  detrimental  to  their  personal  advantage. 
Public  morality  and  public  faith  ought  to  be  exacted  even  more 
scrupulously  than  private  morality  or  private  faith.  A  violation 
of  the  latter  may  be  injurious  to  the  individual,  but  a  violation  of 
the  former  reflects  dishonor  upon  the  country,  and  lowers  the 
7 


90  CONFEDERATION. 

standard  of  those  who  have  been  chosen  by  the  people  to  fill  places 
of  trust  and  honor,  in  reliance  on  their  integrity. 

On  returning  to  their  respective  Provinces,  and  finding  that  the 
measure  was  not  there  as  popular  as  they  expected,  some  of  the 
delegates  immediately  repudiated  their  acts  and  words  at  the  Con- 
vention, and  joined  in  resisting  the  Union,  to  the  consideration  of 
which,  as  members  of  the  Government  of  their  Province,  they  had 
acceded,  and  as  members  of  the  Quebec  Convention  had  agreed  to. 
Thus  the  original  plan  of  Confederation  to  this  day  remains 
incomplete.  The  Island  of  Prince  Edward,  which,  from  its  pecu- 
liar position  with  reference  to  the  Fisheries  would  have  been,  and 
will  yet  be,  an  important  acquisition  to  the  Confederation,  remains 
isolated ;  and  Newfoundland,  notwithstanding  the  earnest  efforts 
of  both  Mr.  Carter  and  Mr.  Shea,  who  most  ably  represented  that 
Island  at  the  Convention,  has  not  yet,  by  the  action  of  its  people 
or  Legislature,  expressed  its  assent. 

On  the  occasion  of  the  banquet  at  the  St.  Lawrence  Hall,  in 
reply  to  the  toast  of  his  health,  Sir  R.  G.  McDonnell,  Governor  of 
Nova  Scotia,  after  some  preliminary  observations,  said  : 

"  The  moment  was  a  very  critical  one  in  the  history  of  the  Pro- 
vinces ;  and  suggestions,  however  patriotically  made,  ought  not  to 
be  all  at  once  accepted  without  due  consideration.  The  whole 
future  history,  both  of  Canada  and  the  Maritime  Provinces,  would 
no  doubt  be  materially  affected,  for  the  better  or  for  the  worse,  by 
the  decision  which  the  community  at  large  and  the  different  Legis- 
latures might  make  on  these  proposals.  He  trusted  it  would  not 
be  thought  necessary  to  build  up  such  a  Union  on  a  mass  of 
guarantees  and  mutual  suspicions.  If  you  are  to  become  a  nation," 
he  said,  "  you  must  lay  its  foundations  in  mutual  confidence.  On 
the  other  hand,  if  you  once  begin  with  the  system  of  guarantees 
against  one  another,  where  is  it  to  end  1  The  end  in  view,  with 
mutual  confidence  one  towards  another,  might  just  as  easily  be 
attained  by  simple  as  by  complicated  means." 

To  the  toast  of  "  The  Delegates  from  the  Maritime  Provinces," 
the  Hon.  Adams  G.  Archibald,  M.P.,  from  Colchester,  replied  on 
behalf  of  Nova  Scotia.  He  said  : 


CONFEDERATION.  91 

"  From  the  little  acquaintance  he  had  with  Canadian  gentlemen, 
he  found  that  there  existed  a  very  limited  idea  of  the  Lower  Pro- 
vinces, of  their  resources,  and  of  the  character  and  habits  of  the 
people.  He  was  not  surprised  at  this.  The  business  relations  of 
Canada  connected  it  with  the  United  States  and  the  old  world, 
and  its  communications  carried  it  beyond  the  Lower  Provinces. 
The  people  of  Canada  saw  nothing  of  the  Lower  Provinces,  and 
had  little  knowledge  of  their  resources  or  position ;  little  know- 
ledge, in  fact,  of  that  which  the  Lower  Provinces  desired  Canada 
should  know.  The  Delegates  came  here  with  a  view  to  disseminate 
such  information  and  state  such  facts  as  would  shew  that  Lower 
Provinces  would  cheerfully  assist  in  the  construction  of  a  nation. 
If  the  Lower  Provinces  could  not  equal  Canada  in  grandeur  and 
magnificence,  they  far  exceeded  her  in  the  number  and  variety  of 
their  resources.  He  would  not  assume  to  speak  of  the  resources 
of  all  the  Lower  Provinces,  but  take  as  an  instance  his  own  Pro- 
vince of  Nova  Scotia,  which  was  hardly  known.  The  people  of 
Canada  imagine  that  they  possess  the  finest  agricultural  soil  on 
the  continent,  but  he  could  take  any  Canadian  who  wished  it  to 
Nova  Scotia,  to  some  of  the  fertile  valleys  of  the  west,  and  point 
out  land  equal  to  the  best  in  the  western  peninsula.  But  though 
the  agricultural  interest  in  Nova  Scotia  was  an  important  one,  it 
did  not  predominate.  A  large  portion  of  the  people  were  engaged 
in  the  fisheries,  and  drew  from  their  inexhaustible  stores  immense 
quantities  of  that  which  added  to  the  richness  and  value  of  the 
country.  And  this  pursuit  trained  up  a  large  body  of  hardy  men, 
who,  if  we  become  one  nation,  would  be  ready  in  the  hour  of  dan- 
ger to  bear  the  flag  of  England.  But  Nova  Scotia  was  exten- 
sively engaged  in  manufactures  and  in  the  export  of  lumber.  In 
that  interest  which  was  mixed  up  with  the  lumber  interest,  name- 
ly, shipping,  he  believed  that,  man  for  man,  the  people  of  Nova 
Scotia  had  a  larger  tonnage  than  any  country  in  the  world.  It 
was  a  fact,  that  for  every  man,  woman  and  child  in  Nova  Scotia 
there  was  about  a  ton  of  shipping.  On  the  entire  coast  of  Nova 
Scotia  there  were  inexhaustible  mines  of  that  which  influenced  the 
industry  of  the  world — coal.  No  change  of  circumstances  or  poli- 
tical relations  could  ever  prevent  the  people  of  Nova  Scotia  from 


92  CONFEDERATION. 

having  that  material  which  all  the  Atlantic  States  of  the  neigh- 
bouring country  must  have,  and  .which  they  could  get  from  no  other 
place.  Since  1858,  when  they  were  opened  to  free  mining,  twenty- 
five  large  coal  mines  had  been  opened,  and  it  could  be  easily  seen 
that  with  such  resources  the  future  of  that  country  did  not  depend 
on  its  relations  to  any  other  country.  As  the  Delegates  from 
Canada  travelled  over  the  country  what  did  they  find  ?  That 
there  were  in  one  harbour  no  fewer  than  80  square  rigged  vessels, 
representing  a  capacity  of  16,000  tons,  employed  to  convey  coals 
to  the  Americans  on  the  Atlantic  border.  This  was  a  scene  re- 
peated in  many  harbours ;  nevertheless,  with  all  this  supplying 
power,  the  Province  was  unable  to  supply  the  demand  for  coal. 
The  time  had  arrived  when  we  were  about  to  assume  the  position 
of  a  great  nation,  and  such  being  the  case,  we  should  not  shrink 
from  its  responsibilities.  The  people  of  the  Lower  Provinces  en- 
tertain a  magnificent  idea  of  the  grandeur  which  awaits  us  all. 
A  united  nation,  we  shall  become  a  great  country  ;  and  the  time 
is  not  far  distant  when  a  colossal  power,  growing  up  on  the  conti- 
nent, shall  stand  with  one  foot  on  the  Pacific  and  the  other  on  the 
Atlantic,  and  shall  present  to  the  world,  even  on  this  side  of  the 
Atlantic,  the  proof  that  monarchial  institutions  are  not  inconsis- 
tent with  civil  and  religious  liberty,  and  the  fullest  measure  of 
material  advancement." 

Hon.  Lieut.-Col.  Gray,  M.P.  for  St.  John,  New  Brunswick, 
responded  on  behalf  of  that  Province.  He  observed  : 

"  That  while  it  was  unquestionably  the  duty  of  statesmen  to 
consider  the  bearing  any  question  of  importance  might  have  upon 
the  material  interests  of  the  people,  it  was  equally  their  duty  to 
remember  there  were  occasions  when  kindred  emotions  and  senti- 
ments rose  superior  to  the  cold  calculations  of  interest,  and  pointed 
the  way  to  honor  and  to  patriotism.  That  was  such  an  occasion. 
The  presence  of  that  vast  assemblage  was  the  public  recognition  of 
the  fact  that  a  question  was  then  before  the  people  of  the  greatest 
importance,  momentous  in  its  character,  and  pregnant  with  in- 
fluence upon  the  future  destinies  of  the  country.  The  public  men 
of  the  Maritime  Provinces  had  for  years  looked  to  a  union  with 


CONFEDERATION.  93 

Canada.  Year  after  year  they  had  turned  their  attention  to  the 
construction  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  as  tending  towards  that 
object.  Their  legislatures  had  passed  bills,  had  granted  subsidies  ; 
arrangements  had  been  made  with  Canada :  yet  year  after  year, 
from  causes  which  it  would  be  difficult  to  explain,  the  object  had 
eluded  their  grasp,  and  it  was  only  when  it  appeared  beyond  at- 
tainment that  the  Parliaments  of  the  Maritime  Provinces  had 
directed  certain  of  their  leading  men  to  assemble  at  Charlotte- 
town  in  Prince  Edward  Island,  to  consider  how  best  a  union 
could  be  effected  among  themselves,  since  one  with  Canada  seemed 
unattainable.  When  assembled  for  that  purpose  the  Ministry 
from  Canada  came  down  and  proposed  that,  instead  of  remaining 
divided,  they  should  come  together,  and  lay  the  foundations  of  an 
empire  to  perpetuate  011  this  continent  the  principles  of  British 
constitutional  liberty.  The  proposition  was  received  with  un- 
qualified satisfaction.  The  Maritime  Provinces  were  worthy  of 
their  regard.  The  amount  of  capital,  the  resources  they  would 
bring  into  the  Union,  their  exhaustless  mines,  their  broad  coal 
fields,  their  deep  sea  fisheries,  their  hardy  and  enterprising  popu- 
lation, would  form  no  inconsiderable  elements  in  the  foundation 
of  a  great  nation.  The  revenue  of  the  four  Maritime  Provinces 
for  the  year  1863  by  the  official  returns  amounted  to  $2,340,000, 
but  so  far  as  had  yet  been  ascertained  for  the  year  1864,  there  had 
been  an  increase  of  20  per  cent.,  bringing  the  amount  to  nearly 
$3,000,000,  (three  millions),  an  increase  which,  judging  from  the 
past  financial  history  of  those  Provinces,  might  fairly  be  counted 
upon  as  still  progressive.  The  imports  and  exports  of  the  four 
Provinces  from  the  same  returns  for  the  year  1863,  amounted  to 
$44,200,000.  He  believed  those  of  Canada  had  amounted  to 
between  $80,000,000  and  $90,000,000.  Thus  it  would  be  seen 
the  trade  of  the  Maritime  Provinces  was  nearly  the  half  of  that 
of  Canada.  The  population  of  the  Maritime  Provinces,  as  shewn 
by  the  census  of  1857  and  1861,  (they  were  not  taken  in  each  of 
the  Provinces  in  the  same  year),  was  804,000  ;  but  allowing  for 
the  natural  increase  since  those  periods,  might  now  be  safely  put 
down  at  900,000.  With  reference  to  the  shipping  of  the  Mari- 
time Provinces,  he  said  "  the  registered  tonnage  by  the  returns 


94  CONFEDERATION. 

of  1863  amounted  to  645,530  tons,  which  at  $40  per  ton,  a  not 
unreasonable  valuation,  represented  an  available  transferable  pro- 
perty of  $27,821,200,  in  one  article  alone ;  and  as  an  evidence  of 
the  soundness  of  the  financial  position  of  those  four  Province, 
during  the  then  year,  1864,  after  paying  all  debts  and  liabilities, 
they  would  have  a  clear  surplus  of  between  $450,000  and  $500,000, 
to  be  applied  to  the  future  exigencies  of  the  several  Provinces  as 
their  respective  legislatures  might  determine,  each  disposing,  of 
course,  of  its  own  surplus.  While,  however,  the  revenue  and 
position  of  Canada  could  not  but  be  appreciated,  he  must  observe 
that  for  six  months  in  the  year  they  were  without  the  power  of 
access  to  one  mile  of  sea  coast,  except  through  the  territory  of 
their  neighbours,  They  held  their  trade  at  the  beck  of  a  nation 
that  might  be  their  foe — a  position,  apart  from  all  other  consider- 
ations, inconsistent  with  the  dignity  of  any  country  which  desired 
to  take  its  proper  position  in  the  world.  The  Maritime  Provinces 
proposed  to  add  their  marine  to  that  of  Canada.  British  North 
America  would  then  become  the  fourth  maritime  power  in  the 
world,  England,  France  and  the  United  States  alone  having  a 
marine  superior.  Canada  alone  could  not  claim  that  position,  nor 
could  the  Maritime  Provinces.  Isolated,  their  position  was  insig- 
nificant ;  but  united,  there  was  no  country — save  England  from 
whom  they  claimed  their  birth,  save  the  United  States  whose 
power  was  derived  from  the  same  parent  source,  save  France  from 
whom  many  of  those  present  had  sprung — could  take  rank  before 
them.  In  Canada  were  combined  the  talents  and  characteristics 
of  the  most  industrious  and  energetic,  as  well  as  of  the  most  cul- 
tivated and  spirituel  races  in  the  world.  Written  on  the  pages  of 
the  history  of  this  country  were  records  of  heroic  deeds.  From 
the  Plains  of  Abraham  the  ascending  spirits  of  Montcalm  and 
Wolfe,  united  in  their  death,  left  them  the  heritage  of  a  common 
country  and  a  glorious  name.  Many  men  believed  that  a  commer- 
cial union,  a  Zolverein,  might  accomplish  the  object  sought  to  be 
obtained  ;  but  in  the  opinion  of  practical  men  of  integrity  and 
experience,  this  could  not  be  done.  For  the  past  ten  or  fifteen 
years  the  Provinces  had  been  separately  carrying  on  great  public 
works,  for  which  the  public  credit  had  been  pledged,  and  it  was 


CONFEDERARION.  95 

the  duty  of  each  Province,  as  it  was  indeed  a  point  of  honor,  to 
maintain  its  credit  intact.  While  this  was  the  case,  it  might  be- 
come the  interest  of  one  Province  to  impose  duties  on  articles  that 
clashed  with  the  interests  of  the  other  Provinces.  Trade  would 
be  governed  by  no  great  or  permanent  principles.  The  tariff 
would  fluctuate  with  local  expediency,  and  be  varying  and  uncer- 
tain. Therefore,  in  the  absence  of  any  general  arrangement,  by 
which  the  individual  liability  of  each  Province  could  be  removed, 
and  the  general  credit  afterwards  effectually  maintained,  it  was 
plain  that  a  commercial  union  of  the  kind  referred  to  was  impos- 
sible. It  would  fade  away  before  the  necessities  of  the  occasion. 
Turning  to  the  subject  of  national  defence,  he  asked  them  to 
bear  in  mind  how  little  each  man  contributed  towards  the  defence 
of  his  country.  He  asked  them  to  turn  to  Europe,  to  Russia,  to 
France,  to  England,  to  the  United  States,  and  say  upon  what  spot 
they  could  place  a  finger  where  the  people  contributed  so  little 
towards  the  defence  of  their  homes  as  did  the  people  of  British 
North  America.  They  would  be  unworthy  of  their  heritage  and 
race  if  they  did  not  take  cognizance  of  the  fact,  and  when  the 
mother  country  declared  that  the  time  had  come  for  them  to  act 
for  themselves,  they  did  not  show  that  they  were  prepared  to  do 
so.  Without  violating  any  rule  of  secrecy,  he  might  state  that 
the  Maritime  Provinces  had  gone  hand  in  hand  with  the  repre- 
sentatives of  Canada,  and  were  prepared  to  place  all  their  re- 
sources, all  their  wealth,  all  their  power,  in  one  general  fund  for 
the  maintenance  of  the  liberty  and  honor  of  all.  If  they  approved 
of  this  union  of  their  common  interests,  their  first  step  would  be 
to  sanction,  by  the  expression  of  their  strong  and  earnest  opinion, 
the  construction  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  that  work  which 
was  alone  required  to  bring  them  together,  which  would  give  them 
in  the  depth  of  their  long  winters  free  access  to  the  sea,  and  would 
make  the  people  of  the  Maritime  Provinces  and  of  Canada,  now 
strangers  to  each  other,  brothers  in  identity  of  interests  as  well  as 
of  race.  The  question  of  the  union  of  the  Provinces  was  one  of  deep 
importance.  And,"  continued  the  honorable  gentleman,  "  I  now 
call  upon  you,  Canadians,  by  your  own  name,  here  in  the  presence 
of  your  own  hills,  which  rose  to  their  majestic  height  ere  yet  your 


96  CONFEDERATION. 

race  began, — here  in  the  presence  of  your  own  St.  Lawrence,  hal- 
lowed by  the  memory  of  Cartier,  and  spanned  by  one  of  the 
noblest  triumphs  of  modern  skill, — by  the  memory  of  the  past,  by 
the  spirit  of  the  present,  by  the  hopes  of  the  future, — I  call  upon 
you  to  rally  round  a  proposition  which  will  tend  to  perpetuate  the 
glory  of  your  name,  and  promote  the  prosperity  and  happiness  of 
your  people." 

Hon.  John  Ambrose  Shea,  of  Newfoundland,  on  rising  to  return 
thanks  on  behalf  of  the  colony  which  he  represented,  was  greeted 
with  hearty  cheers.  He  said  : 

"  In  considering  a  union  of  the  Provinces,  it  became  necessary 
to  take  into  account  the  position  of  the  proposed  Confederation 
with  regard  to  safety  and  defence.  In  this  view,  the  position  of 
the  Island  of  Newfoundland  became  one  of  marked  significance. 
Were  this  colony  in  the  hands  of  a  hostile  power  in  war  time,  the 
trade  of  Canada  would  be  hermetically  sealed,  as  if  perpetual 
winter  prevailed.  Newfoundland  had  a  coast  of  twelve  hundred 
miles,  with  some  of  the  finest  harbours  in  the  world,  in  which 
ships  might  repose  in  security.  The  main  stay  of  Newfoundland, 
the  main  element  of  its  wealth  was,  however,  its  fisheries,  in  which 
were  employed  30,000  men,  able,  hardy,  industrious,  fit  sailors  for 
anything  in  which  daring  and  energy  were  required.  In  the  article 
of  fish  it  had  commercial  relations  with  almost  every  maritime 
nation  in  Europe,  with  Brazil  and  the  United  States.  With  the 
Colonies  of  British  North  America,  however,  its  relations  were 
very  limited.  The  imports  of  Newfoundland  were  from  five  to 
six  millions  annually ;  the  exports  were  six  or  seven  millions  per 
annum.  The  exports  almost  invariably  exceeded  the  imports. 
Three  hundred  and  fifty  vessels  were  employed  in  seal  fishing, 
manned  by  about  fourteen  thousand  men,  the  very  best  and  most 
active  portion  of  the  community.  The  revenue  of  Newfoundland 
was  higher  than  that  of  any  of  the  British  North  American 
Provinces,  man  for  man  of  the  population,  because  it  imported 
almost  everything  it  required.  With  a  population  of  130,000, 
it  had  a  revenue  of  $500,000  to  $550,000.  The  debt,  he  was 


CONFEDERATION.  97 

happy  to  say,  was  not  very  large,  compared  with  the  other  colo- 
nies, being  about  $900,000.  Represented  by  public  buildings  of 
various  descriptions,  the  Province  had  ample  tangible  value  for  all 
the  money  it  had  expended ;  while  such  was  the  credit  in  which 
its  securities  were  held,  that  the  Government  had  no  difficulty, 
even  at  the  present  moment,  when  the  rate  of  interest  in  England 
was  unusually  high,  in  raising  money  at  4^  per  cent.  There  were 
about  twelve  hundred  vessels  entering  and  clearing  annually,  going 
to  all  countries.  With  regard  to  the  financial  position  of  the  Island, 
he  might  say  that  perhaps  it  was  sounder  than  that  of  any  of  the 
Colonies  or  States  of  America,  in  spite  of  the  unusual'  vicissitudes 
of  trade.  He  had  said  that  the  imports  amounted  to  between  five 
and  six  millions.  Now,  of  this  they  received  from  $1,500,000  to 
$1,750,000  in  value  from  the  United  States,  chiefly  in  flour,  butter, 
and  other  articles  of  that  description.  A  very  small  proportion 
of  imports  came  from  Canada.  Why  ?  Was  it  because  the  United 
States  offered  superior  commercial  advantages  1  This  was  not  the 
case;  they  could  generally  purchase  on  better  terms  in  Canada 
than  in  the  United  States.  It  would  no  doubt  bo  said  that  political 
arrangements  could  have  no  effect,  could  exercise  no  control  over 
matters  of  this  kind.  That  doctrine,  however,  had  its  limits, 
which  were  in  some  cases  very  remarkable.  But  let  them  look  at 
the  Intercolonial  Railroad  as  an  illustration.  That  road  would  be 
productive  of  the  most  important  commercial  advantages  to  the 
people  of  these  Provinces ;  and  yet,  every  one  knew,  that  might 
have  remained  for  years  without  any  progress  towards  completion, 
had  it  not  now  become  a  political  necessity.  How  did  Newfound- 
land stand  towards  Canada  at  the  present  moment?  Its  people 
had  to  go  to  the  United  States  to  do  business,  for  they  had  to  pass 
by  way  of  Halifax  and  Boston  to  reach  Montreal.  It  took  nearly 
a  month  to  carry  letters  between  Canada  and  Newfoundland  and 
back,  and  the  rate  of  postage  was  double  what  it  was  between  the 
Colonies  and  Great  Britain.  If  arrangements  had  been  made 
designed  for  the  purpose  of  preventing  commercial  intercourse, 
they  could  not  have  been  made  more  effective  than  these.  Give 
Newfoundland  the  means  of  entering  into  trade  relations,  and 
trade  would  soon  spring  up.  A  close  connection  with  the  mother 


98  CONFEDERATION. 

country  was  what  lie  believed  all  the  Colonies  desired ;  and  speak- 
ing for  his  own  Province  of  Newfoundland,  he  would  say  he  hoped 
the  day  was  far  distant  when  she  would  have  forced  upon  her  any 
other  allegiance  than  that  she  now  rejoiced  to  acknowledge." 

Hon.   Edward   Whelan,    M.P.,  of  Prince   Edward  Island,   in 
speaking  on  behalf  of  that  Island,  said : 

"  The  Confederation,  if  perfected,  would  give  all  the  Colonies  a 
national  and  indivisible  character  \  and  commercial  and  pecuniary 
motives,  if  no  other  of  a  sterner  nature  prevailed,  should  certainly 
teach  them  to  unite.  There  should  be  no  hostile  or  restrictive 
tariffs  between  the  several  Provinces,  no  dissimilar  postal  regula- 
tions, no  dissimilarity  in  currency  and  exchange.  Our  commerce, 
so  much  of  which  now  flows  into  other  channels,  where  we  get 
little  thanks  for  it,  would  diffuse  its  enriching  streams  amongst 
ourselves,  and  nothing  could  possibly  prevent  us  from  becoming  a 
great  and  powerful  confederacy.  It  would  be  the  duty  of  public 
men  in  each  and  every  Province,  whose  representatives  were  then 
in  Canada,  to  educate  the  public  mind  up  to  the  adoption  of  their 
views.  The  task  might  be  a  tedious,  difficult  and  protracted  one ; 
but  no  great  measure  was  ever  yet  accomplished,  or  worth  much, 
unless  surrounded  with  difficulties.  Deferring  reverently  to  the 
public  opinion  of  his  own  Province,  he  would  cheerfully  go  amongst 
its  people,  and,  explaining  it  as  well  as  he  could,  would  ask  them 
to  support  a  measure  which  he  believed  would  enhance  their  pros- 
perity. Few  and  comparatively  poor  as  the  population  of  the 
Island  of  Prince  Edward  may  be  now,  its  fertile  fields  and  valleys 
are  capable  of  supporting  a  population  at  least  three  times  greater 
than  it  is  at  present.  It  was  once  designated  the  garden  of  the 
St.  Lawrence,  and  it  was  a  valuable  fishing  station  for  Canada 
during  the  occupation  of  the  French  under  Montcalm.  It  still 
possesses  all  the  qualities  of  a  garden,  and  its  rivers  and  bays  still 
abound  with  fish.  He  desired  that  those  great  resources  should 
become  as  well  known  now  and  in  the  future  as  they  were  in 
by-gone  days ;  and  regarding  the  advantages  which  modern 
improvements  and  institutions  afforded  as  auxiliaries  to  the 


CONFEDERATION.  99 

natural  resources  of  his  Colony,  he  was  satisfied  that  she  could  not 
fail  to  become  very  prosperous  and  happy  under  the  proposed 
Confederation." 

Hon.  T.  Heath  Haviland,  a  delegate  from  Prince  Edward  Island 
also,  followed  in  a  short  and  effective  speech,  expressing  his  con- 
viction of  the  benefits  that  would  accrue  to  his  own  Island  as  well 
as  to  the  other  Provinces  from  the  contemplated  union. 

Hon.  George  E.  Cartiei\  M.P.,  Attorney-General  East,  having 
been  called  upon,  rose  amidst  great  cheering,  and  said  : 

"The  question  which,  we  may  say,  brings  us  together  this 
evening,  is  of  great  moment.  Every  one  knows  that  throughout 
the  British  North  American  Provinces  at  this  time,  people  are 
discussing  the  question  whether  it  is  possible  for  those  Provinces 
to  form  a  strong  government  under  a  system  of  administration 
which  will  allow  all  the  general  interests  of  the  Provinces  con 
cerned  to  be  dealt  with  by  a  general  government,  and  will  leave 
all  purely  local  matters  to  a  local  government.  This  is  the  question 
which  is  agitating  all  the  American  Provinces.  I  know  that  it  may 
be  expected  from  me,  perhaps  on  account  of  what  has  fallen  from 
some  of  the  speakers,  to  disclose  the  proposals  of  the  Conference 
at  this  entertainment ;  but  that  cannot  be  the  case.  The  proceed- 
ings of  those  who  have  taken  part  in  these  deliberations  are  confi- 
dential ;  they  must  first  be  made  known  to  our  Governments,  and 
they  have  to  be  made  known  to  the  Imperial  Government.  Every 
one  must  understand  the  delicacy  of  the  trust  reposed  in  us. 
With  regard  to  this  question  of  Confederation,  and  with  regard  to 
my  political  alliance  with  Mr.  Brown,  I  must  say  that  he  has  kept 
faithfully  to  his  work.  I  must  repeat  to  you  what  I  stated  while 
in  the  Lower  Provinces,  that  while  we  possessed  the  personal  and 
territorial  elements  which  go  to  constitute  a  nation,  we  were  want- 
ing in  the  maritime  element.  During  six  months  of  the  year  we 
had  to  knock  at  the  door  of  our  neighbour  in  order  to  carry  on 
our  trade.  This  cannot  be  tolerated.  This  Confederation  must  be 
be  carried  out.  I  know  that  every  citizen  of  Montreal  will  under- 
stand that  at  this  critical  time  we  should  look  to  Nova  Scotia,  to 


100         )  CONFEDERATION. 


few  Brunswick  and  Prince  Edward  Island  for  the  elements  want- 
ing in  Canada  to  make  a  great  nation.  I  do  not  mean  a  nation 
distinct  from  the  mother  country.  I  wish  that  all  the  powers 
granted  by  the  mother  country  to  the  Colonies  should  be  combined, 
in  order  to  make,  as  far  as  we  can,  one  great  nation.  I  am  confi- 
dent— and  I  have  stated  it  on  many  occasions — that  the  union  of 
Upper  and  Lower  Canada  has  achieved  wonders  for  the  two  Pro- 
vinces. The  prosperity  to  which  we  have  risen  under  the  union 
of  the  Provinces,  encourages  a  still  larger  union.  In  treating  of 
the  question  of  race,  with  regard  to  this  great  Confederation, 
looking  to  England  you  will  find  three  distinct  nationalities. 
Each  of  these  has  contributed  to  the  glory  of  England.  Who 
would  like  to  take  from  England  the  glory  conferred  on  her  by 
any  one  of  the  three  nationalities — by  the  son  of  Erin  or  the  Scot  ? 
I  think  the  glory  of  England  might  not  have  been  equal  to  what 
it  is,  if  the  three  nationalities  had  not  been  united.  Was  it  sur- 
prising that  some  should  try  to  find  difficulties  in  the  way  of  the 
formation  of  a  union,  because  there  happened  to  be  different  races 
and  religions  1  I  have  already  spoken  of  the  elements  which  are 
necessary  to  constitute  a  nation.  Every  one  knows  that  England 
is  great ;  she  has  achieved  a  great  deal  more  than  any  nation  whose 
history  we  know.  The  Romans  could  not  keep  their  colonies, 
because  they  were  wanting  in  'one  of  the  elements  which  England 
possesses — the  commercial  element.  Without  detracting  from  the 
power  of  England,  I  think,  when  we  come  to  analyse  it,  we  will 
find  that  it  will  not  be  so  great  without  taking  into  account  her 
commercial  power.  As  soon  as  a  colony  is  conquered  by  the 
bravery  of  her  soldiers  and  seamen,  the  work  is  taken  up  by  her 
merchants,  who  cause  the  colony  to  prosper  to  sucn  an  extent  that 
it  is  the  interest  of  England  to  bring  her  army  and  fleet  to  protect 
it.  The  prosperity  of  the  two  sections  of  Canada  illustrates  this 
fact.  With  our  prosperity  we  are  enriching  the  American  States, 
whereas  we  ought  to  be  enriching  our  own  States ;  we  ought  to  be 
enriching  such  harbours  as  St.  John  and  Halifax.  And  then,  with 
regard  to  Newfoundland,  as  had  been  stated  by  Hon.  Mr.  Shea, 
she  stands  at  the  bottom  of  the  St.  Lawrence,  and  is  the  key  to 
foreign  trade.  When  we  are  politically  connected  with  Newfound- 


CONFEDERATIOX.  101 

land,  this  will  afford  an  opening  that  we  cannot  yet  appreciate. 
There  will  be  no  direct  taxation,  if  the  Government  be  wise  and 
prudent." 

The  honorable  gentleman  referred  with  great  force  to  the  advan- 
tages to  be  derived  from  union  in  case  of  hostile  attacks  upon  the 
country  from  abroad,  and  concluded  his  observations  amid  great 
applause. 

The  Hon.  Thos.  D'Arcy  McGee,  M.P.,  was  loudly  called  for,  and 
rose  amidst  great  cheering.  His  reception  was  a  perfect  ovation, 
and  proved  how  deeply  seated  was  the  feeling  in  his  favor  among 
the  citizens  of  Montreal.  The  waving  of  handkerchiefs  almost 
constituted  a  canopy  above  the  heads  of  the  guests,  and  it  was  not 
until  after  long  protracted  cheering  he  could  be  heard.  Subsequent 
events  have  cast  a  melancholy  interest  around  his  name,  and  it  is 
gratifying  to  recall  that  proof  of  the  esteem  in  which  a  statesman 
was  held,  whose  power  for  disturbance  at  the  time  was  incalculable, 
but  whose  efforts  were  devoted  to  conciliation,  and  whose  life  was 
ultimately  sacrificed  for  his  country.  He  said  : 

"  It  was  necessary  that  those  engaged  in  the  work  should  have 
with  them,  and  he  trusted  they  would  have  with  them,  the  public 
opinion  and  the  countenance  of  the  people  of  Montreal,  and  of 
the  people  of  Canada."  He  then  proceeded  to  touch  upon  what 
the  Delegates  might  tell  their  constituents  upon  their  return  home. 
"  They  might  say  that  we  desired  the  Confederation  for  the  sake 
of  self-defence,  common  advancement,  coming  into  union  well 
dowered.  They  might  say  that  Canada  desired  this  union, 
though  at  present  the  public  mind  was  not  fully  alive  to  the  ad- 
vantages to  be  derived  from  it ;  that  if  she  goes  into  it  she  goes 
into  it  for  no  small  or  selfish  purposes ;  that  the  people  of  Canada 
are  year  by  year  becoming  more  liberal  and  enlightened  in  their 
views ;  that  we  did  not  speak  of  cutting  each  other's  throats  for 
the  love  of  God  :  they  could  say  that  in  Canada  religious  bigotry 
was  at  a  discount.  He  could  point  them  to  the  place  where  that 
bigot  withered  upon  his  stock ;  that  where  he  was  held  in  honor 
no  man  is  now  so  mean  as  to  do  him  reverence.  That  we  have 


102  CONFEDERATION. 

not  amongst  us  bigotry  of  classes  or  bigotry  of  race  ;  or  the  belief 
that  no  good  could  come  out  of  Nazareth,  or  any  religion  but  their 
own.  That  the  day  of  these  small  things  had  passed  away  in 
Canada  ;  that  we  respected  one  another's  opinions,  and  had  shown 
ourselves  fit  to  be  freemen  by  allowing  every  class,  every  sect  and 
every  creed  to  manage  their  own  affairs,  so  long  as  they  did  not 
trouble  the  peace  and  happiness  of  the  community.  He  thought 
they  might  say  all  this  in  regard  to  Canada." 

Hon.  Mr.  Gait  being  loudly  called  upon  to  speak,  rose  and 
observed : 

"  He  hoped  that  the  discussion  of  this  public  question  would 
induce  gentlemen  to  look  at  it  in  all  its  bearings,  and  that  they 
would  find  that  what  was  good  for  Canada  would  be  good  for  the 
Lower  Provinces,  and  for  all  sections  of  the  British  dominions. 
If  our  institutions  have  borne  any  fruit  at  all,  they  have  borne  the 
fruit  of  harmony.  He  believed  we  were  united  in  one  common 
movement  for  the  benefit  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada.  He  be- 
lieved the  union  would  be  productive  of  good  to  both  Canada  and 
the  Maritime  Provinces.  If  we  want  an  open  port,  we  could  find 
it  in  St.  John  or  Halifax.  He  was  not  disclosing  any  secret  when 
he  said  this,  that  so  far  as  the  protection  of  the  interests  of  the 
people  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada  was  concerned,  there  was  no 
secret  to  be  kept ;  the  arrangements  were  made  in  a  way  to  do 
honor  to  his  friend,  Mr.  Cartier.  It  was  not  a  light  thing  for 
people  to  trust  their  prosperity  and  happiness  in  the  future  to 
others.  But  he  was  sure  that  a  very  prudent  effort  had  been 
made  to  try  and  bring  about  a  state  of  things  that  would  rescue 
them  from  the  troubles  that  threatened." 

Thus  closed  the  demonstrations  in  the  Province  of  Lower  Canada. 


[103] 


CHAPTER    IV. 

Public  sentiment  in  Upper  Canada  (now  Ontario) — Selection  of  Ottawa  as  the 
seat  of  Government — Description — Reasons  for — Propriety  of — Ultimate 
future  and  requisites  for,  as  the  Capital  of  the  Dominion — American  legis- 
lation and  action  on  the  selection  of  Washington — -Banquet  at  Ottawa — 
Observations  of  speakers — Banquet  at  Toronto— Ditto — Explanations  of 
details  by  Hon.  Geo.  Brown — Rude  awakening  of  the  Maritime  Delegates 
on  their  return  to  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick — A.  D.  1864. 

On  the  31st  October  the  members  of  the  Convention,  having 
formally  closed  their  sittings  at  Montreal,  and  concurred  in  the 
report  to  be  made  to  their  respective  governments,  proceeded  by 
invitation  to  visit  the  important  cities  of  the  Province  of  Ontario, 
at  that  time,  though  its  separate  political  organization  had  been 
merged  by  the  act  of  union  of  1841,  still  bearing  its  old  name  of 
Upper  Canada.  Except  from  the  somewhat  general  approval  of 
the  press  of  that  Province — general  because  .the  details  of  the  pro- 
posed Confederation  were  yet  unknown — there  had  been  no  cer- 
tain test  of  the  manner  in  which  the  proposition  would  be  there 
received.  Holding  the  position  of  greatest  power  among  the 
Provinces,  greatest  in  wealth  and  population,  foremost  in  enter- 
prise and  progress,  restless  in  political  development,  and  the  home 
of  that  great  liberal  party  which,  commencing  with  the  demand 
for  responsible  government,  had  concentrated  its  energies  on  the 
absolute  assertion  of  representation  by  population,  to  such  a  de- 
gree that  the  powers  of  the  combined  parties  who  wielded  the 
administration  of  the  government  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada 
had  been  paralysed,  and  the  material  and  political  advance  of  the 
country  stayed,  it  was  a  matter  of  deep  anxiety  to  know  how, 
when  speaking  for  themselves,  in  their  public  demonstrations,  in 
their  masses  when  brought  together,  when  crowds  speak  unfetter- 
ed by  the  restraints  of  party  or  personal  considerations — that 
great  lower  voice  which,  like  the  rumbling  that  precedes  the 
earthquake,  tells  after  all  of  the  great  power  of  the  people,  and  of 
their  determination, — how,  under  such  circumstances,  the  ener- 
getic people  of  that  Province  would  receive  the  proposition. 


1 04  CONFEDERATION. 

It  must  not  be  supposed  for  one  moment  that  the  speakers  at 
the  festivals  hitherto  or  hereafter  referred  to,  were  the  promulga- 
tors  of  new  ideas,  or  the  sole  possessors  of  the  knowledge  then  put 
forth.  The  public  mind  throughout  the  whole  country  was  im- 
pressed with  the  necessity  of  some  change,  and  a  change  in  the 
direction  of  the  character  proposed.  The  speakers  merely  had  the 
effect  of  concentrating  the  public  attention,  of  fusing  the  public 
power  and  the  public  energy  into  molten  action.  We  have  often 
seen  scattered  throughout  a  field  the  materials  of  a  great  confla- 
gration, or  still  more  in  the  workshops  of  science  the  rude  and 
fragmentary  elements  of  great  strength  lying  here  and  there  inert 
and  powerless,  suddenly,  by  the  application  of  the  torch  or  the 
power  of  the  forge,  bursting  into  flame  or  running  into  molten 
masses  resistless  in  their  course.  Such  was  the  state  of  the  public 
mind,  and  such  the  consequences  of  its  power  when  wakened  into 
movement,  and  Ontario  011  this  occasion  shewed  her  strength. 
The  agricultural  districts,  the  great  grain  producing  division  of 
Canada,  was  not  less  loud  or  less  generous  in  its  approval  than  the 
more  commercial  division  of  its  rival,  the  Province  of  Quebec. 
From  Montreal  to  Ottawa,  from  Ottawa  to  Toronto,  from  Toronto 
to  Hamilton,  all  along  the  line  there  seemed  to  be  but  one  ex- 
pression of  opinion,  welcome  to  the  representatives  and  assent  to 
the  proposition.  It  would  be  impossible,  as  it  is  unnecessary,  to 
give  in  detail  all  that  was  done  or  all  that  was  said.  Adhering 
as  much  as  possible  to  the  plan  adopted  with  reference  to  Quebec 
and  Montreal,  it  is  proposed  to  limit  observation  to  a  synopsis  of 
the  remarks  made  at  Ottawa  and  Toronto.  x 

A  magnificent  repast  had  been  prepared  by  temporary  arrange- 
ment in  some  of  the  rooms  of  the  parliamentary  buildings,  then  in 
course  of  construction  at  Ottawa,  by  Messrs.  Jones  and  Haycock, 
the  contractors. 

"  At  Ottawa," — it  is  as  well  to  pause  for  a  moment. 

To  most  of  the  delegates  who  were  there  assembled,  particularly 
those  from  the  Maritime  Provinces,  the  place  was  entirely  unknown, 
or  if  known  beyond  the  mere  discussion  regarding  its  selection,  was 
known  only  as  a  shanty  town,  where  lumberers  resorted  and  faction 
fights  were  wont  sometimes  to  take  place.  Its  name  had  been 
made  familiar  by  the  poet's  verse,  and  "  How,  brothers,  row,  the 


CONFEDERATION.  105 

stream  runs  fast,"  with  its  gentle  melody,  had  given  it  an  ideal 
existence— but  its  political  value  was  a  myth.  What  were  its 
claims  for  the  future  position  it  was  to  hold?  Why  was  old 
Quebec,  with  its  historic  name — why  growing  Montreal— why 
Kingston — why  Toronto — why  were  those  cities  to  be  ignored  ? 

The  selection  of  Ottawa,  nevertheless,  as  the  seat  of  government 
for  the  proposed  Confederation  was  the  exercise  of  a  sound  dis- 
cretion. At  first  extremely  unpopular,  the  place  was  declared  to 
be  in  the  wilderness,  and  fit  only  for  the  habitation  of  the  Indian 
and  the  bear.  The  American's  graphic  instructions  to  find  it  were 
quoted  with  evident  relish  :  "  Start  from  the  north  pole ;  strike  a 
bead  for  Lake  Ontario ;  and  the  first  spot  where  the  glacier  ceases 
and  vegetation  begins — that's  Ottawa."  But  it  had  been  wisely 
chosen.  In  old  Canada,  after  the  union  of  Upper  and  Lower 
Canada  in  1841,  the  seat  of  Government  under  Lord  Sydeiiham 
had  been  at  Kingston  ;  in  1849,  under  Lord  Elgin,  at  Montreal ; 
but  after  the  public  disturbances  and  burning  of  the  parliamentary 
buildings  in  that  year  in  that  city,  it  assumed  a  migratory  charac- 
ter, and  with  the  erratic  course  of  a  comet  revolved  from  Quebec 
to  Toronto,  and  from  Toronto  back  to  Quebec,  every  four  years. 
The  jealousies  of  the  two  Provinces  would  permit  it  to  rest  in 
neither.  In  the  legislature  of  the  union  for  many  years  the  dis- 
advantages of  such  a  course  were  pointed  out,  but  the  claims  of 
rival  cities,  under  the  system  of  popular  representation,  are  not  so 
easily  disposed  of.  At  length  a  compromise  was  effected,  and  the 
selection  was  left  to  Her  Majesty  the  Queen.  The  far-seeing  judg- 
ment of  Sir  Edmund  Head,  the  then  Governor-General,  receives 
credit  for  the  choice. 

Attracted  greatly  by  the  beauty  of  its  surrounding  scenery,  he 
at  the  same  time  saw  its  commanding  position  both  for  a  seat  of 
government  and  of  a  great  manufacturing  town.  Shortly  after 
the  American  war  in  1814,  the  British  Government,  availing 
themselves  of  its  strategic  advantages,  to  avoid  the  rapids  of  the 
St.  Lawrence  and  the  dangers  of  a  hostile  frontier,  had  commenced 
and  constructed  a  canal  which,  breaking  through  the  cliffs  and  fol- 
lowing the  course  of  the  Rideau  River,  afforded  a  safe  communi- 
cation through  the  interior  of  the  country  for  munitions  of  war 
8 


106  CONFEDERATION. 

from  Montreal  to  Kingston.  In  later  years,  as  the  dangers 
of  war  passed  away,  and  the  great  advance  in  military  science 
neutralized  its  supposed  value,  the  government  ceased  to  attach 
to  it  the  importance  it  formerly  possessed,  and  handed  it  over  to 
Canada. 

Situated  on  the  banks  of  the  Grand  River,  with  the  falls  of  the 
Chaudiere  above,  and  the  falls  of  the  Rideau  like  a  curtain  below, 
the  unaspiring  little  village  at  the  time  rejoiced  in  the  name  of 
Bytown,  so  called  from  Colonel  Bye,  the  commanding  officer  of 
the  Royal  Engineers  who  built  the  canal. 

The  river  formed  the  dividing  line  between  the  two  Provinces 
of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  which  were  thus  within  pistol-shot 
of  each  other.  The  name  of  Ottawa  was  given  to  the  proposed 
capital;  and  after  a  ministerial  crisis  or  two,  brought  about  by 
unavailing  efforts  to  reverse  the  decision,  the  location  was  finally 
adopted,  and  the  public  buildings  commenced.  In  1860,  on  the 
Prince  of  Wales'  visit  to  the  country,  the  corner-stone  was  laid 
with  imposing  ceremonies.  Large  expenditures  were  incurred ; 
and  notwithstanding  local  grumblings  and  strong  expressions  of 
disapprobation  occasionally  from  prominent  politicians,  the  question 
was  considered  as  definitely  settled,  and  agitation  ceased.  From 
that  time  its  advance  became  steady  and  sure.  At  the  Convention 
it  was  proposed  and  carried  that  it  should  be  the  future  capital  of 
the  Confederation,  and  the  inhabitants  of  the  Dominion  will  have 
no  reason  to  regret  the  decision.  Few  cities  possess  greater  local 
advantages.  "Watered  in  front  by  the  Grand  River,  on  the  right 
by  the  Rideau,  and  intersected  by  the  canal,  it  possesses,  for 
sanitary  arrangements  and  sewerage,  the  very  greatest  facilities. 
Originally  well  planned  and  laid  out  by  Colonel  Bye,  who  foresaw 
its  future  destiny  as  a  large  town,  its  broad  parallel  streets,  and 
reserves  for  public  purposes,  afford  accommodation  and  security. 
Built  on  a  lofty  table-land,  eighty  or  a  hundred  feet  above  the 
river,  with  bold  escarpments  in  front,  the  eye  is  arrested  on  every 
side  by  scenes  of  unequalled  beauty.  The  Gatineau  Hills,*  the 

*  Sir  Charles  Lyell  says  that  it  is  240,000,000  of  years  since  life  lias  been  known  on  earth ; 
and  before  that  period,  for  indefinite  ages,  the  Eozoon  Canadiensis  had  lived  and  died  in 
the  Laurentian  limestone  of  Canada. 


CONFEDERATION.  107 

first  amid  the  primeval  upheavings  of  the  great  Laurentian  range, 
which,  far  back  in  the  countless  ages  of  chaos,  began  the  formation 
of  our  solid  globe,  bound  the  horizon  to  the  north,  and  the  spread- 
ing plains  toward  the  south  afford  scope  for  unlimited  expansion. 
But  its  importance  lies  not  simply  in  its  attractive  appearance. 
It  is  the  centre  of  a  rich  agricultural  district,  and  its  great  water 
powers  on  the  Chaudiere  and  Eideau  have  given  it  the  largest 
manufacturing  establishments  in  lumber  at  present  on  the  North 
American  continent.  This  latter  circumstance  is  due,  in  a  great 
measure,  to  the  energy  and  enterprize  of  American  citizens,  who, 
seeing  its  immense  natural  advantages,  and  knowing  the  unlimited 
extent  of  its  forests  beyond,  and  the  water  tributaries  of  those 
partially  unexplored  regions,  made  it  their  home. 

Twenty  years  ago,  its  capabilities  were  not  utilized.  An  Ameri- 
can millman  looked  at  the  Chaudiere.  •  His  was  not  a  tourist's 
dream ;  it  was  the  practical  gaze  of  a  man  of  business.  To  use 
his  own  expression,  he  "  thought  the  river  might  be  put  in  har- 
ness." The  river  was  put  in  harness  ;  and  now  the  spot,  which  at 
that  time  was  simply  known  as  a  scene  of  beauty,  is  crowded  with 
mills  and  machine  shops,  and,  including  both  sides  of  the  Falls, 
affords  unceasing  employment  to  twenty  thousand  people,  daily 
creating  untold  wealth,  and,  with  its  schools  and  churches,  spread- 
ing the  comforts  of  life  around.  Its  position  with  reference  to  the 
entire  Dominion,  as  extending  from  the  Atlantic  to  the  Pacific — 
an  achievement  brought  about  far  more  rapidly  than  at  the  time 
of  the  Convention  was  conceived — is  admirable.  On  the  line 
along  which  the  Canadian  Pacific  Railway  must  run,  it  will 
command  equal  facilities  for  access  to  Quebec  and  the  Maritime 
Provinces  on  the  one  side,  and  the  Western  Territories  and  British 
Columbia  on  the  other.  Nature  seems  to  have  formed  an  interior 
valley  for  communication  on  the  northern  and  eastern  side  of  the 
Ottawa,  from  Quebec  to  the  Falls  of  the  Chaudiere,  and  thence 
along  the  valley  of  the  Ottawa  to  the  shores  of  Lake  Superior, 
and  on  towards  the  north-west.  If  properly  managed,  the  vast 
trade  of  this  productive  country  must  gravitate  towards  the  capital 
of  the  Dominion  as  its  natural  and  cheapest  outlet.  Thus,  both 
politically  and  commercially,  the  selection  was  judicious. 


108  CONFEDERATION. 

But  nevertheless,  viewed  from  the  stand-point  of  1871,  it  is 
apparent  that  at  the  time  of  the  Convention  one  mistake  occurred  : 
no  provision  was  made  for  creating  a  federal  district  for  the  capital, 
and  withdrawing  it  from  the  exclusive  control  of  the  local  legisla- 
ture of  one  of  the  Provinces.  That  which  was  destined  to  be  the 
capital  of  the  Confederation  might  fairly  rest  its  claim  for  support 
upon  the  people  of  the  Dominion.  Its  order,  well-being,  sanitary 
arrangements,  police  regulations,  adornments  and  improvements 
are  essential  to  the  comfort  and  security  not  only  of  the  represen- 
tatives who  attend  Parliament,  but  of  all  those  who  are  compelled 
to  resort  to  it  as  the  capital  of  the  country  in  the  discharge  of  the 
various  duties  attendant  upon  the  administration  of  public  affairs. 
Its  reputation  should  be  national,  not  provincial.  It  belongs  no 
more  to  Ontario  than  it  does  to  New  Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia, 
Quebec,  or  any  of  the  Provinces  constituting  the  Confederation. 
The  expenses  incident  to  its  civic  control  must  necessarily  be  far 
greater  than  would  devolve  upon  it  if  merely  an  ordinary  munici- 
pality. It  is  no  answer  to  say  that  the  increased  value  in  property 
is  sufficient  consideration  for  the  increased  burden  put  upon  the 
inhabitants.  That  does  not  meet  the  question.  They  may  not 
choose  to  accept  the  responsibility ;  and  the  Dominion  Parliament, 
under  confederation,  has  no  power  to  legislate  upon  the  matter. 
The  legislation  for  the  capital  in  all  civil  matters  is  entirely  under 
the  control  of  one  Province,  differing  in  its  laws  from  the  others- 
The  employes  and  officials  of  the  Dominion  Government,  residing 
at  Ottawa,  numbering  almost  two  thousand  men,  in  every  respect 
competent  as  voters,  and,  under  other  circumstances,  capable  of 
enjoying  and  exercising  their  franchise,  are  wisely  interdicted,  by 
the  policy  of  the  Government  of  the  Dominion,  from  interfering 
in  the  local  Provincial  politics,  or  taking  part  in  the  elections  for 
the  Provincial  Legislature.  Yet  they  are  subject  to  the  taxation 
imposed  upon  them  by  that  Legislature ;  and  bluff  old  Harry  the 
Eighth  never  unfrocked  a  bishop  with  more  satisfaction  than  the 
Ontario  Legislature,  for  local  purposes,  taxes  a  body  of  men  whom 
they  do  not  pay,  and  who  are  debarred  from  exercising  any  influ- 
ence upon  the  selection  of  their  body. 

The  experience  of  the  United  States  had  pointed  out  the  course 
to  be  pursued.     In  their  original  constitution,  no  permanent  or 


CONFEDERATION.  10D 

national  capital  had  been  determined  on  by  legislative  enactment. 
An  insult  to  the  Congress,  when  sitting  at  Philadelphia,  in  June, 
1783,  by  a  band  of  mutinous  soldiers  demanding  arrears  of  pay, 
brought  up  the  subject  for  debate.  After  four  years'  discussion, 
bv  the  constitution  adopted  in  convention  in  1787,  and  carried 
into  effect  in  1789,  it  was  decided  that  the  Congress  should  have 
power  (sec.  8,  art.  17)  "to  exercise  exclusive  jurisdiction,  in  all 
cases  whatsoever,  over  such  district  (not  exceeding  ten  miles  square) 
as  may,  by  cession  of  particular  States  and  the  acceptance  of  Con- 
gress, become  the  seat  of  Government  of  the  United  States,"  and 
to  make  all  laws  necessary  and  proper  for  that  purpose. 

In  due  course  of  time,  by  the  action  of  the  States  of  Maryland 
and  Virginia,  a  selection  was  made  upon  the  banks  of  the  Potomac  : 
Washington  was  declared  the  capital  of  the  Republic,  and  Congress 
undertook  to  make  liberal  expenditures  in  the  furtherance  of  such 
improvements  and  adornments  as  would  be  becoming  the  capital  of 
a  great  nation. 

By  an  act  passed  February  27th,  1801,  (up  to  which  time  the 
congress  had  met  at  Philadelphia,  pending  the  preparations  neces- 
sary for  the  removal,  and  for  the  accommodation  of  the  public 
departments  and  business  at  Washington,)  provisions  had  been 
made  for  the  establishment  of  the  proper  tribunals,  the  creation  of 
the  necessary  authorities,  the  maintenance  of  existing  laws  until 
superseded  by  other  legislation,  and  the  general  exercise  of  those 
territorial  duties  which  are  essential  to  the  good  order  and  govern- 
ment of  a  district.  Other  legislation  has  since  taken  place  in 
accordance  with  the  exigencies  of  the  times,  and  the  federal  dis- 
trict has  been  controlled  and  regulated  by  the  national  congress 
alone,  until  within  the  last  few  years,  when  a  territorial  govern- 
ment was  arranged  for  it.  The  people  of  the  United  States  are 
well  satisfied.  Their  capital  is  the  national  capital  of  their  coun- 
try, and  not  the  municipality  of  a  section. 

The  President  thus  alludes  to  this  subject  in  his  message  of  the 
4th  December,  1871  :  "  Under  the  provisions  of  the  act  of  Con- 
gress, (approved  February  21st,  1871,)  a  territorial  government 
was  organized  in  the  District  of  Columbia.  Its  results  have  thus 
far  fully  realized  the  expectations  of  its  advocates.  Under  the 


110  CONFEDERATION. 

direction  of  the  territorial  officer,  a  system  of  improvement  has  been 
inaugurated,  by  means  of  which  Washington  is  rapidly  becoming 
a  city  worthy  of  the  nation's  capital,  the  citizens  of  the  District 
having  voluntarily  taxed  themselves  to  a  large  amount  for  the  pur- 
pose of  contributing  to  the  adornment  of  the  seat  of  government." 

Thus  we  see  that  the  character  of  a  national  capital,  the  security 
of  those  who  attend  it,  the  elimination  of  sectional  and  provincial 
interests  in  its  government,  the  preservation  of  the  national  public 
property,  the  protection  of  the  public  interests,  and  the  mainte- 
nance of  the  national  reputation  in  its  status,  are  too  important 
to  be  left  to  local  councils,  however  good  they  may  be. 

Americans  have  their  capital,  Canadians  have  no  capital  for 
their  country.  They  borrow  a  municipality  from  Ontario,  and 
whether  they  come  from  the  Provinces  of  the  Atlantic  or  the 
Pacific,  whether  from  Quebec  or  Manitoba,  their  representatives 
in  the  Dominion  Parliament  have  no  power  to  legislate  on  any 
matter  touching  the  property  or  civil  rights  of  the  so-called  capital 
of  the  Dominion,  however  great  the  wrong  to  be  redressed  or  the 
evil  to  be  remedied.  This  should  not  be. 

The  City  of  Ottawa,  with  a  certain  area  around  it,  should 
be  created  a  Federal  District;  the  laws  for  its  future  govern- 
ment (not  interfering  with  private  rights,  or  the  city's  present 
municipal  privileges  without  adequate  consideration),  should  be 
passed  by  the  Dominion  Parliament,  and  carried  out  by  officers 
responsible  to  the  Dominion  Government,  aud  through  it  to  the 
people  of  the  whole  Dominion ;  or  by  a  territorial  arrangement, 
as  in  the  District  of  Columbia,  the  legislatures  of  Ontario  and 
Quebec  ceding  such  portion  of  territory  011  both  sides  of  the  river 
as  would  make  the  District  thoroughly  unprovincial,  and  stipu- 
lating such  terms  in  the  cession  as  would  preserve  existing  rights 
and  interests. 

But  to  return  to  the  banquet.  After  the  usual  courtesies  and 
toasts  had  been  attended  to,  Hon.  W.  A.  Henry,  Attorney-General 
of  Nova  Scotia,  on  behalf  of  that  Province,  said : 

"  The  people  of  Nova  Scotia  entertained  no  selfish  views  when 
they  proposed  to  enter  into  a  confederation  with  the  other  colonies. 


CONFEDERATION.  Ill 

They  knew  that  their  position  commanded  many  advantages  not 
equally  enjoyed  by  the  rest.  They  felt  that  their  principal  port, 
Halifax,  was  one  of  commanding  importance.  Situated  as  it  is 
upon  the  most  easterly  peninsula  of  British  North  America,  and 
of  paramount  importance  to  be  retained  by  England  while  any 
portion  of  the  West  Indies  remains  connected  with  the  British 
empire,  it  would  be  the  last  spot  of  territory  011  this  continent  to 
be  yielded  up  by  the  parent  state,  and  would  always  receive,  even 
more  than  the  other  colonies,  the  protection  of  the  home  govern- 
ment. The  time,  however,  may  come,  and  may  not  be  far  distant, 
when,  from  great  political  changes,  from  which  we  cannot  expect 
to  be  always  exempt,  the  protection  of  the  parent  state  may  be 
withdrawn ;  and  if  we  wait  imtil  that  unfortunate  event  arrives, 
it  may  be  too  late  to  form  associations  for  our  local  defence.  "We 
were  favored  by  an  invitation  from  the  Canadian  Government  to 
meet  in  conference  at  Quebec,  to  consider  how  far  a  general  con- 
federation was  practicable.  The  invitation  was  accepted  by  all  the 
colonies,  and  the  delegates  were  chosen,  not  exclusively  from  the 
several  governments,  but  were  selected  from  the  ranks  of  parties 
representing  all  classes  and  interests  in  the  several  communities, 
in  order  that  all  party  prejudices  and  sectional  feelings  might  be 
laid  aside  in  the  contemplation  of  an  object  of  such  vast  importance. 
Difficulties  of  a  grave  character  had  to  be  surmounted.  First, 
each  individual  forming  part  of  the  delegation  entertained  his  own 
views  upon  every  one  of  the  infinite  number  of  important  questions 
to  be  solved ;  and,  drawn  as  they  were  from  different  classes  of 
opposing  politicians  in  the  several  Provinces,  with  the  influence  of 
party  relations  upon  them,  and  the  interest  of  each  Province 
clashing  •  to  a  certain  extent  with  those  of  the  others,  it  required 
the  greatest  exercise  of  moderation,  and  frequent  modification 
of  personal,  party  and  local  views  and  interests,  to  arrive  at  any- 
thing like  a  successful  issue.  None  but  those  who  took  part  in 
the  conference,  or  had  deeply  weighed  the  importance  of  the  con- 
siderations involved,  could  have  any  idea  of  the  difficult  task  of 
reconciling  antagonistic  views  and  interests,  and  nothing  but  the 
absorbing  feeling  of  the  importance  of  their  mission  and  its  results 
could  have  produced  anything  like  a  satisfactory  conclusion.  In 


112  CONFEDERATION. 

contemplation  of  this  great  object,  the  people  of  every  section  must 
be  prepared  to  yield  a  portion  of  their  feelings  and  interests  to  the 
common  stock,  and  in  the  contemplation  as  well  as  in  the  working 
out  of  the  union  this  sentiment  must  not  be  forgotten." 

Hon.  John  M.  Johnson,  Attorney-General  of  New  Brunswick, 
observed : 

"At  the  Conference  all  agreed  to  set  aside  their  own  peculiar 
opinions  for  the  common  good,  and  the  advantages  of  union  were 
so  great  that  all  minor  differences  on  political  matters  should  be 
sunk  and  forgotten.  This  was  the  way  he  hoped  the  people  would 
meet  the  question :  either  declare  against  it  like  men,  if  they 
believed  the  union  to  be  without  advantage,  or,  if  they  believed  it 
would  prove  beneficial,  to  lay  aside  all  questions  of  mere  party, 
in  order  to  secure  it." 

Hon.  George  Coles,  on  behalf  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  said : 

"  He  stood  there  in  a  different  position  from  the  gentlemen  from 
the  other  Provinces,  who  had  just  .addressed  them,  both  of  whom 
were  members  of  their  respective  governments,  while  he  'happened 
to  be  one  of  the  opposition.  They  were  aware  that  the  opposi- 
tions of  all  the  Provinces  had  entered  into  the  delegation  to 
assist  in  carrying  out  the  views  of  their  respective  governments. 
Generally,  when  an  opposition  joined  in  carrying  out  the  views  of 
government,  they  were  looked  upon  with  suspicion  by  their  consti- 
tuents ;  but  the  present  case  was  one  which  stood  entirely  by  itself, 
and  he  claimed  that  in  going  for  federation  the  government  of 
Prince  Edward  Island  were  carrying  out  his  views — views  which 
he  had  entertained  for  many  years.  In  former  times  he  had  found 
many  opposed  to  his  sentiments  on  this  question.  Mr.  Coles  went 
on  to  speak  of  the  advantages  of  Prince  Edward  Island  as  a 
delightful  summer  residence,  and  of  its  various  resources,  particu- 
larly the  inexhaustible  treasury  it  had  in  the  fisheries  of  its  waters. 
Hundreds  of  thousands  of  pounds  worth  of  fish  were  taken  from 
their  waters  by  the  American  fishermen.  He  trusted  that  soon 
Canada  would  take  that  fish  for  the  consumption  of  her  inhabi- 


CONFEDERATION.  113 

taiits,  and  send  her  fishermen  to  catch  them.  He  said  that 
although  there  was  no  man  more  disappointed  than  himself  with 
respect  to  some  parts  of  the  constitution,  yet,  by  mutual  conces- 
sion, they  had  arrived  at  a  result  which  they  could  all  agree  in 
supporting  and  submitting  to  the  people,  for  he  held  that  it  must 
be  submitted  to  the  people.  They  could  not  force  it  on  the  people  > 
they  must  endeavour  to  show  them  that  it  was  for  their  benefit, 
and  thus  induce  them  to  accept  it." 

Hon.  A.  T.  Gait,  Finance  Minister  of  Canada,  then  spoke  sub- 
stantially as  follows  : 

"  I  believe  we  are  making  a  move  in  the  right  direction,  in 
confederation ;  and  if  we  gave  more  strength  to  the  monarchical 
element  on  this  continent,  it  was  because  we  thought  that  through 
this  form  of  government  we  could  more  effectually  add  to  the 
peace  and  happiness  of  our  people.  Those  who  could  recall  twenty 
years  could  remember  the  position  in  which  Lower  Canada  then 
stood.  They  could  recall  the  advantages  which  arose  from  the 
union  of  these  Provinces.  It  could  be  seen  that  in  that  short 
period  (twenty  years)  this  country  had  grown  to  a  position  in 
importance  such  as  never  could  have  been  hoped  for  as  long  as  she 
remained  in  a  disunited  state.  It  was  because  we  felt  that  dis- 
united, Canada  was  weak,  united,  she  became  stronger.  We  now 
ask  the  other  Provinces  to  join  us  in  the  race  of  improvement 
and  progress,  and  in  extending  through  the  whole  of  the  British 
dominions  in  North  America  the  advantages  we  now  derive  from 
union,  that  which  gives  us  essential  power,  which  enables  us 
to  control  various  matters  and  maintain  our  strength.  With 
regard  to  the  question  of  the  commercial  prosperity  of  these  Colo- 
nies, there  could  be  no  doubt  whatever  that  the  union  of  these 
Provinces  would  tend  to  promote  our  prosperity.  We  had  seen 
the  effects  of  union  in  regard  to  matters  of  free  trade  in  the  United 
States.  He  knew  perfectly  well  that  if  one  thing  more  than 
another  had  tended  to  promote  the  prosperity  of  that  great  country, 
it  had  been  the  free  trade  that  had  existed  between  its  various 
parts.  He  desired  to  bring  about  that  same  free  trade  in  our 
own  Colonies." 


114  CONFEDERATION. 

After  leaving  Ottawa,  at  Kingston,  at  Cobourg,  at  Belleville, 
similar  cordial  greetings  were  extended.  On  the  arrival  at  To- 
ronto at  night  the  city  seemed  one  blaze  of  light,  and  repre- 
sentatives of  the  Corporation  of  Toronto  and  the  surrounding 
municipalities  tendered  their  hopitalities.  On  the  following  day 
the  literary  institutions  of  Toronto,  not  less  courteous  than  the 
institutions  of  Quebec,  gave  to  the  measure  their  fullest  sanction. 
The  Upper  Canada  College  under  Professor  Cockburn,  and  the 
University  under  the  Rev.  Dr.  McCaul,  vied  with  each  other  in 
the  expression  of  their  hopes  that  "  by  this  confederation  the 
British  North  American  colonies  would  be  bound  together  for 
mutual  advancement,  prosperity  and  strength" 

At  a  magnificent  banquet  given  at  the  Music  Hall  in  Toronto, 
the  Hon.  Geo.  Brown,  as  President  of  the  Council,  first  gave  to 
the  public  the  full  details  of  the  contemplated  constitution,  and 
in  a  clear  and  lucid  manner  explained  his  reasons  for  their  adop~ 
tion.  He  was  preceded,  however,  as  was  usual  on  the  occasion  of 
the  festivities  in  Canada,  by  the  members  from  the  Maritime 
Provinces.  In  answer  to  the  toast  of  "  The  Delegates,"  Hon.  Mr. 
McCully  responded  for  Nova  Scotia.  He  said  : 

"  They  had  framed  a  constitution  for  this  great  confederation. 
He  trusted  in  all  hopefulness  that  it  would  meet  their  approbation. 
It  had  been  the  work  of  men  of  some  experience.  Their  discus- 
sions had  been  characterized  by  the  most  friendly  intercourse.  If, 
after  so  weighing  and  considering  it,  they  had  anything  to  say 
against  it,  let  it  be  in  a  spirit  of  moderation.  He  asked  that  with 
the  more  confidence  because,  a  member  of  the  opposition  of  Nova 
Scotia,  invited  to  take  his  share  in  this  task,  he  had  been  content 
that  party  feeling  and  party  action  should,  for  the  moment,  be 
hushed  and  stilled  in  presence  of  so  great  a  question.  He  asked 
of  the  members  of  the  governments  of  all  the  Provinces,  if  they 
desired  that  this  enterprise  should  be  successful,  that  there  be  no 
attempt  to  make  out  of  it  any  local  political  capital.  Nothing,  in 
his  opinion,  could  be  more  fatal  to  the  measure.  But  let  me  say," 
said  he,  "  that  if  there  is  one  thing  connected  with  this  grand 
scheme  of  confederation  which  ought  more  than  another  to  be 


CONFEDERATION.  115 

kept  in  the  minds  of  the  public  men  of  all  these  Provinces  it  is 
this  :  that  it  shall  not  financially  weigh  too  heavily  on  the  people. 
In  Nova  Scotia,  whence  he  came,  they  had  an  ad  valorem  tariff  of 
ten  per  cent.,  and  one  of  the  greatest  difficulties  they  would  have 
to  contend  with  in  that  Province  in  inducing  their  people  to  come 
into  the  confederation,  would  be  to  reconcile  them  to  the  raising 
of  that  tariff  to  any  very  large  extent,  unless  it  were  for  the  public 
defence  of  the  country,  or  some  great  public  improvement,  advan- 
tage or  necessity." 

Hon.  Charles  Fisher,  M.P.,  from  Fredericton,  one  of  the  New 
Brunswick  Delegates,  spoke  ably  on  behalf  of  that  Province. 
Speaking  of  the  unanimity  of  action  throughout  the  country,  he 
observed : 

"  Men  of  every  party,  of  every  denomination — men  from  every 
section  of  the  country,  cognizant  of  their  different  ideas  in  politics 
and  theology,  met  together  resolved  to  lay  their  differences  as  an 
offering  upon  the  altar  of  their  country.  No  event  had  occurred 
in  modern  times  equal  bo  this.  New  Brunswick  expended  annually 
£30,000  a  year  for  schools,  £35,000  a  year  for  roads,  and  small  as 
their  Province  was,  they  then  had  at  that  moment  15,000  miles 
of  roads,  7,500  of  which  might  be  traversed  in  a  carriage  and  four. 
They  had  besides  200  miles  of  railway,  equal  to  any  tiling  of  the 
kind  on  the  continent.  Did  they  know  why  the  intercommunica- 
tion between  these  Provinces  had  hitherto  been  so  limited  ]  It 
did  not  arise  from  poverty  of  soil,  or  from  local  and  political 
causes.  Until  1845  the  country  between  New  Brunswick  and 
Canada  was  locked  up.  And  then  what  was  done  ?  Why,  a  large 
tract  of  land  was  taken  away  from  New  Brunswick  and  Canada, 
and  handed  over  to  the  United  States.  Did  they  think,  if  this 
confederation  had  then  been  formed,  that  the  interests  of  New 
Brunswick  would  have  been  sacrificed  to  the  cotton  spinners  and 
the  tobacco  dealers  ]  The  result  of  the  differences  which  took 
place  was  that  this  part  of  the  country  long  remained  a  wilderness, 
and  a  large  portion  of  it,  equal  to  the  State  of  New  Hampshire, 
with  a  large  settlement  of  French  Canadians,  was  handed  over  to  the 
United  States.  They  had  built  roads  through  New  Brunswick,  but 


116  CONFEDERATION. 

if  they  were  to  have  complete  intercommunication  the  Intercolo- 
nial Railway  must  be  built,  and  he  hoped  its  necessity  was 
recognized  as  fully  in  Western  Canada  as  it  was  in  New  Bruns- 
wick. He  had  almost  hoped  against  hope  for  its  construction, 
but  he  had  ever  felt  that  that  was  an  advantage  to  New  Brunswick 
which  must  be  supplied.  When  built  the  district  between  the  two 
Provinces,  now  almost  uninhabited,  would  speedily  be  filled  up, 
and  the  two  countries  connected.  He  had  been  an  advocate  of 
the  railway  ever  since  it  was  proposed.  He  had  always  argued 
for  it  as  a  link  in  the  great  chain  of  railways  which  would  yet 
connect  Halifax  with  Vancouver  Island.  He  had  read  with  great 
interest  the  descriptions  of  that  country,  especially  those  given  by 
the  scientific  men  sent  out  by  Canada  to  explore  it,  and  he  had 
always  argued  that  communication  with  that  country  was  a  com- 
mercial necessity  to  the  west.  They  enquired  would  such  a  road 
pay  ?  Had  the  Grand  Trunk  Railway  paid  ?  Ask  the  rapid 
improvement  of  Canada  if  it  had  not  paid  ]  Ask  the  hundred 
thousand  people  of  Montreal  the  result  of  that  great  instrument 
of  progress.  Ask  the  increase  given  to  the  value  of  land  and  to 
the  products  of  the  west.  Ask  all  these,  and  let  their  testimony 
to  the  great  benefit  derived  be  the  reply.  When  the  resources  of 
the  interior  were  brought  into  action,  what  would  be  required  to 
cany  these  products  to  the  ocean]  Would  not  a  railway  be 
needed?  But,  after  all,  possessing  as  they  did  such  complete 
elements  for  the  formation  of  a  great  nation,  what  would  they  be 
without  a  free  government  ]  The  members  of  the  Convention 
had  met  together  for  the  purpore  of  framing  a  government  adapted 
to  these  colonies,  and  they  had  endeavoured  to  do  it  upon  the 
principles  of  the  British  monarchy.  They  had  kept  in  view  the 
great  original  of  the  parent  state,  but  they  had  so  constructed  the 
constitution  as  to  preserve  intact  the  rights  of  each  separate  Pro- 
vince. They  had  left  to  the  local  bodies  of  the  confederation 
local  matters,  and  when  they  found  any  condition  of  things  which 
it  was  necessary  to  preserve,  they  had  provided  that  these  should 
be  untouched  forever.  They  had  endeavoured  to  build  up  a  strong 
central  power,  which  should  have  control  of  matters  of  common 
interest.  As  in  the  confederation  local  questions  would  be  left  to 


CONFEDERATION.  117 

the  local  legislatures,  he  had  high  hopes  that  in  the  general  legis- 
lature the  smaller  politics  would  be  forgotten,  and  that  a  desire) 
for  national  honor  would  arise,  without  which  national  greatness 
could  never  be  attained." 

Hon.  Mr.  Carter,  of  Newfoundland,  said  : 

"  Newfoundland  wras  a  commercial  place,  and  was  not  very 
celebrated  for  its  agricultural  capabilities.  The  reason  of  this  was 
that  the  attention  of  the  people  had  been  chiefly  taken  up  by  the 
prosecution  of  the  fisheries,  which  had  been  most  valuable  to  the 
people  along  the  coast,  furnishing  inexhaustible  mines  of  wealth, 
from  which,  from  time  to  time,  immensely  large  fortunes  had  been 
drawn.  Speaking  of  the  Provinces,  he  said:  we  have  mutual 
wants,  and  may  be  of  great  benefit  the  one  to  the  other.  You 
want  the  maritime  element,  and  we  are  able  to  give  it  to  you. 
You  may  by  and  by  require  seamen  to  man  your  navy,  and  where 
will  you  be  able  to  get  them  more  readily  than  in.  Newfoundland  1 
A  more  hardy  and  enterprising  people  than  that  colony  contains 
are  not  to  be  found.  From  their  earliest  days  they  have  been 
'  rocked  in  the  cradle  of  the  deep.'  The  area  of  this  country,  so 
little  known  in  Canada,  is  over  forty  thousand  square  miles.  He 
hoped  sincerely  if  this  confederation  was  formed,  that  it  would 
tend  to  do  away  with  petty  party  spirit  and  prejudices,  and  that 
acerbity  of  feeling  which  at  one  time  wras  characteristic  of  us ;  for 
we  generally  find  that  the  intensity  of  the  acerbity  is  proportion- 
ate to  the  narrowness  of  our  limits.  And,  said  he,  do  we  not 
find  here,  as  everywhere  else,  a  combination  of  men  who,  like  our- 
selves, are  of  different  shades  of  politics,  but  who  have  united 
together  to  promote  the  same  reform  1  Have  you  not  the  ablest 
men  from  both  sides  of  the  house  represented  in  the  administra- 
tion, combining  together  to  carry  out  this  noble  object  1 " 

Hon.  Edward  Palmer,  Attorney-General  of  Prince  Edward 
Island,  on  behalf  of  that  colony  said  : 

"  As  to  the  proposed  union.  Your  friends  came  down,  and  we 
listened  to  them,  and  we  resolved  since  then  that  there  should  be 
a  union.  In  the  first  place,  we  resolved  that  the  union  should  be, 


CONFEDERATION. 

as  far  as  the  circumstances  of  the  country  would  permit,  in  accord- 
ance with  the  British  constitution.  The  Provinces  were  unani- 
mous in  this.  We  then  resolved  that  each  of  the  colonies  should 
preserve  its  peculiar  privileges  .and  institutions,  and  that  there 
should  be  110  higher  power  to  interfere  with  them.  We  next 
agreed  that  as  far  as  possible  the  debts  of  the  colonies  should  be 
dealt  with  fairly  and  equally,  and  that  the  tariffs  should  be  equal 
throughout.  We  next  agreed  that  as  regarded  the  outside  world 
we  should,  between  and  amongst  ourselves,  enjoy  free  trade.  I 
confess  that  in  my  Province  there  was  at  first  no  little  anxiety 
with  regard  to  this  proposition,  because  we  stand  at  present  as 
happy  and  contented  a  people  as  any  of  the  British  Provinces. 
Yet  I  hesitate  not  to  say  that  from  all  that  has  been  witnessed  by 
the  delegates  representing  that  Island,  they  will  not  hesitate  to 
recommend  to  their  people  the  great  union  which  I  hope  soon  to 
see  accomplished.  It  is  not  the  great  hospitality  alone  that  we 
have  met  with  since  we  entered  within  your  borders — it  is  not  the 
kindness  which  we  have  received  individually  or  collectively  from 
the  people  of  this  Province — that  causes  us  to  desire  to  come  into 
this  union  ;  your  excellent  institutions  of  all  kinds,  and  your  pro- 
gress in  everything  that  goes  to  make  up  a  great  country,  impel 
us  to  such  a  desirable  consummation — tojbrm  part  of  the  great 
empire  or  colony,  or  whatever  you  choose  to  call  it,  which  is  to 
be  constructed  out  of  these  provinces  of  British  America,  sharing 
the  glories  of  the  mother  country,  which  we  all  desire  to  see  per- 
petuated and  increased." 

Hon.  Geo.  Brown,  in  the  course  of  his  observations,  remarked : 

"  It  was  an  old  saying,  that  England  loves  not  coalitions  ;  and 
he  was  sure  if  the  adage  was  true  of  England,  it  was  doubly  true 
of  Canada.  Except  under  the  pressure  of  a  most  grave  and  urgent 
necessity,  the  combining  of  public  men  of  opposite  political  senti- 
ments to  form  a  government  under  the  British  parliamentary 
system,  is  very  strongly  to  be  deprecated.  But  if  ever  there  was 
a  coalition  that  had  a  sufficient  object  to  justify  its  formation,  he 
thought  it  was  the  administration  which  he  represented  that  day. 
It  was  formed  for  a  special  purpose,  for  a  great  public  end  ;  it  was 


CONFEDERATION.  119 

formed  in  the  light  of  day ;  its  whole  object  and  end  was  fully  and 
openly  proclaimed  to  the  world,  and  no  charge  of  intrigue  or  desire 
for  personal  aggrandisement  could  with  justice  be  laid  at  the  door 
of  any  party  to  the  compact.  The  Government  was  formed  upon 
the  express  understanding  that  the  constitutional  difficulties  of 
Canada  should  be  met  immediately ;  that  a  measure  for  that  pur- 
pose should  be  submitted  to  Parliament  at  its  first  session ;  and 
that  in  the  meantime  they  should  strive  with  all  their  energies  to 
ascertain  whether  or  not  a  just  and  satisfactory  arrangement  for 
the  union  of  all  the  British  North  American  Provinces  could  be 
effected,  so  that  they  might  present  it  at  the  next  session  of  Parlia- 
ment in  lieu  of  the  lesser  scheme.  A  conference  of  representatives 
from  the  several  Provinces  had,  as  they  knew,  assembled  at  Quebec, 
on  the  invitation  of  the  Governor-General,  to  consider  this  subject. 
For  sixteen  days  they  were  earnestly  engaged  in  considering  all  the 
details  of  the  scheme ;  and  though,  of  course,  it  was  impossible 
that  such  a  body  of  men  could  be  without  differences  of  opinion, 
looking  at  matters  as  they  did  from  different  points  of  view,  and 
with  different  interests  to  protect ;  stiU  it  was  highly  questionable 
whether  any  body  of  thirty-three  gentlemen,  even  if  composed  of 
men  of  the  same  country  and  the  same  party,  could  have  sat 
together  for  so  long  a  period,  discussing  matters  of  such  grave 
importance,  with  more  entire  harmony  and  more  thorough  good- 
will and  respect  than  prevailed  throughout  the  whole  of  their 
deliberations.  The  various  details  of  the  confederation  scheme 
were  brought  up  for  consideration  by  the  Conference  in  the  form  of 
resolutions.  Those  resolutions  were  separately  discussed,  amended, 
and  adopted ;  and  as  finally  adopted  by  the  unanimous  consent  of 
the  whole  Conference,  they  now  stand  on  record.  As  the  only 
practicable  scheme,  and  as,  in  his  opinion,  the  best,  they  adopted 
the  plan  of  constituting  a  general  administration  and  general  legis- 
lature, to  which  should  be  committed  matters  common  to  all  the 
Provinces,  and  local  governments  and  legislatures  for  the  several 
sections,  to  which  should  be  committed  matters  peculiar  to  their 
several  localities.  By  committing  all  purely  local  matters  to  local 
control,  they  secured  the  peace  and  permanence  of  the  new  con- 
federation much  more  effectually  than  could  possibly  have  been 


120  CONFEDERATION. 

hoped  for  from  a  legislative  union.  It  was  unnecessary  to  say  that 
the  Governor-General  of  the  united  Provinces  was  to  be  appointed, 
as  heretofore,  by  the  Grown.  The  duration  of  Parliament  would 
be  limited  to  five  years,  and  of  course  it  would  be  composed  of  two 
branches — a  Legislative  Council,  appointed  by  the  government  of 
the  day  on  the  principle  of  equality  of  the  sections,  and  a  House 
of  Commons,  in  which  we  are  to  obtain  that  so  long  desired,  so  long 
earnestly  contended  for  reform,  Representation  by  Population. 
In  his  opinion,  an  appointed  Upper  House  and  an  elected  Lower 
House  would  be  much  more  in  harmony  with  the  spirit  of  the 
British  parliamentary  system  than  two  elected  bodies.  The  Upper 
Chamber  was  to  consist  of  seventy-six  members,  distributed  as 
follows : 

Upper  Canada .' 24 

Lower  Canada 24 

Nova  Scotia 10 

New  Brunswick 10 

Newfoundland 4 

Prince  Edward  Island 4 

Total 76 

The  House  of  Commons  was  to  be  constituted  on  the  basis  of 
representation  by  population.  It  was  to  be  composed,  at  first,  of 
one  hundred  and  ninety-four  members,  distributed  as  follows  : 

Upper  Canada 82 

Lower  Canada 05 

Nova  Scotia 19 

New  Brunswick 15 

Newfoundland  ...... 8 

Prince  Edward  Island 5 

Total 194 

After  each  decennial  census  the  sectional  representation  was  to  be 
readjusted  according  to  population,  and  for  this  purpose  Lower 
Canada  was  always  to  have  65  members,  and  the  other  sections 
were  to  receive  the  exact  number  of  members  to  which  they  would 
be  severally  entitled  in  the  same  ratio  of  representation  to  popu- 
lation as  Lower  Canada  will  enjoy  by  having  65  members.  Thus 


CONFEDERATION.  121 

the  representation  would  be  strictly  based  on  population,  the 
disparity  of  population  between  the  several  sections  would  be 
accurately  provided  for  every  ten  years,  but  the  number  of 
members  in  the  House  would  not  be  much  increased.  The  general 
government  was  to  have  control  over  all  questions  of  trade  and 
commerce  ;  all  questions  of  currency,  finance  and  coinage  ;  all 
questions  of  navigation  and  shipping,  and  the  fisheries ;  all 
questions  of  defence  and  militia ;  all  matters  connected  with  the 
postal  service,  and  all  questions  affecting  the  criminal  law.  To 
it  would  belong  the  imposition  of  customs  and  excise  duties,  and 
all  other  modes  of  taxation ;  the  construction  of  great  public 
works  of  common  benefit  to  all  the  Provinces ;  and  the  incorpora- 
tion of  telegraph,  steamship,  and  railway  companies.  It  would 
also  have  control  of  banks  and  savings  banks,  bills  of  exchange 
and  promissory  notes,  interest  and  legal  tenders,  bankruptcy  and 
insolvency,  copyright  and  patents  of  invention,  naturalization  and 
aliens,  marriage  and  divorce,  immigration  and  quarantine,  weights 
and  measures,  Indians  and  Indian  lands,  the  census,  and  generally 
all  matters  of  a  general  character  not  specially  assigned  to  the 
local  governments.  These  were  the  duties  proposed  to  be  assigned 
to  the  general  government.  As  to  the  constitution  and  powers 
of  the  local  governments.  It  was  proposed  that  each  Province 
should  be  presided  over  by  a  Lieutenant-Governor,  who  would  be 
advised  by  the  heads  of  the  various  public  departments.  As  to 
the  constitution  of  the  local  legislatures,  there  was  so  much 
difference  of  opinion  on  the  subject,  some  of  the  Provinces  desir- 
ing to  retain  their  present  institutions,  while  we  in  Canada  must 
necessarily  establish  new  ones,  that  we  thought  it  the  wisest  plan 
to  leave  the  constitution  of  the  local  legislatures  to  the  existing 
parliaments  of  the  different  sections.  The  powers  and  duties  of 
the  local  governments  have  been  clearly  defined  by  the  Conference. 
They  are  to  have  the  power  of  imposing  direct  taxation  ;  the  sale 
and  management  of  the  public  lands  in  their  respective  sections ; 
the  maintenance  and  management  of  prisons,  hospitals,  asylums, 
and  charitable  institutions  ;  the  construction  of  local  works ;  the 
promotion  of  agriculture ;  and  the  imposition  of  shop,  saloon, 
tavern  and  auction  licenses.  The  control  of  all  the  national 
9 


122  CONFEDERATION. 

schools  and  school  property  is  to  be  vested  in  the  local  govern- 
ments ;  and  they  are  to  have  authority  over  municipal  corpora- 
tions and  all  municipal  matters.  They  are  also  to  have  power  to 
make  laws  in  all  matters  affecting  property  and  civil  rights,  and 
for  the  administration  of  justice.  And  generally,  while  on  the 
one  hand,  all  matters  of  a  general  character  and  common  to  all 
the  Provinces  are  to  be  committed  to  the  general  government ;  so> 
on  the  other  hand,  all  matters  of  a  local  character  will  be  com- 
mitted to  the  local  governments.  The  separate  powers  to  be 
exercised  by  each  will  be  clearly  defined  in  the  Constitution  Act 
to  be  passed  by  the  British  Parliament,  so  that  there  will  be  no 
danger  of  the  two  bodies  coming  into  collision.  There  was  one 
point  to  which  he  was  desirous  of  calling  particular  attention, 
namely,  to  the  fact  that  in  framing  their  constitution  they  had 
carefully  avoided  what  had  proved  a  great  evil  in  the  United 
States,  and  that  is  the  acknowledgment  of  an  inherent  sovereign 
power  in  the  separate  States,  causing  a  collision  of '  authority 
between  the  general  and  state  governments,  which,  in  times  of 
trial,  had  been  found  to  interfere  gravely  with  the  efficient  admi- 
nistration of  public  affairs.  In  the  government  to  be  formed 
under  this  new  constitution  while  we  have  committed  to  the  local 
governments  all  that  necessarily  and  properly  belongs  to  the 
localities,  we  have  reserved  for  the  general  government  all  those 
powers  which  will  enable  the  legislative  and  administrative  pro- 
ceedings of  the  central  authority  to  be  carried  out  with  a  firm 
hand.  With  this  view  we  have  provided  that  the  whole  of  the 
judges  throughout  the  confederation,  those  of  the  county  courts 
as  well  as  of  the  superior  courts,  are  to  be  appointed  and  paid  by 
the  general  government.  We  have  also  provided  that  the  general 
parliament  may  constitute  a  general  appeal  court,  to  which  an 
appeal  will  lie  from  the  decisions  of  all  the  provincial  courts. 
We  have  likewise  provided  that  the  general  government  shall  be 
specially  charged  with  the  performance  of  all  obligations  of  the 
Provinces,  as  part  of  the  British  empire,  to  foreign  countries. 
The  Lieutenant-Governors  of  the  different  sections  are  to  be  ap- 
pointed by  the  general  government,  and  the  power  of  disallowing 
all  bills  passed  by  the  local  legislatures  is  to  be  vested  in  the 


CONFEDERATION.  123 

Governor-General  in  council.  In  this  way  we  will  have  a  com- 
plete chain  of  authority,  extending  down  from  Her  Majesty  the 
Queen  to  the  basis  of  our  political  fabric.  The  Queen  will  appoint 
the  Governor-General ;  the  Governor-General  in  council  will 
appoint  the  Lieutenant-Governors  ;  and  the  Lieutenant-Governors 
will  be  advised  by  heads  of  departments  responsible  to  the  people. 
Tlras  we  will  have  the  general  government  working  in  harmony 
with  the  local  executives,  and  in  hearty  accord  with  popular  sen- 
timent as  expressed  through  the  people's  representatives.  All  the 
debts  and  assets  of  the  different  Provinces  were  to  be  assumed  by 
the  general  government.  A  confederation  of  five  states  was  about 
to  be  formed,  and  it  was  to  the  credit  of  the  whole  that  not  one  of 
them  had  ever  been  unable  to  meet  its  obligations  to  the  day  ;  and 
still  further,  that  the  finances  of  all  were  now  in  such  a  satisfactory 
condition  that  every  one  of  them  had  a, large  surplus  of  revenue 
over  expenditure  for  the  current  year.  He  desired  to  call  atten- 
tion to  the  fact,  that  the  delegates  had  unanimously  resolved  that 
the  united  Provinces  of  British  America  should  be  placed  at  the 
earliest  moment  in  a  thorough  state  of  defence.  We  have  agreed, 
said  he,  to  build  the  Intercolonial  Railway.  I  have  not  been 
in  favor  of  that  scheme  per  se,  situated  as  we  have  been.  But 
I  have  been  quite  willing  to  admit — and  I  repeat  it  heartily 
to-day — that  without  the  Intercolonial  Railway  there  could  be  no 
union  of  these  Provinces  ;  and  after  a  careful  consideration  of  the 
question  in  all  its  bearings,  and  after  counting  the  full  cost,  I  am 
prepared  to  advocate  the  building  of  that  road,  in  order  to  accom- 
plish the  great  objects  we  have  in  view  in  the  scheme  of  confede- 
ration. In  agreeing  to  build  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  it  should 
also  be  stated  that  due  regard  was  had  to  the  interests  of  the  west. 
With  the  unanimous  consent  of  the  members  of  the  Conference, 
we  have  resolved  on  the  ^extension  of  our  canal  system.  While  we 
have  sought  confederation  with  Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick, 
Newfoundland,  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  we  have  not  been 
neglectful  of  the  Far  West ;  but  we  have  made  it  a  condition  of 
union  that  the  great  North-west  may  come  into  the  federation  on 
equitable  terms  at  any  time  it  pleases,  and  that  British  Columbia 
and  Vancouver  Island  may  also  be  incorporated  with  us.  We 


124  CONFEDERATION. 

have  likewise  made  it  a  condition  that  so  soon  as  the  state  of  the 
finances  will  permit,  communication  is  to  be  opened  up  from 
Western  Canada  to  the  North-west  territory.  On  the  whole," 
said  the  honorable  gentleman,  "  when  we  look  at  the  probable 
results  of  this  union,  I  think  there  is  110  man  from  one  end  of  the 
Provinces  to  the  other  who  ought  not  to  give  it  his  most  hearty 
approbation.  He  would  repeat  what  had  been  so  well  said  by  Mr. 
McCully  :  all  danger  was  not  past.  They  had  still  to  meet  the 
legislatures  of  the  different  Provinces,  and  it  required  the  greatest 
harmony  of  action  to  obtain  a  favorable  result.  Therefore  I  would 
say  with  my  honorable  friend,  Mr.  McCully,  if  there  is  one  thing 
more  than  another  necessary  at  this  moment,  it  is  that  we  should 
banish  our  party  discords ;  that  we  should  forget  for  the  moment 
that  we  were  at  one  time  arrayed  against  each  other ;  and  what- 
ever we  may  do  after  union  is  accomplished,  let  us  forget  until  it 
is  obtained  our  feuds  and  differences,  in  securing  to  the  country 
the  great  boon  which  this  Confederation  promises  to  bring  about." 

A  few  days  after,  on  the  occasion  of  the  public  reception  at 
St.  Catharines,  the  'Hon.  Mr.  Pope,  of  Prince  Edward  Island, 
responded  on  behalf  of  that  Province,  and  in  strong  language 
declared  his  endorsation  of  the  views  already  expressed  by  his 
colleagues,  Hon.  Messrs.  Palmer,  Coles,  Haviland  and  Whelan, 
from  that  Island. 

Thus  closed  the  demonstrations  in  Ontario.  A  rude  awakening, 
however,  awaited  those  gentlemen  from  the  Maritime  Provinces 
who,  thus  far  floating  on  smooth  seas  and  amid  fairy  scenes,  fancied 
that  on  their  return  to  their  constituencies  all  would  be  well.  The 
storm  that  burst  upon  the  delegates  from  New  Brunswick  was  like 
the  hurricane  of  the  tropics.  Fair  as  had  been  the  voyage  up  to 
this  time,  fragrant  as  were  the  breezes  that  bore  them  onward,  the 
sky  in  a  moment  became  suddenly  overcast.  The  moaning  of  the 
surge  was  heard,  the  blackened  clouds  closed  upon  the  fated  ship, 
and  sail  and  mast  went  down  before  the  fearful  gale.  In  vain  was 
there  a  temporary  lull,  in  vain  a  seeming  hope  of  safety.  The 
storm  burst  out  from  the  opposite  quarter  with  more  fearful 
violence ;  the  darkness  was  more  tangible,  and  destruction  seemed 


CONFEDERATION.  125 

inevitable.  In  New  Brunswick  the  storm  came  first  from  political 
foes,  but  was  followed  quickly  from  political  friends.  Hurled  from 
place  and  power,  they  were  condemned  by  their  constituencies  in 
the  most  emphatic  manner,  and  a  more  thorough  defeat  in  the  first 
instance  was  never  meted  out  to  the  advocates  of  a  political  change. 
In  Nova  Scotia,  though  not  at  first  so  disastrous,  the  shock  was 
more  lasting,  and  ultimately  more  severe.  The  narrative  of  the 
action  of  those  two  Provinces  must,  however,  for  the  present  bo 
deferred. 


[127] 


CHAPTER  V. 

Assent  of  the  Imperial  Government — Despatch  from  the  Colonial  Secretary, 
December,  1864 — Public  sentiment  in  England,  Scotland  and  the  United 
States  on  the  proposed  Confederation — Seward — A.D.  1864. 

As  soon  as  possible  after  the  adjournment  at  Quebec,  the 
Governor-General,  Lord  Monck,  transmitted  to  Her  Majesty's 
Government  the  Resolutions  that  had  been  adopted  by  the  Con- 
ference, and  in  the  month  of  December  received,  in  thefollowing 
despatch,  the  strong  expression  of  its  approval :  . 

DOWNING  STREET,  3rd  December,  1864- 

'  MY  LORD, — Her  Majesty's  Government  have  received  with  the 
most  cordial  satisfaction  your  Lordship's  despatch  of  the  7th  ult., 
transmitting  for  their  consideration  the  resolutions  adopted  by  the 
representatives  of  the  s'everal  Provinces  of  British  North  America, 
who  were  assembled  at  Quebec. 

With  the  sanction  of  the  Crown,  and  upon  the  invitation  of  the 
Governor-General,  men  of  every  Province,  chosen  by  the  respective 
Lieutenant-Governors  without  distinction  of  party,  assembled  to 
consider  questions  of  the  utmost  interest  to  every  subject  of  the 
Queen,  of  whatever  race  or  faith,  resident  in  those  Provinces,  and 
have  arrived  at  a  conclusion  destined  to  exercise  a  most  important 
influence  upon  the  future  welfare  of  the  whole  community. 

Animated  by  the  warmest  sentiments  of  loyalty  and  devotion 
to  their  Sovereign ;  earnestly  desirous  to  secure  for  their  posterity 
throughout  all  future  time  the  advantages  which  they  enjoy  as 
subjects  of  the  British  Crown ;  steadfastly  attached  to  the  institu- 
tions under  which  they  live,  they  have  conducted  their  deliberations 
with  patient  sagacity,  and  have  arrived  at  unanimous  conclusions 
on  questions  involving  many  difficulties,  and  calculated,  under  less 
favourable  circumstances,  to  have  given  rise  to  many  differences  of 
opinion. 


CONFEDERATION.  127 

Such  an  event  is  in  the  highest  degree  honourable  to  those  who 
have  taken  part  in  these  deliberations.  It  must  inspire  confidence 
in  the  men  by  whose  judgment  and  temper  this  result  has  been 
attained,  and  will  ever  remain  on  record  as  an  evidence  of  the 
salutary  influence  exercised  by  the  institutions  under  which  those 
qualities  have  been  so  signally  developed. 

Her  Majesty's  Government  have  given  to  your  despatch,  and  to 
the  resolutions  of  the  Conference,  their  most  deliberate  considera- 
tion. They  have  regarded  them  as  a  whole,  and  as  having  been 
designed  by  those  who  have  framed  them  to  establish  as  complete 
and  perfect  a  union  of  the  whole  into  one  government,  as  the 
circumstances  of  the  case  and  a  due  consideration  of  existing 
interests  would  admit.  They  accept  them,  therefore,  as  being,  in 
the  deliberate  judgment  of  those  best  qualified  to  decide  upon  the 
subject,  the  best  framework  of  a  measure  to  be  passed  by  the 
Imperial  Parliament  for  attaining  that  most  desirable  result. 

The  point  of  principal  importance  to  the  practical  well-working 
of  the  scheme,  is  the  accurate  determination  of  the  limits  between 
the  authority  of  the  central  and  that  of  the  local  legislatures,  in 
their  relation  to  each  other.  It  has  not  been  possible  to  exclude 
from  the  resolutions  some  provisions  which  appear  to  be  less  con- 
sistent than  might  perhaps  have  been  desired  with  the  simplicity 
and  unity  of  the  system.  But  upon  the  whole,  it  appears  to  Her 
Majesty's  Government  that  precautions  have  been  taken  which  are 
obviously  intended  to  secure  to  the  central  government  the  means 
of  effective  action  throughout  the  several  Provinces,  and  to  guard 
against  those  evils  which  must  inevitably  arise  if  any  doubt  were 
permitted  to  exist  as  to  the  respective  limits  of  central  and  local 
authority. 

They  are  glad  to  observe  that  although  large  powers  of  legisla- 
tion are  intended  to  be  vested  in  local  bodies,  yet  the  principle  of 
central  control  has  been  steadily  kept  in  view.  The  importance  of 
this  principle  cannot  be  overrated.  Its  maintenance  is  essential 
to  the  practical  efficiency  of  the  system,  and  to  its  harmonious 
operation  both  in  the  general  administration  and  in  the  govern- 
ments of  the  several  Provinces.  A  very  important  part  of  this 
subject  is  the  expense  which  may  attend  the  working  of  the  central 


128  CONFEDERATION. 

and  the  local  governments.  Her  Majesty's  Government  cannot 
but  express  the  earnest  hope  that  the  arrangements  which  may  be 
adopted  in  this  respect  may  not  be  of  such  a  nature  as  to  increase, 
at  least  in  any  considerable  degree,  the  whole  expenditure,  or  to 
make  any  material  addition  to  the  taxation,  and  thereby  retard  the 
internal  industry,  or  tend  to  impose  new  burdens  on  the  commerce 
of  the  country. 

Her  Majesty's  Government  are  anxious  to  lose  no  time  in 
conveying  to  you  their  general  approval  of  the  proceedings  of  the 
Conference.  There  are,  however,  two  provisions  of  great  impor- 
tance, which  seem  to  require  revision.  The  first  of  these  is  the 
provision  contained  in  the  44th  resolution,  with  respect  to  the 
exercise  of  the  prerogative  of  pardon.  It  appears  to  Her  Majesty's 
Government  that  this  duty  belongs  to  the  representative  of  the 
Sovereign,  and  could  not  with  propriety  be  devolved  upon  the 
Lieutenant-Governors,  who  will,  under  the  present  scheme,  be 
appointed,  not  directly  by  the  Crown,  but  by  the  Central  Govern- 
ment of  the  United  Provinces. 

The  second  point  which  Her  Majesty's  Government  desire  should 
be  reconsidered,  is  the  constitution  of  the  Legislative  Council. 
They  appreciate  the  considerations  which  have  influenced  the  Con- 
ference in  determining  the  mode  in  which  this  body,  so  important 
to  the  constitution  of  the  Legislature,  should  be  composed.  But 
it  appears  to  them  to  require  further  consideration  whether,  if  the 
members  be  appointed  for  life  and  their  number  be  fixed,  there 
will  be  any  sufficient  means  of  restoring  harmony  between  the 
Legislative  Council  and  the  popular  Assembly,  if  it  shall  ever 
unfortunately  happen  that  a  decided  difference  of  opinion  shall 
arise  between  them. 

These  two  points,  relating  to  the  prerogative  of  the  Crown,  and 
to  the  constitution  of  the  upper  chamber,  have  appeared  to  require 
distinct  and  separate  notice.  Questions  of  minor  consequence, 
and  matters  of  detailed  arrangement,  may  properly  be  reserved  for 
a  future  time,  when  the  provisions  of  the  bill  intended  to  be  sub- 
mitted to  the  Imperial  Parliament  shall  come  under  consideration. 
Her  Majesty's  Government  anticipate  no  serious  difficulty  in  this 
part  of  the  case,  since  the  resolutions  will  generally  be  found 


CONFEDERATION.  129 

sufficiently  explicit  to  guide  those  who  will  be  intrusted  with 
the  preparation  of  the  bill.  It  appears  to  them,  therefore,  that 
you  should  now  take  immediate  measures,  in  concert  with  the 
Lieutenant-Governors  of  the  several  Provinces,  for  submitting  to 
the  respective  Legislatures  this  project  of  the  Conference ;  and  if, 
as  I  hope,  you  are  able  to  report  that  these  Legislatures  sanction 
and  adopt  the  scheme,  Her  Majesty's  Government  will  render  you 
all  the  assistance  in  their  power  for  carrying  it  into  effect. 

It  will  probably  be  found  to  be  the  most  convenient  course  that, 
in  concert  with  the  Lieutenant-Governors,  you  should  select  a 
deputation  of  the  persons  best  qualified,  to  proceed  to  this  country, 
that  they  may  be  present  during  the  preparation  of  the  bill,  and 
give  to  Her  Majesty's  Government  the  benefit  of  their  counsel 
upon  any  questions  which  may  arise  during  the  passage  of  the 
measure  through  the  two  Houses  of  Parliament. 
I  have,  &c., 

(Signed)         E.  CARDWELL. 
Governor  Viscount  Monck,  <fcc.  &c.  &c. 

The  two  points  particularly  selected  for  reconsideration,  namely, 
the  prerogative  of  pardon  and  the  non-expansive  character  of  the 
Legislative  Council,  were  subsequently  remodelled  in  the  Confer- 
ence at  London  in  1867,  which  met  in  accordance  with  the  sugges- 
tion in  the  last  paragraph,  under  authority  of  the  several  Provincial 
Legislatures. 

The  otherwise  undoubted  sanction  of  Her  Majesty's  Govern- 
ment gave  great  strength  to  the  cause  of  Confederation,  and 
rendered  the  future  contest  simply  one  of  overcoming  local  preju- 
dices in  the  several  constituencies  of  the  Provinces.  The  change 
was  to  be  of  voluntary  adoption,  without  coercion,  or  even  the 
threat  of  coercion,  by  the  dominant  authority.  A  more  bloodless 
revolution  never  was  brought  about.  The  foundations  of  an  empire 
were  laid  in  peace,  and  the  future  prosperity  and  greatness  of  their 
country  was  left  entirely  to  the  colonists  themselves,  under  the 
fostering  care  of  the  parent  state.  Whatever  charges  may  be 
brought  against  Great  Britain,  whatever  other  nations  may  say,  or 
the  dark  pages  of  past  history  record  of  her  tyranny,  her  power  > 


130  CONFEDERATION. 

or  her  pride,  by  the  Canadian  her  name  will  be  venerated,  and 
her  conduct  on  this  occasion  be  pointed  to  by  the  future  genera- 
tions of  the  Dominion  as  an  instance  without  parallel,  of  a  great 
country,  under  no  compulsion,  conceding  privileges,  and  consoli- 
dating powers,  which  might  at  some  future  day  be  used  to  her 
disadvantage — of  a  great  country  relying  upon  the  justness  of  her 
intentions  and  the  soundness  of  her  principles,  without  regard  to 
what  might  be  the  consequences  to  herself,  in  the  diminution  of 
authority,  or  the  contraction  of  her  domain. 

The  English  press  was  not  less  outspoken.  Almost  on  the  same 
day,  as  if  the  national  pulse  were  vibrating  to  the  same  sensation, 
from  England  and  from  Scotland  came  words  of  cheer.  It  is 
well,  they  should  not  be  forgotten.  The  Conference  was  at  this 
time  sitting  in  Quebec,  and  amid  the  Anglo-Saxon  races  of  the  old 
and  the  new  world  the  subject  engaged  attention.  What  had 
occurred  in  the  Convention  at  Charlottetown,  and  the  subsequent 
meetings  at  Halifax  and  St.  John  during  the  previous  month,  was 
then  well  known  in  England,  and  the  favorable  comments  which 
came  across  the  Atlantic  to  the  delegates  at  Quebec,  added  to  the 
zeal  with  which  they  pressed  on  the  work.  No  doubt  was  left  that 
if  they  could  arrange  the  details  in  a  way  satisfactory  to  their 
several  Provinces,  public  opinion  would  sustain  them  on  the  gene- 
ral question  in  England.  In  after  years  this  record  of  the  impres- 
sions of  the  day  may  be  interesting  if  not  useful.  A  rebellion 
was  no  longer j  necessary  to  waken  the  public  mind  in  the  old 
country  to  the  affairs  of  the  colonies  in  the  new,  and  the  message 
was  conveyed  to  them  in  very  unequivocal  terms,  that  they  could, 
without  interference  from  the  mother  country,  shape  their  future 
course  in  the  way  they  thought  best  for  their  own  interests — con- 
nected, if  they  chose  to  remain ;  separated,  if  they  preferred  to  be. 

The  London  Daily  Telegraph,  which  its  special  commissioner  in 
Canada,  Mr.  Sala,  stated  had  a  daily  circulation  of  120,000,  and 
represented  an  influential  phase  of  public  opinion  in  England, 
observed  in  its  issue  of  the  12th  of  October,  1864  : 

"  Seldom  has  there  been  held  a  more  important  conference  of 
statesmen  than  that  which  assembled  recently  at  Halifax  to  con- 


CONFEDERATION.  131 

sider  the  proposed  federation  of  the  British  North  American  Pro- 
vinces, On  their  deliberations  depends,  to  a  very  great  extent, 
the  future  of  a  country  which  possesses  magnificent  resources,  and 
which  contains  within  it  the  germs  of  a  mighty  empire.  The 
statesmen  of  British  North  America  have  conceived  the  grand 
idea  of  a  federation.  They  wish  to  build  up  a  nation  ;  but  they 
also  wish — and  this  is  the  true  imperial  justification  of  their 
scheme — to  have  this  nation  still  linked  by  the  closest  ties  to 
Great  Britain.  In  other  words,  they  have  no  notion  of  seceding  ; 
they  wish,  rather,  by  increasing  their  own  strength,  to  become 
worthier  members  of  the  central  state.  To  this  end  their  nota- 
bles have  met  together,  and  so  far  is  the  movement  from  having 
any  separatist  tendency,  that  it  received,  two  years  ago,  official 
encouragement  from  the  Imperial  Government.  Add  to  this  fact 
the  equally  significant  circumstance  that  the  officials  of  the  Pro- 
vinces and  the  Admiral  of  the  British  fleet  upon  the  American 
station  joined  in  the  recent  proceedings,  and  it  will  at  once  be 
seen  that  the  object  is  one  in  which  the  .mother  country  can. 
heartily  co-operate  with  her  thriving  children  across  the  Atlantic. 
It  may  be  possible  that  a  few  Canadians  would  prefer  incorpora- 
tion with  the  northern  portion  of  the  late  United  States  ;  but  the 
number  of  these  is  insignificant,  and  the  disloyal  faction  would 
at  once  be  overwhelmed  and  swept  away  by  the  creation  of  the 
new  confederacy.  We  must  not  forget  that,  granted  certain 
changes  in  American  politics,  the  enforcement  of  the  Monroe  doc- 
trine would  be  one  of  the  first  objects  sought  by  our  restless  cousins  : 
all  the  better  will  it  be,  by  welding  the  British  Provinces  into  one 
compact  nationality,  to  proclaim  at  once  that  we  regard  this 
famous  doctrine  as  an  insolent  threat,  which  we  hold  ourselves 
prepared  to  resist  by  force  of  aims. 

"  Firmly  believing  that  the  project  will  be  immensely  beneficial 
to  the  colonies,  we  are  convinced  that  it  will  be  equally  accept- 
able to  the  home  government.  As  the  matter  already  stands, 
England  is  committed  to  the  protection  of  every  acre  of  her  soil, 
be  it  on  the  Indus,  the  Murray,  the  St.  Lawrence,  or  the  Thames. 
Doubtless  the  responsibility  is  great ;  doubtless  the  work  is  ar- 
duous ;  but  the  duty  exists.  The  best  way,  indeed,  to  lighten  it 


132  CONFEDERATION. 

is  to  call  upon  our  colonies  themselves  to  take  measures  for  their 
own  defence,  assuring  them  that  whenever  the  odds  are  too  heavily 
against  them,  whenever  the  danger  becomes  serious,  we  pledge 
the  British  Empire  to  their  aid." 

The  London  News  of  October  12th,  1864,  remarked  upon  the 
inception  of  a  "  Great  British  American  Nation  : " 

"  Monday  last,  the  10th  of  October,  is  likely  to  prove  an  im- 
portant date  in  the  history  of  British  North  America.  It  was 
the  day  which  the  Governor-General  of  Canada,  acting  under  the 
authority  of  the  Imperial  Government,  had  appointed  for  a  formal 
conference  at  Quebec,  of  the  Governments  of  Canada,  Nova  Scotia, 
New  Brunswick,  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  for 
the  purpose  of  considering  and  agreeing  upon  a  complete  scheme 
for  embracing  all  those  Provinces  in  a  federal  union. 

"  *  *  *  It  is  proposed,  then,  to  organize  the  confederation 
at  first  in  three  sections,  of  which  Upper  Canada  will  form  one, 
Lower  Canada  another,  and  Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick,  Prince 
Edward  Island  and  Newfoundland  united  a  third.  The  reason 
for  separating  the  two  Canadas  will  occur  to  every  one  who  has 
followed  the  recent  history  of  those  Provinces.  The  scheme  of 
confederation  will  admit  of  the  subsequent  accession  of  the  North- 
west Territory,  British  Columbia  and  Vancouver  Island  ;  but  the 
work  immediately  in  hand  is  the  federal  union  of  the  Provinces 
we  have  enumerated. 

"  Happily  the  finances  of  the  various  Provinces  offer  no  insur- 
mountable obstacle  to  the  assumption  of  all  their  liabilities  and 
assets  by  the  federal  government,  inasmuch  as  the  debts  and 
annual  burdens  now  borne  by  the  people  of  the  several  Provinces 
are  pretty  nearly  equal,  and  the  revenue  of  each  is  somewhat  in 
excess  of  the  expenditure.  More  difference  of  opinion  exists  as  to 
the  constitution  of  the  local  or  sectional  legislative  assemblies. 
Some  are  for  two  chambers,  while  others  prefer  the  simplicity  of 
one  only ;  some  would  make  the  local  executive  responsible  to  the 
legislature  ;  others  desire  that  the  Lieutenant-Go veriior  and  9ther 
chief  officers  may  be  directly  elected  by  the  people.  As,  however, 


CONFEDERATION.  133 

it  is  not  absolutely  necessary  that  the  several  sections,  in  order  to 
bear  their  part  in  the  common  system,  should  be  organized  alike 
for  local  purposes,  differences  of  opinion  on  these  points  will  not 
seriously  obstruct  the  formation  of  the  general  union.  The  first 
requisite  in  the  constitution  of  the  confederation  is  that  the  powers 
of  government  be  so  distributed  between  tho  federal  and  sectional 
authorities,  that  each  portion  of  the  whole  shall  feel  that  its  local 
interests  are  safe  in  its  own  power,  while  the  strength  of  all  may 
be  combined  to  promote  the  general  prosperity. 

"  "We  see  no  reason  to  doubt  that  the  delegates  now  assembled 
at  Quebec  will  succeed  in  their  great  work,  and  having  done  so, 
they  will  have  constituted,  in  the  words,  thrice  repeated,  of  one 
of  the  ministers  of  Canada,  "  a  great  British  American  nation," 
redeemed  from  provinciality,  richly  endowed  and  secure  in  the 
present,  and  able  to  look  onward  with  confidence  to  the  future." 

The  Peterhead  Observer,  of  October  14th,  1864,  said  : 

"  The  leading  men  of  Canada  are  no  tardy  reformers.  Instead 
of  spending  years  in  aimless  controversy,  as  would  have  been  done 
at  home,  the  Governor  of  Canada  summoned  the  Colonial  Gover- 
nors to  a  conference  at  Quebec  on  the  10th  instant,  for  the 
'purpose  of  arranging  the  confederation  of  the  British  Provinces.' 
Of  course,  only  when  met  would  the  real  difficulties  be  fully 
realized,  but  then,  too,  would  they  be  grappled  with  by  earnest 
and  able  men.  It  is  a  remarkable  fact — indeed,  altogether  unpre- 
cedented— that  in  this  country  the  most  of  our  influential  j  ournals 
have  given  the  great  scheme  a  prompt  and  hearty  support ;  while 
generally  throughout  the  country  it  has  called  forth  deep  and 
genuine  sympathy.  We  can  assure  our  friends  in  Canada  that 
this  movement  is  watched  here  with  profound  interest,  and  that 
the  result  of  the  conference  at  Quebec  is  waited  for  with  an 
anxiety  only  greater  in  degree  among  those  whose  social  well- 
being  and  national  dignity  will  be  directly  and  mightily  affected. 
Some  narrow-minded  and  ungenerous  souls  have  characterized  the 
proposal  as  one  emanating  from  selfish  and  ambitious  men.  They 
see  in  it,  or  say  they  see  in  it,  the  '  germs'  of  an  entire  separation, 


134  CONFEDERATION. 

and  the  establishment  of  another  and  more  dangerous  enemy,  in 
the  shape  of  a  new  United  States.  Their  feeble  utterances  have 
scarcely  been  heard,  and  have  nowhere  been  heeded.  If  carried 
out  in  the  spirit  which  has  hitherto  distinguished  those  who  have 
hitherto  taken  the  initiative,  and  who  must  continue  to  take  the 
leading  part,  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  parent  country,  as 
well  as  the  Provinces,  will  be  directly  and  manifestly  benefited. 
The  nature  and  objects  of  this  proposed  confederation  of  the 
British  Provinces  have  been  more  than  once  discussed  in  these 
columns,  and  we  can  only  say  that  the  farther  they  are  developed, 
it  becomes  more  apparent  to  us  that  they  merit  the  active  sym- 
pathy of  all  who  have  faith  in  national  progress. 

*  #  *  *  •    # 

"  The  material  aspect  of  this  question  is  certainly  rather  im- 
pressive. Since  these  remarks  were  written,  we  see  it  stated  in  a 
southern  cotemporary  that  the  confederation  would  have  a  popu- 
lation little  short  of  four  millions,  with  half  a  million  able-bodied 
men  available  for  the  defence  of  the  country,  placing  them  before 
thirty-seven  out  of  forty-seven  sovereign  states.  Upward  of 
45,000,000  acres  are  held  by  colonists,  and  of  these  13,000,000 
are  under  cultivation.  The  crops,  according  to  the  estimate  of 
the  Hon.  George  Brown,  would  value  nearly  120,000,000  of 
dollars.  The  exports  of  fish  alone,  we  are  further  informed — and 
this  fact  is  peculiarly  interesting  to  us — amounts  to  ten  millions 
of  dollars,  and  those  of  timber  to  fifteen  millions.  The  total 
annual  exports  are  no  less  than  65,000,000  dollars,  and  the  im- 
ports are  of  an  equal  amount.  The  confederation  would  have  an 
annual  government  revenue  of  thirteen  millions  of  dollars.  These 
facts  afford  food  for  thought,  and  show  what  stuff  there  is  out  of 
which  to  make  a  nation." 

The  London  Stcvr  of  October  10th,  1864,  thus  spoke  : 

"  The  important  conferences  which  are  being  held  in  the  colo- 
nies of  British  North  America,  and  which  are  still  far  from 
having  terminated  their  weighty  labours,  have  under  considera- 
tion perhaps  the  most  momentous  question  which  can  stir  the 


CONFEDERATION.  135 

heart  of  a  great  community.  They  are  endeavouring  to  weld 
together  those  scattered  populations  which  have  heretofore  only 
been  united  in  their  allegiance  to  the  mother  country,  and  to  lay 
the  foundation  of  what  will  one  day  be  both  a  nation  and  an 
empire.  Up  to  the  present  moment  those  colonies  have  been 
divided — divided  not  less  by  rival  interests  and  unfriendly  tariffs 
than  by  geographical  lines  of  demarcation.  The  time  and  energy 
of  their  public  men  have  often  been  frittered  away  by  petty  con_ 
troversies,  instead  of  being  concentrated  on  objects  worthy  of  the 
high  destiny  which  lies  jbefore  the  inhabitants  of  a  country  that 
rivals  the  United  States  in  the  extent  of  its  superficial  area  and 
the  magnificence  of  its  resources.  Now  all  this  bids  fair  to  termi- 
nate. Adopting  for  their  motto  the  principle  that  union  is 
strength,  the  best  men  of  each  Province  and  of  all  parties  have 
combined  together  to  establish  a  grand  confederation  of  states, 
which  shall  combine  in  its  ample  folds  the  maritime  colonies  of 
Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick,  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward 
Island,  the  noble  cities  and  the  far-reaching  settlements  of  the  two 
Canadas,  and  the  vast  colonizable  regions  of  the  Hudson's  Bay 
Company  which  stretch  westward  to  the  Rocky  Mountains. 
Truly  the  scheme  is  a  grand  one,  and  as  wise  and  practical  in  its 
objects  as  it  is  bold  in  conception.  Happily,  too,  there  is  no  con- 
quest to  be  achieved,  no  blood  to  be  shed,  no  native  races  to  be 
exterminated,  no  Cortes  required  to  plant  his  cruel  banner  in  the 
halls  of  some  western  Montezuma.  The  new  empire  has  long 
been  occupied  by  Anglo-Saxon  communities,  who  have  carried 
with  them  British  enterprise  and  the  laws  and  institutions  of  the 
land  from  which  they  have  sprung,  and  who  now  desire  to  build 
up  a  nationality  which  shall  prove  a  source  of  strength  not  only 
to  themselves  but  to  the  empire  at  large.  As  we  have  before  had 
occasion  to  remark,  the  object  is  one  which  must  excite  the  deep- 
est sympathy  of  every  Englishman  who  prizes  the  greatness  of  his 
country  and  his  race." 

The  London  Times  of  October  15th,  1864,  observed  : 

"  The  American  press  has  for  a  long  time  given  us  the  fullest 
information  as  to  the  visions  which  float  before  the  eyes  of  the 


136  CONFEDERATION. 

politicians  of  the  North  with  reference  to  the  conclusion  of  the 
war.  That  event  they  regard,  110  doubt,  with  the  most  anxious 
desire  for  its  accomplishment ;  but  their  reasons  for  desiring  it  are 
very  peculiar,  and  well  worthy  our  attention.  They  look  forward 
to  the  time  when  the  North  and  South  having  been  by  some 
magical  process,  of  which  we  can  as  yet  form  no  idea,  welded  once 
more  together  into  a  single  harmonious  whole,  can  unite  together 
for  the  purpose  of  subjugating  the  colonies  of  Great  Britain. 
Even  the  South  herself,  as  we  are  informed  in  recent  letters,  while 
refusing  to  admit  the  probability  of  being  subdued,  consoles  itself 
for  the  possibility  of  defeat  by  the  agreeable  reflection  that  she 
could  in  that  case,  at  any  rate,  join  with  the  North  in  a  crusade 
against  England,  whom  she  seems  to  hate  worse  for  not  coming  to 
her  assistance  in  a  war  which  she  chose  to  enter  into  without  con- 
sulting us,  than  she  does  the  North  for  having  formed  a  benevo- 
lent project  for  her  extermination.  The  situation  of  the  colonies 
is  thus  exceedingly  critical ;  they  know  not  how  soon,  or  on  what 
pretext,  or  what  absence  of  pretext,  the  vast  armies  now  engaged 
in  mutual  destruction  may  unite  together  for  the  purpose  of  sub- 
jugating them. 

"  A  conference  has  been  held,  and  as  far  as  we  understand,  is 
still  sitting  at  Halifax.  Nothing  can  be  more  in  accordance  with 
the  interests  and  the  wishes  of  this  country  than  that  the  North 
American  colonies  should  gather  themselves  up  into  a  nation, 
which  should  be,  not  Canadian,  nor  Nova  Scotian,  but  British 
American.  Conscious  as  we  are  of  our  inability  to  protect  these 
colonies  by  land  in  case  of  war,  we  must  naturally  rejoice  at  any 
event  which  seems  to  place  them  in  a  position  in  which  they 
would  be  better  able  to  protect  themselves.  There  was  a  time,  no 
doubt,  when  the  uniting  of  the  colonies  in  a  single  state  would 
have  been  regarded  by  England  with  considerable  jealousy,  as 
forming  a  powerful  dependency  which  it  might  be  difficult  for  the 
mother  country  to  coerce  in  case  of  its  desire  for  separation ;  but 
the  difficulties  exist  no  longer.  We  have  freely,  and  I  hope  for- 
ever given  up  the  idea  of  retaining  our  discontented  colonies  by 
the  sword.  The  power  we  desire  to  exercise  is  entirely  a  moral 
one,  and,  strong  or  weak,  the  dependency  that  wishes  to  quit  us 


CONFEDERATION.  137 

has  only  solemnly  to  make  up  its  mind  to  that  effect.  *  *  *  We, 
looking  at  our  colonial  empire  from  the  central  seat  of  authorrity, 
are  apt  to  consider  it  as  an  organized  whole,  because  we  have 
clearly  denned  relations  with  each  part  of  it,  forgetting  that  each 
of  these  parts  has  no  common  relation  with  the  other.  It  is  time, 
at  least,  in  the  presence  of  so  powerful  a  military  state  as  the 
American  Union  has  become,  that  some  connection  between  the 
foreign  dominions  of  the  Queen  should  be  established.  In  our 
view  the  closer  the  connection  the  better.  Something,  doubtless, 
must  be  left  to  the  local  Assembly  of  each  Province ;  but  we  sin- 
cerely trust  that  the  precedent  followed  will  not  be  that  of  a  num- 
ber of  sovereign  states  delegating  certain  definite  functions  to  a 
central  congress,  but  rather  that  of  a  full  central  authority,  out  of 
the  powers  of  which  are  excepted  certain  municipal  functions. 
We  hope,  in  short,  that  everything  which  is  not  specially  assigned 
to  the  local  governments  will  be  central,  rather  than  that  every- 
thing not  assigned  to  the  central  government  will  be,  as  in  the 
United  States,  local." 

Practical  Scotland  spoke  her  views  with  equal  plainness. 
The  Glasgow  Mail,  October  14,  1864,  said  : 

"  The  project  which  contemplates  the  establishment  of  a  federal 
union  between  the  six  great  provinces  of  British  America,  wears 
a  stately  aspect.  Its  very  magnitude  gives  it  an  imposing  air, 
and  in  itself  proves  an  attraction.  In  an  age  of  little  men  and  of 
peddling  measures,  it  comes  upon  one  with  a  grateful  surprise  to 
find  a  scheme  of  such  breadth  and  scope  put  forward.  Even  as  a 
speculative  idea  it  is  sure  to  win  the  favourable  regard  of  every 
political  student,  who  has  imagination  and  foresight  enough  to 
keep  him  from  confounding  two  things  that  are  too  often  viewed 
as  identical — the  merely  paltry  and  the  truly  practical.  And  it  is 
no  mere  day-dream,  the  magnificent  conception  of  some  hair- 
brained  thinker.  It  possesses  solid  recommendations;  it  opens 
up  a  way  out  from  pressing  difficulties,  and  on  to  desirable  attain- 
ments; and  it  has  secured  the  warm  approval,  and  the  hearty 
advocacy  of  experienced  and  sagacious  men — men  who  are  really 
10 


1 38  CONFEDERATION. 

practical  in  the  proper  sense  of  that  much-abused  word.     It  now 
seems  that  a  Conference  at  Charlottetown,  attended  not  only  by 
representative  men  from  the  two  Canadas,  but  also  by  delegates 
from  Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick,  and  Prince  Edward  Island, 
have  unanimously  approved  it.     The  close  of  the  Conference  was 
signalised  in  true  British  fashion,   by  a  public  dinner,  held  in 
Halifax,  on  the  19th  ultimo.      Among  the  guests  were  Sir   R. 
Macdonnell,  the  Lieutenant-Governor  of  Nova  Scotia,   and  our 
countryman,  the  gallant   Sir  James  Hope,   the  Admiral  on  the 
station.     Speeches  were  made   by  Messrs.    Cartier,  Brown,   and 
Macdonald,  of  Canada ;  Tupper  and  Archibald,  of  Nova  Scotia ; 
Johnson  and   Gray,   of  New  Brunswick ;    D'Arcy  McGee,    the 
quondam  Young  Irelander,  who   is    now  Canadian  Minister  of 
Agriculture,  and  others — all  in  enthusiastic  praise  and  support 
of  the  scheme.     Particular  interest  attaches  to  sundry  pregnant 
words  let  fall  by  the  Lieutenant-Governor.     It  was  in  this  wise 
that  Sir  Richard  Macdonnell  spoke  :    '  I  have  already  alluded 
to  the  change  which  has  come  over  the  colonial  administration 
in  late  years — how  very  different  it  is  from  the  days  when  we 
lost   one  of  the  finest  portions  of  the  earth,   the  neighbouring 
States,  through  what  would  now  be  considered  very  great  ignor- 
ance of  the  first  principles  of   government,  and  very   culpable 
mismanagement.      Any   gentleman   serving   her  Majesty  in  the 
capacity  that  I  do,  must  feel  very  differently  from  what  one  would 
in  former  days.     He  is  not  sent  out  to  build  up  or  maintain  any 
monopoly  here  for  the  benefit  of  parties  in  England.     He  has  no 
such  mission  now ;    and  I  have  no  hesitation  in  saying  that  her 
Majesty's  Government,   though  for  obvious  reasons  unlikely  to 
initiate  any  scheme  of  union  amongst  you,  yet  looks  with  an 
affectionate  and  parental  interest  on  the  proceedings  which  you 
have  initiated.     Though  there  may  be  a  difference  of  opinion  as  to 
the  measures  which  you  are  considering,  her  Majesty's  Govern- 
ment, equally  with  yourselves,  is  desirous  that  you  should  agree 
upon  some  unity  of  action,  as  to  many  matters  in  which  you  have 
a  community  of  interest.     Her  Majesty's  Government  have  not 
forbidden  me  to  say  this  much,  and  I  believe  it  is  its  intention  to 
give  the  most  favourable  consideration  to  the  result  of  the  deliber- 


C  ONFEDERATION.  1 39 

/ 

ations  of  the  gentlemen  who  are  now  around  this  board.'  These 
are  frank  and  wise  words,  which  we  trust  Mr.  Cardwell,  or  who- 
ever comes  after  him  at  the  Colonial  Office,  will  be  called  on  to 
redeem.  They  indicate  the  only  course  which  a  patriotic  and 
sensible  Minister  could  think  of  pursuing.  Beyond  taking  care 
that  none  of  the  minor  colonies  are  coerced  into  the  proposal,  he 
has  no  duty  in  relation  to  it.  Their  freewill  he  is  bound  to 
protect ;  but  there  his  function  ends.  Nobody  can  doubt  that  a 
union  freely  formed,  resulting  in  one  system  of  laws,  a  single 
Parliament,  and  a  single  Ministry,  with  judicious  provision  for  the 
maintenance  of  local  powers,  would  be  a  vast  advantage  to  the 
colonies  themselves.  As  little  can  it  be  questioned  that  the 
change  would  be  advantageous  to  the  mother  country.  To  cite  but 
a  few  instances  of  the  benefits  that  must  needs  accrue  : — It  would 
be  attended  with  less  cost,  for  the  Federation,  while  presenting  a 
broader  area  for  internal  taxation,  would  be  stimulated  by  a 
proud  desire  to  do  without  British  help ;  it  would  be  attended 
with  less  trouble,  for  the  whole  brood  of  sectional  jealousies  would 
at  once  be  swept  out  of  the  ken  of  the  Colonial  Office,  which 
would  stand  face  to  face  with  a  Government,  strong  in  talent  and 
respectable  in  position — it  being  inevitable  in  such  a  case,  that  the 
ablest  men  should  come  to  the  top  ;  in  a  word,  it  would  set  a 
wholesome  example  of  how  to  deal  with  that  vexing  problem, 
which  lies  ahead  at  no  great  distance  in  other  cases  as  well  as  in 
this,  the  problem  of  how  to  transmute  a  jealous  dependency  into  a 
cordial  ally,  which,  though  retaining  mayhap  the  golden  link  of 
the  crown,  should  in  all  respects  evince  an  unbought  and  unforced 
loyalty,  an  allegiance  without  constraint,  co-operation  without 
coercion,  bonds  without  bondage,  the  only  fitting  guerdon  that 
freemen  should  care  to  seek  or  be  willing  to  yield  !" 

The  Caledonian  Mercury,  October  12,  1864,  said  : 

"  The  British  North  American  Confederation  project  continues 
to  make  hopeful  progress.  The  latest  Canadian  papers  bring 
intelligence  of  a  Conference  held  at  Charlottetown,  Prince  Edward 
Island,  and  attended  by  representatives  of  all  our  North  American 


140  CONFEDERATION. 

colonies,  the  proceedings  of  which,  so  far  as  they  had  gone,  must 
be  considered  as  highly  favourable  to  the  scheme.  It  is  true  that 
the  Conference  has  as  yet  given  forth  no  official  declaration  of  the 
results,  at  which  it  has  arrived  ;  but  its  most  prominent  members, 
at  an  important  banquet  given  in  their  honour  at  Halifax,  have 
stated  that  the  delegates  were  unanimously  of  opinion  that  it  is 
highly  desirable  that  all  the  British  colonies  in  North  America, 
should  be  united  in  one  Confederation.  This  is  so  far  good,  and 
we  trust  that  the  further  labours  of  the  Conference  will  be 
equally  successful.  The  most  difficult  part  of  the  task,  it  is  true, 
still  remains  to  be  done,  when  matters  of  detail,  interfering  possi- 
bly with  local  interests,  will  require  to  be  adjusted  ;  but  sectional 
prejudices  must  be  strong  indeed  if  they  render  abortive  a  plan, 
which  is,  beyond  all  question,  one  of  the  grandest  that  has  been 
proposed  for  the  adoption  of  any  people  within  this  generation. 
It  may  be  worth  while  to  look  again  at  this  scheme  for  a  British 
American  Confederation.  We,  in  the  old  country,  cannot  be 
indifferent  to  the  interests  of  our  colonies.  Their  interest,  in 
effect,  is  our  interest.  Their  prosperity  benefits  us,  and  their 
adversity  can  seldom  fail  to  re-act  more  or  less  injuriously  upon  us. 
We  think  it  will  not  be  difficult  to  show  that,  whether  we  look 
upon  the  proposal  from  a  colonial  or  from  an  imperial  point  of 
view,  the  proposal  of  a  Confederation  is  deserving  of  the  most 
hearty  support  from  all  concerned.  Our  North  American  colonies 
are  six  in  number — Upper  Canada,  Lower  Canada,  Nova  Scotia, 
New  Brunswick,  Newfoundland,  and  Prince  Edward  Island. 
Upper  and  Lower  Canada  might  as  well  have  been  separate,  for 
any  comfort  that  their  union,  on  unequal  terms,  in  1840  has  ever 
done  them.  They  are  separate  from  the  other  parts  of  British 
North  America,  which  again,  in  their  turn,  are  all  separate  from 
each  other.  They  are  separate  in  their  government  and  systems 
of  taxation.  They  fence  themselves  in  from  each  other  by  the 
barriers  of  high  protective  tariffs.  While  they  all  acknowledge 
their  common  allegiance  to  the  Queen,  they  nevertheless  treat 
each  other  pretty  much  as  if  they  were  dealing  with  foreigners 
and  aliens,  instead  of  fellow-subjects.  The  merchants  of  Halifax, 
where  the  delegates  to  the  Conference  were  so  hospitably  enter- 


CONFEDERATION.  141 

tallied,  cannot  send  their  wares  across  the  Bay  of  Fundy  without 
having  to  pay  customs  duties  at  St.  John.  The  Nova  Scotiaiis,  in 
their  turn,  do  not  fail  to  levy  their  mail  on  the  merchandise  of 
New  Brunswick,  when  it  seeks  entrance  within  their  ports.  The 
little  island  of  Prince  Edward,  again,  as  if  anxious  to  be  left 
alone  in  its  own  sovereign  dignity,  levies  a  tax  on  all  her  sister 
colonies,  who  venture  to  bring  her  commodities  which  she  cannot 
produce  for  herself ;  and  they  naturally  respond  to  such  a  policy 
by  subj  ectiiig  her  traders  to  a  tax  whenever  they  set  foot  within 
their  borders.  There  are  similar  terms  of  intercommunion 
between  Canada  and  the  smaller  colonies.  Certainly  this  is  by  no 
means  a  satisfactory  state  of  matters.  If  the  old-world  doctrines 
of  protection  are  absurd  anywhere,  it  is  assuredly  when  they 
interpose  barriers  in  the  way  of  the  free  intercourse  of  citizens  of 
the  same  kingdom.  Free-trade  may  have  its  difficulties,  as 
between  one  nation  and  another;  but  surely  the  most  bigoted 
Tory  would  never  object  to  its  being  carried  out  to  the  full  within 
the  bounds  of  his  own  country.  It  is  not  only,  however,  as 
regards  this  matter  of  customs  that  the  position  of  our  North 
American  colonies  is  incongruous,  and  calls  for  a  change  such  as 
that  proposed.  While  they  have  so  many  common  interests,  they 
have  no  common  action.  Some  of  the  speakers  at  the  banquet 
put  great  stress  upon  the  question  of  defence  against  a  possible 
attack  by  the  United  States.  While  we  believe  that  any  fear  of 
this  kind  is  utterly  chimerical,  we  are  still  of  opinion  that  these 
colonies  ought  to  be  in  such  a  position  that  they  would  be  able  to 
use  the  resources  which  they  do  possess,  and  which,  under  a 
united  government,  would  be  readily  forthcoming  for  their  com- 
mon defence  against  any  enemy  whatsoever.  Instead  of  being 
half  a  dozen  inconsiderable  colonies,  not  one  of  which  would  have 
any  weight  in  the  councils  of  the  world,  the  people  of  British 
America  may,  .by  means  of  this  scheme  of  a  Confederation, 
become  a  great  and  powerful  state.  The  separate  governments, 
under  which  these  colonies  live,  have  hitherto  answered  no  pur- 
pose that  might  not  have  been  better  served  under  a  common 
government ;  while,  on  the  other  hand,  they  have  produced  and 
perpetuated  causes  of  division  and  mischief.  Brought  under  a 


142  CONFEDERATION. 

common  government,  they  would  at  once  attain  to  the  dignity  of  a 
nation.  With  a  population  little  short  of  four  millions,  and  with 
half  a  million  able-bodied  men,  available  for  the  defence  of  the 
country,  they  would  rank  before  thirty-seven  out  of  the  forty- 
eight  sovereign  States  of  Europe.  Then,  what  scope  they  have 
alike  for  the  increase  of  their  population,  and  the  extension  of 
their  territory !  The  Old  World  States  have  bounds  which  they 
cannot  pass,  while  the  British  American  colonies,  after  they  have 
filled  up  their  as  yet  thinly-peopled  territories,  will  have  still 
before  them  an  opening  for  their  enterprise  towards  the  north- 
west. The  agriculture  and  commerce  of  the  Confederation  would 
be  as  imposing  as  its  population.  *  * 

"  Statistics  go  to  show  that  if  our  North  American  colonies 
would  heartily  adopt  the  scheme  of  a  Confederation,  they  would 
at  once  take  up  a  prominent  and  important  position  on  the  map 
of  America  and  of  the  world.  If  there  is  anything  to  fear 
from  the  United  States — that  great  bugbear  of  the  governing 
classes  of  this  country,  and  of  some  Canadian  politicians  of  the 
official  home  type — they  would  be  able  to  hold  their  own  against 
any  invasion.  In  the  peaceful  domains  of  commerce  they  would 
be  the  best  customers  of  the  United  States ;  and  both  nations 
would  find  the  advantage  of  free  intercourse  and  unrestricted 
trade.  The  strength  that  is,  under  the  present  system,  to  a  great 
extent  frittered  away  to  little  purpose,  would  by  union  accomplish 
much  for  the  common  good..  While  there  would  be  no  invasion 
of  the  privileges  of  local  self-government,  the  machinery  of  half  a 
dozen  petty  administrations  would  be  advantageously  replaced  by 
one  common  central  Government  for  the  whole  Confederation. 
There  would  probably  be  a  saving  in  point  of  expense,  as  well  as 
a  gain  in  point  of  efficiency.  The  advantages  that  would  be 
reaped  from  the  free  interchange  of  trade  can  hardly  be  exag- 
gerated. If  free  trade,  indeed,  were  to  be  the  only  result  of 
union,  the  adoption  of  the  Confederation  scheme  would  be  highly 
desirable,  even  on  this  one  account.  Union  and  free  trade  among 
these  colonies  imply  each  other.  When  they  become  one  State, 
their  interests  are  recognised  to  be  identical,  and  customs  duties 
between  one  part  of  the  Confederation  and  another  would  be  as 


CONFEDERATION.  143 

incongruous  as  between  Lancashire  and  Yorkshire.  Thus,  by  the 
free  interchange  of  their  productions,  the  wealth  of  all  parts 
of  the  Confederation  will  be  increased,  and  their  growing  pros- 
perity will  not  fail  to  give  an  impetus  to  the  trade  of  the  mother 
country.  If  any  of  our  brethren  in  British  America  have  the 
idea  that  we  on  this  side  of  the  water  look  with  the  slightest 
jealousy  on  this  scheme  of  Confederation,  they  labour  under  a 
great  mistake.  The  people  of  Britain  will  hail  with  much  satis- 
faction the  establishment  of  such  a  Confederation.  It  will  make 
the  American  colonies  stronger  and  more  independent,  and  will 
prepare  them  for  the  day — we  unite  with  them  in  wishing  that  it 
may  be  far  distant — when  they  shall  resolve  to  stand  alone.  We 
suppose  that  the  arrival  of  such  day  is  inevitable,  and  it  would  be 
well  for  the  colonists  to  be  beginning  to  know  their  own  strength. 
United  in  a  great  British  American  Confederation,  with — if  they 
please — a  Prince  of  our  Royal  Family  for  their  head,  they  would 
at  once  take  the  position  of  a  powerful  nation.  Instead  of  being 
a  source  of  weakness  to  the  parent  country,  as  in  times  of  trouble 
our  scattered  colonies  so  often  are,  British  America  might  prove 
not  only  an  outlet  for  the  millions  for  whom  we  have  not  room 
and  work  at  home,  and  a  profitable  market  for  our  commerce,  but 
might  be  found,  if  need  be,  ready  to  fight  side  by  side  with  us 
against  '  the  three  cornel's  of  the  world  in  arms.' " 

The  London  Economist  of  November  26th,  1864,  which  is  an 
able  and  influential  exponent  of  public  opinion,  contained  the  fol- 
lowing article  upon  the  text  of  the  Federal  Constitution  for  the 
British  American  colonies  : 

"  The  thirty-three  delegates  of  the  British  American  Colonies 
have  completed  their  work,  and  have  published  the  basis  of  the 
federal  scheme  which  they  intend  to  submit  to  the  Imperial 
Government.  When  revised  and  accepted  by  the  cabinet,  it  will 
be  presented  to  Parliament,  we  imagine  very  much  in  the  form  of 
a  treaty,  to  be  accepted  or  rejected  en  bloc,  and  will  then  finally  be 
referred  to  the  colonial  legislatures,  for  a  vote  which  must  of  course 
be  a  simple  yes  or  no.  Six  Provinces — Upper  Canada,  Lower 
Canada,  New  Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia,  Prince  Edward  Island, 


144  CONFEDERATION. 

and  Newfoundland — will,  it  is  believed,  accept  it,  but  provision  is 
made  for  the  adhesion  of  all  the  North  American  Colonies  from 
Maine  to  the  Pacific.  The  resolutions,  which  are  full  and  very  well 
considered,  do  not  modify  greatly  the  information  already  placed 
before  our  readers  ;  but  there  is  a  great  difference  between  deduc- 
tions from  after-dinner  speeches  and  draft  bills,  and  we  may  per- 
form an  acceptable  service  to  our  readers  by  describing  from  the 
official  record  the  machinery  selected  for  the  last  new  effort  at  the 
manufacture  of  empires. 

"JThe  object  of  the  American  colonists,  it  is  clear  from  every 
clause  of  the  resolutions,  is  to  form  a  Nation  and  not  a  Union. 
They  have  been  obliged  upon  points  to  differ  as  to  sectional 
jealousies  and  fears ;  but  they  have  not  given  way  in  any  direc- 
tion, save  one,  to  the  desire  of  small  communities  for  indepen- 
dence. From  the  very  beginning  each  colony  that  accepts  the 
scheme  avowedly  surrenders  its  claim  to  independence,  declares 
itself  by  act  of  its  local  parliament  a  province — a  part,  that  is,  of 
a  much  greater  whole.  It  will  lose  its  separate  Governor  respon- 
sible only  to  Great  Britain,  and  receive  one  appointed  by  the 
1  Acadian  '  ministry ;  while,  though  it  retains  its  separate  legisla- 
ture, the  powers  of  that  body  will  be  reduced  to  very  narrow 
dimensions.  It  will  still  be  absolute  in  the  domain  of  civil  law, 
commercial  legislation  excepted  ;  it  may  still  impose  direct  taxes, 
and  provide  for  all  municipal  works  and  events,  but  the  right  of 
criminal  legislation,  of  fixing  custom  duties,  of  levying  general 
taxes,  of  arranging  great  public  works,  of  appointing  judges,  of 
providing  defences,  of  doing  anything  which  can  in  any  way  be 
considered  of  national  importance,  is  surrendered.  Moreover, 
even  within  its  limited  sphere  every  act  must  be  submitted  to 
the  general  government ;  and  even  should  the  measure  not  be 
disallowed,  it  only  runs  subject  to  the  general  principle  that,  in 
the  event  of  collision  between  a  provincial  and  a  national  law,  the 
courts  are  to  act  only  upon  the  latter.  The  federation,  it  will  be 
evident,  is  not  one  to  be  composed  of  sovereign  states, 

"All  the  powers  thus  surrendered,  and  all  to  which,  saving  the 
Queen's  prerogative,  an  independent  nation  can  lay  claim,  are 
transferred  to  a  central  authority,  as  unlike  that  existing  at 


CONFEDERATION.  145 

Washington  as  it  is  well  possible  to  conceive.  It  will  consist,  in. 
the  first  place,  of  a  Viceroy  appointed  by  the  Crown,  wielding  all 
the  powers  of  the  Crown,  protected  like  the  Crown  from  attack 
or  removal,  and  fettered  like  the  Crown  by  the  necessity  of 
acting  through  ministers  responsible  to  parliament.  This  parlia- 
ment is  composed  of  an  Upper  House  to  be  called  the  Council, 
and  composed  of  seventy-six  members  selected  by  the  Crown 
for  life,  in  proportion  of  twenty-four  for  Upper  and  twenty- 
four  for  Lower  Canada,  ten  for  Nova  Scotia,  ten  for  New  Bruns- 
wick, four  for  Prince  Edward  Island,  and  four  for  Newfoundland, 
the  immense  number  given  to  Lower  Canada  in  proportion  to  its 
resources  being  a  concession  to  the  French  element  which  in  the 
Lower  House  will  be  overborne.  In  that  House  the  basis  is  to  be 
population,  arranged  on  the  fixed  idea  that  Lower  Canada  is  to 
have  sixty-five  members  always.  When,  therefore  a  Province 
amounts  to  double  her  numbers,  it  will  have  one  hundred  and 
thirty  members,  the  present  proportions  being  : 

Upper  Canada, 82 

Lower  Canada 65 

Nova  Scotia 19 

New  Brunswick . 15 

Newfoundland 8 

Prince  Edward  Island 5 

"  The  object  with  which  this  number  has  been  settled  is  appa- 
rent at  a  glance.  The  constitution  has  been  arranged  to  meet 
the  susceptibilities  of  the  Lower  Province,  and  Upper  Canada  is 
not  mistress  of  the  situation  as  against  Lower  Canada,  unless  she 
can  gain  over  more  than  one  other  entire  colony.  This  Central 
Government,  thus  constituted,  will,  acting  through  responsible 
ministers,  make  all  laws  required  for  the  '  welfare  and  good 
government '  of  the  nation,  all  laws  on  criminal  matters,  com- 
merce, currency,  banking,  immigration,  marriage  and  divorce,  and 
all  subjects  not  specially  named  in  the  constitution.  It  will  have 
the  entire  control  of  taxation,  internal  and  external,  of  the  na- 
tional defences,  local  militia  included,  of  the  post,  and  of  all  inter- 
provincial  means  of  communication,  will  appoint  all  judges  (who 
are  to  be  irremoveable),  exercise  generally  all  except  really  local 


140  CONFEDERATION. 

patronage,  and  possess  the  right  of  annulling  within  twelve 
months  any  act  of  the  Provincial  Councils.  These  powers  are 
very  extensive — may,  indeed,  be  easily  so  interpreted  as  to  meet 
all  likely  contingencies ;  but  then  nations  are  killed  by  unlikely 
contingencies  ;  and  we  would  still  advise  the  Canadians  to  submit 
to  the  insertion  by  Mr.  Card  well  of  one  more  clause,  enabling  the 
Viceroy  and  his  ministry,  in  time  of  rebellion  or  visible  emergency, 
to  '  proclaim  '  any  district  or  province,  and  while  it  remains  pro- 
claimed, to  exercise  absolute  authority  therein.  On  some  such 
provision  we  trust  Mr.  Cardwell  will  insist,  and  we  think  it  is 
the  only  one  in  which  parliament  should  interfere.  The  principle 
being  granted,  there  is  nothing  in  any  of  these  details  which  should 
offend  the  mother  country,  and  much  to  gratify  her  pride  and 
benefit  her  interest.  The  delegates  affirm  in  their  very  preamble 
that  their  first  object  is  to  perpetuate  their  connection  with  the 
mother  country,  they  jealously  reserve  the  prerogative  throughout 
their  arrangements,  they  specify  that  the  constitution  requires  the 
assent  of  the  Imperial  Parliament,  and  they  insert  this  invaluable 
clause  into  their  fundamental  law  :  *  All  engagements  that  may  be 
entered  into  with  the  Imperial  Government  for  the  defence  of  the 
country  shall.be  assumed  by  the  Confederation.'  That  clause 
gives  us  the  right  to  call  on  the  Canadians  as  allies  under  contract 
to  perform  their  due  share  in  the  work  of  their  own  defence,  and 
removes  the  anomaly  under  which  we  are  bound  to  defend  men 
who  may  refuse  to  help  us — who  may  shut  out  our  trade,  and 
decline  any  assistance  to  our  revenue.  It  is  not,  that  we  know 
of,  the  duty  of  parliament  to  see  that  its  colonial  allies  choose  con- 
stitutions such  as  Englishmen  approve  ;  but  even  if  it  were,  the 
ministry  could  not  object  to  a  scheme  which,  except  in  the  essen- 
tial point  of  the  absolute  authority  reposed  in  the  central  legislature, 
is  a  counterpart  of  their  own.  They  may  recommend  certain 
modifications,  such,  for  instance,  as  the  insertion  in  the  act  of  the 
provincial  constitutions,  left  by  the  delegates'  resolutions  to  the 
provinces  themselves,  but  they  are  not  bound  to  press  any  point 
not  of  pressing  imperial  interest. 

"  There  is,  however,  one  for  which  no  provision  is  made,  and 
for  which  a  clause  will  one  day  be  urgently  required.     This  is  the 


CONFEDERATION.  147 

matter  of  boundaries.  The  Acadians  expect  to  induce  tlie  people 
of  the  Pacific  colonies,  and,  perhaps,  the  settlers  on  the  territory 
now  held  by  the  Hudson's  Bay  Company,  to  enter  into  their 
compact ;  but  they  have  made  no  provision  for  the  settlement  of 
boundaries.  Vancouver's  Island,  for  example,  might  like  to  stay 
out,  while  its  mainland  dependencies  might  like  to  go  in,  and  who 
is  to  settle  that  quarrel  ?  The  vast  expanse  of  the  interior,  too,  is 
entirely  without  demarcations,  and  some  appellate  authority  should 
be  provided  in  case  of  serious  dispute.  That  authority  must,  of 
course,  be  the  Queen  in  Council,  and  the  new  Act,  which  may  be 
interpreted  a  hundred  years  hence  word  by  word  by  statesmen 
who  see  imperial  interests  depending  on  its  construction,  should 
contain  some  definite  provision  for  the  difficulty.  Inter-co- 
lonial questions,  too,  such  as  have  sprung  up  between  New 
South  Wales  and  Victoria,  should  be  generally  reserved,  so  that 
no  ministry,  strong  in  its  new  militia,  its  maritime  power,  and  its 
semi-independence,  should  be  able  to  commence  a  legislative  war- 
fare with  a  colony  outside  its  authority." 

Upon  the  general  features  of  the  scheme  the  Liverpool  Journal 
has  the  following  : 

"  The  exercise  of  the  franchise  in  the  union  encourages  the 
belief  that  the  federation  of  the  British  colonies  in  North  America 
would  be  followed  by  the  best  possible  consequences.  The  Cana- 
dians themselves  have  arrived  at  that  conclusion  ;  and  it  may  be 
regarded  by  her  Majesty's  ministers  in  this  country  as  a  proceed- 
ing absolutely  required  to  enable  our  trans-atlantic  colonies  to  put 
themselves  in  a  position  to  render  it  unnecessary  that  they  should 
desire  or  require  any  assistance  from  the  mother  country.  The 
new  federation  in  Canada  will  extend  over  territories — or  may  be 
made  to  extend  over  territories — much  larger  than  those  of  the 
United  States  ;  but  it  may  be  observed  that  the  United  States  go 
far  to  the  South,  and  are  not  affected  as  Canada  is,  and  ever  will 
be,  by  a  winter  of  frost.  The  disadvantage  of  a  Canadian  winter 
will,  however,  in  all  probability  be  overcome  by  the  federation  of 
the  inland  and  maritime  colonies." 


148  CONFEDERATION. 

Equally  cheering  were  the  observations  of  the  more  enlightened 
portions  of  the  American  Press — and  prominent  among  all — must 
stand  forth  the  expressions  of  Mr.  Seward,  one  of  the  greatest 
statesmen  of  the  Republic  : 

"  Hitherto,  in  common  with  most  of  my  countrymen,  as  I  sup- 
pose, I  have  thought  Canada,  or,  to  speak  more  accurately,  British 
America,  a  mere  strip  lying  north  of  the  United  States,  easily 
detachable  from  the  parent  state,  but  incapable  of  sustaining  itself, 
and  therefore  ultimately,  nay,  right  soon,  to  be  taken  by  the 
Federal  Union,  without  materially  changing  or  affecting  its  own 
condition  or  development.  I  have  dropped  the  opinion  as  a 
national  conceit.  I  see  in  British  North  America,  stretching,  as 
it  does,  across  the  continent,  from  the  shores  of  Labrador  and 
Newfoundland  to  the  Pacific,  and  occupying  a  considerable  belt  of 
the  temperate  zone,  traversed  equally  with  the  United  States  by 
the  lakes,  and  enjoying  the  magnificent  shores  of  the  St.  Lawrence, 
with  its  thousands  of  islands  in  the  river  and  gulf,  a  region  grand 
enough  for  the  seat  of  a  great  empire — in  its  wheat  fields  in  the 
west,  its  broad  ranges  of  the  chase  at  the  north,  its  inexhaustible 
lumber  lands — the  most  extensive  now  remaining  on  the  globe — 
its  invaluable  fisheries,  and  its  yet  undisturbed  mineral  wealth. 
I  find  its  inhabitants  vigorous,  hardy,  energetic,  perfected  by  the 
Protestant  religion  and  British  constitutional  liberty.  I  find  them 
jealous  of  the  United  States  and  of  Great  Britain,  as  they  ought  to 
be ;  and,  therefore,  when  I  look  at  their  extent  and  resources,  I 
know  that  they  can  neither  be  conquered  by  the  former  nor 
permanently  held  by  the  latter.  They  will  be  independent,  as 
they  are  already  self-maintaining.  Having  happily  escaped  the 
curse  of  slavery,  they  will  never  submit  themselves  to  the  do- 
minion of  slaveholders,  which  prevails  in,  and  determines  the 
character  of,  the  United  States.  They  will  be  a  Russia  to  the 
United  States,  which  to  them  will  be  France  and  England.  But 
they  will  be  a  Russia  civilized  and  Protestant,  and  that  will  be  a 
very  different  Russia  from  that  which  fills  all  Southern  Europe 
with  terror,  and  by  reason  of  that  superiority,  they  will  be  the 
more  terrible  to  the  dwellers  in  the  Southern  latitudes. 


CONFEDERATION.  14& 

"  Tlie  policy  of  the  United  States  is  to  propitiate  and  secure 
the  alliance  of  Canada  while  it  is  yet  young  and  incurious  of  its 
future.  But,  on  the  other  hand,  the  policy  which  the  United 
States  actually  pursues  is  the  infatuated  one  of  rejecting  and 
spurning  vigorous,  perennial,  and  ever-growing  Canada,  while 
seeking  to  establish  feeble  States  out  of  decaying  Spanish  pro- 
vinces on  the  coast,  and  in  the  islands  of  the  Gulf  of  Mexico.  I 
shall  not  live  to  see  it,  but  the  man  is  already  born  who  will  see 
the  United  States  mourn  over  this  stupendous  folly,  which  is  only 
preparing  the  way  for  ultimate  danger  and  downfall.  All  Southern 
political  stars  must  set,  though  many  times  they  rise  again  with 
diminished  splendour.  But  those  which  illuminate  the  pole  re- 
main forever  shining,  forever  increasing  in  splendour." 

The  Boston  Commercial  Bulletin  after  remarking  on  the  friendly 
feeling  of  Canada  towards  the  United  States,  adds  : 

"  But  any  one  who  undertakes  to  travel  in  this  part  of  the 
British  Provinces  will  soon  become  disabused  of  the  erroneous 
idea,  if  he  has  ever  harboured  it,  that  this  amicable  feeling  and 
desire  for  free  commercial  intercourse,  on  the  part  of  the  Canadian 
population,  has  anything  to  do  with  politics  or  a  spirit  of  annex- 
ation. Politically  speaking,  they  are  thoroughly  loyal  to  their 
home  and  local  governments.  They  have  no  reason  for  discontent 
on  that  score;  they  fully  believe  themselves  to  be  in  the  enjoy- 
ment of  the  most  liberal,  free  and  paternal  government  upon  the 
face  of  the  earth,  and  they  can  raise  no  objection  to  it  which  does 
not  apply  with  equal  and  even  greater  force  in  any  new  relation. 

t(  The  English  portion  of  the  people  are  proud  of  their  nationality 
and  do  not  wish  to  change  it ;  while  the  French  population  of 
Lower  Canada  are  still  more  attached  to  the  traditions  and 
institutions  of  the  Old  World,  and,  if  they  changed  at  all,  would 
prefer  to  return  to  the  alliance  of  la  belle  France.  To  be  sure, 
there  is  a  liberal  sprinkling  of  Americans  from  the  Northern 
States,  who  have  emigrated  across  the  border  from  purely  business 
motives.  But  they  are  equally  satisfied  to  let  well  enough  alone ; 
and  though  they  do  not  mix  or  assimilate  readily  with  the 


150  CONFEDERATION. 

extreme    European   element,    they    are   by   110   means  the    most 
ardent  partisans  of  annexation. 

"  The  only  political  scheme  which  excites  much  interest  in  that 
quarter  is  the  proposed  Confederation,  which,  though  at  first 
meeting  with  strenuous  opposition,  especially  from  the  Maritime 
Provinces,  is  now  slowly  but  surely  gaining  ground,  with  a  better 
understanding  of  its  financial  bearings,  and  aided  by  the  influence 
of  leading  politicians  and  the  home  government.  There  can  be 
little  doubt  that  this  scheme,  for  a  consolidation  of  British 
America  upon  a  basis  nearly  akin  to  the  American  Union,  (except 
in  the  tenure  and  appointment  of  some  of  its  chief  officers,)  will 
be  successfully  consummated.  This  will  put  at  rest  the  question 
of  annexation  now  being  agitated  with  us  to  defeat  a  liberal  com- 
mercial policy,  and  certain  much  needed  measures  of  internal  im- 
provement. Hence,  combining  all  the  elements  of  a  great  and 
/  independent  nationality,  we  must  learn  to  look  upon  Canada  as  an 
integral  part  of  that  Northern  empire  which  must  hereafter  form 
one  of  the  political  divisions  of  this  continent,  and  frame  our  foreign 
policy  with  a  view  to  live  in  peace  and  amity  with  the  kindred 
races  which  will  be  gathered  to  its  bosom." 

Thus  on  every  side  the  advantages  of  Confederation  were  seen. 
It  was  opposed  by  some  whose  views  were  bounded  by  consider- 
ations of  sectional  interest— ^by  others  again — who,  it  is  feared, 
permitted  their  allegiance  to  party,  to  over-ride  their  perceptions  of 
duty  to  the  country — but  the  clear  common  sense  of  the  main 
body  of  the  people  of  the  Provinces  in  turn  rose  superior  to  such 
influences — and  with  overwhelming  strength  pronounced  in  favor 
of  the  movement. 


[151] 


CHAPTER  VI. 

The  Situation — Relative  position  of  Great  Britain  and  the  B.  N.  American 
Provinces  as  to  the  internal  government  of  the  latter — As  to  Trade  Re- 
lations with  Foreign  Countries — Despatch  to  Lord  Elgin,  December, 
1846 — Objection  to  policy  by  manufacturing  interests  in  England  and 
Scotland — Reiteration  of  policy  by  the  Imperial  Government — Excep- 
tional and  liberal  conduct  towards  the  Provinces  in  matters  of  Recipro- 
city with  the  United  States — Position  of  Inter-Provincial  Trade — Objec- 
tions to  Confederation  from  different  stand-points — Political  aspect — 
Misapprehension  in  England  on  the  severance  of  Canada  from  Great 
Britain — Observations  in  trie  'Imperial  Parliament — Mr.  Roebuck — Mr. 
Adderley — Sir  Cornwall  Lewis — Mr.  D 'Israeli — Lord  Palmerston,  and 
Mr.  Baring — The  Times —Pamphlets — Irritative  effect  in  Canada — 
Examination  of  the  subject — Position  20  years  hence — Views  of  the  "  Com- 
mittee on  Commerce"  of  the  House  of  Representatives  of  the  United 
States — Free  Trade  Policy  of  Canada — Hincks — Imports — Exports — 
Character  of  Comparison — Breadstuffs  to  England — Change  in  17  years 
— Export  trade  to  the  United  States — Change — Effect  6n  British  producer 
— Tea  trade— Affected  by  Pacific  Rail  way--- Returns — Pumpelly  on 
Russian  Asiatic  Trans-continental  Railway — Canada  as  a  market — United 
States  diminution  of  shipping — Internal  trade — Merger  of  Canada  in  the 
United  States— Loss  of  Asiatic  trade  to  England — Action  of  United  States 
not  to  be  tested  by  ordinary  rules  of  reasoning — Interest  of  Canada  as 
separate — Intercontinental  carrying  trade — Effect  of  separation  upon  Great 
Britain  in  case  of  war — Canadian  neutrality — Effect  on  Canada — Loss — 
Loss  greater  t6  Great  Britain — Mutual  interest  to  continue  the  connection 
— Blackwood — Letter  of  an  American  statesman. 

Before  proceeding  to  the  consideration  of  the  reception  which 
the  proposition  for  Confederation  met  with  in  the  different  Pro- 
vinces, it  would  be  as  well  briefly  to  review  the  position  of  the. 
Provinces  in  reference  to  Great  Britain — a  position,  it  is  not 
going  too  far  to  say — entirely  anomalous,  and  without  parallel  in 
the  history  of  any  colonial  dependencies.  The  mother  country 
had  entirely  abjured  the  right  of  interference  in  any  matters  of 
local  concern.  Each  Province  regulated  its  own  internal  affairs 
in  accordance  with  the  wishes  of  its  own  inhabitants  as  expressed 
through  their  own  representatives  in  their  own  Legislatures.  The 
Crown  had  not  the  power  of  appointment  of  a  single  officer, 
except  the  immediate  representative  of  the  Sovereign  in  the  person 
of  the  Governor  General  or  the  Lieutenant-Governors.  From  the 
Constable  to  the  Chief  Justice,  from  the  tide  waiter  to  the  Col- 


152  CONFEDERATION. 

lector,  from  the  Curate  to  the  Bishop,  from  the  youngest  clerk 
in  every  department,  to  its  chief,  the  people  in  their  various 
municipal,  corporate,  legislative  or  executive  capacities  had  the 
sole  and  absolute  power  of  appointment.  No  shilling  raised  from 
their  taxation  could  be  devoted  without  their  consent  to  any  pur- 
pose outside  of  their  own  Province,  and  no  taxation  for  any 
purpose  could  be  imposed  upon  them  by  any  authority  except  their 
own. 

On  the  other  hand  for  local  or  internal  purposes  Great  Britain 
was  relieved  of  all  expenses  on  their  account — she  was  not  called 
upon  to  pay  the  salary  or  charges  of  a  single  person — employed 
for  their  benefit.  The  salaries  of  the  Governor-General  and  of 
the  several  Lieutenant-Governors,  and  their  respective  secretaries, 
fixed  by  the  Imperial  Government  on  a  scale  more  commensurate 
with  Imperial  than  Colonial  ideas  were  borne  entirely  by  the 
Provinces  to  which  they  were  appointed.  The  patronage  was  in 
the  Crown,  but  the  burden  was  the  Colony's.  The  latter  was 
borne  with  readiness  by  a  people  who  saw  in  the  mimic  fictions  of 
a  Colonial  Court,  the  only  visible  tie  that  still  connected  them 
with  the  monarchy  of  England.  This  fact  must  be  borne  in  mind 
in  regarding  the  colonial  question  thoughout  its  various  phases, 
that  for  no  purpose  of  a  purely  local  character  was  the  British 
Treasury  charged  one  farthing.  The  expenses  incurred  for  the 
maintenance  of  troops  or  the  construction  of  fortifications  in 
British  North  America  were  for  Imperial  purposes  and  were 
increased,  curtailed  or  abandoned  as  the  Imperial  necessities  in 
the  opinion  of  the  advisers  of  the  Crown  in  England  required, 
without  regard  to  the  wishes  or  representations  of  the  authorities 
in  the  Provinces.  When  in  1862,  war  was  impending  between 
Great  Britain  and  the  United  States,  it  was  for  an  insult  to  the 
Imperial  flag,  on  an  Imperial  ship,  an  insult  which  Great  Britain 
would  have  had  to  resent  anywhere,  whether  she  had  a  foot  of 
ground  in  British  America  or  not,  and  the  expense  incurred  in 
sending  troops  to  Canada,  in  1862  was  as  much  for  the  mainten- 
ance of  her  honour  and  her  interests  as  sending  them  to  the 
Crimea  in  1854.  Thus  it  is  essential  that  we  permit  no  confusion 
of  ideas  between  the  cause  and  the  place  of  expenditure,  to  the 


CONFEDERATION.  153 

first  alone  can  the  last  be  chargeable,  and  in  the  consideration 
hereafter  of  the  events  which  took  place  in  Canada  in  1866  and 
1870,  this  distinction  becomes  the  more  necessary. 

But  while,  so  far  as  relates  to  local  affairs,  this  principle  of  non- 
interference was  strictly  adhered  to,  Great  Britain  retained  the 
control  of  such  legislation  as  would  affect  foreign  countries.  Of 
all  questions  of  trade  she  particularly  claimed  the  supervision. 
Having  adopted  the  principles  of  free  trade,  she  desired  that  that 
policy  should  pervade  all  parts  of  the  Empire  ;  having  made 
treaties  with  foreign  countries,  and  with  the  United  States,  which 
placed  all  on  the  same  terms  with  the  most  favoured  nations,  it 
would  have  been  inconsistent  in  the  imposition  of  duties  on  foreign 
commerce,  by  the  Colonial  Legislatures,  to  have  permitted  dis- 
criminating duties.  But  the  Imperial  Government  went  further, 
and  restrained  the  Local  Legislatures  not  only  from  imposing 
discriminating  duties  upon  the  products  of  foreign  countries,  but 
even  from  differential  duties  in  favour  of  her  own.  Thus,  what- 
ever might  have  been  the  inclination  of  the  colonists,  no  dis- 
tinction was  permitted  in  favour  of  an  article  manufactured  in 
England  or  her  colonies,  over  a  similar  article  manufactured  in 
the  United  States,  in  Russia,  or  in  any  foreign  country. 

It  has  often  been  urged  by  speakers  in  Birmingham,  Sheffield, 
Manchester,  Glasgow,  and  the  other  great  manufacturing  towns  of 
England  and  Scotland,  that  Canada  imposed  heavy  duties  on. 
British  goods,  and  made  no  distinction  in  their  favour,  as  against 
the  goods  of  the  United  States,  which  had  all  the  advantage  of 
vicinity  of  market,  and  cheapness  of  transport ;  and,  therefore, 
that  Canada  was  of  no  advantage  to  the  Empire,  while  her 
protection  added  to  the  burden  of  the  English  taxpayer.  Without 
admitting  in  any  way  the  correctness  of  such  a  position,  it  is 
sufficient  to  observe  that  it  was,  and  is,  the  policy  of  England,  and 
not  the  policy  of  Canada  of  which  they  should  complain.  Canada 
has  incurred,  and  is  daily  incurring,  large  expenditures  for  opening 
up  and  developing  the  vast  extent  of  her  territory.  She  must 
raise  a  revenue — and  in  accordance  with  the  Imperial  trade  policy, 
that  revenue  must  bear  alike  upon  the  goods  of  England  and  of 
foreign  countries.  When  the  manufacturers  of  England  make 
11 


154  CONFEDERATION. 

their  own  Government  reverse  their  policy,  it  will  be  time 
enough  to  complain  of  Canada ;  but  in  this  respect,  at  any  rate, 
not  until  then. 

By  a  despatch,  addressed  to  Lord  Elgin  on  his  assuming  the 
Government  of  Canada,  this  policy  is  clearly  laid  down : 

DOWNING  STREET,  31st  December,  1846. 

MY  LORD, — Your  Lordship  is  about  to  assume  the  Government 
of  British  North  America  at  a  time  when  a  change  of  policy  is 
in  progress,  which  is  of  no  ordinary  importance  to  the  interests  of 
every  part  of  the  British  Empire,  and  perhaps  of  none  more  than 
of  that  large  portion  of  the  Queen's  Dominions  in  which  Her 
Majesty  has  been  pleased  to  select  you  as  her  Representative.  I 
need  scarcely  say  that  I  refer  to  those  commercial  changes  which, 
in  the  last  session,  after  long  and  anxious  deliberation,  received 
the  sanction  of  Parliament.  By  the  Acts  then  passed,  it  has 
been  provided,  that  with  respect  to  some  of  the  chief  articles  of 
national  consumption,  there  should  be  a  considerable  immediate 
reduction,  and  an  eventual  abolition  of  those  duties  upon  imports 
from  foreign  countries,  which  has  hitherto  been  imposed,  not  for 
the  purpose  of  raising  a  revenue,  but  with  the  avowed  object  of 
giving  an  advantage  in  the  markets  of  this  country,  to  the 
domestic  or  colonial  producer,  over  his  foreign  competitor. 

It  has'been  enacted  that  after  a  brief  interval,  the  Canadian  in 
common  with  the  British  farmer,  and  in  common  also  with  the 
sugar  planters  of  the  British  Colonies,  must  encounter  in  the  sale 
of  his  produce  in  this  country,  the  unrestricted  competition  of  the 
foreign  grower.  The  same  relief  from  the  burden  of  differential 
duties,  which  has  thus  been  granted  to  the  British  consumer ;  one 
of  the  Statutes  to  which  I  have  alluded  (the  8th  and  9th  Victoria 
c.  94),  has  enabled  their  respective  Legislatures  to  extend  to  the 
British  Colonies,  by  empowering  them  to  repeal  the  differential 
duties  in  favour  of  British  produce,  imposed  in  these  Colonies  by 
former  Imperial  Acts. 

This  is  not  an  occasion  upon  which  I  could  with  propriety, 
enter  into  any  discussion  of  the  grounds  upon  which  this  change 
of  policy  has  been  adopted  ;  but  without  doing  so,  I  may  express 


CONFEDERATION.  155 

my  firm  conviction  that,  eventually,  the  welfare  of  the  Colonies, 
even  more  than  that  of  the  mother  country,  will  be  promoted  by 
the  abandonment  of  a  system  of  artificial  restrictions  upon  trade. 
Looking  to  the  great  natural  advantages  possessed  by  the 
British  Colonies,  and  especially  by  the  fine  Provinces  of  North 
America,  I  cannot  doubt  that,  adopting  a  policy  of  which  the 
object  is  to  render  industry  productive,  by  leaving  it  to  follow  its 
natural  channels  of  employment,  and  by  affording  every  possible 
facility  to  commerce,  must  lead  to  their  rapid  advancement  in 
wealth  and  prosperity.  But  with  a  view  to  this  result,  it  is  of 
the  utmost  importance  that  the  Provincial  Legislatures  should 
strenuously  co-operate  with  the  Imperial  Parliament.  So  far  as 
the  repeal  of  the  differential  duties,  hitherto  imposed  upon  imports 
into  the  Colonies  from  foreign  countries,  for  the  purpose  of  favour- 
ing the  British  producer,  I  can  have  no  doubt  that  the  Colonial 
Legislatures  will  gladly  avail  themselves  of  the  power  conferred 
upon  them,  by  at  once  putting  an  end  to  these  duties  ;  indeed,  so 
obvious  does  it  appear,  that  this  measure  ought  to  be  the  con- 
sequence of  repealing  the  differential  duties  imposed  in  this 
country,  to  favour  the  importation  of  Colonial  produce,  that 
Parliament  instead  of  merely  enabling  the  Colonial  Legislatures 
to  abolish  the  duties  alluded  to,  would  probably  have  at  once 
proceeded  to  do  so  by  its  own  authority,  had  it  not  been  for  the 
late  period  of  the  session,  at  which  alone  it  was  possible  that  the 
subject  should  be  considered,  and  the  difficulty  of  determining 
without  more  information  than  could  at  the  time  be  procured,  how 
far  the  simple  repeal  of  these  duties,  unaccompanied  by  any 
precautions,  might  have  affected  the  finances  of  some  of  the 
Colonies. 

I  assume,  therefore,  that  these  duties  will  be  speedily  put  an 
end  to. 

(Signed)         GREY. 
To  the  Right  Hon.  the  Earl  of  Elgin. 

This  despatch  was  laid  before  the  Canadian  Parliament  by  Lord 
Elgin,  at  their  first  sitting  after  its  receipt,  in  June,  1847,  and  in 


156  CONFEDERATION. 

accordance  with  the  policy  therein  recommended,  an  Act  was 
passed  by  the  Canadian  Parliament  abolishing  the  then  existing 
differential  duties  in  favour  of  British  produce.  This  Act  was 
transmitted  to  England  and  confirmed,  as  appears  by  a  despatch 
to  the  Governor-General  from  the  Colonial  Secretary,  dated  the 
llth  of  May,  notwithstanding  that,  as  appears  by  documents 
transmitted  by  the  Colonial  Secretary  about  the  same  time,  the 
character  of  the  Act  had  been  specially  complained  against  to  the 
Imperial  Government,  by  the  merchants  and  manufacturers  of 
Glasgow  by  petition,  setting  forth — "That  the  said  Colonial  Act 
proposes  to  place  the  mother  country  in  a  more  unfavourable 
position  than  the  United  States  of  America,  in  so  far  as  it  repeals 
the  differential  duties  hitherto  maintained  in  favour  of  British 
manufactures." 

The  policy  of  the  Imperial  Government,  thus  pointedly  declared 
to  the  Governor-General  of  Canada,  was  reiterated  in  the  strong- 
est manner  in  a  series  of  despatches  in  1848-49,  1855-56  &  59, 
and  to  such  an  extent  as  to  declare  objectionable  any  arrangements 
made  or  proposed  to  be  made  between  the  colonies  themselves,  by 
which  a  preference  or  differential  duty  or  abolition  of  duties,  in 
favour  of  the  productions  of  one  should  be  given  over  the  produc- 
tions of  another,  or  of  any  foreign  country,  in  return  for  similar 
concessions  extended  by  any  such  colony  or  country  to  Canada. 
And  in  one  of  the  despatches  (15th  July,  1856),  in  order  to  meet 
the  objection  that  the  immediate  effect  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty 
of  1854  with  the  United  States  was  to  establish  differential  duties 
on  such  of  the  enumerated  articles  as  were  before  subject  to  duty, 
it  was  declared  that  that  treaty  was  "  concluded  under  circum- 
stances of  political  exigency,  with  the  immediate  view  of  termi- 
nating questions  in  dispute  as  to  the  rights  of  fishery,"  and  that 
to  meet  the  objection  in  some  measure,  special  provision  had  been 
made  in  colonial  Acts,  referring  particularly  to  Acts  in  Newfound- 
land and  Nova  Scotia,  and  to  the  modification  of  the  tariffs  in  the 
North  American  Provinces  generally,  and  pointing  out  to  Canada 
the  desire  of  Her  Majesty's  Government  that  such  legislation 
should  take  place  with  reference  to  the  articles  enumerated,  as 
would  place  all  countries  on  the  same  footing. 


CONFEDERATION.  157 

It  is  unnecessary  to  make  further  observations  011  this  point, 
but  it  should  be  stated  that  in  other  respects,  with  reference  to 
some  foreign  countries,  England  gave  great  latitude  to  the  British 
North  American  colonies.  Thus,  in  the  Reciprocity  Treaty  referred 
to,  made  by  Lord  Elgin  with  the  United  States  in  1854,  for  the 
exchange  of  productions  between  the  Provinces  and  the  United 
States,  the  adoption  or  rejection  of  that  Treaty,  so  far  as  its  appli- 
cation to  each  particular  Province,  was  left  to  the  legislature  of 
each  Province  to  determine.  Power  was  also  given  about  the 
same  time  by  order  in  council,  to  the  Provinces,  by  proclamation 
of  their  respective  governments,  to  permit  the  vessels  of  foreign 
countries  to  pass  from  any  one  port  in  one  Province  to  any  one 
port  in  another  Province — a  quasi  coasting  trade  owing  to  the 
configuration  of  the  Provinces,  though  no  such  privilege  was 
given  in  the  United  States  to  British  or  Provincial  vessels  to  pass 
from  State  to  State.  And  as  will  appear  when  the  events  of  1871 
are  under  consideration,  in  a  still  more  emphatic  manner,  in  a 
treaty  made  with  the  United  States  principally  for  the  settlement 
of  an  Imperial  dispute,  in  those  parts  which  have  any  direct  bear- 
ing on  the  interests  of  Canada,  the  adoption  or  rejection  of  such 
parts  is  left  exclusively  to  the  action  of  her  own  parliament.  A 
more  liberal  policy  could  hardly  be  pursued  by  any  power  to  a 
portion  of  its  own  empire. 

The  fact  has  already  been  referred  to,  that  as  between  the  Pro- 
vinces themselves,  they  regarded  each  other  as  foreign  countries, 
and  that  in  matters  of  trade  it  made  no  difference  as  to  the  customs 
dues  whether  goods  came  from  Massachusetts  or  from  Nova  Scotia, 
in  Canada  or  New  Brunswick  they  were  taxed  alike  ;  and  the  same 
in  Nova  Scotia  as  to  goods  from  Massachusetts,  Canada  or  New 
Brunswick. 

The  postal  arrangements  were  distinct.  The  criminal  laws  were 
different.  Each  Province  borrowed,  each  Province  built,  each 
Province  taxed,  to  suit  its  own  interest,  without  the  slightest 
reference  to  its  neighbour,  and  the  custom-house  officer  was  as 
important  an  individual  on  the  dividing  lines  between  New  Bruns- 
wick and  Nova  Scotia,  and  New  Brunswick  and  Canada,  as  on  the 
lines  between  France  and  Belgium,  or  France  and  Spain  •  yet 


158  CONFEDERATION. 

tliese  Provinces  were  all  under  the  same  flag,  and  their  dividing 
lines  not  more  marked  than  between  Middlesex  and  Surrey,  or 
Middlesex  and  Kent.  Their  material  interests  always  pointed  to 
an  amalgamation  ;  local  self-importance  and  local  jealousies  to 
some  extent  aided  in  keeping  them  apart  ;  but  the  real  difficulty 
was  the  necessity  each  Province  felt  to  maintain  its  credit  by  pro- 
viding for  the  payment  of  its  public  debt,  and  an  unwillingness  to 
part  with  the  control  of  its  own  revenues  and  its  own  patronage. 

When,  therefore,  in  the  articles  of  the  Confederation  provisions 
for  the  assumption  of  the  public  debt  of  each  Province  by  the 
General  Government,  and  the  concession  of  an  equivalent  pecu- 
niary grant  for  local  purposes  to  each  Province  were  made,  with 
the  power  to  each  still  to  legislate  and  govern  for  itself  in  all 
matters  affecting  civil  rights  and  property,  the  more  substantial 
objections  to  confederation  were  removed. 

But  it  must  not  be  disguised,  that  even  at  this  early  date  there 
were  many  who  objected  to  the  movement,  as  the  primary  step 
ultimately  leading  to  the  separation  of  the  Provinces  from  the 
mother  country,  and  their  final  absorption  into  the  United  States. 
Many  of  those  who  thought  so  were  solid,  good  men, — staid, 
honest,  loyal  men — men  who  would  sacrifice  everything  for  British 
connection,  but  who  perhaps  were  not  in  the  modern  phrase,  "  men 
of  progress,"  and  who  would  prefer  moving  on  in  a  well-known 
beaten  track,  to  speculating  in  an  unknown  future.  There  were 
others  again,  who  opposed  the  movement  because  they  believed 
that  it  would  prevent  annexation  to  the  United  States.  They  saw 
that  the  contracted  sphere  in  which  each  Province  moved,  the 
utter  want  of  markets  for  its  manufactures,  the  striking  contrast 
between  the  freedom  of  trade  in  the  separate  States  of  the  United 
States,  and  the  isolation  caused  by  Provincial  restriction  must,  in 
the  end,  produce  discontent  and  dissatisfaction — the  larger  mar- 
kets and  the  unrestricted  intercourse  that  Confederation  would 
give,  they  well  foresaw  would  at  least  remove  that  ground  of  dis- 
satisfaction. 

Outside,  however,  of  both  of  these  parties,  and  with  the  main 
body  of  the  people  of  all  the  Provinces,  there  was  another  feeling, 
feeling  of  uncertainty  as  to  what  their  future  might  be,  and 


CONFEDERATION.  159 

that  it  was  necessary  to  prepare  for  it.  The  material  and  com- 
mercial advantages  of  Confederation  were  apparent  to  all  men  of 
enlightened  views  or  enlarged  intelligence.  The  spirited  manu- 
facturer and  enterprising  merchant  alike,  welcomed  a  change 
which  would  extend  their  field  of  operations ;  but  the  statesmen 
and  public  men,  who  were  accustomed  to  look  at  the  causes  of 
events  and  their  consequences,  could  not  fail  to  see  that  at  this 
time  the  public  mind  of  England  was  unsettled,  as  to  the  value  or 
importance  of  the  retention  of  the  Colonies,  and  that  unless  the 
latter,  particularly  those  in  British  North  America,  placed  them- 
selves in  a  position  to  speak  on  their  own  behalf  with  the 
language  of  strength,  the  best  interests  of  the  country — territorial 
and  otherwise — might  be  frittered  away  without  a  moment's  con- 
sideration, and  in  pure  ignorance  of  the  value  of  the  concession. 

To  such  men  the  political  aspect  of  the  question  had  its  impor-  , 
tance.     Not  less  loyal  in  their  devotion  to  the  mother  country, 
and  equally  desirous   to  avoid  a  separation,    they   felt   that   to 
prevent  it,  the  surest  way  was  to  make  British  North  America 
prosperous  and  strong — to  give  her  an  influential  voice  in  the    / 
adjustment   of  all   questions   that   affected   her  interests,  either  ]/ 
internally  or  externally,  and  whether  in  apparent  conflict   with 
Imperial   policy   or   not.      As   a   part   of  the   Empire   she   was 
prepared  to  do  her  duty  or  share  the  loss ;  but  where  the  course  to 
be  adopted  was  principally  to  aftect  herself,  her  consideration  and 
decision  upon  the  point  ought  to  be  had.     If  the  agitation  of  the 
public  mind  in  England,  on  this  question,  should  culminate  in  a 
determination  to  throw  off  the  Colonies,  by  the  Confederation 
they  would  be  the  better  prepared  to  meet  the  emergency.     If  it   \ 
oscillated  the  other  way,  they  would  not  be  the  worse  for  the 
preparation.     Thus  in  either  case,  in  a  political  view,  the  Con- 
federation was  desirable. 

To  the  Canadian  it  does  not  seem  that  this  question  of  the 
retention  of  the  British  North  American  Colonies,  has  ever  been 
clearly  understood  in  England. 

In  pamphlets,  in  speeches,  in  debates  in  Parliament,  in  articles 
in  the  press,  the  severance  of  Canada  from  England  was  shadowed 
forth  as  essential  to  the  preservation  of  the  latter. 


160  CONFEDERATION. 

The  unexpected  development  of  the  military  power  of  the 
United  States  during  the  civil  war,  seemed  almost  to  have  created 
a  panic  in  the  British  Isles.  Canada  was  declared  to  be  indefen- 
sible, and  for  the  first  time  in  the  history  of  the  British  soldier,  it 
was  gravely  contended,  that  on  the  landing  of  the  first  hostile 
American  on  Canadian  soil,  Her  Majesty's  troops  should  forthwith 
retire  within  the  walls  of  the  citadel  of  Quebec,  to  save  the  honour 
of  the  British  arms  ! ! ! 

In  the  debate  which  took  place  in  the  Imperial  Parliament  in 
July,  1862,  on  the  subject  of  the  action  of  the  Canadian  Parlia- 
ment, with  reference  to  the  maintenance  of  an  effective  militia, 
much  was  said  that  tended  to  promote  the  feeling  of  uncertainty, 
as  to  the  future.  Treating  a  mere  party  manoeuvre,  which  led  to 
the  defeat  of  a  ministry  in  Canada,  and  the  introduction  of  a 
temporary  measure  for  the  subsidiary  defence  of  the  country,  in 
the  absence  of  any  immediate  danger,  with  all  the  gravity  of  a 
great  crisis,  member  after  member  in  the  Imperial  Parliament 
spoke  as  if  Canada  was  a  burden  to  the  Empire,  and  that  the  day 
of  her  separation  would  be  hailed  with  acclamation  by  the  people 
of  England.  Mr.  Roebuck,  the  member  for  Sheffield,  spoke  in 
very  strong  terms,  and,  in  singular  ignorance  of  the  action  of  the 
Imperial  Government,  denounced  the  Canadian  Parliament  for 
taxing  British  manufactures.  He  said  : 

"  The  first  thing  we  have  to  consider  is  the  feeling  of  the 
people  of  Canada  with  respect  to  England.  My  opinion  is  that 
the  people  of  Canada  have  been  led  to  believe  that  we  consider 
them  of  such  wonderful  importance  that  we  shall  undertake  any 
expense  to  maintain  dominion  over  them.  What  I  want  them 
to  understand,  and  what  I  want  our  Government  to  make  them 
understand,  is  that  we  do  not  care  one  farthing  about  the 
adherence  of  Canada  to  England.  We  have  never  drawn  from 
our  colonies  anything  like  tribute.  Other  nations  do  at  this 
moment  derive  tribute  from  their  colonies,  but  we  have  never 
done  so.  The  only  chance  of  benefit  we  ever  expected  from  our 
colonies  was  perfect  freedom  of  trade.  What  has  Canada  done  in 
that  matter  1  The  Canadians  have  laid  20  per  cent,  upon  the 


CONFEDERATION.  161 

introduction  of  all  English  manufactures  into  their  country, 
thereby  following  the  bad  example  of  their  friends  on  the  other 
side  of  the  St.  Lawrence.  I  want  them  clearly  to  understand 
that  England  has  no  benefit  from  her  connection  with  them,  and 
that  if  we  maintain,  not  our  dominion,  but  their  independence,  it 
is  for  their  advantage  and  not  for  ours.  There  is  nobody  in  this 
country  who  is  in  a  position  to  speak  with  more  freedom  than 
myself  with  respect  to  Canada.  Many  years  of  my  life  were 
spent  in  that  country.  I  have  intimate  relations  with  it  now,  but 
though  I  do  not  love  Canada  less  I  love  England  more,  and  my 
opinion  is  that  if  to-morrow  we  were  to  get  rid  of  Canada  Eng- 
land would  not  lose  a  single  farthing  of  benefit.  But  the  case  of 
Canada  would  be  very  different.  When  the  hon.  and  gallant 
member  for  Westminster  says  that  the  United  States  cannot 
over-run  Canada  I  must  say  that  I  think  he  has  studied  history 
to  very  little  purpose  if  that  be  his  real  opinion.  I  quite  agree 
with  the  noble  lord  in  another  place  who  said  that  if  the  Federal 
Government  were  victorious  to-morrow  they  would  turn  round 
upon  England,  and  the  first  thing  they  would  do  would  be  to 
pour  their  armies  over  the  St.  Lawrence  into  Canada;  while  if 
they  were  to  be  defeated  in  their  struggle  with  the  South,  out  of 
mere  vengeance  they  would  do  the  same  thing.  What  would  be 
the  consequence'?  Canada,  ceasing  to  be  what  she  is  now — a 
powerful  and  independent  people,  governing  themselves,  doing 
exactly  as  they  like  with  their  own,  would  be  under  the  dominion 
of  an  overbearing  and  overpowering  democracy.  She  would  be 
one  among  what  were  once  37  United  States.  Her  people  would 
have  one  or  two  votes  in  the  American  Senate ;  whereas  now  they 
govern  themselves,  for  England  has  given  up  dominion  over  them, 
and  all  we  do  is  to  send  our  soldiers — those  redcoats  whom  the 
Mayor  of  Montreal  talks  about — to  protect  their  independence. 
I  want  the  Canadians  clearly  to  understand  that  England  would 
not  be  sorry  to  see  her  depart  from  us  to-morrow.  They  do  us  no 
good,  or,  at  least,  not  more  than  New  York ;  they  do  not  even 
receive  our  manufactures,  and  they  treat  us  like  aliens.  We  have 
been  told  that  the  House  of  Commons  should  not  dictate  to  the 
Parliament  of  Canada.  Do  we  ever  dictate  now  1  I  have  stood 


162 


COXFEDE  RATION. 


up  in  my  place  against  the  dictation  of  this  House  to  the  people 
of  Canada,  but  that  system  has  been  abandoned  long. ago.  The 
very  veto  of  the  Crown  is  entirely  ignored,  and  that  which  we 
ought  to  have  done — viz.,  protect  the  manufacturing  interests  of 
England — we  have  ceased  to  do.  I  say,  therefore,  we  are  now 
bound  to  look  after  the  interests  of  our  constituents,  and  I  si i .'ill 
be  the  very  last  man  to  lay  one  farthing  of  expense  upon  the  poor 
people  of  Sheffield  in  order  to  maintain  the  independence  of  the 
rich  people  of  Canada." 

Mr.  Adderley  spoke  in  terms  no  less  disparaging,  while  Sir 
George  Cornwall  Lewis,  whose  estimable  personal  character,  and 
high  official  position  as  Secretary  of  State,  lent  great  weight  to 
his  observations,  after  pointing  out  that  the  cause  of  the  antici- 
pated difficulty  with  the  United  States  arose  from  an  affront  to 
the  British  flag,  which  was  a  question  of  purely  Imperial  interest, 
in  which  Canada  was  not  directly  concerned,  said  : 

"  If  Canada  had  been  invaded  in  a  war  arising  from  the  United 
States  in  consequence  of  that  quarrel,  the  feelings  of  the  Canadians 
would  naturally  have  been  that  they  were  involved  in  a  quarrel  in 
which  they  had  no  direct  concern,  and  that  it  was  incumbent  on 
the  Imperial  Government,  through  connection  with  which  they 
were  involved  in  hostilities,  to  give  them  effectual  assistance." 
He  went  on,  among  other  things,  to  say  :  "  Before  I  sit  down  I 
will  make  one  allusion  to  the  remarks  of  my  honourable  and  learned 
friend  upon  our  future  relations  with  Canada.  I  for  one  can  only 
say  that  I  look  forward  without  apprehension,  and,  I  may  add, 
without  regret,  to  the  time  when  Canada  might  become  an  inde- 
pendent state  ;  but  I  think  it  behoves  England  not  to  cast  Canada 
loose  or  send  her  adrift  before  she  has  acquired  sufficient  strength 
to  assert  her  own  independence.  The  feelings  of  the  Canadian 
people  were  undoubtedly  those  of  attachment  and  loyalty  to  the 
mother  country.  I  do  not  believe  that  the  recent  vote  upon  the 
militia  bill  was  the  result  of  any  deliberate  policy  or  deep  seated 
design.  It  was  actually  thrown  out  by  the  play  of  party  politics, 
and  I  cannot  but  wish  to  impress  upon  the  House,  that  any  mea- 


CONFEDERATION.  163 

sure  such  as  the  right  honourable  gentleman  recommends,  of  a 
menace  on  the  part  of  England,  that  under  certain  circumstances 
if  they  do  not  take  efficient  steps  for  organizing  a  powerful  militia 
our  troops  would  be  withdrawn,  would  be  unworthy  of  this  country, 
and  would  seem  to  be  the  result  of  hasty  displeasure,  rather  than 
of  that  dignified  and  prudent  forbearance  which  has  always  been 
the  characteristic  of  the  Imperial  policy." 

In  most  gratifying  contrast  to  the  observations  of  Mr.  Roebuck 
and  Mr.  Adderley,  and  the  more  philosophic  contemplation  by  Sir 
George  Cornwall  Lewis  of  the  severance,  were  the  sentiments 
expressed  by  Mr.  T,  Baring,  Mr.  D'Israeli,  and  Lord  Palmerstoii. 
Mr.  T.  Baring  said  : 

"Being  in  constant  communication  with  Canada,  he  was  informed 
that  a  feeling  had  recently  arisen  in  that  Province,  and  was  now 
increasing,  that  there  was  a  wish  on  the  part  of  a  great  portion  of 
that  House  to  force  upon  it  a  precipitate  separation  from  the  mother 
country ;  and  he  must  say  that  if  anything  could  strengthen  that 
feeling  it  would  be  the  recurrence  of  speeches  like  that  of  the  right 
honourable  member  for  Staffordshire  and  the  honourable  member 
for  Sheffield,  telling  the  Canadian  people  that  they  had  not  the 
least  desire  that  they  should  adhere  to  their  allegiance  to  the 
Sovereign  and  their  attachment  to  this  country  ;  that  they  wished 
they  would  separate  entirely  from  England,  and  that  they  would 
see  that  separation  not  only  without  regret,  but  with  satisfaction. 
He  would  not  enter  into  questions  of  colonial  policy.  He  believed 
that  colonies  might  be  a  source  of  wealth  and  power  to  the  mother 
country  ;  that  the  union  between  the  two  might  be  one  of  mutual 
benefit ;  that  it  might  be  maintained  without  an  extravagant  ex- 
penditure ;  but  to  say  that  such  a  connexion  was  merely  a  question 
of  ' pounds,  shillings  and  pence,'  was  quite  unworthy  of  us,  when  we 
had  to  a  certain  extent  to  protect  our  fellow-countrymen,  and  had 
at  least  to  regard  them  as  our  fellow-subjects  until  they  themselves 
desired  to  separate  from  us.  Certain  speeches  which  had  latterly 
been  delivered  in  another  place,  together  with  the  tone  of  the 
public  press,  were  calculated  to  make  the  Canadians  believe  that 


164  CONFEDERATION. 

in  this  country  there  was  no  kindred  feeling  towards  them — a 
result  which  he  thought  was  much  to  be  deprecated.  The  measure 
which  had  been  referred  to  was  defeated  from  a  party  manoeuvre, 
without  pledging  the  Province  to  any  policy  of  hereafter  refusing 
to  establish  a  sufficient  militia,  and  with  the  expression,  at  the 
same  time,  on  the  part  of  those  who  opposed  it,  that  they  were  in 
favor  of  a  militia  that  should  co-operate  with  our  troops  in  defence 
of  the  common  country.  These  persons,  he  believed,  would  at 
this  moment  rise  as  one  man  in  support  of  their  union  with  Eng- 
land ;  and  they  had  shown  that  when  questions  not  merely  of 
colonial  but  of  Imperial  concern  arose,  and  when  they  have  suffered 
all  the  injury  of  invasion,  they  did  not  shrink  from  expressing 
manfully  their  hopes  for  the  success  of  England  and  her  colonies. 
It  was  said,  '  leave  Canada  entirely  to  herself ; '  but  as  long  as 
they  wished  to  remain  British  subjects,  that  was  not  language 
which  ought  either  in  honour  or  duty  to  be  held  to  the  Canadian 
people.  He  was  convinced  that  Canada  felt  so  much  the  advan- 
tage of  her  connection  with  England,  that,  without  burdening  our 
resources,  she  would  adhere  to  us  from  sentiments  of  loyal 
allegiance." 

Mr.  D'Israeli  said  : 

"  I  cannot  contemplate  with  the  same  feeling  as  the  Secretary. 
of  State,  a  separation  taking  place  between  this  country  and 
Canada.  I  think  that  a  great  Empire,  founded  on  sound  princi- 
ples of  freedom  and  equality,  is  as  conducive  to  the  spirit  and 
power  of  the  community,  and  as  valuable  as  commercial  pros- 
perity or  military  force ;  and,  therefore,  I  should  be  very  sorry 
under  the  present  circumstances,  after  all  that  has  occurred,  to 
suppose  that  the  connection  between  the  mother  country  and  this 
important  colony  should  end.  The  resources  of  Canada  are  great 
and  various.  It  has  had  the  advantage  of  having  been  colonized, 
during  a  number  of  centuries,  by  two  of  the  most  distinguished 
nations  of  Europe.  Canada  is,  in  fact,  a  reflex  of  those  two 
powerful  races,  differing  in  their  manners  and  even  in  their 
religious  opinions;  and  has  many  of  those  diverse  elements, 
which  tend  to  change  a  mere  colonial  into  a  national  character. 


CONFEDERATION.  165 

I  do  not  think  that  the  importance  of  Canada  can  be  over- 
stated ;  but,  unfortunately,  we  feel  every  day  more  and  more  that 
the  relations  between  the  mother  country  and  those  colonies,  in 
which  what  we  call  self-government  has  been  established,  are  not 
altogether  of  a  satisfactory  nature.  The  Secretary  of  State  con- 
templates the  possibility, — and  more  than  .the  possibility,  for  he 
informs  us  that,  under  certain  circumstancess,  it  would  be  matter 
of  congratulation — of  the  severance  of  the  tie  between  the  mother 
country  and  Canada,  and  says  that  we  ought  to  be  very  careful  in 
training  the  Canadians  before  the  connection  terminates,  so  that 
they  may  be  able  to  go  by  themselves,  and  not  fall  into  the  hands 
of  any  vigilant  neighbour,  watching  for  an  opportunity  of  appro- 
priating and  absorbing  them.  But  what  I  think  to  be  the  fault 
of  the  Government  in  this  particular  case  is,  that  they  have  not 
been  thoughtful  on  this  subject  of  training  the  Canadians.  On 
the  contrary,  it  appears  to  me  that  they  have  not  trusted  to  the 
resources  and  energies  of  the  Canadians,  but  have  rather  unneces- 
sarily anticipated  duties  which  the  Canadians  were  probably  ready 
to  perform  themselves." 

Lord  Palmerston  said  : 

"  I  agree  rather  with  the  right  honourable  gentleman  who  has 
just  spoken,  than  with  the  right  honourable  gentleman  the  member 
for  North  Staffordshire,  in  the  view  which  he  takes  with  respect 
to  the  connection  subsisting  between  the  mother  country  and  her 
colonial  dependencies.  With  the  former,  I  quite  concur  in  think- 
ing that  we  should  look  upon  our  colonies  as  part  and  parcel  of 
the  British  Empire.  Our  fellow-subjects  when  they  remove  from 
this  country,  do  not  cease  to  be  our  fellow-subjects ;  their  spirit  is 
the  same  as  ours ;  their  interests  should  be  our  interests ;  we 
should  be  each  to  one  another  a  source  of  mutual  honour  and 
mutual  strength.  I  also  quite  concur  with  the  right  honourable 
gentleman  in  wishing  that  the  day  may  be  very  far  distant  when, 
from  various  causes,  those  great  communities  may  deem  it  to  be 
their  interest  to  separate  from  us,  because  I  do  not  think  such  a 
course  would  conduce  to  their  benefit,  while  I  feel  assured  it 
would  not  tend  to  the  advantage  of  the  mother  country.  The 


166  CONFEDERATION. 

connection  between  us,  however,  as  was  justly  stated  by  the  right 
honourable  gentleman,  can  be  maintained  only  by  the  adoption  of  a 
policy,  which  will  leave  the  colonies  free  to  regulate  their  own 
affairs,  binding  to  the  mother  country  by  links  of  mutual  interest, 
and  allowing  the  exercise  of  perfect  freedom  in  matters  in  which 
the  one  or  the  other  happens  to  be  more  particularly  concerned." 

The  Times,  which  is  regarded  as  representing  most  correctly,  the, 
existing  public  feeling  of  the  day,  in  England,  thus  commented 
upon  the  question,  in  its  issue  on  the  day  the  debate  took  place, 
23rd  July,  1862  : 

"  The  conduct  of  the  Canadian  Ministry,  in  refusing  to  provide 
for  the  defence  of  the  country  the  destinies  of  which  are  intrusted 
to  their  charge,  neither  raises  our  opinion  of  themselves  or  of  the 
community  over  which  they  preside.  They  were  brought  into 
power  by  a  vote  refusing  to  create  for  the  colony  a  militia  con- 
sisting of  50,000  effective  troops  and  50,000  reserves.  For  this 
plan  they  have  substituted  the  following :  The  Canadian  militia 
consists  of  two  classes — A.,  numbering  5,000  men,  who  have 
hitherto  been  drilled  six  days  in  the  year,  receiving  in  payment 
one  dollar  for  each  day's  drill ;  and  B.,  which  consists  of  8,000 
men,  who  have  hitherto  received  110  pay  at  all.  It  is  felt  in 
Canada  that  under  existing  circumstances  a  necessity  has  arisen 
for  doing  something  towards  putting  the  country  in  a  respectable; 
position  of  defence,  and  they  have  accordingly  set  about  it  in  the. 
following  manner :  They  take  5,000  men  out  of  class  B.  and  add 
them  to  class  A.,  thus  raising  class  A.  to  10,000  men,  and  these 
10,000  men  they  propose  to  drill  for  12  days  in  the  year  at  half-a- 
dollar  a  day,  instead  of  six  days  at  one  dollar.  They  propose, 
besides,  to  give  some  allowance  in  lieu  of  clothing.  The  3,000 
left  in  class  B.  will  probably  quit  the  service,  as  they  are  to 
receive  nothing,  and  we  cannot  think  that  the  prospect  of  half-ii- 
dollar  a  day  will  be  a  very  efficient  stimulus  to  enrolment  in  class  A. 

"  This  is  absolutely  all  that  Canada  is  disposed  to  do  at  the 
public  expense  for  her  protection.  Whatever  military  force  she 
requires  beyond  this  must  be  made  up  of  volunteers  and  tumultuary 


CONFEDERATION.  167 

levies  called  together  at  the  very  moment  of  danger.  We  know 
by  the  experience  of  the  American  war,  and  partly  by  our  own, 
the  value  of  militia,  and  we  know  also  what  importance  to  attach 
to  the  services  of  persons  untrained  to  arms  and  acting  together 
for  the  first  time.  It  is  scarcely  an  exaggeration  to  say  that  such 
an  organization  is  worthless,  and  no  exaggeration  at  all  to  say 
that  it  could  riot  afford  even  the  semblance  of  protection  against, 
any  one  of  the  several  great  armies  now  contending  in  the  United 
States.  Canada  assures  us  of  her  loyalty,  of  her  wish  to  remain 
a  portion  of  the  great  British  Empire,  of  the  value  she  sets  on 
her  free,  and  even  democratic  institutions,  of  her  aversion  to 
American  forms  of  thought  and  forms  of  Government.  She 
furnishes  us  here  with  a  fair  measure  of  her  sincerity.  We  see 
the  exact  value  she  really  sets  011  the  connection  with  this  country 
by  the  efforts  she  is  ready  to  make  and  the  sacrifices  she  is  ready 
to  incur  in  order  to  preserve  them.  She  has  incurred  loans  and 
liabilities  to  the  extent  of  some  twelve  millions  sterling  by 
pledging  the  public  revenue  for  public  works  undertaken  for  the 
benefit  of  municipalities  having  no  claim  011  the  central  Govern- 
ment beyond  the  influence  they  may  exert  in  returning  members 
of  Parliament.  She  has  created  over  the  St.  Lawrence  a  magni- 
ficent bridge  which  has  cost  two  millions  sterling,  mostly  supplied 
by  this  country,  for  which  not  one  farthing  of  interest  is  now 
received.  She  raises  revenue  by  taxes  on  British  commerce,  she 
allows  us  the  privilege  of  repairing  her  fortifications,  supplying 
her  with  artillery,  musketry,  and  ammunition,  and  of  garrisoning 
her  fortresses  with  12,000  regular  troops,  and  she  estimates  the 
value  of  this  connection  at,  perhaps,  $120,000,  or  £25,000  a  year. 
She  is  never  weary  of  boasting  of  her  loyalty,  but  this  is  the 
value  she  sets  on  British  connection.  We,  on  the  other  hand, 
seem  never  weary  of  contributing  to  those  expenses  which  every 
other  country  in  the  world,  except  a  British  colony,  is  expected  to 
pay  for  itself,  and,  should  war  come,  we  are  ready  to  spend 
millions  of  treasure  and  risk  thousands  of  valuable  lives  for 
people  who  not  only  will  not  defend  themselves,  but  will  not  give 
us  any  efficient  assistance  towards  defending  them.  They  have 
money  for  many  other  things,  some  necessary,  others  unnecessary, 


168  CONFEDERATION. 

money  for  jobs  of  all  kinds,  money  for  the  most  questionable 
public  works,  but  money  for  honour,  money  for  liberty,  money  for 
independence,  for  the  privileges  of  being  governed  by  their  own 
laws  and  knowing  no  master — for  these  merely  secondary  ad- 
vantages, as  we  suppose  they  consider  them,  the  Canadian  Parlia- 
ment and  Ministry  have  nothing  to  spare.  They  are  so  taken  up 
in  providing  for  superfluities  that  they  have  nothing  to  give  for 
what  other  countries  account  the  very  essentials  of  existence, 
without  which,  to  a  nation'  or  man  of  spirit,  life  is  hardly  worth 
possessing.  They  are  rich  for  all  other  purposes  ;  but  when  asked 
to  do  something  towards  their  own  defence,  "  their  poverty,  but 
not  their  will,"  as  we  are  told,  consents  to  do  nothing." 

At  a  still  later  date,  February  27th,  1868,  the  same  paper  in 
speaking  of  the  effect  of  a  war  with  the  United  States,  says  : 

"  We  are  quite  aware  that  in  the  event  of  war  we  should  not  be 
able  to  render  effectual  aid  to  our  Canadian  Dominion,  and  that 
our  fellow- subjects  out  there  would  either  have  to  fight  at  a 
terrible  disadvantage,  or  mortify  our  pride  by  anticipating  defeat 
or  yielding  to  terms.  In  a  material  point  of  view  that  would  be 
no  loss  to  this  country." 

Pamphleteers  and  philosophers  did  not  leave  the  unfortunate 
question  alone.  Among  others,  Mr.  A.  Allison — author  of  the 
"  Philosophy  and  History  of  Civilization,"  a  work  favourably 
commented  upon  by  the  Observer  and  the  Athenaeum — issued  a 
pamphlet  from  72  Sloane  Street,  London,  April  19th,  1865,  in 
which  Canada  was  to  be  disposed  of  in  a  very  summary  manner. 

"  I  am  of  opinion,"  he  says,  "  that  England  should  not  only  not 
interfere  with  the  Civil  War  now  raging  in  America,  but  that  she 
should  retire  altogether  from  the  North  American  Continent,  by 
declaring  Canada  an  independent  State.  So  long  as  Canada 
belongs  to  us  we  hold  out  a  bait  to  the  United  States  to  go  to  war 
with  us,  with  a  view  to  its  annexation.  That  being  so,  it  is 
manifestly  the  interest  both  of  England  and  Canada  to  separate. 
The  press  and  our  leading  statesmen  are  unanimous  in  expressing 


CONFEDERATION.  169 

their  readiness  to  give  up  Canada,  if  the  Canadians  themselves  are 
willing  to  accept  independence  ;  and  if  these  liberal  professions  on 
our  part  are  sincere,  there  will  be  no  difficulty  in  effecting  that 
object.  The  great  Trajan  who  restored  the  glories  of  Rome,  con- 
tracted the  limits  of  the  Empire  both  in  Europe  and  Asia,  and 
when  we  withdraw  our  troops  from  Canada  and  declare  her 
independent,  we  shall  strengthen  the  British  Empire,  for  instead 
of  that  vast  country  contributing  to  the  strength  of  England,  it  is 
a  constant  source  of  weakness.  We  have  only  to  look  at  the  map 
to  convince  ourselves  that  it  is  essential  to  the  stability  of  the 
British  Empire,  that  Canada  should  be  given  up.  By  giving  up 
Canada  we  lose  nothing — for  our  trade  will  go  on  with  her  after 
she  is  independent  the  same  as  now.  So  far  from  losing  anything, 
we  shall  be  great  gainers  by  the  change;  for  we  shall  save  the 
expense  of  maintaining  an  army  and  navy  for  her  defence,  which 
would  materially  add  to  the  taxation  of  England.  , 
•  "If  Canada  should  prefer  dependence,  that  would  be  no  reason 
why  we  should  not  make  her  independent.  We  must  look  to  our 
own  interests  as  well  as  to  the  interests  of  others,  and  if  it  can  be 
shown  that  it  is  the  interest  of  all  parties  that  Canada  be  inde- 
pendent, we  ought  not  to  hesitate  in  making  her  so,  even  although 
she  should  object  to  it.  Two  great  nations  like  England  and  the 
United  States,  meet  each  other  in  every  quarter  of  the  globe,  and 
all  the  disputes  which  are  ever  occurring  between  them,  must 
eventually  be  settled  on  Canadian  ground.  But  let  Canada  be  an 
independent  State,  and  she  will  be  a  neutral  power  in  the  event  of 
a  war  breaking  out.  Let  this  view  of  the  question  be  clearly 
explained  to  the  Canadians,  in  a  despatch  properly  drawn  up  from 
the  Foreign  Office,  and  the  objections  which  they  have  hitherto 
had  to  Independence  will  be  removed. 

"  But  would  the  Canadians  be  able  to  defend  themselves  and 
remain  independent  if  they  were  separate  from  England  1  This  I 
do  not  doubt,  provided  they  adopted  a  form  of  Government  calcu- 
lated to  maintain  peace  and  advance  the  interests  of  the  nation. 
Such  a  Government  would  at  once  be  recognised  by  the  European 
powers,  and  to  these  powers  Canada  might  appeal  in  the  event  of 
any  uncalled  for  attack  on  them  by  the  United  States.  Let 
12 


170  CONFEDERATION. 

Canada  elect  a  King  and  Parliament,  and  she  will  be  acknow- 
ledged by  all  the  powers  of  Europe,  when  she  will  be  in  a  much 
safer  position  than  she  is  at  present,  although  she  was  studded  all 
over  with  camps  and  fortifications.  If  the  Canadians  should  elect 
one  of  our  Princes  for  her  King,  the  chances  are  they  would 
succeed  in  obtaining  the  consent  of  England  and  the  other  powers 
to  that  election.  This  would  keep  up  a  connection  between 
England  and  Canada,  which  would  be  beneficial  to  both  parties — 
whereas  the  present  connection,  as  shown  by  the  Canadians  them- 
selves, is  prejudicial  to  the  interests  of  both  countries.  A 
commercial  treaty  upon  the  principles  of  free  trade  could  be  made, 
and,  if  necessary,  a  loan  guaranteed  by  England  and  France,  or 
by  England  alone,  might  be  arranged — as  in  the  case  of  Belgium 
and  Greece,  when  they  were  made  independent  States. 

"  Now  is  the  time  for  us  to  make  up  our  minds  to  give  up 
Canada,  for  the  step  will  not  only  save  us  a  world  of  money  for 
the  armaments  which  are  now  called  for,  but  it  will  prevent  the 
danger  of  war  with  the  United  States.  To  postpone  the  con- 
sideration of  this  important  question  until  after  we  have  spent 
our  money,  or  until  we  have  drifted  so  far  into  war  that  it  is 
impossible  to  give  up  Canada,  consistent  with  honour,  would  be 
the  height  of  folly." 

The  remainder  of  this  pamphlet  is  filled  with  prognostications 
of  the  future  of  the  United  States,  as  resulting  from  the  civil  war 
then  raging,  every  one  of  which  to  this  time  has  proved  untrue. 
More  inconsequential  reasoning,  or  more  vague  ideas,  could  hardly 
have  been  put  together  by  any  man  professing  to  deal  with  subjects 
bearing  upon  the  interests  of  an  empire,  or  the  welfare  of  millions 
of  people.  Other  pamphlets  and  documents  on  the  same  subject, 
some  from  noble  peers,  some  from,  men  whose  names  stood  high  on 
questions  connected  with  political  economy,  emanated  from  the 
English  press.  Men  who  wrote  of  the  institutions  of  republican 
America  almost  with  idolatry,  but  who  in  later  life  learned,  from 
a  personal  knowledge  of  their  working,  to  cast  down  the  image  of 
their  early  worship,  did  not  hesitate,  the  former  to  admit  the 
tendency  of  the  public  mind  in  favour  of  separation,  the  latter  to 


CONFEDERATION.  171 

denounce  Canada  as  an  incubus  on  the  realm  that  ought  to  be  cut 
away. 

It  may  be  doubted  whether  the  oblivion  into  which  such  compo- 
sitions ultimately  descend,  is  not  the  best  criterion  of  their  value ; 
but  it  must  not  be  forgotten  that,  at  the  time,  they  are  taken  as 
indications  of  the  public  sentiment,  and  tend,  in  the  irritation, 
they  engender,  to  bring  about  consequences  which  no  subsequent 
sound  reasoning  can  prevent.  There  can  be  110  doubt  that  the 
constant  reiteration  of  such  sentiments  by  English  writers  and 
speakers  did  produce  in  Canada  a  strong  feeling  of  imcertainty  as 
to  its  future  connection  with  England,  and  in  silence  laid  the 
foundations  of  a  party  which  may  hereafter  have  a  marked  in- 
fluence upon  the  future  destinies  of  the  country. 

This  question  of  the  severance  .of  Canada  from  Great  Britain  is 
too  important  in  its  bearing  upon  the  interests  of  both  countries, 
to  be  passed  over  without  remark.  In  the  discussion,  the  narrative 
of  the  past  must  cease,  and  a  view  be  taken  from  the  stand-point 
of  1871,  both  as  it  will  affect  the  future  of  .Great  Britain,  and  as 
it  will  affect  the  present  and  future  of  Canada,  in  the  light  of 
peace  and  trade,  and  in  the  light  of  war.  The  position  and  policy 
of  the  United  States  must  not  be  disregarded. 

It  is  solely  as  to  the  future  that  the  question  need  be  considered 
in  relation  to  Great  Britain.  To  her  at  present,  the  separation 
could  not  be  of  much  consequence.  On  the  contrary,  as  relieving 
her  of  an  apparently  assailable  point  from  the  United  States,  by 
many  it  would  be  thought  desirable.  But  perhaps  it  is  not  tres- 
passing too  far  on  the  realm  of  prophecy  to  say,  that  twenty  or 
thirty  years  hence,  her  retention  of  place  as  the  first  trading  and 
maritime  power  in  the  world  may  depend  upon  her  connection 
with  Canada. 

A  few  words  as  to  what  Canada  is.  In  February,  1862,  in  the 
House  of  Representatives,  in  the  Congress  of  the  United  States, 
pending  the  discussions  relative  to  the  expiry  and  the  renewal  of 
the  reciprocity  treaty  with  the  United  States,  "  the  Committee  on 
Commerce,  to  whom  was  referred  the  concurrent  resolutions  of  the 
State  of  New  York,  in  relation  to  the  treaty  between  the  United 
States  and  Great  Britain  commonly  known  as  the  reciprocity 
treaty,  made  their  report."  In  that  report,  which  certainly  did 


172  CONFEDERATION. 

not  receive  its  instigation  from  any  Canadian  source,  and  which 
cannot  be  regarded  as  exceptionally  friendly,  it  is  thus  said  : 

"  The  great  and  practical  value  of  the  British  North  American 
Provinces  and  possessions  is  seldom  appreciated.  Stretching  from 
the  Atlantic  to  the  Pacific  ocean,  they  contain  an  area  of  at  least 
3,478,380  square  miles  :  more  than  is  owned  by  the  United  States, 
and  not  much  less  than  the  whole  of  Europe,  with  its  family  of 
nations.  The  '  Maritime  Provinces,'  on  the  Atlantic  coast,  include 
New  Brunswick,  Nova  Scotia,  Prince  Edward  Island  and  New- 
foundland. Geographically,  they  may  be  regarded  as  a  north- 
easterly prolongation  of  the  New  England  system.  Unitedly, 
they  include  an  area  of  at  least  86,000  square  miles,  and  are 
capable  of  supporting  a  larger  population  than  that  at  present 
existing  in  the  United  States,  or  Great  Britain.  They  are  equal 
in  extent  to  the  united  territory  of  Holland,  Greece,  Belgium, 
Portugal  and  Switzerland. 

"  Canada — rather  a  nation  than  a  province,  in  any  common 
acceptation  of  the  term — includes  not  less  than  346,863  square 
miles  of  territory,  independently  of  its  North- Western  possessions, 
not  yet  open  for  settlement.  It  is  three  times  as  large  as  Great 
Britain  and  Ireland,  and  more  than  three  times  as  large  as  Prussia. 
It  intervenes  between  the  great  North- West  and  the  Maritime 
Provinces. 

"The  habitable  but  undeveloped  area  of  the  British  posses- 
sions, westerly,  from  Lake  Superior  and  Hudson's  Bay,  comprises 
sufficient  territory  to  make  twenty-five  states  equal  in  size  to 
Illinois. 

"  The  climate  and  soil  of  these  Provinces  and  possessions,  seem- 
ingly less  indulgent  than  those  of  the  tropical  regions,  are  precisely 
those  by  which  the  skill,  energy  and  virtues  of  the  human  race 
are  best  developed. 

"It  is  computed  that  Canada  alone,  if  her  past  and  present  rate 
of  increase  is  continued,  will  have  twenty  millions  of  inhabitants 
at  the  end  of  this  present  century — numerically  exceeding  the 
population  of  Great  Britain  when  the  century  began." 

Since  that  report  was  made,  this  whole  country,  with  the  excep- 
tion of  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  but  embracing 


CONFEDERATION.  173 

in  addition  British  Columbia  and  Vancouver  Island,  beyond  the 
Rocky  Mountains,  has  been  confederated  into  one  Dominion,  is 
governed  by  one  central  authority,  has  but  one  uniform  commercial 
policy,  and,  as  "  Canada,"  guides  and  rules  those  vast  territories 
from  the  Atlantic  to  the  Pacific. 

The  policy  of  that  "  Canada "  at  present  is  in  accord  with  the 
policy  of  England — Free  Trade.  Her  tariff"  is  imposed  for  revenue, 
not  for  protection.  That  rule,  since  confederation,  may  have  been 
temporarily  departed  from  on  one  occasion,  to  accomplish  a  parti- 
cular object,  namely,  the  attainment  of  a  free  or  more  reciprocal 
trade  with  the  United  States.*  But  in  no  instance  has  it  been 
departed  from  to  encourage  a  mere  local  industry,  at  the  cost  of 
the  main  body  of  the  people. 

The  policy  of  the  United  States,  on  the  contrary,  has  been  and 
is  Protection.  The  trade  returns  show  that  for  18 70,  with  a  popula- 
tion nearly  ten  times  as  great  as  that  of  the  Dominion,  the  import8 
from  Great  Britain  into  the  United  States  were  but  three  times 
as  great  as  into  the  Dominion — in  round  numbers,  £21,000,000 
sterling  to  £7,000,000,  or  but  lls.  to  35s.  sterling  per  head. 

Sir  Francis  Hincks,  the  Finance  Minister  of  Canada,  in  his 
speech  of  the  10th  March,  1871,  on  making  his  financial  statement 
to  the  Canadian  Parliament  for  the  financial  year  terminating  1st 
June,  1870,  referring  to  the  same  subject,  said  : 

"  I  referred  last  year,  to  the  very  satisfactory  position  of 
this  country,  as  compared  with  that  of  other  countries — our  im- 
mediate neighbours  to  the  south  of  us,  and  the  mother  country, — 
both  with  regard  to  the  rate  of  taxation  and  the  amount  of  debt. 
I  will  not  trouble  the  House  by  going  any  further  into  that  matter 
now,  but  there  is  one  point  which  I  think  is  deserving  of  atten- 
tion, in  reference  to  the  position  of  the  country,  and  that  is  that 
Canada  has  in  the  last  year,  with  regard  to  its  business  transac- 
tions with  the  mother  country,  risen  from  the  rank  of  No.  11  in 
the  list  to  that  of  No.  8.  The  exports  to  Canada  exceed  those 
to  Russia,  China,  Brazil  and  Turkey,  all  countries  having  a 

*  The  imposition  of  duties  on  coal  and  flour  by  the  tariff  of  1870,  under  what  was  then 
termed  the  national  policy,  repealed  by  the  tariff  of  1871. 


174  CONFEDERATION. 

very  large  trade  with  Great  Britain.  But  there  is  a  very  impor- 
tant fact  in  connection  with  this,  which  should  not  be  lost  sight 
of,  that  there  is  no  country  which  trades  with  England  that  re- 
ceives from  her  so  large  a  proportion  of  her  goods  as  Canada  in 
proportion  to  her  population.  I  have  ascertained  from  statistics 
that  the  United  States,  with  forty  millions  of  people,  took  during 
the  last  nine  months,  the  returns  of  which  I  have  been  able  to  get, 
.£20,000,000  worth  of  goods,  being  at  the  rate  of  ten  shillings  per 
head  of  the  population.  During  the  same  period  Canada,  with 
four  millions  of  people,  took  £6,000,000  worth,  being  at  the  rate 
of  £1  10s.  per  head,  or  exactly  three  times  as  much  for  our  popu- 
lation as  the  United  States. 

"  Hon.  Sir  Geo.  E.  Cartier. — Each  of  us  worth  three  Americans. 

"  Hon.  Sir  Francis  Hincks. — When  you  look  to  other  lands 
which  are  put  down  as  being  the  great  countries  with  which  there 
is  trade,  to  British  India,  for  instance,  which  stands  very  high 
after  the  United  States,  the  difference  is  even  greater.  It  must  be 
remembered  that  British  India  has  a  population  of  155,000,000, 
and,  therefore,  the  exports  to  that  country  amount  to  about  two 
shillings  per  head.  Russia  receives  one  shilling  and  six  pence  per 
head ;  Germany,  which  also  stands  veiy  high  in  the  list,  about 
eight  shillings  per  head  ;  so  that  we  have  the  satisfaction  of  know- 
ing that  this  country  is  the  one  which  in  proportion  to  its  popula- 
tion carries  on  the  most  commerce  of  any  country  in  the  world. 
This  is  a  very  satisfactory  statement  of  our  relations  with  the 
mother  country." 

That  portion  of  his  budget  speech  of  the  previous  year  (1st  April, 
1870,)  to  which  Sir  Francis  Hincks  referred,  it  may  not  be  inap- 
propriate here  to  quote  : 

With  regard  to  the  means  of  the  country — with  regard  to  its 
ability  to  discharge  all  its  liabilities — and  with  regard  to  its  taxa- 
tion, I  would  desire  to  say  a  few  words,  and  to  institute  a  com- 
parison between  its  condition  and  the  condition  of  other  countries 
with  which  we  are  acquainted.  I  find,  if  we  take  Great  Britain 
that  the  debt  of  that  country  is  about  $135  per  head  of  the 


CONFEDERATION.  175 

population.  The  debt  of  the  United  States  is  about  $60  per 
head.  I  may  here  observe  that  although  the  ratio  of  debt  is  lower 
in  the  case  of  the  United  States  than  in  that  of  Great  Britain,  it 
would  be  unfair  to  estimate  the  burdens  of  the  people  according  to 
the  same  ratio,  for  it  is  pretty  well  known  that  the  debt  of  Eng- 
land carries  a  very  small  rate  of  interest,  while  the  debt  of  the 
United  States  carries  a  large  rate.  Now,  while  the  debt  of 
those  countries  is  what  I  have  stated,  the  debt  of  Canada  is  about 
$22.50  per  head  of  the  population.  Then,  again,  taxation  in 
Great  Britain  is  at  the  rate  of  about  $10  per  head,  and  in  the 
United  States  about  $9.25,  while  in  Canada  it  is  only  about 
$3.50.  I  do  not  think,  bearing  these  figures  in  mind,  that  we 
need  be  afraid  of  any  slight  increase  of  taxation  which  it  may  be 
necessary  to  impose  upon  the  people  in  order  that  there  shall  not 
be  the  least  cause  to  apprehend  deficits  in  the  future.  I  find,  too, 
that  if  we  take  the  customs  revenue  of  the  United  States,  it  is 
about  $4. 50  per  head  of  the  population,  while  the  customs  revenue 
of  Canada  is  about  $2.  I  may  be  permitted  to  draw  attention  to 
the  remarkable  point,  that  although  our  customs  contributions 
appear  to  be  large  in  proportion  to  those  of  the  United  States, 
honourable  gentlemen  will  see  just  now,  when  I  draw  a  compari- 
son between  the  internal  revenue  of  the  two  countries,  that  the 
revenue  from  customs  approaches  more  nearly,  though  still  very 
far  below  that  of  the  United  States  than  the  internal  revenue 
does.  And  the  reason  of  that  is  obvious.  The  United  States 
have  such  high  protective  duties  upon  everything  imported,  that 
importations  are  much  reduced,  and  the  customs  revenue  per 
head  does  not  come  up  as  in  Canada,  where  on  leading  articles  the 
duties  are  much  lower.  The  internal  revenue  of  the  United 
States  is  about  $4  per  head  of  the  population,  whereas  in  Canada 
the  excise  revenue  is  only  about  sixty-seven  cents  per  head." 

In  connection  with  these  remarks  of  Sir  Francis  Hincks,  it  is 
not  unimportant,  in  answer  to  those  political  economists,  who 
deem  England  would  be  better  without  her  colonies,  to  observe 
that  commercial  returns  shew  that  at  the  period  above  mentioned, 
when  as  compared  with  the  United  States,  Canada  was  taking  of 


176  CONFEDERATION. 

British  goods  at  the  rate  of  35s.  per  head  to  11s.  ]$Tew  South 
Wales,  with  a  population  of  450,000,  was  taking  £3,000,000  stg., 
or,  £6  13s.  sterling  per  head, — New  Zealand,  with  a  population  of 
220,000,  was  taking  £1,700,000  sterling,  or,  £7  14s  stg.,  per  head, 
— South  Australia,  with  a  population  of  170,000,  was  taking 
£1,200,900  sterling,  or  about  £7  sterling  per  head, — and  Victoria, 
with  a  population  of  700,000,  was  taking  £6,000,000  sterling,  or 
nearly  at  the  rate  of  £8  5s  sterling  per  head — thus  shewing  that 
at  that  time — Canada,  Australia,  and  New  Zealand  alone,  con- 
sumed more  than  six  times  as  much  of  British  Industry  in 
proportion  to  population,  than  did  the  United  States,  and  within 
a  little  under  £2,000,000  of  the  total  amount,  viz.,  £18,900,900 
sterling  to  £21,000,000  sterling.  The  increase  since  that  time 
will  more  than  make  them  equal. 

The  returns  for  the  financial  year  terminating  1st  June,  1870, 
shew  an  increase  in  the  Canadian  importations  from  Great  Britain 
over  the  preceding  year,  viz.  :  1869,  $35,764,470,  or  £7,348,863 
sterling;  1870,  $38,595,433,  or  £7,930,568  sterling;  and  those  of 
1871,  a  still  larger  increase,  viz.,  $49,200,557,  or  £10,109,703 
9s.  lOd.  sterling — an  increase  in  two  years  of  $13,436,087,  or 
£2,760,840  9s.  lOd.  sterling. 

The  following  extract  from  Patterson's  statement,  (Secretary  to 
the  Board  of  Trade,  Montreal,)  for  1870,  shews  that  the  increase 
in  each  year  is  general,  and  therefore  likely  to  continue : 

1868.  1869.  1870. 

Cotton,  piece  goods,   ....'...yds.  29,944,569  29,233,462  42,848,973 

Haberdashery,  value, £611,129  670,471  352,277 

Woollen  manufactures yds.  2,163,317  1,901,641  2,791,127 

Carpet  and  druggets "  495,574  468,652  666,565 

Worsted  stuff "  5,233,536  5,354,039  8,266,907 

Apparel  and  slops,  value £128,805  157,470  203,635 

The  total  Canadian  trade,  both  imports  and  exports,  in  ten 
years  (from  1860  to  1870),  excluding  the  Hudson's  Bay  and  North- 
West  Territories,  and  British  Columbia,  but,  during  the  last  two 
years,  including  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick,  had  more 


CONFEDERATION. 


177 


than  doubled  itself,  viz.,  from  $68,000,000*  to  $148,387,829 ;  f 
and  in  the  year  terminating  30th  June,  1871,  has  gone  up  to 
$170,000,000,1  of  which  $95,857,408  have  been  imports;  and  of 
those  imports  $49,200,557  came  from  Great  Britain.  J 

The  following  is  the  official  statement  of  the  Commisioner  of 
Customs : 

COMPARATIVE  STATEMENT  showing  the  total  value  of  exports,  the  total 
value  of  goods  imported  and  entered  for  consumption,  and  the 
amount  of  duties  collected  in  the  Dominion  of  Canada  during  the 
fiscal  years  ending  respectively  on  30th  June,  1870  and  1871. 


FISCAL  YEARS. 

Total  Ex- 
ports. 

Total  Ira- 
ports. 

Entered  for 
Consump- 
tion. 

Duty. 

Ending  June  30, 
Do.       do. 

Increase  .  .  . 

1871.... 
1870.... 

$ 
74,143,098 
73,573,490 

$ 
95,857,408 
74,814,339 

$ 
86,679,645 
71,237,603 

$ 
11,864,291  77 
9,462,940  44 

569,608 

21,043,069 

15,442,042 

2,401,351  33 

R.  S.  M.  BOUCHETTE, 

Commissioner  of  Customs. 
Customs  Department,  Ottawa,  Oct.  18,  1871. 

Moreover,  it  is  to  be  observed  that  on  the  28th  day  of  April, 
1871,  the  new  tariff  came  into  force,  which  reduced  the  annual 
taxation  by  a  million  and  a  half,  and  would  necessarily  have  a 
sensible  bearing  upon  the  quarter  terminating  the  1st  June,  1871. 

It  may  fairly  be  assumed  therefore,  that,  during  the  next  ten 
years,  the  increase  will  be  the  same,  if  not  in  a  greater  ratio. 

Again,  while  the  importation  of  bread  stuffs  into  Great  Britain 
from  the  United  States,  during  a  period  of  seventeen  years,  from 
1853  to  1870,  increased  but  in  the  ratio  of  a  little  over  two  to 
one,  viz.,  from  12,869,433  bushels  to  28,122,480  in  1870,  except- 
ing extraordinary  fluctuations  during  that  period,  rising  to 

*  Tear  Book,  1871,  page  41. 

t  Bouchette's  official  statement,  Oct.  18,  1871. 

I  Deputy  Minister  of  Customs. 


178 


CONFEDERATION. 


40,000,000  in  1862,  and  descending  to  under  2,000,000  in  1866 ; 
the  importations  from  Canada  during  the  same  period  increased  in 
a  ratio  of  nearly  six  to  one,  viz.,  from  1,365,595  bushels  in  1853 
to  6,422,936  in  1870,  excluding  similar  fluctuations,  rising  to  over 
9,000,000  in  1862,  and  falling  in  1866  to  111,255  ;*  thus  shewing 
that  while  similar  causes  produced  in  both  countries  a  corres- 
ponding increase  or  depression,  yet  the  comparative  increase  was 
in  favour  of  Canada  of  four  to  one,  and  when  it  is  remembered 
that  these  exports  were  paid  for  by  the  imports  of  British  manu- 
factures, the  balance  is  found  in  favour  of  Canada,  as  a  customer 
to  Great  Britain  of  four  to  one. 

Again,  the  effect  of  the  Repeal  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty  with 
the  United  States  in  1866,  was  to  divert  an  immense  volume  of 
Canadian  trade  from  the  United  States  to  Great  Britain,  decreas- 
ing the  exports  to  the  United  States,  viz.,  $7,500,000  in  the  years 
1866  and  1867,  and  increasing  the  exports  to  Great  Britain  from 
13,000,000  in  1866  to  21,000,000  in  1868,t  to  be  repaid  again  in 
British  manufactures,  affording  a  significant  intimation  to  the 
British  producer  what  would  be  the  result  of  a  connection  of 
Canada  with  the  United  States,  based  upon  an  unchangeable 
political  incorporation  instead  of  a  temporary  treaty,  maintained 
or  broken  off  as  the  passions  or  interests  of  the  dominant  party 
may  dictate. 

Again,  the  following  table  compiled  from  the  "  Trade  and  Navi- 
gation Returns,"  shows  the  total  quantity  of  tea  imported  into  the 
Provinces  of  Ontario  and  Quebec  during  the  two  fiscal  years 
1868-69  and  1869-70  : 

Fiscal'year       Fiscal  year 

1868-69.  1869-70. 

Whence.  Ibs.  Ibs. 

Great  Britain    > 6,210,099  3,717,561 

United  States  1,639,121  2,674,900 

China    625,625  2,373,043 

Japan    95,113 

Other  Countries  2,024  406 


Total 8,476,869     8,861,023 


*  Patterson  1870—14. 

t  Lowry's  Pamphlet,  page  10. 


CONFEDERATION.  179 

"  It  will  be  seen  from  this  comparative  statement  that  there  has 
been  a  very  remarkable  decrease  in  importation,  of  tea  from  Great 
Britain.  The  imports  in  bond  from  the  United  States  showing  a 
large  increase,  while  there  was  a  great  augmentation  in  the  direct 
trade  with  China."* 

The  returns  of  the  importation  of  tea  into  the  same  two 
Provinces — Ontario  and  Quebec — for  the  fiscal  year  1870  and 
1871,  terminating  1st  June,  1871,  are  as  follows  : 

Great  Britain     3,343,024  Ibs. 

United  States    5,081,675    „ 

China 1,280,777    „ 

Japan 675,453    „ 

Other  Countries    6,056    ,, 

Total 10,386,985  Ibs. 

Showing  with  an  increase  of  nearly  two  millions  over  the 
preceding  year — yet  even  less  came  from  Great  Britain  than 
during  that  year — and  taking  the  whole  importations  of  tea  into 
the  Dominion  for  the  latter  year,  which  the  Returns  show  to  be 
13,781,087  lbs.,t  in  which  Great  Britain  had  the  direct  communi- 
cation by  sea  with  the  maritime  Provinces  of  Nova  Scotia  and 
New  Brunswick,  the  total  importation  from  Great  Britain  into 
the  Dominion  is  less  than  it  was  two  years  ago — into  the  two 
Provinces  of  Quebec  and  Ontario  alone — viz.,  6,009,684  as  against 
6,210,099. 

From  these  tables  and  facts,  which  show  the  revolution  that 
one  railway  has  produced  in  the  tea  trade  alone  in  two  years,  a 
fair  inference  may  be  drawn  as  to  what  will  be  the  effect  upon  the 
Eastern  trade  of  Great  Britain,  when  the  various  lines  of  railways 
throughout  the  United  States  and  Canada  to  the  Pacific  are  com- 
pleted, and  the  still  more  varied  productions  of  the  East — their 
silks,  their  spices,  their  rice,  cottons,  and  sugars,  as  well  as  their 
teas,  seek  the  shorter  and  less  expensive  routes,  saving  both  time 

*  Patterson,  1870,  p.  93. 

t  Deputy  Minister  of  Customs. 


180  CONFEDERATION. 

and  insurance ;  and  having  a  continent  with  its  main  Trunk  Lines 
of  traffic,  tapped  by  a  thousand  diverging  streams,  for  distribution 
as  purchasers  on  the  way. 

In  view  of  England's  future,  this  question  of  the  transcontinen- 
tal railways  is  of  very  serious  importance.  Pumpelly  in  a  late 
work,  "  Across  America  and  Asia ;  Notes  of  a  Five-years'  Journey 
round  the  World,"  speaking  of  the  tea  trade  from  China,  mentions 
the  remarkable  fact,  that  of  two  shipments  of  the  same  tea  from 
Hankaw,  the  one  going  by  sailing  vessel  to  England  and  St. 
Petersburg,  the  other  by  the  long  land  route,  through  China  in 
boats  and  vessels,  through  Tartary  on  camels,  through  Siberia  on 
sleighs,  and  through  Russia  by  railroads,  that  which  took  the  long 
land  route  cost  nearly  the  same  in  St.  Petersburg  as  that  which 
went  by  the  sea.  "  This,"  he  says,  "  may  be  owing  in  part  to  the 
excess  of  duty  at  the  Atlantic  port  of  Russia  over  that  on  the 
Siberian  frontier,  and  partly  perhaps  to  the  fact  that  the  tea 
which  takes  the  ocean  route  requires  more  manipulation  before 
shipment  than  the  other.  The  tea  trade  alone  between  China  and 
Europe  is  very  large,  and  seems,  when  taken  in  connection  with 
many  other  reasons,  to  warrant  the  belief  that  the  near  future 
will  see  a  railroad  along  this  important  route."  He  points  out 
that  there  would  not  be  any  very  serious  obstacles  in  the  way, 
though  the  distance  from  Shanghai  to  Kazan,  the  eastern  terminus 
of  the  Russian  railroad,  is  about  4,600  miles,  and  the  total  distance 
from  Shanghai  to  St.  Petersburg  5,600  miles  ;  and  observes : 
"Aside  from  international  difficulties,  the  construction  of  such  a 
road  would,  notwithstanding  the  greater  length,  seem  to  be  a 
simpler  problem  than  that  of  the  Union  Pacific  line,  for  the 
European  Asiatic  road,  besides  connecting  the  two  greatest  mar- 
kets of  the  world,  would  be  sure  of  an  immediate  and  extensive 
way  traffic,  because  in  the  vast  regions  it  would  traverse,  all  the 
elements  necessary  thereto  already  exist." 

It  may  be  said  that  a  work  of  this  magnitude  is  so  remote  that 
it  has  no  practical  bearing  on  the  discussion ;  but  it  is  not  more 
remote  than  was  the  construction  of  the  American  lines  to  the 
Pacific  fifteen  years  ago,  or  the  construction  of  the  Canadian  line 
ten  years  ago,  and  we  are  speaking  of  England's  position  twenty 


CONFEDERATION.  181 

years  hence.  The  British  statesman,  therefore,  who,  by  now 
ignoring  Canada,  places  the  great  lines  of  Eastern  traffic  under  the 
control  of  Russia  on  the  one  side,  and  the  United  States  011  the 
other,  is  incurring  a  grave  responsibility,  and  may  leave  to  his 
countrymen  the  inheritance  of  diminished  influence  and  power. 

Thus  Canada  is  becoming  daily  a  better  market  for  British 
industry  than  the  United  States,  and  with  its  increasing  popula- 
tion and  rapidly  extending  area,  must  become  still  more  so. 

But  it  is  said  that  the  United  States  will  change  their  policy, 
and  the  above  position  would  then  be  no  longer  tenable.  On  this 
point  several  important  facts  have  to  be  taken  into  consideration. 
It  is  argued  that  the  great  diminution  of  American  shipping,  and 
the  loss  of  the  carrying  trade,  will  awaken  the  Americans  to  the 
unsoundness  of  their  policy. 

The  Americans  attribute  this  diminution  and  loss  to  the  con- 
duct of  the  British  Government  during  the  civil  war,  and  demand 
a  corresponding  compensation ;  but  many  of  their  ablest  politicians 
and  statesmen  contend  that,  owing  to  the  great  extent  and  inter- 
nal resources  of  the  United  States,  the  loss  or  diminution  of  its 
foreign  trade  is  not  of  so  much  consequence  as  it  would  be  to  other 
countries  differently  situated ;  that  the  duties  of  excise  alone  had, 
during  the  year  1869-70,  paid  off  $100,000,000  of  the  national 
debt,  and  would,  in  a  few  years,  wipe  it  away  altogether  (assuming 
that  there  was  no  increase  from  unexpected  causes),  and  then  that 
the  United  States  would  be  strong  and  prosperous  as  a  nation, 
even  though  she  had  not  a  merchant  ship  upon  the  seas,  and  no 
foreign  carrying  trade  whatever.  They  urge  that  as  the  United 
States  embrace  within  their  territories  both  the  temperate  and 
tropical  regions,  they  have  within  themselves  all  those  produc- 
tions which,  with  other  countries  not  so  situated,  constitute  objects 
of  exchange ;  and  as  they  have  coal  and  iron  in  abundance,  a  popula- 
tion equal  to  that  of  Great  Britain,  and  the  best  cotton  in  the  world, 
they  can,  whenever  other  avocations  do  not  pay  them  better,  enter 
into  competition  with  Great  Britain  in  the  manufacture  of  those 
fabrics,  of  which  she  now  claims  pre-eminently  to  be  the  work- 
shop, and  as  her  immense  continent  fills  up  with  people  she  will 
have  a  market  without  competition,  and  under  her  own  exclusive 


182  CONFEDERATION. 

control,  quite  as  large  as  all  Europe,  or  even  India  can  afford  to 
Great  Britain.  Further,  that  her  vicinity  to  China,  Japan,  and 
the  Eastern  Archipelago,  with  her  present  and  contemplated  rail- 
ways, must  give  her  that  market  with  which  Great  Britain  cannot 
compete,  except  by  means  of  transit  through  her  country,  or  a 
transit  by  the  consent  of  other  foreign  nations,  or  by  a  long  and 
circuitous  route  round  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope.  That,  taking  all 
these  things  into  consideration,  it  is  of  no  serious  consequence 
whether  she  trades  with  Great  Britain  or  not.  That  she  can  do 
better  without  the  fabrics  of  Great  Britain,  than  Great  Britain 
can  without  her  market,  and  that  it  is  better  for  the  United 
States,  however  theorists  may  draw  other  conclusions,  to  legislate 
in  such  a  way  as  to  consolidate  her  domain,  and  make  her  people 
have  within  themselves  all  the  habits  and  pursuits  that  will 
render  them  perfectly  independent  of  other  nations. 

Now,  these  arguments  may  be  sound  or  unsound,  but  they  are 
acceptable  to  a  large  body  of  people  who  like  to  have  their  own 
way,  and  are  willing  to  pay  for  it.  The  same  principles  which 
may  suit  a  dense  population  crowded  into  a  small  space  like  the 
British  Islands,  with  fixed  habits  and  institutions,  and  great 
extremes  of  wealth  and  poverty,  do  not  necessarily  apply  to  a 
population  like  that  of  the  United  States,  with  a  more  generally 
diffused  competence,  and  with  an  unlimited  space  for  expansion. 
Such  a  people  with  such  a  country  may  succeed  even  in  spite  of 
wrong  theories,  and  no  sound  conclusion  for  a  change  in  its  policy 
can  be  based  upon  any  inference  that  such  a  change,  under  such 
circumstances,  would  have  to  take  place  in  England. 

In  advocating,  therefore,  a  separation  upon  any  expectation 
that  the  United  States  will  prove  as  good  customers  in  the  future 
as  Canada  will,  is  relying  upon  an  uncertainty.  As  long  as 
Canada  remains  separate  from  the  United  States,  she  can  regulate 
her  own  tariff  with  England ;  and,  it  is  reasonable  to  expect,  that 
in  a  few  years  the  fact  of  her  now  owning  immense  tracts  of 
those  great  Prairie  Lands,  which  have  formed  so  attractive  a 
feature  in  drawing  emigration  to  the  United  States,  will  have  a 
similar  effect  with  her,  and  a  population  increasing  in  the  same 
ratio,  will  afford  to  England  the  market  which  she  is  losing  in  the 


CONFEDERATION.  183 

United  States.  But  sever  Canada  from  England,  annex  her  to 
the  United  States,  and  you  will  seal  a  whole  continent  against 
British  manufactures,  or,  at  any  rate,  place  it  in  the  power  of  one 
Government  to  do  so — viz.,  the  United  States. 

It  is  argued  that  the  Eastern  market  will  answer  the  purpose  of 
England,  even  if  she  should  be  comparatively  excluded  from  the 
United  States ;  but  the  railways  across  the  American  Continent 
afford,  the  shortest  route  to  the  East,  and  will  divert  the  trade  in 
that  direction.  If  Canada  were  merged  in  the  United  States,  the 
latter  would  have  the  entire  control  of  those  routes.  Canada  is 
now  -building,  or  proposing  to  build,  a  direct  line  from  Halifax  to 
Vancouver  Island,  and  while  she  remains  a  British  possession,  that 
route  cannot  be  closed.  It  is  said  that  the  influence  and  the 
interests  of  the  proprietors  of  these  great  roads  in  the  United 
States  will  be  against  closing  them,  and  that  the  United  States 
Government  must  bow  to  such  influence;  yet  to  accomplish  a 
national  or  a  retaliatory  purpose,  the  Federal  Government  would 
not  hesitate  to  stop  the  passage  of  British  goods  in  tratisitu, 
either  from  or  to  the  East.  The  President  of  the  United  States 
in  his  Message  to  Congress,  December,  1870,  when  endeavouring, 
as  Canadians  allege,  most  unjustly  to  force  them  into  an  abandon- 
ment of  their  Territorial  Fishery  rights, — rights  as  exclusively 
their  own.  as  the  Fishery  rights  on  the  coasts  of  England,  Scot- 
land, or  Ireland  are  the  rights  of  the  people  of  those  countries, — 
did  not  hesitate  to  say,  "  Anticipating  that  an  attempt  may  possi- 
bly be  made  by  the  Canadian  authorities  in  the  coming  season,  to 
repeat  their  tmneighbourly  acts  towards  our  fishermen,  I  recom- 
mend you  to  confer  upon  the  Executive  the  power  to  suspend,  by 
proclamation,  the  operation  of  the  laws  authorizing  the  transit  of 
goods,  wares,  and  merchandize  in  bond  across  the  Territory  of  the 
United  States  to  Canada ;  and,  further,  should  such  an  extreme 
measure  become  necessary,  to  suspend  the  operation  of  any  Laws, 
whereby  the  vessels  of  the  Dominion  of  Canada  'are  permitted  to 
enter  the  waters  of  the  United  States."  How,  then,  can  England 
rely  upon  an  influence  which,  in  the  time  of  emergency,  would  be 
unavailable,  and  which  would  be  rendered  even  the  more  impotent 
from  the  very  effort  to  use  it  in  her  favour,  at  a  time  of  popular 
excitement  or  national  hostility. 


184  CONFEDERATION. 

Then  laying  aside  the  Suez  Canal,  the  future  utility  of  which 
seems  still  to  be  in  the  balance,  and  the  capacity  of  which,  as- 
suming that  it  was  not  controlled  in  any  way  by  Foreign  Powers, 
would  hardly  be  sufficient  for  the  entire  Eastern  Trade  of  Great 
Britain ;  the  latter  country  without  Canada  would  in  that  respect 
be  entirely  at  the  mercy  of  the  United  States. 

The  interest  of  Canada  on  the  contrary,  as  separate  from  the 
United  States,  is  to  make  her  country,  both  by  the  great  natural 
highway  of  the  St.  Lawrence  and  by  means  of  railways,  the  great 
path  of  transport  for  the  traffic  of  Western  America,  and  of  Asia 
to  Europe — by  means  of  light  duties  and  cheap  fares,  aided  by  the 
more  equal  temperature  of  the  climate  to  divert  the  cereals  of 
the  Prairie  States  from  the  expensive  routes  to  New  York  and 
Pennsylvania,  to  Montreal  and  the  other  Canadian  seaports,  and 
in  return  to  supply  those  rapidly  increasing  interior  States  with 
the  productions  of  Great  Britain  and  Europe,  by  means  of  her 
canals  and  superior  natural  communications. 

As  illustrative  of  how  strongly  this  is  the  interest  of  Canada, 
and  how  conclusively  therefore  it  may  be  relied  on,  as  a  policy 
likely  in  the  future  to  influence  her  statesmen,  thereby  keeping 
her  separate  from  the  United  States,  and  leaving  her  open  to 
make  or  continue  her  own  arrangements  with  Great  Britain,  so  as 
to  be  mutually  advantageous  to  both,  it  may  be  mentioned  that 
in  1864,  during  the  discussion  in  the  United  States  on  the  subject 
of  the  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty,  in  pointing  out  the 
benefit  that  accrued  to  one  country  from  having  the  transit  trade 
of  another,  and  as  a  reason  why  the  United  States  should  continue 
the  Reciprocity  Treaty  with  Canada  instead  of  putting  an  end  to 
it,  Hunt's  Magazine,  one  of  the  ablest  and  most  authoritative 
works  in  the  United  States,  on  the  Commercial  Policy  of  the  day, 
among  other  things  stated,  that  the  mere  transit  of  300,000  bushels 
of  Canadian  white  wheat  alone,  from  Detroit  to  New  York,  left, 
in  "  droppings  on  the  way" — in  costs  and  charges  on  the  road — to 
the  benefit  of  the  people  of  the  United  States,  (without  paying 
one  farthing  of  the  purchase  money) — $111,676 — and  gave  the 
items  as  follows : 


CONFEDERATION.  185 

For  elevating  and  shipping , $6,000 

Insurance  against  fire 1,125 

Freight  to  Buffalo  at  6  cents  per  bushel 18,000 

Transfer 3,000 

Canal  freight 60,000 

Measuring .  3,000 

Commission  on  value  in  New  York,  at  $1  90  per  bushel ....  14,250 

Lake  Insurance 2,191 

For  odd  numbers  .           730 


$108,296 

During  the  war,  a  war-tax  on  freight  on  the  lakes  was  fur- 
ther imposed,  which  created  an  additional  charge  of.  . .       3,380 

A  total  benefit  to  the  United  States  Government 
and  people  for  the  transport  of  merely  300,000 
bushels  of  Canadian  grain $111,676 

Throwing  off  the  war  tax  and  reversing  the  position,  giving  to 
Canada  the  transit  of  goods  from  the  Western  States,  instead  of 
to  the  United  States  the  transit  of  goods  from  Canada,  see  what 
an  advantage  it  would  be  to  Canada. 

Thus  in  whatever  light  it  may  be  viewed,  in  the  interests  of 
peace  and  trade,  the  political  connection  of  Canada  with  Great 
Britain  twenty  years  hence  will  be  of  great  importance  to  the 
latter. 

But  it  would  be  unstatesman-like  to  look  at  the  question  solely 
in  the  light  of  peace.  The  mere  patronage  that  Canada  affords 
the  British  Government  in  the  nomination  of  one  solitary  Gover- 
nor-General for  all  British  North  America  is  not  worth,  naming, 
and  therefore  we  must  look  at  the  question  in  the  light  of  war, — 
not  of  war  solely  with  the  United  States,  or  as  regards  Canada, 
(for  if 'the  latter  were  separated  from  England  there  would  be  no 
cause  of  war  between  the  United  States  and  themselves),  but  as 
regards  Great  Britain  in  a  war  with  any  of  the  nations  of  Europe. 
The  enormous  trade  of  England  makes  her  the  most  vulnerable 
nation  in  the  world.  Her  extensive  colonial  possessions  counter- 
balance the  danger,  and  give  her  the  means  of  greatest  efficiency 
as  a  maritime  power  ;  but  unless  she  retains  within  her  own  em- 
13 


186  CONFEDERATION. 

pire  the  compensating  advantages  derivable  therefrom,  in  the  pos- 
session of  ports  where  her  commerce  may  resort  for  shelter,  and 
her  fleets  may  rendezvous  and  coal,  which  her  antagonists  do  not 
possess,  she  must  suffer  in  a  degree  greater  than  they,  for  it  is 
assumed  that  in  any  future  war  Great  Britain  without  allies  is  not 
likely  to  invade  any  of  the  territories  of  Europe,  and  the  conflict 
would  be  one  of  maritime  warfare. 

By  the  advancement  of  science,  in  the  application  of  steam,  the 
adoption  of  ironclads,  and  the  invention  of  powerful  guns  of  pre- 
cision at  long  distances,  other  nations  have  been  brought  more  on 
an  equality  with  Great  Britain.  The  dashing  days  of  Nelson  and 
close  quarters,  of  nautical  skill  in  gaining  the  weather  guage  and 
boarding  at  the  yard  arm,  have  passed  away  forever.  A  Prussian 
or  a  Frenchman  may  not  be  as  good  a  sailor  as  an  Englishman, 
but  he  may  be  quite  as  good,  if  not  better,  as  an  artillerist,  and 
future  contests  between  ships  will  be  regulated  as  much  by  science 
as  by  courage.  England's  commerce  is  spread  over  every  sea. 
Let  us  suppose  that  Canada  is  separated  from  her  either  by  annex- 
ation to  the  United  States,  or  by  having  become  an  independent 
power.  In  such  a  case  what  self-producing  coaling  station  will 
England  have  in  America  1  What  rendezvous  for  her  fleets  1  As 
neutrals,  if  separated,  the  same  law  must  be  extended  to  herself 
that  is  given  to  her  foes — twenty-four  hours  in  port  and  110  muni- 
tions of  war  ;  for  it  is  vain  to  suppose  if  Canada  be  separated  the 
rich  coal  fields  of  Cape  Breton  or  Nova  Scotia,  of  British  Colum- 
bia or  Vancouver  Island,  in  time  of  war  would  be  at  her  command. 
The  noble  harbour  of  Halifax,  with  its  splendid  dockyards  and 
impregnable  fortifications  of  Esquimault,  with  its  wide  and  deep 
bay,  will  no  longer  be  under  the  British  flag.  There  can  be  no 
Gibralter  in  America,  and  when  England  withdraws  from  British 
America,  she  hauls  down  her  flag  from  every  rock  and  hill. 

Reference  may  be  made  to  the  last  Russian  war,  and  it  may  be 
said  that  during  that  war  British  commerce  needed  no  American 
ports.  Perhaps  not.  But  a  war  with  France  and  Russia  com- 
bined, or  Prussia  and  any  other  European  power  possessing 
Mediterranean  as  well  as  Baltic  ports,  or  ports  on  the  English 
Channel,  and  many  of  them,  from  which  fleets  and  privateers 
could  issue,  would  make  a  great  difference. 


CONFEDERATION.  187 

Thus  in  any  future  war — in  such  a  case — England  would  lose 
the  immense  advantages  she  has  hitherto  possessed.  But  if  this 
should  be  so,  in  case  of  a  European  war,  how  much  more  disas- 
trous would  it  be  in  case  of  a  war  with  the  United  States — 
England  without  a  place  of  shelter  on  the  whole  North  Atlantic 
and  North  Pacific  coasts,  and  the  United  States  with  a  thousand 
harbours  on  each,  from  which  vessels  could  issue  to  prey  upon 
England's  European  commerce  on  the  Atlantic,  and  her  Eastern 
commerce  on  the  Pacific.  The  United  States  at  the  same  time 
possessing,  in  her  own  great  interior  continent,  a  field  for  internal 
trade  so  vast,  that  the  loss  of  her  foreign  commerce  by  the  war 
would  not  be  felt.  It  may  be  said,  there  are  to  be  no  more  wars, 
and  all  disputes  between  nations  are  henceforth  to  be  settled  by 
arbitration.  It  would  be  well  if  it  were  to  be  so ;  but  it  is 
hardly  worth  while  to  cut  one's  muscles  until  one  is  sure  there  will 
be  no  more  fighting.  The  history  of  the  last  twenty  years  does 
not  authorise  any  such  conclusion,  and  the  unceasing  note  of 
preparation,  which  rings  throughout  England,  shows  that  she  does 
not  place  much  reliance  on  the  doctrine  that  she  preaches. 

Thus,  in  the  light  both  of  peace  and  war,  the  retention  of 
Canada  as  a  part  of  the  Empire,  may  be  of  the  very  greatest  con- 
sequence to  England. 

On  the  other  hand,  how  would  separation  affect  the  present  and 
future  of  Canada  1  It  may  be  stated  at  once,  that  on  the  part  of 
the  groat — very  great— majority  of  the  people  of  Canada,  there  is 
no  desire  for  any  change.  Apart  from  all  questions  of  material 
advantage,  the  feeling  with  them  is  one  of  sentiment.  They 
identify  themselves  with  the  glory  and  prestige  of  England  j  they 
inherit  the  feelings  of  attachment  to  the  old  soil,  their  fathers 
brought  with  them  to  this  country ;  and  they  no  more  desire  to 
get  rid  of  their  allegiance  than  an  honest  son  would  of  the  attach- 
ment that  binds  him  to  his  father,  even  though  that  father  may 
have  ceased  to  afford  him  pecuniary  aid.  The  recurrence  of  a 
second  shock,  like  that  created  by  the  "  Ashburton  surrender," 
would,  in  the  present  day,  arouse  a  very  bad  feeling ;  but  the 
modern  policy  of  England  renders  that  improbable,  and  it  may 
safely  be  affirmed  that  the  "  status  quo  "  is  one  which  will  not  be 


188  CONFEDERATION. 

disturbed  for  many  years,  except  by  England's  own  action.  A 
separation  involves  two  distinct  phases — one  of  annexation  to  the 
United  States,  one  of  independence  as  a  distinct  sovereign  power. 
"With  reference  to  the  first,  it  is  difficult  to  see  any  advantage  to 
be  gained  by  Canada,  except  the  internal  market  of  the  United 
States,  while  it  would  be  accompanied  with  their  increased  taxa- 
tion, and  the  entire  loss  of  her  own  autonomy,  besides  which, 
whether  beneficial  or  not,  the  people  are  against  it.  Co-existent, 
however,  with  this  latter  feeling,  it  may  not  be  inappropriate  to 
observe  that  the  opinion  is  also  prevalent  throughout  Canada, 
that  in  all  negotiations  with  the  United  States,  touching  affairs 
in  which  British  America  has  been  interested,  the  United  States 
have  on  every  occasion  got  the  advantage  of  England — that  in  eveiy 
instance,  on  the  question  of  boundary,  she  has  been  deceived — that 
on  the  question  of  the  Fishery  rights  phe  has  been  trifled  with ; 
and  though  the  question  of  the  Alabama  Claims  is  one  so  entirely 
of  an  Imperial  character,  and  the  burden — if  a  pecuniary  compensa- 
tion should  be  awarded — so  purely  a  question  of  home  policy 
that  Canada  has  nothing  to  do  with  it,  yet,  whether  it  be  right  or 
wrong,  the  impression  does  exist,  that  English  diplomatists  are  no 
more  fitted  to  compete  with  American  diplomatists  in  statecraft 
on  questions  affecting  American  interests,  than  a  Londoner  would 
be  with  an  Indian  in  woodcraft  in  an  American  forest.* 

In  order  to  understand  the  second,  that  of  independence  as 
a  sovereign  power,  the  enquiry  suggests  itself,  what  are  the 
material  advantages  derived  from  being  connected  with  England  1 
Let  all  dread  of  the  United  States,  so  far  as  Canada  is  con- 
cerned, be  removed  from  the  consideration  of  the  question.  As 
between  the  two  countries,  in  case  of  a  separation,  there  is  110 
likelihood  of  any  cause  of  disturbance.  Apart  from  the  Fenian 
and  rowdy  element  in  the  United  States,  a  kindred  sentiment 
prevails  between  the  two  peoples,  and  their  better  class  of  citizens 
are  in  favour  of  the  more  Conservative  element  still  existing  in 
the  Canadian  Institutions,  though  it  has  ceased  in  their  own.  In 
case  of  the  continued  connection  with  England  and  a  war  arising 

*  See  Howe's  Comments  on  Imperial  Policy.— APPENDIX  B. 


CONFEDERATION.  189 

between  that  country  and  the  United  States,  in  which,  perhaps, 
the  brunt  of  the  land  conflict  might  have  to  be  borne  on  their 
soil,  Canadians  not  only  do  not  admit  the  position  taken  by  the 
Times  and  the  other  writers  and  speakers  referred  to,  as  to  the 
defence  of  their  country ;  but  on  the  contrary,  they  contend  that 
if  England  will  only  do  her  duty,  and  stand  by  them  with  a  fair 
proportion  of  military  and  naval  aid,  the  country  can  be  as  well 
defended  now  as  in  1812.  The  St.  Lawrence  and  the  lakes,  if 
Great  Britain  promptly  availed  herself  of  her  maritime  superiority 
and  made  good  use  of  it,  afford  a  frontier  sufficiently  defensive  as 
well  as  offensive  to  prevent  any  very  great  dread  of  an  invasion 
on  the  part  of  the  two  Provinces  of  Ontario  and  Quebec.  With 
reference  to  the  Maritime  Provinces,  the  sea  is  their  safeguard. 
Apart,  therefore,  from  .such  contingencies,  what  are  the  material 
advantages  1  As  a  matter  of  pounds,  shillings  and  pence,  it  has 
been  shewn  that  Canada  bears  all  her  own  expenses  of  every  kind, 
not  only  for  internal  self-government  and  local  development,  but 
for  those  external  aids  in  the  maintenance  of  lights  and  marine 
establishments  along  her  coasts,  which  are  as  essential  to  British 
and  foreign  commerce  as  to  her  own.  By  the  entire  withdrawal  of 
Her  Majesty's  troops,  the  burden  of  military  defence,  in  all  cases 
except  of  an  Imperial  contest,  has  been  thrown  upon  the  Dominion. 
To  this,  there  can  possibly  be  no  objection.  The  troops  were  sent 
here  for  an  Imperial  purpose,  when  the  Imperial  advisers  of  the 
Crown  thought  for  the  purpose  of  concentration  in  England  or 
otherwise,  they  should  be  withdrawn,  they  were  withdrawn.  They 
had  accomplished  the  object  for  which  they  were  sent,  and  Cana- 
dians were,  and  are  indebted  to  them  for  that  military  instruction 
and  bearing  which  has  tended  so  materially  to  instil  into  them  the 
principle  of  self-reliance,  and  when  on  duty,  of  military  subordina- 
tion. For  revenue  purposes,  and  a  coast  guard  over  the  fisheries, 
Canada  has  to  bear  the  expense.  In  all  her  civil  and  military 
departments  the  same,  not  a  shilling  from  the  English  Exchequer 
finds  its  way  into  Canada  for  a  Canadian  purpose.  On  the  other 
hand,  Canada  derives  a  great  pecuniary  advantage,  indeed  an  in- 
calculable advantage  from  the  connection,  in  the  benefit  of  protec- 
tion to  her  commerce  by  the  British  navy.  Already  the  third 


190  CONFEDERATION. 

maritime  country  in  the  world,  her  ships  under  the  British  flag 
are  spreading  over  every  sea,  and  as  British  ships  bear  with  them 
wherever  they  go,  that  power,  which,  though  unseen,  like  the 
atmosphere,  is  felt  everywhere.  To  this  navy  she  contributes  no 
portion  of  the  expense.  Again,  in  the  representation  of  her 
interests  at  foreign  courts,  in  the  protection  of  her  citizens  abroad  as 
British  subjects,  she  has  the  same  benefit  as  the  tax-payer  of  the 
British  Isles,  who  bears  all  the  burden  of  the  Imperial  expenses, 
while  she  contributes  none.  An  Englishman  with  every  privilege 
— without  his  burden — it  is  difficult  to  conceive,  practically  a  more 
independent  position.  True  it  is,  this  Navy  and  Foreign  Re- 
presentation would  equally  have  to  be  kept  up,  if  Canada  were  in 
no  way  connected  with  England,  not  a  ship  is  added  to  her  navy, 
or  a  man  to  her  army,  on  account  of  Canada,  yet  that  in  no 
way  derogates  from  the  fact  that  Canada  has  the  benefit,  without 
the  payment. 

Reviewing  then  the  whole  subject,  and  balancing  the  considera- 
tions on  both  sides,  the  conclusion  must  be  that  in  the  hour  of 
Great  Britain's  difficulty  with  European  nations,  or  with  the 
United  States,  the  loss  from  the  separation  in  the  future  would  be 
greater  to  England  than  to  Canada.  Canada,  if  separated  and 
independent,  would  have  to  assume  a  burden  equal  to  all  her  pre- 
sent expenditure  for  the  maintenance  of  a  navy  and  diplomatic 
representation  with  foreign  governments,  to  say  nothing  of  the 
humiliations  to  which  a  weak  power  may  sometimes  have  to  sub- 
mit when  assorting  with  others  whose  means  are  immeasurably 
greater.  But  England,  on  the  other  hand,  would  lose,  in  the 
event  of  Canadian  independence,  the  most  available  means  of  pro- 
tecting her  commerce  in  case  of  war ;  and  in  the  event  of  annexa- 
tion to  the  United  States,  would  be  for  all  time  to  come,  in  mat- 
ters of  trade,  both  in  the  east  and  in  the  west,  entirely  at  the  mercy 
of  the  United  States,  in  peace  as  well  as  in  war. 

Thus  it  would  seem  to  the  interest  of  both  parties  to  continue 
the  connection.  Canadian  pride  might  be  nattered  by  Canada 
being  classed  amid  the  great  family  of  nations,  but  her  public 
unproductive  expenditures  would  be  largely  increased.  British 
prudence  might  deem  that  the  empire  had  got  rid  of  an  element  of 


CONFEDERATION.  191 

trouble  with  one  nation,  but  might  find  that  the  removal  of  that 
element  had  left  her  powerless  in  her  contests  with  six  others,  if 
not  all.  Viewed  in  either  light — in  the  cold  aspect  of  material 
calculation,  or  the  warmer  glow  of  a  more  generous  patriotism,  the 
true  friend  of  both  countries  would  desire  that  110  severance  should 
take  place. 

With  the  cementing  of  a  friendly  feeling  with  the  United 
States,  and  the  joint  rivalry  of  Great  Britain  and  Canada  and 
themselves  in  works  of  progress  and  civilization,  it  might  well  be 
anticipated  that  the  humanities  of  life  would  be  promoted,  and 
civil  and  religious  liberty  become  more  widely  diffused. 

The  importance  of  the  connection  of  Canada  with  Great  Britain, 
in  view  of  the  future  position  of  the  latter,  ought  not  to  be  too 
lightly  estimated.  In  a  late  article  in  one  of  the  leading  periodi- 
cals of  the  day  (Blackwood),  "  How  is  the  country  governed," 
it  is  said  :  "-The  departments  of  state  in  which  the  people  of  Eng- 
land take,  as  is  natural,  the  deepest  interest,  are  the  Home  Office, 
the  War  Office,  the  Admiralty,  the  Treasury,  and  the  Foreign 
Office.  The  business,  as  well  of  the  Colonial  as  of  the  Indian 
Office,  may  be,  and  doubtless  is,  both  weighty  and  important,  but 
it  attracts,  comparatively  speaking,  little  notice  out  of  Downing 
Street,  and  beyond  the  doors  of  the  Houses  of  Parliament,  for 
this  sufficient  and  obvious  reason,  that  whether  ill  or  well  con- 
ducted, it  affects  the  interests  of  the  masses  only  in  a  secondary 
degree."  The  truth  of  the  above  statement  can  hardly  be  ques- 
tioned, but  the  reason  assigned  may  well  be.  The  failure  or  inse- 
curity of  the  commerce  of  England  would  affect  the  interests  of 
the  masses  more  than  the  result  of  the  question  whether  the 
elections  should  be  conducted  by  ballot  or  viva  voce,  and  quite  as 
much  as  the  settlement  of  the  question  whether  Alsace  or  Lorraine 
belonged  to  Germany  or  France. 

The  point  to  be  looked  at  is,  whether  England,  with  the  whole 
continent  of  North  America  sealed  against  her — in  peace  by  an 
antagonistic  policy,  and  in  war  if  with  a  European  power  by  the 
law  of  neutrals,  should  Canada  be  independent,  and  of  necessity 
if  with  the  United  States,  should  Canada  be  merged  in  the  latter — 
can  retain  her  commerce.  In  Canada  the  impression  is  she  could 


192  CONFEDERATION. 

not.  The  following  observations  from  a  leading  American  states- 
man, and  one  of  the  most  eminent  staticians  of  the  United  States, 
whose  opinion  is  of  marked  weight  in  that  country,*  tend  strongly 
to  confirm  the  views  before  expressed.  He  writes  : 

"The  internal  and  coastwise  trade  of  our  country  greatly 
exceeds  our  foreign  trade,  and  consequently  we  feel  the  loss  of 
our  tonnage  in  foreign  trade  muqh  less  than  it  would  be  felt  by 
other  countries.  That  our  prosperity  depended  more  upon  our 
internal  resources  and  exchanges  than  it  did  upon  the  carrying 
trade ;  that  our  revenues  from  the  excise  on  tobacco  and  liquors 
would,  this  year,  meet  the  interest  on  our  whole  debt,  and  suffice 
to  pay  the  principal  before  the  close  of  the  century;  that  by  the  aid 
of  our  internal  revenues  we  had  last  year  paid  $100,000,000  of  our 
debt.  And  that  when  English  politicians  assumed  that  our  power 
was  crippled  by  the  loss  of  a  quarter  of  our  tonnage,  they  fell 
into  a  serious  error — because  they  did  not  appreciate  the  magni- 
tude of  our  internal  resources.  England  measures  the  resources 
of  nations  by  their  exports  and  their  imports  and  tonnage  engaged 
in  foreign  trade.  We  adopt  a  different  standard.  We  have  less 
ships,  and  less  exports  and  imports  in  foreign  trade  than  England. 
Our  commerce  is  chiefly  coastwise  and  continental ;  but  while  the 
entries  and  clearances  of  shipping  in  the  British  Isles  are  less 
than  40,000,000  of  tons  annually,  ours  exceed  87,000,000  of  tons. 
Our  inland  movement  by  railways  and  canals  is  still  larger.  The 
inland  traffic  by  railway  and  canal  of  the  single  State  of  New 
York,  this  year,  exceeds  14,000,000  of  tons.  By  my  estimate, 
the  agricultural  productions  of  the  United  States  annually 
exceed  $3,600,000,000;  their  minerals  and  manufactures  will 
reach  $2,800,000,000  ;  their  exports  and  imports  will  equal 
$1,200,000,000;  their  growth  in  wealth  annually  $1,5 00, 000, 000; 
their  annual  growth  in  population  1,200,000.  If  our  country  has 
lost  shipping,  it  has  built  56,000  miles  of  railways — more  rail- 
ways than  all  Europe  has  constructed.  Last  year  our  country 
raised  4,200,000  bales  of  cotton;  1,200,000,000  bushels  of  corn; 
500,000,000  bushels  of  other  breadstuff's  ;  200,000,000  gallons  of 

*  Mr.  Derby  of  Boston  ;  September  15th,  1871. 


CONFEDERATION.  193 

petroleum.  It  sustains,  also,  more  than  100,000,000  of  cattle, 
sheep,  and  swine.  As  respects  our  commercial  policy,  our  country 
has  since  the  war  repealed  more  than  $300,000,000  taxes  and 
duties,  without  materially  reducing  its  net  revenue.  It  struck  off 
last  year  $24,000,000  of  duties  and  $56,000,000  of  taxes,  and 
can,  I  think,  this  winter  spare  $80,000,000  more,  and  still  reduce 
its  debt  rapidly.  Should  we  do  so,  the  nation  in  eight  years  more 
— should  a  crisis  occur — would  be  able  to  raise,  by  taxes,  duties, 
and  loans,  twice  the  amount  it  did  raise  in  1865 — in  which  year 
we  drew  from  our  people  in  taxes  and  duties  $530,000,000,  and 
by  home  loans  $500,000,000  more.  We  are  now  increasing  our 
shipments  to  England  more  rapidly  than  ever  before,  and  can 
spare  her  manufactures  more  easily  than  she  can  dispense  with 
the  food  and  raw  material  we  furnish." 

However  much,  therefore,  English  political  economists  may 
question  the  soundness  of  the  trade  theories  of  the  United  States, 
it  is  plain  that  until  her  great  continent  becomes  as  densely 
peopled  as  the  British  Isles,  she.  need  not  trouble  herself  much 
about  the  discussion.  In  the  presence  of  such  a  power  twenty 
years  hence,  should  England  rashly  throw  away  Canada,  British 
commerce  may  bow  its  head. 


[194] 


CHAPTER  VII. 

Debate  in  the  Canadian  Legislature  on  Confederation  —  The  Governor- 
General's  Speech — Motion  in  the  Legislative  Council — Do.  in  the  House 
of  Assembly — Character  of  the  Debate— Division  in  the  Council  on  the 
main  motion — Names — Do.  in  the  House — Names — Synopsis  of  speeches 
of  men  representing  views  of  all  parties — A.  D.  1865. 

Wlieii  tlie  Canadian  Legislature  met  in  February,  1865,  it  at 
once  entered  warmly  and  boldly  into  the  question  of  Confeder- 
ation. There  was  no  faltering  either  on  the  part  of  the  Govern- 
ment or  the  people.  Strong  in  the  conviction  of  its  advantages, 
the  Cabinet  were  a  unit,  the  several  ministers  vieing  with  each 
other  only  in  the  generous  rivalry  who  should  be  most  earnest  in 
the  work.  The  Governor-General  brought  the  subject  before  the 
House  in  his  opening  speech  : 

"  I  informed  you  that  it  was  my  intention,  in  conjunction  with 
my  ministers,  to  prepare  and  submit  to  you  a  measure  for  the 
solution  of  the  (bonstitutional  problem,f  the"  discussion  of  which 
has  for  some  years  agitated  this  province.  |  A  careful  consideration 
of  the  general  position  of  British  North  America,  induced  the 
conviction  that  the  circumstances  of  the  time  afforded  the  oppor- 
tunity not  merely  for  the  settlement  of  a  question  of  provincial 
politics,  but  also  for  the  simultaneous  creation  of  a  new  nation- 
ality. I  Preliminary  negotiations  were  opened  by  me  with  the 
Lieut.-Governors  of  the  other  provinces  of  British  North  America, 
and  the  result  was  that  a  meeting  was  held  at  Quebec,  in  October, 
composed  of  delegates  from  these  colonies,  representing  all  shades 
of  political  party  in  their  several  communities,  nominated  by  the 
Lieutenant-Governors  of  their  respective  Provinces,  who  assembled 
here,  with  the  sanction  of  the  Crown  and  at  my  invitation,  to 
confer  with  the  members  of  the  Canadian  ministry,  on  the  possi- 
bility of  effecting  a  union  of  all  the  provinces  of  British  North 
America.  This  Conference  by  lengthened  deliberations  arrived  at 
the  conclusion,  that  a  federal  union  of  these  Provinces  was 
feasible  and  desirable,  and  the  result  of  their  labour  is  a  plan  of 


CONFEDERATION.  195 

constitution  for  the  proposed  union,  embodied  in  a  series  of 
resolutions,  which,  with  other  papers  relating  to  the  subject,  I 
have  directed  to  be  laid  before  you.  The  general  desire  of  a 
union,  and  the  particular  plan  by  which  it  is  proposed  to  carry 
that  intention  into  effect,  have  both  received  the  cordial  approba- 
tion of  the  Imperial  Government.  An  Imperial  Act  of  Parlia- 
ment will  be  necessary  in  order  to  give  effect  to  the  contemplated 
union  of  the  colonies ;  and  I  have  been  officially  informed  by  the 
Secretary  of  State,  that  Her  Majesty's  ministers  will  be  prepared 
to  introduce  a  Bill  for  that  purpose  into  the  Imperial  Parliament, 
as  soon  as  they  shall  have  been  notified  that  the  proposal  has 
received  the  sanction  of  the  Legislatures  representing  the  several 
provinces  affected  by  it.  In  commending  to  your  attention  this 
subject,  the  importance  of  which  to  yourselves  and  to  your 
descendants  it  is  impossible  to  exaggerate,  I  would  claim  for  it 
your  calm,  earnest,  and  impartial  consideration.  With  the  public 
men  of  British  North  America  it  now  rests  to  decide,  whether 
the  vast  tract  of  country  which  they  inhabit  shall  be  consolidated 
into  a  State,  combining  within  its  area  all  the  elements  of  national 
greatness,  providing  for  the  security  of  its  component  parts,  and 
contributing  to  the  strength  and  stability  of  the  empire;  or, 
whether  the  several  Provinces  of  which  it  is  constituted,  shall 
remain  in  their  present  fragmentary  and  isolated  condition,  com- 
paratively powerless  for  mutual  aid,  and  incapable  of  undertaking 
their  proper  share  of  Imperial  responsibility.  In  a  discussion  of 
such  moment,  I  fervently  pray  that  your  minds  may  be  guided  to 
conclusions  which  shall  redound  to  the  honour  of  our  Sovereign, 
to  the  welfare  of  her  subjects,  and  to  your  own  reputation  as 
patriots  and  statesmen." 

On  the  3rd  February,  the  report  of  the  Convention,  in  the 
shape  of  the  resolutions  already  given,  were  brought  up  for 
discussion  in  the  Legislative  Council,  on  the  following  motion  by 
Sir  E.  P.  Tache",  viz.  :  "  That  an  humble  address  be  presented  to 
Her  Majesty,  praying  that  she  may  be  graciously  pleased  to  cause^ 
a  measure  to  be  submitted  to  the  Imperial  Parliament,  for  the 
purpose  of  uniting  the  Colonies  of  Canada,  Nova  Scotia,  New 


196  CONFEDERATION. 

Brunswick,  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward  Island,  in  one 
Government,  with  provisions  based  on  the  resolutions,  which  were 
adopted  at  a  Conference  of  delegates  from  the  said  Colonies,  at 
the  city  of  Quebec,  on  the  10th  October,  1864." 

The  resolutions  are  then  set  forth,  and  are  the  same  as  those 
already  given  011  page  66,  except  the  24th,  which  has  the  altera- 
tion before  adverted  to,  and  is  as  follows  :  "24.  The  Local  Legis- 
lature of  each  Province  may  from  time  to  time  alter  the  Electoral 
Districts  for  the  purpose  of  representation  in  such  Local  Legisla- 
tures, and  distribute  the  representation  to  which  the  Province  is 
entitled  in  such  Legislature  in  any  manner  such  Legislature  may 
see  fit." 

A  similar  motion  was  made  in  the  other  House. 

It  may  be  said  of  the  debate  which  followed  in  both  Houses, 
that  it  would  have  reflected  credit  on  any  assembly.  Sustained 
throughout,  over  a  succession  of  many  weeks,  by  courtesy  and 
forbearance  in  the  speakers  and  members  towards  each  other, 
it  was  nevertheless  characterized  by  a  fearless  and  exhaustive 
examination  of  the  propositions.  Overruling  all,  there  breathed 
throughout  a  lofty  patriotism,  and  an  abiding  confidence  in  the 
future  of  Canada.  It  is  impossible  to  give  this  debate  in  full — it 
would  be  injustice  to  summarize  it.  The  Legislature  caused  it  to 
be  published  in  a  distinct  volume  by  itself,  so  that  it  is  open  to  all 
parties,  without  labour  or  difficulty  of  attainment. 

The  views  of  Messrs.  Macdonald,  Cartier  and  Brown  on  the 
one  side,  and  of  Messrs.  Sandfield  Macdonald  and  Holton  on  the 
other,  as  the  leaders  of  their  respective  parties  ;  of  Mr.  Gait,  from 
his  admittedly  high  financial  position  and  commercial  knowledge ; 
of  Mr.  Dorion,  as  the  leader  of  the  Rouge  section  of  the  liberal 
party  of  Lower  Canada;  of  Mr.  Joly,  as  an  educated  French 
Protestant,  and  representative  of  the  rural  and  landed  interests ; 
of  Mr.  Langeviii  as  a  French-Canadian,  a  member  of  the  Cabinet, 
and  assumed  to  speak  with  the  authority,  and  to  a  great  degree 
the  sentiments,  of  the  Roman  Catholic  clergy  and  party ;  of  Mr. 
Hose,  as  an  eminent  barrister  of  Montreal,  a  banker,  and  politician 
of  much  experience ;  of  Mr.  Dunkin,  as  a  critical  lawyer,  analysing 
the  subject  with  microscopic  power ;  and  of  Mr.  Shanly,  an  inde- 


CONFEDERARION.  197 

pendent  member  of  Parliament,  touching  upon  a  point  not  referred 
to  by  the  other  speakers,  cannot  fail  to  command  attention.  The 
speeches  of  Messrs.  Cartier  and  Brown,  on  different  occasions,  have 
already  been  given  at  great  length.  It  is  considered  that  the  sub- 
stantial observations  of  the  other  members,  now  selected  as  repre- 
sentative men  of  different  interests  and  classes,  condensed  as  much 
as  possible  and  added  to  theirs,  fairly  represent  and  consolidate  the 
opinions  of  all  parties  at  the  time.  The  omission  of  the  observa- 
tions of  other  speakers  is  simply  to  avoid  unnecessary  reiteration. 
In  the  Legislative  Council  the  discussion  was  equally  able. 
On  a  review  of  the  whole  debate,  one  is  perceptibly  struck  with 
the  greater  depth  of  view,  the  broader  forecast,  and  more  states- 
man-like positions  of  the  supporters  of  the  measure,  than  of  its 
opponents.  It  would  indeed  have  been  a  melancholy  day  for 
Canada,  if  the  sectional  jealousies  and  purely  local  considerations 
which  were  urged  by  the  opposition,  however  disinterested  may 
have  been  the  motives  of  its  leaders,  had  prevailed. 

Laying  aside  the  ministerial  difficulties,  and  the  antagonistic 
attitude  of  the  two  divisions  of  old  Canada  proper,  which  had 
rendered  constitutional  government  impossible,  and  made  some 
change  essentially  necessary,  it  is  plain  that  the  future  interests  of  | 
British  North  America  required  a  broader  development  than  could  I 
have  been  afforded  by  any  congeries  of  Provinces,  working  in  I 
indifferent  if  not  hostile  relations  towards  each  other. 

To  the  Maritime  Provinces  the  change  was  as  essential  as  to 
Canada.  It  is  true,  the  machinery  of  their  local  governments  was 
working  smoothly,  and  no  pressing  internal  difficulty  necessitated 
any  departure  from  the  existing  system.  But  the  horizon  was 
circumscribed,  and  very  limited.  No  Province  could  speak  with 
any  weight  of  position.  Trade  was  daily  seeking  further  expan- 
sion ;  but  negotiations  with  half-a-dozen  Provinces,  each  regulating 
its  own  tariff,  rendered  complications  with  foreign  countries  and 
the  Imperial  Government,  through  whom  they  had  to  speak,  so 
great,  as  to  neutralise  action.  The  British  Government  looked 
upon  the  affairs  of  British  North  America  and  its  six  or  seven 
Governments,  as  an  endless  chain  of  trouble,  perpetually  revolving, 
and  always  showing  the  same  unending  types. 


198  CONFEDERATION. 

One  strong  hand,  one  strong  will,  presiding  over  and  cementing 
all,  constitutionally  speaking  to  the  parent  state  through  its 
Parliament  and  ministers,  would  do  more  in  one  year  to  advance 
the  material  progress  of  the  whole  country,  and  remove  the 
difficulties  of  dealing  with  foreign  states,  so  far  as  British  North 
America  was  concerned,  than  would  a  dozen  years  of  negotiation 
with  the  separate  Provinces.  The  greater  homogeniety  that  would 
be  engendered,  the  fusion  of  interests  in  the  undertaking  of  great 
works,  the  national  character  and  national  spirit  that  would  be 
created,  would  all  tend  to  strengthen  those  elements  which  lie  at 
the  foundation  of  a  nation's  greatness. 

It  is  absurd  to  suppose,  that  British  North  America,  with  its 
half  a  continent  of  boundless  domain  can  always  hang  a  de- 
pendancy  upon  England.  Its  people  will  and  must  develop  their 
material  interests,  and  on  the  spot,  they  are  better  judges  of  IIOAV 
that  is  to  be  done,  than  those  who  only  think  for  them  at  a 
distance.  It  requires  no  separation,  no  change  of  sovereignty, 
but  it  requires  a  cessation  of  dependance — Canada  must  not  en- 
tangle Great  Britain  in  any  way.  The  latter's  position  towards 
all  other  countries  ought  to  be  such,  as  to  leave  her  free,  to  act 
for  her  own  Imperial  interests,  without  being  constrained  by 
•considerations  for  Canada,  and  the  only  way  to  accomplish  that 
end,  is  by  Canada  becoming  united  and  strong. 

Those  who  foresaw,  and  boldly  shadowed  forth  this  consumma- 
tion, who  advocated  not  only  the  union  of  the  Atlantic  Provinces, 
but  the  admission  of  the  North- West  Territories  and  of  British 
Columbia,  will  hereafter  rank  among  the  class  of  statesmen,  who, 
rising  above  the  influences  of  their  time,  or  the  pressure  of  local 
causes,  grasp  the  future  in  their  hand,  and  mould  the  destinies  of 
empire. 

But  to  the  debate.  Sir  Etienne  Tache,  in  the  Legislative 
Council,  in  a  fair  and  temperate  speech,  moved  the  resolution, 
observing : 

"  The  reasons  for  its  introduction  were  two-fold.  They  related, 
first,  to  the  intrinsic  merits  of  the  scheme  itself,  divested  of  all  other 
considerations,  and  next,  to  the  settlement  of  the  domestic  difficul- 


CONFEDERATION.  199 

ties  which  for  some  years  had  distracted  the  country,  and  the  means 
we  might  and  ought  to  employ  to  restore  good  feeling,  harmony 
and  concord  therein.  He  would  first  address  himself  to  what  he 
considered  the  intrinsic  merits  of  the  scheme  of  Confederation,  and 
he  would  therefore  say  that  if  we  were  anxious  to  continue  our 
connection  with  the  British  Empire,  and  to  preserve  intact  our 
institutions,  our  laws,  and  even  our  remembrances  of  the  past,  we 
must  sustain  the  measure.  If  the  opportunity  which  now  presented 
itself  were  allowed  to  pass  by  unimproved,  we  would  be  forced  into 
the  American  Union  by  violence,  and  if  not  by  violence,  would  be 
placed  upon  an  inclined  plane  which  would  cany  us  there  insensibly. 
In  either  case  the  result  would  be  the  same.  In  our  present  condi- 
tion we  would  not  long  continue  to  exist  as  a  British  colony.  The 
people  of  the  Northern  States  believed  that  Canadians  sympathized 
with  the  South  much  more  than  they  really  did,  and  the  consequences 
of  this  misapprehension  were  :  first,  that  we  had  been  threatened 
with  the  abolition  of  the  transit  system  \  then  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty  was  to  be  discontinued ;  then  a  passport  system  was  in- 
augurated, which  was  almost  equivalent  to  a  prohibition  of  inter- 
course, and  the  only  thing  which  really  remained  to  be  done  was 
to  shut  down  the  gate  altogether  and  prevent  passage  through 
their  territory.  Would  any  one  say  that  such  a  state  of  things 
was  one  desirable  for  Canada  to  be  placed  in?  Will  a  great 
people  in  embryo,  as  he  believed  we  were,  coolly  and  tranquilly 
cross  their  arms  and  wait  for  what  might  come  next?  For  his 
part  he  held  that  the  time  had  now  arrived  when  we  should 
establish  a  union  with  the  great  Gulf  Provinces.  He  called  them 
great  advisedly,  for  they  had  within  themselves  many  of  the 
elements  which  went  to  constitute  greatness,  and  of  some  of 
which  we  were  destitute.  No  one  could  deny  that  the  Gulf  Pro- 
vinces were  of  immense  importance,  if  only  in  respect  of  their 
fisheries.  Then  they  were  rich  in  minerals.  Their  coal  alone  was 
an  element  of  great  wealth.  It  had  been  said  that  where  coal  was 
found  the  country  was  of  more  value  than  gold.  Look  at  Eng- 
land, and  what  was  the  chief  source  of  her  wealth  if  not  coal1? 
Deprived  of  coal,  she  would  at  once  sink  to  the  rank  of  a  second 
or  third  rate  power.  But  Canada  had  no  coal,  and  notwithstand- 


200  CONFEDERATION. 

ing  all  her  other  elements  of  greatness,  she  required  that  mineral 
in  order  to  give  her  completeness.  What  she  had  not,  the  Lower 
Provinces  had ;  and  what  they  had  not,  Canada  had.  Then  as  to 
ship-building,  it  was  an  industry  prosecuted  with  great  vigour  and 
success  in  those  provinces,  especially  in  New  Brunswick,  and  some 
of  the  finest  vessels  sailing  under  the  British  flag  had  been  built 
in  the  port  of  St.  John,  which  annually  launched  a  considerable 
number  of  the  largest  class.  They  were  not  beggars,  nor  did  they 
wish  to  come  into  the  union  as  such ;  but  as  independent  Provinces, 
able  to  keep  up  their  credit,  and  provide  for  their  own  wants. 
They  would  bring  into  the  common  stock  a  fair  share  of  revenue, 
of  property,  and  of  every  kind  of  industry.  As  to  Canada  itself 
from  the  21st  May,  1862,  to  the  end  of  June,  1864,  there  had 
been  no  less  than  five  different  Governments  in  charge  of  the 
business  of  the  country.  Much  had  been  said  011  the  war  of 
races,  but  that  war  was  extinguished  on  the  day  the  British 
Government  granted  Canada  Responsible  Government,  by  which 
all  its  inhabitants,  without  distinction  of  race  or  creed,  were 
placed  on  a  footing  of  equality.  The  war  of  races  found  its  grave 
in  the  resolutions  of  the  3rd  September,  1841,  and  he  hoped  never 
to  hear  of  it  again." 

The  attack  was  led  by  Mr.  Currie,  ably  supported  by  Mr. 
Letellier  cle  St.  Just  and  Mr.  Sanborn.  They  pointed  in  succes- 
sive columns  of  statistics  to  the  inequalities  of  the  burdens,  as  they 
alleged,  to  be  borne  by  Canada,  and  to  the  constitutional  objec- 
tions put  forward  011  behalf  of  the  French  Canadians ;  but  as 
their  arguments  were  substantially  the  same  as  those  urged  by  the 
opponents  of  the  measure  in  the  Lower  House,  they  will  be  found 
in  the  speeches  hereinafter  quoted  from. 

The  result  in  both  Houses  was  the  same  :  the  motion  was  sus- 
tained by  large  majorities ;  in  the  Lower  House,  on  a  division,  by 
ninety-one  members  to  thirty-three,  only  five  members  being 
absent  out  of  a  house  of  one  hundred  and  twenty-nine,  namely  : 

Yeas. — Messieurs  Alleyn,  Archambault,  Ault,  Beaubien,  Bell, 
Bellerose,  Blanchet,  Bowman,  Bown,  Brosseau,  BroNvn,  Burwell, 


CONFEDERATION.  201 

Cameron  (Peel),  Caiiiiig,  Attorney-General  Cartier,  Cartwright, 
Cauchon,  Chambers,  Chapais,  Cockburn,  Cornellier,  Cowan,  Cur- 
rier, De  Bouclierville,  Denis,  De  Niverville,  Dickson,  Dufresne 
(Montcalm),  Dimsford,  Evanturel,  Ferguson  (Fronteiiac),  Fergu- 
son (South  Simcoe),  Gait,  Gaudier,  Gaudet,  Gibbs,  Harwood, 
Haultain,  Higginson,  Howlaiid,  Huot,  Irvine,  Jackson,  Jones, 
(N.  Leeds  and  Grenville),  Jones  (South  Leeds),  Knight,  Lange- 
vin,  Le  Boutillier,  Attorney-General  Macdonald,  MacFarlane, 
Mackenzie  (Lambton),  Mackenzie  (North  Oxford),  Magill,  McCon- 
key,  McDougall,  McGee,  McGiverin,  Mclntyre,  McKellar,  Morris, 
Morrison,  Parker,  Pope,  Pouliii,  Poupore,  Powell,  Rankin,  Ray- 
mond, Remillard,  Robitaille,  Rose,  Ross,  (Champlain),  Ross 
(Dundas),  Ross  (Prince  Edward),  Scoble,  Shanly,  Smith  (East 
Durham),  Smith  (Toronto  East),  Somerville,  Stirton,  Street, 
Sylvain,  Thompson,  Walsh,  Webb,  Wells,  White,  Willson,  Wood, 
Wright  (Ottawa  County),  and  Wright  (East  York) — 91. 

Nays. — Messieurs  Biggar,  Bourassa,  Cameron  (North  Ontario), 
Caron,  Coupal,  Dorion  (Drumrnoiid  and  Arthabaska),  Dorioii 
(Hochelaga),  Duckett,  Dufresne  (Iberville),  Fortier,  Gagnon, 
Geoftrion,  Holtoii,  Houde,  Huntington,  Joly,  Labreche-Viger, 
Laframboise,  Lajoie,  Macdonald  (Cornwall),  Macdonald  (Glen- 
garry), Macdonald  (Toronto  West),  O'Halloran,  Paquet,  Perrault, 
Pinsonneault,  Pouliot,  Rymal,  Scatcherd,  Taschereau,  Thibaudeau, 
Tremblay  and  Wallbridge  (North  Hastings) — 33. 

And  in  the  Upper  House  by  an  equally  commanding  division, 
namely : 

Contents.  —  Honourable  Messieurs  Alexander,  Allan,  Armaiid, 
Sir  1ST.  F.  Belleau,  Bennett,  Fergusson  Blair,  Blake,  Boulton, 
Bosse,  Bull,  Burnham,  Campbell,  Christie  Crawford,  De  Beaujeu, 
Dickson,  A.  J.  Duchesnay,  E.  W.  J.  Duchesnay,  Dumotichel, 
Ferrier,  Foster,  Gingras,  Guevremont,  Hamilton  (Iiikerman), 
Hamilton  (Kingston),  Lacoste,  Leonard,  Lsslie,  McCrea,  McDonald, 
McMaster,  Macpherson,  Matheson,  Mills,  Panet,  Price,  Read, 
Reiiaud,  Ross,  Ryan,  Shaw,  Skead,  Sir  E.  P.  Tache,  Yidal  and 
Wilson.— 45. 

Non-contents.  —  Honourable  Messieurs  Aikins,  Archambault. 
Armstrong,  Bureau,  Chaffers,  Currie,  Flint,  Letellier  de  St.  Just, 
14 


202  CONFEDERATION. 

Malhiot,    Moore,    Olivier,  Proulx,    Reesor,    Seymour  and  Simp- 
son. — 15. 

In  the  Lower  House,  the  campaign  was  opened  on  the  6th 
February,  1865,  by  the  Attorney-General  West,  John  A.  Mac. 
donald  introducing  the  resolutions,  and  making  a  motion  similar 
to  the  one  moved  by  Sir  E.  P.  Tache"  in  the  Upper  House.  He 
remarked  substantially  as  follows  : 

"  That  in  fulfilment  of  the  promise  made  by  the  Government  to 
Parliament  at  its  last  session,  he  had  to  submit  a  scheme  for  the 
Confederation  of  all  the  British  North  American  Provinces — one 
which,  as  propounded  through  the  press,  had  received  almost  no 
opposition.  This  subject  was  not  a  new  one.  The  attention  of 
the  Legislature  was  first  formally  called  to  it  by  the  Minister  of 
Finance,  Mr.  Gait,  some  years  ago ;  but  it  was  not  taken  up  by 
any  party  as  a  branch  of  their  policy,  until  the  formation  of  the 
Cartier-Macdonald  Administration  in  1858.  A  despatch  was 
addressed  by  three  members  of  that  Administration  to  the 
Colonial  Office.  The  subject,  however,  though  looked  upon  with 
favour  by  the  country,  did  not  begin  to  assume  its  present  propor- 
tions until  the  then  last  session.  Then  the  leading  statesmen  on 
both  sides  came  to  the  common  conclusion,  that  some  step  must  be 
taken  to  relieve  the  country  from  the  dead-lock  and  impending 
anarchy  that  hung  over  it.  With  that  view,  a  committee  was 
struck,  composed  of  gentlemen  of  both  sides  of  the  House,  of  all 
shades  of  political  opinion,  without  any  reference  to  whether  they 
were  supporters  of  the  Administration  of  the  day  or  belonged  to 
the  Opposition,  for  the  purpose  of  taking  into  deliberation  the 
evils  which  threatened  the  future  of  Canada.  The  committee,  by 
a  wise  provision,  agreed  that  the  discussion  should  be  freely 
entered  upon  without  reference  to  the  political  antecedents  of  any 
of  its  members,  and  that  they  should  sit  with  closed  doors,  so  as 
to  be  able  to  approach  the  subject  frankly  and  in  a  spirit  of  com- 
promise. The  committee  included  most  of  the  leading  members 
of  the  House.  The  report  of  that  committee  was  laid  before  the 
House,  and  then  came  the  political  action  of  the  leading  men  of 
the  two  parties  in  the  House,  which  ended  in  the  formation  of  the 


CONFEDERATION.  203 

then  Government.  The  principle  upon  which  that  Government 
was  formed,  was  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  out  the  object  which 
received,  to  a  certain  degree,  its  completion  by  the  resolutions. 
All  agreed  as  to  the  expediency  of  effecting  a  union  between  all 
the  Provinces,  and  the  superiority  of  such  a  design,  over  the 
smaller  scheme  of  having  a  Federal  Union  between  Upper  and 
Lower  Canada  alone.  By  a  fortunate  coincidence  the  desire  for 
union  existed  in  the  Lower  Provinces,  and  a  feeling  of  the  neces- 
sity of  strengthening  themselves  by  collecting  together  the  scat- 
tered colonies  on  the  sea-board,  had  induced  them  to  form  a 
convention  of  their  own,  for  the  purpose  of  effecting  a  union  of 
the  Maritime  Provinces  of  Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick,  and 
Prince  Edward  Island,  the  Legislatures  of  those  colonies  having 
formally  authorized  their  respective  Governments  to  send  a  dele- 
gation to  Prince  Edward  Island,  for  the  purpose  of  attempting  to 
form  a  union  of  some  kind.  The  Canadian  Government  appeared 
before  that  Convention,  and  submitted  the  scheme  of  the  larger 
union.  On  its  acceptance,  though  unofficial,  they  returned  to 
Quebec  ;  and  then  the  Government  of  Canada  invited  the  several 
Governments  of  the  sister  colonies,  to  send  a  deputation  from  each 
of  them  for  the  purpose  of  considering  the  question,  with  some- 
thing like  authority  from  their  respective  Governments.  The 
result  was,  that  on  the  1  Oth  October  they  met  at  Quebec,  and  the 
first  resolution  before  the  House  was  passed  unanimously.  The 
resolution  is,  '  That  the  best  interests,  and  present  and  future 
prosperity  of  British  North  America,  will  be  promoted  by  a 
Federal  Union  under  the  Crown  of  Great  Britain,  provided  such 
union  can  be  effected  on  principles  just  to  the  several  Provinces.' 
It  seemed  to  all  the  statesmen  assembled,  that  the  best  interests, 
and  present  and  future  prosperity  of  British  North  America, 
would  be  promoted  by  a  Federal  Union  under  the  Crown  of  Great 
Britain.  If  we  wish  to  form  a  great  nationality,  commanding  the 
respect  of  the  world,  able  to  hold  our  own  against  all  opponents, 
and  to  defend  those  institutions  we  prize ;  if  we  wish  to  have  one 
system  of  government,  and  to  establish  a  commercial  union,  with 
unrestricted  free  trade,  between  the  people  of  the  five  provinces, 
belonging,  as  they  do,  to  the  same  nation,  obeying  the  same 


204  CONFEDERATION. 

Sovereign,  owning  the  same  allegiance,  and  being,  for  the  most 
part,  of  the  same  blood  and  lineage ;  if  we  wish  to  be  able  to 
afford  to  each  other  the  means  of  mutual  defence  and  support 
against  aggression  and  attack — this  can  only  be  obtained  by  a 
union  of  some  kind  between  the  scattered  and  weak  boundaries 
composing  the  British  North  American  Provinces.  He  said  there 
were  only  three  modes  that  were  at  all  suggested,  by  which  the 
dead-lock  in  affairs,  the  anarchy  which  was  dreaded,  and  the  evils 
which  retarded  the  prosperity  of  the  country,  could  be  met  or 
averted.  One  was  the  dissolution  of  the  union  between  Upper 
and  Lower  Canada,  leaving  them  as  they  were  before  the  union  of 
1841.  That  proposition  by  itself  had  no  supporters.  The  next 
mode  suggested,  was  the  granting  of  representation  by  popu- 
lation. That  of  itself  was  not  desirable,  because  it  would 
have  left  serious  grounds  of  discontent  in  Lower  Canada. 
The  third  and  only  means  of  solution  was  the  junction  of  the 
provinces  either  in  a  federal  or  a  legislative  union.  As  regards 
the  comparative  advantages  of  a  legislative  and  a  federal  union, 
if  practicable,  he  thought  a  legislative  union  would  be  preferable. 
But  on  looking  at  the  subject  in  the  Conference,  it  was  found  that 
such  a  system  was  impracticable.  In  the  first  place  it  would  not 
meet  the  assent  of  the  people  of  Lower  Canada.  There  was  also 
as  great  a  disinclination  on  the  part  of  the  various  Maritime  Pro- 
vinces to  lose  their  individuality,  as  separate  political  organiza- 
tions, as  was  observed  in  the  case  of  Lower  Canada  herself.  There- 
fore, those  who  were  in  favour  of  a  legislative  union  were  obliged 
to  modify  their  views  and  accept  the  project  of  a  federal  union  as 
the  only  scheme  practicable,  even  for  the  Maritime  Provinces. 
Because,  although  the  law  of  those  provinces  is  founded  on  the 
common  law  of  England,  yet  every  one  of  them  has  a  large 
amount  of  law  of  its  own — colonial  law  framed  by  itself,  and 
affecting  every  relation  of  life,  such  as  the  laws  of  property,  muni- 
cipal and  assessment  laws ;  laws  relating  to  the  liberty  of  the 
subject,  and  to  all  the  great  interests  contemplated  in  legislation  ; 
in  short,  the  statutory  law  of  the  different  provinces  was  so  varied 
and  diversified  that  it  was  almost  impossible  to  weld  them  into  a 
legislative  union  at  once.  The  Lower  Provinces  evinced  a  great 


CONFEDERATION.  205 

desire  for  the  filial  assimilation  of  the  laws.  One  of  the  resolu- 
tions provides  that  an  attempt  shall  be  made  to  assimilate  the  laws 
of  the  Maritime  Provinces  and  those  of  Upper  Canada,  for  the 
purpose  of  eventually  establishing  one  body  of  statutory  law, 
founded  on  the  common  law  of  England.  One  great  objection 
made  to  a  federal  union  was  the  expense  of  an  increased  number  of 
legislatures ;  but  it  would  be  shown  that  the  expenses  under  a 
federal  union  would  not  be  greater  than  those  under  the  existing 
system  of  separate  governments  and  legislatures.  The  admixture 
of  subjects  of  a  general  with  those  of  a  private  character  in  legis- 
lation mutually  interfere  with  each  other ;  whereas,  if  the  atten- 
tion of  the  legislature  was  confined  to  measures  of  one  kind  or  the 
other  alone,  the  session  of  parliament  would  not  be  so  protracted, 
and  therefore  not  so  expensive.  Nominally  there  was  a  legislative 
union  in  Canada,  yet,  as  a  matter  of  fact,  since  the  union  in  1841 
it  was  a  federal  union  ;  in  matters  affecting  Upper  Canada  solely, 
members  from  that  section  exercised  the  right  of  exclusive  legisla- 
tion, while  members  from  Lower  Canada  legislated  in  matters 
affecting  their  own  section.  The  whole  scheme  of  Confederation, 
as  propounded  by  the  Conference,  as  agreed  to  and  sanctioned  by 
the  Canadian  Government,  bears  upon  its  face  the  marks  of  com- 
promise. It  must  be  considered  in  the  light  of  a  treaty.  Just 
so  surely  as  this  scheme  is  defeated,  will  be  revived  the  original 
proposition  for  a  union  of  the  Maritime  Provinces,  irrespective  of 
Canada.  We  know  that  the  United  States  at  this  moment  are 
engaged  in  a  war  of  enormous  dimensions  ;  that  the  occasion  of  a 
war  with  Great  Britain  has  again  and  again  arisen,  and  may  at 
any  time  in  the  future  again  arise.  We  cannot  foresee  what  may 
be  the  result ;  we  cannot  say  but  that  the  two  nations  may  drift 
into  a  war  as  other  nations  have  done  before.  It  would  then  be 
too  late  when  war  had  commenced  to  think  of  measures  for 
strengthening  ourselves,  or  to  begin  negotiations  for  a  union  with 
the  sister  provinces.  At  this  moment,  in  consequence  of  the  ill- 
feeling  which  has  arisen  between  England  and  the  United  States, 
the  Reciprocity  Treaty,  it  seems  probable,  is  about  to  be  brought 
to  an  end ;  our  trade  is  hampered  by  the  passport  system,  and  at 
any  moment  we  may  be  deprived  of  permission  to  carry  our  goods 


206  CONFEDERATION. 

through  United  States  channels  ;  the  bonded  goods  system  may  be 
done  away  with,  and  the  winter  trade  with  the  United  States  put 
an  end  to.  If  we  do  not,  while  one  avenue  is  threatened  to  be 
closed,  open  another  by  taking  advantage  of  the  present  arrange- 
ment, and  the  desire  of  the  Lower  Provinces  to  draw  closer  the 
alliance  between  us,  we  may  suffer  commercial  and  political  dis- 
advantages it  may  take  long  for  us  to  overcome.  In  adopting  a 
federal  union  we  had  the  advantage  of  the  experience  of  the  United 
States.  It  is  the  fashion  now  to  enlarge  on  the  defects  of  the 
constitution  of  the  United  States,  but  I  am  not  one  of  those  who 
look  upon  it  as  a  failure.  I  think  and  believe  that  it  is  one  of  the 
most  skilful  works  which  human  intelligence  ever  created ;  is  one 
of  the  most  perfect  organizations  that  ever  governed  a  free  people. 
To  say  that  it  has  some  defects,  is  but  to  say  that  it  is  not  the  work 
of  Omniscience,  but  of  human  intellect.  By  a  resolution  it  is  pro- 
vided, so  far  as  we  can  legislate  for  the  future,  that  the  head  of 
the  executive  power  shall  be  the  Sovereign  of  Great  Britain.  By 
adhering  to  the  monarchical  principle,  we  avoid  one  defect  inhe- 
rent in  the  constitution  of  the  United  States.  By  the  election 
of  the  President  by  a  majority  and  for  a  short  period,  he  never 
is  the  sovereign  and  chief  of  the  nation ;  he  is  never  looked  up 
to  by  the  whole  people  as  the  head  and  front  of  the  nation ;  he  is 
at  best  but  the  successful  leader  of  a  party.  This  defect  is  all  the 
greater  on  account  of  the  practice  of  re-election.  During  his  first 
term  of  office,  he  is  employed  in  taking  steps  to  secure  his  own 
re-election,  and  for  his  party  a  continuance  of  power.  We  avoid 
this  by  adhering  to  the  monarchical  principle.  In  the  constitution 
it  is  proposed  to  continue  the  system  of  Responsible  Government, 
which  has  existed  in  the  province  since  1841,  and  which  has  long 
obtained  in  the  mother  country.  This  avoids  one  of  the  great 
defects  in  the  constitution  of  the  United  States.  There  the  Pre- 
sident, dining  his  term  of  office,  is  in  a  great  measure  a  despot, 
a  one-man  power,  with  the  command  of  the  naval  and  military 
forces — with  an  immense  amount  of  patronage  as  head  of  the 
Executive,  and  with  the  veto  power  as  a  branch  of  the  legislature, 
perfectly  uncontrolled  by  responsible  advisers,  his  cabinet  being 
departmental  officers  merely,  whom  he  is  not  obliged  by  the  con- 


CONFEDERATION.  207 

•stitution  to  consult  with,  unless  he  chooses  to  do  so.  With  us  the 
Sovereign,  or  in  this  country  the  representative  of  the  Sovereign, 
can  act  only  011  the  advice  of  his  ministers,  those  ministers  being 
responsible  to  the  people  through  Parliament.  Ever  since  the 
union  of  the  United  States  was  formed  the  difficulty  of  what  is 
called  "  State  rights"  had  existed,  and  this  had  much  to  do  in 
bringing  on  the  present  unhappy  war  in  the  United  States.  We 
have  adopted  a  different  system.'  We  have  strengthened  the 
General  Government,  have  given  the  General  Legislature  all  the 
great  subjects  of  legislation  and  expressly  declared  that  all  subjects 
of  general  interest  not  distinctly  and  exclusively  conferred  upon 
the  Local  Governments  and  Local  Legislatures,  shall  be  conferred 
upon  the  General  Government  and  Legislature.  The  desire," 
said  the  honourable  gentleman,  "  to  remain  connected  with  Great 
Britain  and  to  retain  our  allegiance  to  Her  Majesty  was  unani- 
mous. Not  a  single  suggestion  was  made,  that  it  could,  by  any 
possibility,  be  for  the  interest  of  the  colonies,  or  of  any  section  or 
portion  of  them,  that  there  should  be  a  severance  of  our  connec- 
tion. Although  we  knew  it  to  be  possible  that  Canada,  from  her 
position,  might  be  exposed  to  all  the  horrors  of  war,  by  reason  of 
causes  of  hostility  arising  between  Great  Britain  and  the  United 
States — causes  over  which  we  had  no  control,  and  which  we  had 
no  hand  in  bringing  about — yet  there  was  a  unanimous  feeling  of 
willingness  to  run  all  the  hazards  of  war,  if  war  must  come, 
rather  than  lose  the  connection  between  the  mother  country  and 
these  colonies.  The  Executive  authority  must  be  administered 
by  Her  Majesty's  Representative.  No  restriction  is  placed  on 
Her  Majesty's  prerogative  in  the  selection  of  her  representative. 
The  Legislature  of  British  North  America  will  be  composed  of 
King,  Lords  and  Commons.  The  Legislative  Council  will  stand 
in  the  same  relation  to  the  Lower  House,  as  the  House  of  Lords 
to  the  House  of  Commons  in  England,  having  the  same  power  of 
initiating  all  matters  of  legislation,  except  the  granting  of  money. 
The  Lower  House  will  represent  the  Commons  of  Canada,  in  the 
same  way  that  the  English  House  of  Commons  represents  the 
Commons  of  England,  with  the  same  privileges,  the  same  parlia- 
mentary usage,  and  the  same  parliamentary  authority.  In  settling 


208  CONFEDERATION. 

the  constitution  of  tlie  Lower  House,  it  was  agreed  that  the 
principle  of  representation  based  on  population  should  be  adopted, 
and  the  mode  of  applying  that  principle  is  fully  developed  in  the 
'resolutions.  By  representation  by  population,  universal  suffrage 
is  not  in  any  way  sanctioned.  The  three  great  divisions  into 
which  British  North  America  is  separated,  would  be  represented 
in  the  Upper  House  on.  the  principle  of  equality.  Each  of  the 
three  great  sections  would  be  represented  equally  by  twenty-four 
members.  The  only  exception  to  that  condition  of  equality  is  in 
the  case  of  Newfoundland,  which  has  an  interest  of  its  own, 
lying,  as  it  does,  at  the  mouth  of  the  great  river  St.  Lawrence, 
and  more  connected,  perhaps,  with  Canada  than  with  the  Lower 
Provinces.  There  was  not  a  dissenting  voice  in  the  Conference 
against  the  adoption  of  the  nominative  principle  for  the  Legis- 
lative Council  except  from  Prince  Edward  Island.  The  provision 
in  the  constitution,  that  the  Legislative  Council  shall  consist  of  a 
limited  number  of  members — that  each  of  the  great  sections  shall 
appoint  twenty-four  members  and  110  more,  will  prevent  the  Upper 
House  from  being  swamped  from  time  to  time  by  the  ministry  of 
the  day,  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  out  their  own  schemes  or 
pleasing  their  partisans.  The  fact  of  the  government  being  pre- 
vented from  exceeding  a  limited  number  will  preserve  the  inde- 
pendence of  the  Upper  House,  and  make  it,  in  reality,  a  separate 
and  distinct  chamber,  having  a  legitimate  and  controlling  influence 
in  the  legislation  of  the  country.  The  objection  that  has  been  taken, 
that  in  consequence  of  the  Crown  being  deprived  of  the  right  of 
unlimited  appointment,  there  is  a  chance  of  a  dead-lock  arising 
between  the  two  branches  of  the  legislature — a  chance  that  the 
Upper  House  being  altogether  independent  of  the  Sovereign,  of 
the  Lower  House,  and  of  the  advisers  of  the  Crown,  may  act  so 
independently  as  to  produce  a  dead-lock,  is  not  sound.  It  will 
never  set  itself  in  opposition  against  the  deliberate  and  understood 
wishes  of  the  people.  The  members  of  the  Upper  House  will  be 
like  those  of  the  Lower,  men  of  the  people,  and  from  the  people. 
The  man  put  into  the  Upper  House  is  as  much  a  man  of  the 
people  the  day  after,  as  the  day  before  his  elevation.  Springing 
from  the  people,  and  one  of  them,  he  takes  his  seat  in  the  Council 


CONFEDERATION.  209 

with  all  the  sympathies  and  feelings  of  a  man  of  the  people,  and 
when  he  returns  home,  at  the  end  of  the  session,  he  mingles  with 
them  on  equal  terms,  and  is  influenced  by  the  same  feelings  and 
associations,  and  events,  as  those  which  affect  the  mass  around 
him.  Referring  to  the  constant  changes  which  took  place  in  the 
Legislative  Council  he  called  attention  to  the  following  facts  :  At 
the  call  of  the  House  in  February,  1856,  forty- two  life  members 
responded;  two  years  afterwards,  in  1858,  only  thirty-five  answered 
to  their  names ;  in  1862  there  were  only  twenty-five  life  members 
left,  and  in  1864,  but  twenty-one.  So  it  is  quite  clear  that,  should 
there  be  011  any  question  a  difference  of  opinion  between  the 
Upper  and  Lower  Houses,  the  government  of  the  day  being 
obliged  to  have  the  confidence  of  the  majority  in  the  popular 
branch — would,  for  the  purpose  of  bringing  the  former  into  accord 
and  sympathy  with  the  latter,  fill  up  any  vacancies  that  might 
occur,  with  men  of  the  same  political  feelings  and  sympathies 
with  the  government,  and  consequently  with  those  of  the  majority 
in  the  popular  branch ;  and  all  the  appointments  of  the  Adminis- 
tration would  be  made  with  the  object  of  maintaining  the  sympathy 
and  harmony  between  the  two  houses.  To  the  Upper  House  is  to 
be  confided  the  protection  of  sectional  interests;  therefore  is  it 
that  the  three  great  divisions  are  there  equally  represented,  for 
the  purpose  of  defending  such  interests  against  the  combinations 
of  majorities  in  the  Assembly.  It  is  provided  that  the  selection 
shall  be  made  from  those  gentlemen  who  are  now  members  of  the 
upper  branch  of  the  Legislature  in  each  of  the  colonies,  for  seats 
in  the  Legislative  Council  of  the  General  Legislature.  In  the 
formation  of  the  House  of  Commons,  the  system  of  representation 
by  population  has  been  introduced  without  the  danger  of  an  in- 
convenient increase  in  the  number  of  representatives  011  the  re- 
currence of  each  decennial  period.  The  whole  thing  is  worked  by 
a  simple  rule  of  three.  For  instance,  we  have  in  Upper  Canada 
1,400,000  of  a  population;  in  Lower  Canada,  1,100,000.  Now, 
the  proposition  is  simply  this — if  Lower  Canada,  with  its  popula- 
tion of  1,100,000,  has  a  right  to  sixty-five  members,  how  many 
members  should  Upper  Canada  have,  with  its  larger  population  of 
1,400,000?  The  same  rule  applies  to  the  other  provinces — the 


210  CONFEDERATION. 

proportion  is  always  observed  and  the  principle  of  representation 
by  population  carried  out,  while,  at  the  same  time,  there  will  not 
be  decennially  an  inconvenient  increase  in  the  numbers  of  the  Lower 
House.  At  the  same  time,  there  is  a  constitutional  provision  that 
hereafter,  if  deemed  advisable,  the  total  number  of  representatives 
may  be  increased  from  194,  the  number  fixed  in  the  first  instance. 
In  that  case,  if  an  increase  is  made,  Lower  Canada  is  still  to  re- 
main the  pivot  on  which  the  whole  calculation  will  turn.  If  Lower 
Canada,  instead  of  65,  shall  have  70  members,  then  the  calculation 
will  be,  if  Lower  Canada  has  70  members,  with  such  a  population, 
how  many  shall  Upper  Canada  have  with  a  larger  population  ? 
The  existing  laws  relative,  to  elections  in  the  separate  provinces, 
were  to  obtain  in  the  first  election  to  the  Confederate  Parliament, 
so  that  every  man  who  has  now  a  vote  in  his  own  province  should 
continue  to  have  a  vote  in  choosing  a  representative  to  the  first 
Federal  Parliament.  And  it  was  left  to  the  Parliament  of  the 
Confederation,  as  one  of  their  first  duties,  to  consider  and  to  settle 
by  an  act  of  their  own  the  qualification  for  the  elective  franchise, 
which  would  apply  to  the  whole  Confederation.  The  duration  of 
Parliament  will  be  a  period  of  five  years.  A  good  deal  of  mis- 
apprehension he  said  had  arisen  from  the  accidental  omission  of 
some  words  from  the  24th  resolution.  It  was  thought  that  by  it 
the  Local  Legislatures  were  to  have  the  power  of  arranging  here- 
after, and  from,  time  to  time  of  re-adjusting  the  different  con- 
stituencies, and  settling  the  size  and  boundaries  of  the  various 
electoral  districts.  The  meaning  of  the  resolution  is  simply  this, 
that  for  the  first  General  Parliament,  the  arrangement  of  con- 
stituencies shall  be  made  by  the  existing  Local  Legislatures  ;  that 
in  Canada,  for  instance,  the  present  Canadian  Parliament  shall 
arrange  what  are  to  be  the  constituencies  of  Upper  Canada,  and  to 
make  such  changes  as  may  be  necessary  in  arranging  for  the 
seventeen  additional  members  given  to  it  by  the  constitution ;  and 
that  it  may  also,  if  it  sees  fit,  alter  the  boundaries  of  the  existing 
constituencies  of  Lower  Canada.  In  short,  this  Parliament  shall 
settle  what  shall  be  the  different  constituencies  electing  members 
to  the  first  Federal  Parliament.  And  so  the  other  provinces,  the 
Legislatures  of  which  will  fix  the  limits  of  their  several  constitu- 


CONFEDERATION.  211 

encies  in  the  session,  in  which  they  adopt  the  new  constitution. 
Afterwards  the  Local  Legislatures  may  alter  their  own  electoral 
limits  as  they  please,  for  their  own  local  elections.  But  it  would 
evidently  be  improper  to  leave  to  the  Local  Legislature  the  power 
to  alter  the  constituencies,  sending  members  to  the  General  Legis- 
lature after  the  General  Legislature  shall  have  been  called  into 
existence.  Were  this  the  case,  a  member  of  the  General  Legisla- 
ture might,  at  any  time,  mid  himself  ousted  from  his  seat  by  an 
alteration  of  his  constituency,  by  the  Local  Legislature  in  his 
section.  After  the  General  Parliament  meets,  in  order  that  it 
may  have  full  control  of  its  own  legislation,  and  be  assured  of  its 
position,  it  must  have  the  full  power  of  arranging  and  re-arranging 
the  electoral  limits  of  its  constituencies  as  it  pleases,  such  being 
one  of  the  powers  essentially  necessary  to  such  a  Legislature.  As 
a  matter  of  course,  the  General  Parliament  must  have  the  power 
of  dealing  with  the  public  debt  and  property  of  the  Confedera- 
tion. Of  course,  too,  it  must  have  the  regulation  of  trade  and 
commerce,  of  customs  and  excise.  The  Federal  Parliament  must 
have,  the  sovereign  power  of  raising  money  from  such  sources  and 
by  such  means  as  the  representatives  of  the  people  will  allow.  It 
is  provided  that  all  '  lines  of  steam  or  other  ships,  railways, 
canals,  and  other  works,  connecting  any  two  or  more  of  the 
provinces  together,  or  extending  beyond  the  limits  of  any  prov- 
ince,' shall  belong  to  the  General  Government,  arid  be  under  the 
control  of  the  General  Legislature.  In  like  manner  '  lines  of 
steamships  between  the  Federated  Provinces  and  other  countries, 
telegraph  communication  and  the  incorporation  of  telegraph  com- 
panies, and  all  such  works  as  shall,  although  lying  within  any 
province,  be  specially  declared  by  the  Acts  authorizing  them,  to 
be  for  the  general  advantage,'  shall  belong  to  the  General  Govern- 
ment. For  instance,  the  Welland  Canal,  though  lying  wholly 
within  one  section,  and  the  St.  Lawrence  Canals  in  two  only,  may 
be  properly  considered  national  works,  and  for  the  general  benefit 
of  the  whole  Federation.  Again,  the  census,  the  ascertaining  of 
our  numbers  and  the  extent  of  our  resources,  must,  as  a  matter 
of  general  interest,  belong  to  the  General  Government.  So 
also  with  the  defences  of  the  country.  One  of  the  great 


"2^  CONFEDERATION. 

advantages  of  Confederation  is,  that  we  shall  have  a  united, 
a  concerted,  and  uniform  system  of  defence.  The  criminal 
law  too — the  determination  of  what  is  a  crime  and  what  is  not, 
and  how  crime  shall  be  punished — is  left  to  the  General  Govern- 
ment. This  is  a  matter  almost  of  necessity.  It  is  one  of  the  de- 
fects in  the  United  States  system,  that  each  separate  state  has  or 
may  -have  a  criminal  code  of  its  own  ;  that  what  may  be  a  capital 
offence  in  one  state  may  be  a  venial  offence,  punishable  slightly, 
in  another.  But  under  our  constitution  we  shall  have  one  body 
of  criminal  law,  based  on  the  criminal  law  of  England,  and  oper- 
ating equally  throughout  British  America,  so  that  a  British 
American,  belonging  to  what  province-  he  may,  or  going  to  any 
other  part  of  the  Confederation,  knows  what  his  rights  are  in  that 
respect,  and  what  his  punishment  will  be  if  an  offender  against 
the  criminal  laws  of  the  land.  This  is  one  of  the  most  marked 
instances  in  which  advantage  is  taken  of  the  experience  derived 
from  the  observations  of  the  defects  in  the  constitution  of  the 
neighbouring  Republic.  The  33rd  provision  is  of  very  great  im- 
portance to  the  future  well-being  of  these  colonies.  It  commits 
to  the  General  Parliament  the  "  rendering  uniform  all  or  any  of 
the  laws  relative  to  property  and  civil  rights  in  Upper  Canada, 
Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick,  Newfoundland  and  Prince  Edward 
Island,  and  rendering  uniform  the  procedure  of  all  or  any  of  the 
courts  in  these  provinces.'  The  great  principles  which  govern 
the  laws  of  all  the  provinces,  with  the  single  exception  of  Lower 
Canada,  are  the  same,  although  there  may  be  a  divergence  in  de- 
tails ;  on  the  part  of  the  Lower  Provinces  a  general  desire  exists 
to  join  together  with  Upper  Canada  in  this  matter,  and  to  pro- 
cure, as  soon  as  possible,  an  assimilation  of  the  statutory  laws  and 
the  procedure  in  the  courts,  of  all  these  provinces.  At  present 
there  is  a  good  deal  of  diversity.  It  was  understood  that  the  first 
act  of  the  Confederate  Government  should  be  to  procure  an  assi- 
milation of  the  statutory  law  of  all  those  provinces,  which  has,  as 
its  root  and  foundation,  the  common  law  of  England.  But  to 
prevent  local  interests  from  being  over-ridden,  the  same  section 
makes  provision  that,  while  power  is  given  to  the  General  Legis- 
lature to  deal  with  this  subject,  no  change  in  this  respect  should 


CONFEDERATION.  23 

have  the  force  and  authority  of  law  in  any  province  until  sanc- 
tioned by  the  legislature  of  that  province.  The  General  Legisla- 
ture is  to  have  power  to  establish  a  general  Court  of  Appeal  of 
the  Federated  Provinces.  Besides  all  the  powers  that  are  speci- 
fically given,  the  Constitution  confers  on  the  General  Legislature 
the  general  mass  of  sovereign  legislation,  the  power  to  legislate  011 
'  all  matters  of  a  general  character,  not  specially  and  exclusively 
reserved  for  the  local  governments  and  legislatures.'  This  is  pre- 
cisely the  provision  which  is  wanting  in  the  constitution  of  the 
United  States.  It  is  in.  itself  a  wise  and  necessary  provision.  It 
strengthens  the  central  Parliament,  and  makes  the  Confederation 
one  people  and  one  government,  instead  of  five  peoples  and  five 
governments,  with  merely  a  point  of  authority  connecting  them  to 
a  limited  and  insufficient  extent.  With  respect  to  the  local  govern- 
ments, it  is  provided  that  each  shall  be  governed  by  a  chief  exe- 
cutive officer,  who  shall  be  nominated  by  the  General  Government. 
The  General  Government  assumes  towards  the  local  governments 
precisely  the  same  position  as  the  Imperial  Government  holds  with 
respect  to  each  of  the  colonies  now  ;  so  that  as  the  Lieut. -Governor 
of  each  of  the  different  Provinces  is  now  appointed  directly  by  the 
Queen,  and  is  directly  responsible  and  reports  directly  to  her,  so 
will  the  executives  of  the  local  governments  hereafter  be  subordi- 
nate to  the  representative  of  the  Queen,  and  be  responsible  and 
report  to  him,  Objection  has  been  taken  that  there  is  an  infringe- 
ment of  the  Royal  prerogative  in  giving  the  pardoning  power  to 
the  local  Governors,  who  are  not  appointed  directly  by  the  Crown, 
but  only  indirectly  by  the  chief  executive  of  the  Confederation, 
who  is  appointed  by  the  Crown.  This  provision  was  inserted  in 
the  constitution  on  account  of  the  practical  difficulty  which  must 
arise  if  the  power  is  confined  to  the  Governor-General.  It  is  a 
subject,  however  of  Imperial  interest,  and  if  the  Imperial  Govern- 
ment and  the  Imperial  Parliament  are  not  convinced  by  the  argu- 
ments we  will  be  able  to  press  upon  them  for  the  continuation  of 
that  clause,  then,  of  course,  as  the  over-ruling  power,  they  may  set 
it  aside.  There  are  numerous  subjects  which  belong,  of  right, 
both  to  the  local  and  the  general  Parliaments.  In  all  these  cases 
it  is  provided,  in  order  to  prevent  a  conflict  of  authority,  that 


214  CON  F  ED  E  RAT  I  OX. 

where  there  is  concurrent  jurisdiction  in  the  General  and  Local 
Parliaments,  the  same  rule  should  apply  as  now  applies  in  cases 
where  there  is  concurrent  jurisdiction  in  the  Imperial  and  in  the 
Provincial  Parliaments,  and  that  when  the  legislation  of  the  one  is 
'  adverse  to  or  contradictory  of  the  legislation  of  the  other,  in  all 
such  cases  the  action  of  the  General  Parliament  must  overrule,  ex 
necessitate  the  action  of  the  Local  Legislature.  We  have  intro- 
duced also  all  those  provisions  which  are  necessary  in  order  to  the 
full  working  out  of  the  British  constitution  in  these  Provinces. 
Let  me  again/  said  the  honourable  gentleman,  as  he  closed  his 
clear  and  powerful  speech,  '  before  I  sit  down,  impress  upon  this 
House  the  necessity  of  meeting  this  question  in  a  spirit  of  compro- 
mise, with  a  disposition  to  judge  the  matter  as  a  whole,  to  consider 
whether  really  it  is  for  the  benefit  and  advantage  of  the  country 
to  form  a  Confederation  of  all  the  provinces  ;  and  if  honourable 
gentlemen,  whatever  may  have  been  their  preconceived  ideas  as  to 
the  merits  of  the  details  of  this  measure,  whatever  may  still  be 
their  opinions  as  to  these  details,  if  they  really  believe  the  scheme 
is  one  by  which  the  prosperity  of  the  country  will  be  increased, 
and  its  future  progress  secured,  I  ask  them  to  yield  their  own 
views,  and  to  deal  with  the  scheme  according  to  its  merits  as  one 
great  whole.  One  argument,  but  not  a  strong  one,  has  been  used 
against  this  Confederation,  that  it  is  an  advance  towards  indepen- 
dence. Some  are  apprehensive  that  the  very  fact  of  our  forming 
this  union  will  hasten  the  time  when  we  shall  be  severed  from  the 
mother  country.  I  have  no  apprehension  of  that  kind.  I  believe 
it  will  have  the  contrary  effect.  I  believe  that  as  we  grow 
stronger,  that,  as  it  is  felt  in  England  we  have  become  a  people, 
able  from  our  union,  our  strength,  our  population,  and  the  deve- 
lopment of  our  resources,  to  take  our  position  among  the  nations 
of  the  world,  she  will  be  less  willing  to  part  with  us  than  she 
would  be  now,  when  we  are  broken  up  into  a  number  of  insignifi- 
cant colonies,  subject  to  attack  piecemeal  without  any  concerted 
action  or  common  organization  of  defence.  I  am  strongly  of 
opinion  that  year  by  year,  as  we  grow  in  population  and  strength, 
England  will  more  see  the  advantage  of  maintaining  the 
alliance  between  British  North  America  and  herself.  Instead 


CONFEDERATION.  215 

of  looking  upon  us  as  a  merely  dependent  colony,  England 
will  have  in  us  a  friendly  nation,  a  subordinate  but  still  a  power- 
ful people,  to  stand  by  lier  in  North  America  in  peace  or  in  war. 
We  all  feel  the  advantages  we  derive  from  our  connection  with 
England.  So  long  as  that  alliance  is  maintained,  we  enjoy,  under 
her  protection,  the  privileges  of  constitutional  liberty  according  to 
the  British  system.  We  will  enjoy  here  that  which  is  the  great 
test  of  constitutional  freedom — we  will  have  the  rights  of  the 
minority  respected.  In  all  countries  the  rights  of  the  majority 
take  care  of  themselves,  but  it  is  only  in  countries  like  England, 
enjoying  constitutional  liberty,  and  safe  from  the  tyranny  of  a 
single  despot  or  of  an  unbridled  democracy,  that  the  rights  of 
minorities  are  regarded.  So  long,  too,  as  we  form  a  portion  of  the 
British  Empire,  we  shall  have  the  example  of  her  free  institutions, 
of  the  high  standard  of  the  character  of  her  statesmen  and  public 
men,  of  the  purity  of  her  legislation,  and  the  upright  administra- 
tion of  her  laws.  In.  this  younger  country,  one  great  advantage 
of  our  connection  with  Great  Britain  will  be,  that,  under  her 
auspices,  inspired  by  her  example,  -a  portion  of  her  empire,  our 
public  men  will  be  actuated  by  principles  similar  to  those  which 
actuate  the  statesmen  at  home.  These,  although  not  material, 
physical  benefits,  of  which  you  can  make  an  arithmetical  calcula- 
tion, are  of  overwhelming  advantage  to  our  future  interests  and 
standing  as  a  nation.  In  conclusion,  I  would  again  implore  the 
House  not  to  suffer  this  opportunity  to  pass ;  it  is  one  that  may 
never  recur." 

He  was  ably  sustained  by  the  Attorney-General  Cartier  on  the 
following  day,  and  by  Mr.  Gait,  who  dealt  mainly  with  the  com- 
mercial and  financial  interests  involved :  he  said — 

"  The  subjects  on  which  he  proposed  to  address  the  House  were 
those  connected  with  the  trade,  resources  and  financial  condition 
of  the  several  Provinces  of  British  North  America.  He  should 
divide  his  remarks  into  five  distinct  heads  :  1st.  Do  the  commer- 
cial and  material  interests  of  the  several  Provinces  point  to  their 
union  as  an  advantageous  measure  1  2nd.  Is  their  financial  con- 
dition such  as  to  permit  of  this  union  being  carried  into  practical 


216  CONFEDERATION. 

effect  at  this  moment,  with  justice  to  them  all  ?  3rd.  Are  the 
measures  proposed  in  the  resolutions  before  the  House  fair  to  each 
and  to  all  1  4th.  Is  there  a  reasonable  prospect  that  the  machinery 
through  which  these  interests  are  proposed  to  be  governed,  will 
work  smoothly  and  harmoniously  ?  5th.  Does  the  proposed  system 
for  the  government  of  the  united  Provinces  appear  likely  to  prove 
so  expensive  as  to  render  it  impossible  for  the  people  of  Canada  to 
consent  to  it  1  In  dealing  with  the  first  question,  it  was  well  to 
offer  to  the  House  some  few  remarks  as  to  the  resources  of  British 
North  America.  Possessing  as  we  do,  in  the  far-western  part  of 
Canada,  perhaps  the  most  fertile  wheat-growing  tracts  on  this  con- 
tinent;  in  central  and  eastern  Canada  facilities  for  manufacturing 
.such  as  cannot  anywhere  be  surpassed  ;  and  in  the  eastern  or  Mari- 
time Provinces  an  abundance  of  that  most  useful  of  all  minerals, 
coal,  as  well  as  the  most  magnificent  and  valuable  fisheries  in  the 
world;  extending  as  this  country  does  for  two  thousand  miles, 
traversed  by  the  finest  navigable  river  in  the  world,  we  might  well 
look  forward  to  our  future  with  hopeful  anticipation  of  seeing  the 
realization,  not  merely  of  what  we  have  hitherto  thought  would  bo 
the  commerce  of  Canada,  great  as  that  might  become,  but  to  the 
possession  of  Atlantic  ports,  which  we  should  help  to  build  to  a 
position  equal  to  that  of  the  chief  cities  of  the  American  Union. 
But  it  is  riot  so  much  by  the  extent  of  a  country  that  its  power 
and  real  greatness  are  to  be  estimated,  as  by  its  containing  within 
itself  the  elements  of  different  interests  \  for  it  is  in  the  diversity 
of  employment  that  security  is  found  against  those  sad  reverses  to 
which  every  country  depending  mainly  on  one  branch  of  industry 
must  always  be  liable.  The  resources  of  these  colonies,  and  the 
extent  to  which  the  industry  and  intelligence  of  their  inhabitants 
have  developed  them,  are  most  significantly  shown  in  the  trade 
and  navigation  tables,  which  are  in  the  possession  of  the  public. 
The  returns  of  the  trade  of  Canada  in  1863,  taking  exports  and 
imports  conjointly,  show  an  aggregate  of  $87,795,000.  Taking 
the  census  of  1861,  this  trade  represents  $35  per  head  of  the  popu- 
lation. The  value  of  the  import  and  export  trade  of  New  Bruns- 
wick for  the  same  year  reaches  $16,729,680,  amounting  to  $66  per 
head  of  its  population.  The  aggregate  trade  of  Nova  Scotia  for 


CONFEDERATION.  217 

the  same  period  amounted  to  $18,622,359,  or  $56  per  head  of  its 
people.  In  the  case  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  the  import  and 
export  trade  amounted  to  $3,055,568,  representing  $37  per  head 
of  the  population  of  that  colony.  The  value  of  the  total  trade  of 
Newfoundland  was  $11,245,032,  or  $86  per  head.  The  whole  of 
these  figures  represent  an  aggregate  trade  of  all  the  Provinces 
amounting  to  $137,447,567.  Notwithstanding  the  large  popula- 
tion, and  the  very  large  amount  represented  by  the  trade  of 
Canada,  when  it  is  divided  per  head  it  falls  considerably  short  of 
the  trade  of  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia,  being  a  little  more 
than  half  per  head  of  the  former,  and  not  more  than  two-thirds 
of  that  of  Nova  Scotia.  Passing  from  trade  to  the  ship  building 
and  tonnage  of  those  colonies.  The  returns  of  1863  show,  in 
that  year,  the  number  of  ships  built  in  all  thpse  colonies  to  be  no 
less  than  645,  with  a  tonnage  amounting  to  219,763  tons.  This 
statement  of  the  enormous  amount  of  tonnage  built  in  one  year, 
is  as  good  evidence  as  can  be  offered  of  the  facilities  we  possess 
for  becoming  an  important  maritime  power.  The  industry  repre- 
sented by  those  figures  shows  an  export  value  of  nearly  nine 
million  dollars  !  The  lake-tonnage  of  Canada  amounted  to 
6,907,000  tons.  The  sea-going  tonnage  of  Canada  amounted  to 
2,133,000  tons;  of  New  Brunswick,  1,386,000;  of  Nova  Scotia, 
1,432,000  tons.  Consequently  the  amount  of  sea-going  tonnage, 
subject  only  to  a  small  deduction,  was  actually  about  5,000,000 
tons,  of  which  about  2,133,000  was  that  of  vessels  trading 
between  the  St.  Lawrence  and  foreign  ports.*  In  making  this 
statement  it  is  due  to  the  House,  that  it  should  be  made  aware 
that  some  portion  of  this  trade  will  not  be  represented  after  the 
contemplated  union  has  taken  place.  At  present,  the  internal 
commerce  between  these  colonies  appears  in  the  returns  of  each 
as  imports  and  exports,  but  I  should  be  glad  if  I  were  able  to 
make  on  this  account  a  large  deduction  from  the  figures  I  have 
given.  It  is  matter  for  regret  on  the  part  of  all  of  us  that  the 
trade  between  these  colonies — subject  all  to  the  same  Sovereign, 
connected  with  the  same  empire — has  been  so  small.  Inter- 
colonial trade  has  been,  indeed,  of  the  most  insignificant  character ; 

*  The  above  figures  are  intended  to  indicate  the  annual  total  of  the  daily  ingoing  and 
outgoing  tonnage  engaged  in  the  sea  and  lake  trade. 

15 


21$  CONFEDERATION. 

we  have  looked  far  more  to  our  commercial  relations  with  the 
neighbouring,  though  a  foreign,  country,  than  to  the  interchange 
of  our  own  products,  which  would  have  retained  the  benefits  of 
our  trade  within  ourselves ;  hostile  tariffs  have  interfered  with 
the  free  interchange  of  the  products  of  the  labour  of  all  the 
colonies',  and  one  of  the  greatest  and  most  immediate  benefits  to 
be  derived  from  their  union,  will  spring  from  the  breaking  down 
of  these  barriers,  and  the  opening  up  of  the  markets  of  all  the 
provinces  to  the  different  industries  of  each.  If  we  require  to 
find  an  example  of  the  benefits  of  free  commercial  intercourse,  we 
need  not  look  beyond  the  effects  that  have  followed  from  the 
working  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty  with  the  United  States.  In 
one  short  year  from  the  time  when  that  treaty  came  into 
operation,  our  trade  in  the  natural  productions  of  the  two 
countries  swelled  from  less  than  $2,000,000  to  upwards  of 
$20,000,000  per  annum,  and  when  we  are  threatened  with  an 
interruption  of  that  trade,  it  is  the  duty  of  the  House  to  provide, 
if  possible,  other  outlets  for  our  productions ;  to  seek  by  free 
trade  with  our  own  fellow-colonists  for  a  continued  and  uninter- 
rupted commerce,  which  will  not  be  liable  to  be  disturbed  at  the 
capricious  will  of  any  foreign  country.  In  considering  the  second 
and,  perhaps,  the  third  division — whether  the  material  condition 
of  these  Provinces  is  such  as  to  make  the  union  practicable;  and 
whether  the  details  of  the  measures  proposed  are  equitable  to 
each  and  to  all,  it  is  necessary  first  to  review  the  liabilities  of  each 
province,  the  reasons  why  they  were  incurred,  the  objects  which 
have  been  sought.  The  public  debt  of  Canada,  New  Brunswick, 
and  Nova  Scotia  has,  with  some  slight  exceptions,  been  incurred 
for  public  improvements,  intended  to  develope  the  resources  of  the 
country.  The  public  improvements  of  Canada,  her  great  canals 
intended  to  bring  the  trade  of  the  vast  countries  bordering  on  the 
lakes  down  to  the  Gulf  of  St.  Lawrence ;  the  railway  system 
forced  upon  us  in  our  competition  with  American  channels  of 
trade,  stretching  from  the  extreme  west  to  the  extreme  east  of  the 
Province ;  and  the  public  works  that  have  been  undertaken  in 
Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick  practically  form  parts  of  one 
great  whole.  Taking  the  present  engagements  of  the  several 


CONFEDERATION.  219 

Provinces,  beginning  with  Canada,  I  find  that  our  whole  debt, 
exclusive  of  the  Common  School  Fund,  which  does  not  form  a 
portion  of  our  engagements  relatively  to  the  Lower  Provinces, 
amounts  to  167,263,995.  The  debt  of  Nova  Scotia  is  $4,858,547, 
and  that  of  New  Brunswick  $5,702,991 ;  Newfoundland  has  only 
incurred  liabilities  to  the  extent  of  $946,000,  bearing  interest  at 
five  per  cent.,  while  Prince  Edward  Island  owes  $240,673.  The 
total  liabilities  of  those  Provinces  are,  therefore,  $11,748,211, 
against  the  interest  on  which  may  be  placed  the  net  revenues  of 
the  railways  which  are  the  property  of  those  Provinces,  and  which 
produced  last  year  a  net  amount  of  about  $100,000.  In  addition 
to  the  existing  liabilities  of  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick, 
there  are  certain  further  engagements  they  have  incurred  for  the 
extension  of  their  railway  system  requiring  future  provision  to 
the  extent,  in  the  case  of  Nova  Scotia,  of  $3,000,000,  and  in  that 
of  New  Brunswick  of  $1,300,000.  Taking  all  the  engagements, 
present  and  future,  of  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick,  it  was 
found  that,  relatively  to  their  populations,  they  amounted  to  about 
$25  per  head,  and  this  amount,  as  applied  to  Canada,  would 
entitle  us  to  enter  the  union  with  a  debt  of  $62,500,000.  Some 
difficulty  might  have  occurred  in  reducing  the  Canadian  debt  to 
this  amount  had  it  not  been  apparent,  on  examination,  that  a  con- 
siderable portion  of  it  was  connected  with  local  advances,  such  as 
the  Municipal  Loan  Fund,  which  does  not  properly  belong  to  the 
same  category  as  debt  contracted  in  connection  with  the  system  of 
public  improvements,  the  management  of  which  is  intended  to  be 
confided  to  the  General  Government,  but  rather  partakes  of  a 
local  character,  and  should  more  properly  be  left  in  the  hands  of 
the  Local  Legislatures.  It  will,  therefore,  be  found  provided  in 
the  resolutions,  that  in  assuming  for  itself,  apart  from  the  General 
Government,  the  surplus  of  debt  of  about  $5,000,000,  the 
Province  of  Canada  became  entitled  to  withdraw  from  the  general 
assets  all  those  items  which  were  of  a  local  character,  and  for 
which  a  portion  of  its  debt  had  been  incurred.  It  was  wise,  then, 
to  confine  the  liabilities  of  the  General  Government  simply  to 
those  debts  which  had  been  incurred  for  purposes  of  general 
improvement,  and  to  provide  locally,  in  this  country,  for  the 


220  CONFEDERATION. 

assumption  of  the  surplus,  together  with  the  assets  which  had 
been  created  by  it." 

Hon.  Mr.  Dorion — "  Do  the  $67,263,995,  stated  as  the  debt  of 
Canada,  include  the  original  seigniorial  indemnity  given  to  Upper 
and  Lower  Canada,  under  the  Act  of  1854  1 " 

Hon.  Mr.  Gait — "  Yes ;  that  amount  does  include  the  indemnity, 
and  among  the  arrangements  contemplated  by  the  Government, 
assuming  that  Confederation  does  take  place,  they  will  submit  for 
the  consideration  of  this  House,  a  project  for  the  assumption  by 
Lower  Canada  of  the  seigniorial  indemnity  provided  by  the  Act 
of  1859,  whereby  it  will  be  rendered  unnecessary  to  give  an 
equivalent  indemnity  to  Upper  Canada,  thus  saving  upwards  of 
three  millions  of  dollars.  It  now  becomes  my  duty  to  submit  to 
the  House,  a  statement  of  the  resources  which  the  several  prov- 
inces propose  to  bring  into  the  common  stock,  for  which  purpose 
the  financial  returns  of  1863  have  been  taken  as  the  standard. 
From  these  returns,  it  would  appear  that  the  income  and  expen- 
diture of  the  several  provinces  stood  in  that  year  as  follows  : 
Nova  Scotia,  with  a  population  of  338,857,  had  an  income  of 
$1,185,629,  her  outlay  being  $1,072,274;  New  Brunswick,  with 
a  population  of  252,047,  had  an  income  of  $894,836,  and  an 
outlay  of  $884,613;  Newfoundland,  with  a  population  of  130,000, 
had  an  income  of  $480,000,  the  outlay  being  $479,420 ;  Prince 
Edward  Island,  with  a  population  of  80,000,  had  an  income  of 
$197,384,  the  outlay  being  $171,718.  The  total  revenue  of  all 
these  colonies  amounted  to  $2,763,004,  and  the  total  expenditure 
to  $2,608,025 — the  united  surplus  over  expenditure  for  1863 
being  $154,979.  It  will  be  observed  that  as  regards  these  Pro- 
vinces their  income  and  expenditure  are  such  that  they  will  enter 
the  Confederation  with  a  financial  position  in  no  respect  inferior 
to  that  of  Canada.  If  an  objection  were  made  with  respect  to 
any  Province  in  regard  to  its  financial  position,  it  would  be  against 
Canada.  The  Lower  Provinces  have  been  and  are  now  in  a 
position  to  meet,  from  their  taxation,  all  their  expenses,  and  can- 
not be  regarded  as  bringing  any  burthen  to  the  people  of  Canada. 
It  is  not  necessary  to  say  anything  in  reference  to  the  financial 
position  of  Canada  in  1863,  but  it  is  gratifying  to  know  that  the 


CONFEDERATION.  221 

deficiency  which  unfortunately  existed  during  that  year  was  re- 
moved in  1864,  and  that,  therefore,  we  are  not  obliged  now  to 
enter  the  Confederation  in  an  inferior  position,  in  this  respect,  to 
that  of  the  sister  colonies.  The  revenues  of  each  of  these  Pro- 
vinces are  collected  under  different  systems  of  taxation,  suited  to 
the  local  industry  and  the  wants  of  their  several  populations.  It 
is,  therefore,  one  of  the  first  duties  of  the  General  Legislature  to 
consider  the  modes  by  which  the  burden  of  taxation  can  be  most 
easily  borne  by  the  industry  of  the  whole  country,  and  to  as- 
similate the  several  sources  of  revenue  which  are  now  in  existence 
in  such  manner  as  will  least  interfere  with  the  profitable  exercise 
of  the  industry  of  the  people.  -One  thing  must  be  evident  that 
where  the  taxation  is  about  equal  per  head,  the  adjustment  of  it 
cannot  be  attended  with  any  injustice  to  the  people  of  any  of  the 
several  provinces.  Apart  from  the  advantages  from  the  free  trade 
which  will  hereafter  exist  between  us,  the  credit  of  each  and  all 
the  Provinces  will  be  greatly  advanced  by  a  union  of  their  re- 
sources. A  larger  fund  will  be  available  as  security  to  the  public 
creditor,  larger  industries  will  be  subjected  to  the  action  of  the 
Legislature  for  the  maintenance  of  public  credit,  and  some  of  those 
apprehensions  which  have  latterly  affected  the  public  credit  of  this 
country  will  be  removed.  It  is  proved  by  the  fluctuating  quota- 
tions of  the  securities  of  these  Provinces  in  London  that  the 
apprehension  of  war  with  the  United  States — which  has  affected 
the  prices  of  Canadian  bonds — has  not  to  the  same  extent  affected 
those  of  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia,  which  are  less  exposed 
to  hostile  attack ;  and  the  union,  while  it  affords  greater  resources, 
will,  at  the  same  time,  carry  with  it  a  greater  sense  of  security. 
I  now  propose,  to  refer  to  the  means  which  will  be  at  the  disposal 
of  the  several  Local  Governments  to  enable  them  to  administer 
the  various  matters  of  public  policy  which  it  is  proposed  to  entrust 
to  them.  In  the  case  of  Canada  the  sum  of  nearly  five  millions 
of  the  public  debt  has  to  be  borne  by  Upper  and  Lower  Canada. 
It  will  hereafter  be  for  the  House  to  decide  how  this  sum  shall  be 
apportioned,  but  the  probability  is  that  the  Government  will  re- 
commend that  it  shall  be  divided  on  the  basis  of  population. 
Canada  will  have  at  its  disposal  a  large  amount  of  the  local  assets, 


222  CONFEDERATION. 

including  especially  the  sums  due  to  the  Municipal  Loan  Fund, 
which  will  produce  an  income  for  the  support  of  their  local  in- 
stitutions. As  a  matter  of  account  between  Upper  and  Lower 
Canada  and  the  General  Government,  they  will  be  charged  with 
the  interest  on  their  respective  proportions  of  the  five  millions 
against  the  subsidy  which  it  is  proposed  shall  be  given  to  them, 
while  they  themselves  will  collect  from  the  municipalities  and 
other  local  sources  all  the  revenue  and  amounts  which  now  enter 
into  the  general  revenue  of  the  Province  of  Canada." 

Hon.  Mr.  Dorion — "  Will  Lower  Canada  be  charged  with  the 
municipal  loan  fund,  the  seigniorial  indemnity,  and  the  educational 
indemnity  ? " 

Hon.  Mr.  Gait — "As  regards  the  original  seigniorial  indemnity 
and  the  municipal  loan,  they  are  both  included  in  the  sixty-seven 
millions  already  stated  as  the  liabilities  of  Canada,  and  cannot, 
therefore,  form  any  additional  charge  against  Lower  Canada.  In- 
deed, as  regards  the  Municipal  Loan  Fund,  instead  of  being  stated 
as  a  liability,  it  appears  that  the  sums  due  under  it  are  to  be 
regarded  in  the  light  of  assets,  because  we  are  considering  the 
sums  received  as  assets  by  Lower  Canada.  The  Municipal  Loan 
Fund  being  one  of  them,  the  sums  due  to  it  under  the  existing 
provincial  arrangements  will  become  payable  as  an  asset  to  that 
section  of  the  Province.  It  will  be  observed  that  in  the  plan 
proposed  there  are  certain  sources  of  local  revenue  reserved  to  the 
Local  Governments,  arising  from  territorial  domain,  lands,  mines, 
&c.,  sources  of  revenue  far  beyond  the  requirements  of  the  public 
service.  If  the  local  revenues  become  inadequate,  it  will  be 
necessary  for  the  Local  Governments  to  have  resort  to  direct 
taxation;  and  one  of  the  wisest  provisions  in  the  proposed  con- 
stitution is  to  be  found  in  the  fact  that  those  who  are  called  upon 
to  administer  public  affairs  will  feel,  when  they  resort  to  direct 
taxation,  that  a  solemn  responsibility  rests  upon  them,  and  that  that 
responsibility  will  be  exacted  by  the'  people  in  the  most  peremp- 
tory manner.  I  do  not  hesitate  to  say,  that  if  the  public  men  of 
these  Provinces  were  sufficiently  educated  to  understand  their  own 
interests  in  the  true  light  of  the  principles  of  political  economy,  it 
would  be  better  now  to  substitute  direct  taxation  for  some  of  the  in- 


CONFEDERATION.  223 

direct  modes  by  which  taxation  has  been  imposed  upon  the  industry 
of  the  people,  I  do  not,  however,  believe  that  at  this  moment  it 
is  possible,  nor  do  I  think  the  people  of  this  country  would  support 
any  government  in  adopting  this  measure  unless  it  were  forced  upon 
them  by  the  pressure  of  an  overwhelming  necessity.  The  local 
revenue  of  Upper  Canada  during  the  last  four  years  has  averaged 
the  sum  of  $739,000,  and  that  of  Lower  Canada  $557,239.  Together 
they  amount  to  nearly  $1,300,000,  independent  of  the  80c.  per  head 
which  it  is  proposed  to  allow  the  local  governments  out  of  the 
general  exchequer,  for  the  purpose  of  meeting  their  local  expendi- 
tures. These  local  expenditures  include  such  items  as  the  adminis- 
tration of  justice,  the  support  of  education,  grants  to  literary  and 
scientific  societies,  hospitals  and  charities,  and  such  other  matters 
as  cannot  be  regarded  as  devolving  upon  the  general  government. 
The  whole  charge,  exclusive  of  the  expenses  of  local  government 
and  legislation,  011  an  average  of  the  last  four  years,  has  in  Lower 
Canada  amounted  to  $997,000,  and  in  Upper  Canada  to  $1,024,622 
per  annum.  To  these  sums  will  have  now  to  be  added  such 
amounts  as  may  be  required  to  meet  the  cost  of  the  civil  govern- 
ment of  the  country  and  of  legislation  for  local  purposes.  In  the 
case  of  Nova  Scotia,  the  estimate  of  outlay  in  1864,  for  objects  of 
a  local  character,  required  an  expenditure  of  no  less  than  $667,000. 
Some  portion  of  this  expenditure  was  for  services  that  did  not 
require  again  to  be  performed ;  but  they  have  undertaken  to 
perform  the  whole  service  in  future  for  $371,000.  In  the  case  of 
New  Brunswick,  in  1864  the  estimated  expenditure  was  $404,000, 
which  they  have  undertaken  to  reduce  to  $353,000 ;  and  at  the 
same  time  they  have  further  undertaken  within  ten  years  to  make 
an  additional  reduction  of  $63,000,  thus  reducing  the  whole 
expenditure  in  the  future  to  $290,000.  Prince  Edward  Island, 
with  an  expenditure  of  $124,000,  proposes  to  perform  the  same 
local  duties  that  formerly  required  $170,000;  and  in  Newfoundland 
an  outlay  of  $479,000  has  been  similarly  reduced  to  $350,000. 
The  House  must  now  consider  the  means  whereby  these  local 
expenditures  have  to  be  met.  I  have  already  explained  that  in 
the  case  of  Canada,  and  also  in  that  of  the  Lower  Provinces, 
certain  sources  of  revenue  are  set  aside  as  being  of  a  purely  local 


224  CONFEDERATION. 

character,  and  available  to  meet  the  local  expenditure  ;  but  I  have 
been  obliged,  in  my  explanations  with  regard  to  Canada,  to  advert 
to  the  fact  that  it  is  contemplated  to  give  a  subsidy  of  80c.  per 
head  to  each  of  the  Provinces.  In  transferring  to  the  General 
Government  all  the  large  sources  of  revenue,  and  in  placing  in 
their  hand — with  a  single  exception,  that  of  direct  taxation — all 
the  means  whereby  the  industry  of  the  people  may  be  made  to 
contribute  to  the  wants  of  the  state,  it  must  be  evident  to  every 
one  that  some  portion  of  the  resources  thus  placed  at  the  disposal 
of  the  General  Government  must  in  some  form  or  other  be  avail- 
able to  supply  the  hiatus  that  would  otherwise  take  place  between 
the  sources  of  local  revenue  and  the  demands  of  local  expenditure. 
The  members  of  the  Conference  considered  this  question  with  the 
most  earnest  desire  to  reduce  to  the  lowest  possible  limits  the  sum 
that  was  thus  required,  and  I  think  that  the  figures  I  have  already 
given  to  the  House  afford  the  best  possible  evidence  that  no  dis~ 
position  existed,  at  any  rate  on  the  part  of  our  friends  from  the 
Lower  Provinces,  to  take  from  the  public  exchequer  one  shilling 
more  than  the  necessities  of  their  respective  communities  absolutely 
demanded.  In  the  case  of  Canada,  perhaps  it  will  be  said  that  a 
smaller  sum  would  have  met  our  immediate  wants,  but  it  was  felt 
that  it  would  ba  impossible  to  justify  any  distinction  being  drawn 
between  subjects  of  the  same  country.  A  subsidy  of  80c.  per 
head  was  provided,  based  upon  the  population  according  to  the 
census  of  1861.  The  agreement  does  not  contemplate  any  future 
extension  of  this  amount.  It  is  hoped  that  being  in  itself  fixed 
and  permanent  in  its  character,  the  Local  Governments  will  see 
the  necessity  of  exercising  a  rigid  and  proper  control  over  the 
expenditure  of  their  several  Provinces.  The  last  question  neces- 
sary to  be  decided  on  the  present  occasion  is,  whether  under  the 
proposed  Confederation  such  additional  expenses  will  be  incurred 
as  to  render  it  undesirable.  On  the  one  hand  we  shall  be  free 
from  the  empty  parade  of  small  courts  entailed  by  our  present 
system  on  each  of  these  Provinces,  keeping  up  a  pretence  of  regal 
show  when  the  reality  is  wanting;  we  shall  have  the  legislation 
of  the  General  Government  restricted  to  those  great  questions 
which  may  properly  occupy  the  attention  of  the  first  men  in  the 


CONFEDERATION.  225 

country;  we  shall  not  have  our  time  frittered  away  in  considering 
the  merits  of  petty  local  bills,  and  therefore  we  may  reasonably 
hope  that  the  expenses  of  the  General  Legislature  will  be  con_ 
siderably  less  than  even  those  of  the  Legislature  of  Canada  at  the 
present  moment, — while,  on  the  other  hand,  the  Local  Legislatures 
having  to  deal  rather  with  municipal  than  great  general  questions, 
will  be  able  to  dispose  of  them  in  a  manner  more  satisfactory  to 
the  people,  and  at  infinitely  less  expense  than  now.  I  believe, 
therefore,  the  simple  cost  of  the  Government  of  the  country  will 
not  be  in  reality  any  greater  under  the  new  than  under  the  old 
system ;  but  there  are  other  items  of  expenditure  for  great  public 
objects,  the  absence  of  which  from  the  estimates  of  any  country 
is  an  indication  rather  of  weakness  and  of  dependence  than  a 
subject  that  ought  to  form  a  source  of  satisfaction.  If  such  items 
are  not  now  found  in  the  public  expenditure,  either  of  Canada  or 
the  Lower  Provinces,  it  is  the  best  proof  that  could  bo  given  that 
our  position  is  one  of  inferiority,  and  that  we  do  not  possess  either 
the  power  or  the  means  to  undertake  such  works  as  make  such 
items  necessary.  First  I  will  instance  the  great  question  of  defence, 
the  absence  of  items  of  expenditure  for  which  can  only  be  an  indica  - 
tion  that  we  are  lacking  in  one  of  the  chief  elements  of  national 
greatness,  that  we  do  not  properly  value  the  institutions  under 
which  we  live,  and  that  we  are  not  willing  to  make  the  sacrifices 
that  every  free  people  must  make  if  they  are  desirous  of  preserv- 
ing them.  The  same  argument  applies  to  public  works,  in  con- 
nection with  which  it  might  be  said  that  great  advantage  would 
arise  from  large  expenditure ;  but  with  limited  resources  and  an 
undeveloped  territory  it  might  be  impossible  for  any  small  country 
to  undertake  the  necessary  outlay.  Many  works  of  this  kind 
are  not  directly  productive  of  revenue,  although  indirectly  of  the 
utmost  advantage,  and  if  the  resources  of  a  country  generally 
cannot  be  applied  to  that  outlay,  the  absence  of  such  expenditure 
ought  to  be  a  subject  of  regret  in  the  community,  and  not  of  re- 
joicing. Let  us  endeavour  by  this  measure  to  afford  a  better 
opening  than  we  now  possess  for  the  industry  and  intelligence  of 
the  people.  Let  us  seek  by  this  scheme  to  give  them  higher  and 
worthier  objects  of  ambition.  Let  us  not  reject  the  scheme  with 


'2'2(i  <  ONFEDERATION. 

the  bright  prospect  it  offers  of  a  nobler  future  for  our  youth,  jind 
grander  objects  for  the  emulation  of  our  public  men.  Let  us  not 
refuse  it  on  small  questions  of  detail,  but  judge  it  on  its  general 
merits.  Let  us  not  lose  sight  of  the  great  advantages  which 
union  offers  because  there  may  be  some  small  matters  which,  MS 
individuals,  we  may  not  like.  Let  the  House  frankly  look  at  it 
us  a  great  measure  brought  down  for  the  purpose  of  relieving  the 
country  from  distress  and  depression,  and  give  it  that  consideration 
which  is  due,  not  to  the  arguments  of  the  Government,  feeble  as 
they  may  be  in  view  of  the  great  interests  involved,  but  to  the 
fact  that  the  country  desires  and  cries  for,  at  the  hands  of  the 
House,  some  measure  whereby  its  internal  prosperity,  peace  and 
happiness  may  be  developed  and  maintained." 

Hon.  Mr.  Holton  led  the  attack  on  behalf  of  the  opposition. 
He  did  not  answer  the  arguments  of  the  supporters  of  the  mea- 
sure, but  denouncing  their  incompetency  and  inconsistency,  with 
caustic  sarcasm  declared  that  he  was  not  afraid  that  their  speeches 
should  go  to  the  country  unanswered.  Compared  with  others, 
his  speech  is  extremely  short.  Being  the  first  in  opposition,  and 
strikingly  characteristic  of  a  prominent  member  of  Parliament, 
and  a  leading  opponent  of  confederation,  it  is  given  in  full.  Per- 
haps also  hereafter  it  may  be  referred  to  as  a  scathing  review  by 
a  cotemporary  liberal,  of  the  style  and  efficiency  of  the  leading 
politicians  of  the  day,  his  Conservative  opponents.  He  said  : 

"  We  on  this  side  had  some  doubts  lest  the  Opposition  might 
be  placed  at  a  disadvantage,  by  allowing  the  speeches  of  the  Go- 
vernment to  go  to  the  country  without  any  comment  on  them. 
But  if  the  five  speeches  to  which  we  have  now  listened  contain 
all  that  can  be  said  in  favour  of  this  scheme,  we  have  no  fear  of 
letting  them  go  unanswered.  I  listened  to  the  speech  of  the 
Attorney-General  West  with  great  disappointment.  The  cause  of 
that  disappointment  was  simple  enough.  The  honourable  gentle- 
man was,  in  that  speech,  giving  the  lie  to  twenty  years  of  his 
political  life.  He  was  offering  to  the  cause  he  is  now  advocating 
one  speech  against  his  continuous  voice  and  vote  for  twenty  years. 
He  was  struggling,  all  through  that  speech,  against  the  conscious- 


CONFEDERATION,,  227 

ness  of  the  falseness  of  liis  political  position,  and  what  every  one 
conceived  would  be  the  brightest  effort  of  his  life  was  the  feeblest 
address  he  ever  delivered  on  any  important  question  during  the 
twenty  years  he  had  sat  in  this  House.  The  Attorney-General 
West  was  followed  by  the  Attorney-General  East.  I  know  not 
how  to  characterize  the  speech  of  that  hon.  gentleman,  further  than 
to  say  that  it  was  quite  characteristic.  It  was  perfectly  character- 
istic. I  doubt  whether  any  attorney-general  who  ever  existed,  since 
attorneys-general  were  first  invented,  besides  that  hon.  gentleman, 
could  have  delivered,  on  an  occasion  like  this,  the  speech  which 
he  delivered.  It  may  be  said  of  that  hon.  gentleman,  as  the  poet 
said  of  a  very  different  style  of  man — one  who  was  not  an  hon. 
gentleman  in  the  sense  in  which  we  are  now  speaking — '  None  but 
himself  can  be  his  parallel.'  No  attorney-general,  I  repeat,  since 
attorneys-general  were  first  invented,  could  have  delivered  a  speech 
at  all  like  that  pronounced  by  the  Attorney-General  East,  in  open- 
ing his  side  of  the  great  question  now  submitted  to  the  consider- 
ation of  Parliament.  Then  followed  the  singularly  able  speech  of 
my  honourable  friend,  the  Finance  Minister,  which  was  delivered 
with  all  that  ease  and  grace  that  mark  all  his  efforts  in  this  House, 
and  with  that  fluency  of  diction  which  we  all  admire,  and  which 
I  am  always  ready  to  acknowledge.  But  I  think  it  will  also  be 
admitted  by  that  honourable  gentleman's  own  friends,  that  his 
speech  was  chiefly  remarkable  for  an  adroit  avoidance  of  the  very 
topics  on  which  he  was  expected,  or  might  have  been  expected,  to 
address  the  House,  and  for  a  very  adroit  assumption  of  those 
very  things  which  he  might  have  been  expected  to  prove.  Such, 
at  least,  was  the  impression  which  that  speech  made  upon  my 
mind.  Then  came  the  speech,  the  herculean  effort  of  my  honour- 
able friend,  the  President  of  the  Council.  That  speech  was  a  dis- 
appointing speech.  I  did  expect,  from  the  conspicuous  part  which 
that  honourable  gentleman  has  so  long  played  in  the  politics  of  the 
country,  from  the  leading  part  he  has  had  in  all  the  proceedings 
which  have  conducted  to  the  project  now  before  the  House,  that 
we  should  have  had  from  him,  at  all  events,  some  vindication  of 
the  steps  which  he  has  seen  fit  to  take — some  vindication  of  the 
principles  of  the  proposed  union,  so  contrary  to  all  those  princi- 


228  CONFEDERATION. 

pies  which  he  has  hitherto  advocated.  I  say,  we  did  expect  that 
we  would  have  had  something  of  that  kind  from  that  honourable 
gentleman.  But,  instead  of  that,  his  whole  speech  was  mainly  an 
apology  for  his  abandonment  of  all  those  objects  for  which  he  has 
contended  through  his  political  life,  saving  only  the  shadow  of 
representation  by  population,  to  attain  which  shadow  he  seems  to 
have  sacrificed  all  the  material  objects,  all  the  real  objects,  for  the 
attainment  of  which  the  agitation  for  that  change  has  proceeded 
on  his  part.  Then  we  have  had,  to-night,  the  speech  of  my 
honourable  friend,  the  Minister  of  Agriculture,  a  speech  which  I 
admit  was  one  of  very  great  interest  as  a  historical  essay — one 
which  will  read  very  nicely  in  those  reports  which  we  are  to  get 
in  a  few  days — one  which  does  very  great  credit  to  his  literary 
research  and  literary  taste ;  but  one  which,  I  do  venture  to  say, 
had  very  little  practical  bearing  on  the  question  that  is  now  before 
us.  Well,  I  repeat,  I  am  not  afraid  that  these  speeches  should 
go  to  the  country  unanswered.  The  country  will  see  that  these 
honourable  gentlemen  have  utterly  failed  to  establish  a  cause  for 
revolution.  They  are  proposing  revolution,  and  it  was  incumbent 
upon  them  to  establish  a  necessity  for  revolution.  All  revolu- 
tions are  unjustifiable,  except  on  the  ground  of  necessity.  These 
honourable  gentlemen  were,  therefore,  bound  to  establish  this  neces- 
sity. The  country  will  see,  too,  that  they  have  failed  to  explain, 
to  vindicate  and  to  justify  the  disregard  of  parliamentary  law  and 
of  parliamentary  usage  by  which  they  are  attempting  to  extort 
from  this  House  an  assent,  not  merely  to  the  principle  of  union — 
which  would  be  perfectly  proper — but  to  all  the  clumsy  contriv- 
ances adopted  by  that  self-constituted  junta  which  sat  in  Quebec  a 
few  weeks  since,  for  giving  effect  to  that  union,  and  to  all  those 
huxtering  arrangements  by  which  the  representatives  of  the  Lower 
Provinces  were  induced  to  give  in  their  adhesion,  and,  so  far  as 
they  could,  the  adhesion  of  their  provinces  to  this  scheme.  I  say, 
they  quite  failed  to  explain  this  and  to  vindicate  it.  The  country 
too  will  see  that  these  honourable  gentlemen  have  carefully  re- 
frained from  entering  into  any  explanation  of  the  concomitants  of 
this  scheme — of  the  proposed  constitutions  of  the  local  govern- 
ments, for  instance,  which  are,  at  least,  as  important  as  the  con- 


CONFEDERATION.  229 

stitution  of  the  Federal  Government.  It  is  quite  manifest  that  a 
union,  even  if  generally  desirable,  might  become  undesirable  from 
the  bad,  or  inconvenient,  or  expensive  arrangements  incident  to 
the  adoption  of  that  union.  And  that  really  explains  the  posi- 
tion of  many  honourable  gentlemen  in  this  House,  who  like 
myself,  are  not  opposed  to  the  Federal  principle,  but  who  find 
themselves  obliged  to  go  counter  apparently  to  their  own  convic. 
tions,  because  they  cannot  accept  a  union  clogged  with  such  condi- 
tions as  this  union  is.  Then  it  might  have  been  expected  that 
some  further,  some  more  distinct  information  might  have  been 
given  than  has  been  given,  on  the  all-important  question  of  edu- 
cation, in  respect  of  which  we  have  been  given  to  understand 
that  some  final  and  permanent  system  will  be  enacted  by  this 
legislature,  in  view  of  the  proposed  federation  of  the  Provinces. 
We  might  also  have  expected  that  some  information  would  have 
been  vouchsafed  to  us  in  respect  to  the  Intercolonial  Railway, 
which  we  are  in  fact  voting  for,  without  having  gone  into  commit- 
tee of  the  whole.  Without  having  in  point  of  fact  any  informa- 
tion with  regard  to  it  whatever,  we  are  voting  the  cost  of  that 
road,  so  far  as  this  legislature  can  do  so — a  road  which  will  cer- 
tainly cost  us  $20,000,000,  and,  for  aught  we  know,  may  cost  us 
$40,000,000.  I  do  think  we  should  have  had  some  information 
with  respect  to  that  road  from  these  honourable  gentlemen,  in 
order  that  the  whole  case  might  have  gone  to  the  country.  And 
then,  with  respect  to  the  defences  of  the  country,  what  sort  of 
utterances  have  we  had  on  that  subject  ?  We  were  told  by  the 
President  of  the  Council  that  the  subject  was  engaging  the  atten- 
tion of  the  Imperial  Government,  and  he  vindicated  union, 
because  defence  can  be  better  given  by  united  than  by  separate 
colonies.  And  what  have  we  been  told  to-night  by  the  Minister 
of  Agriculture'?  That  despatches  are  received  by  every  second 
mail  from  England,  telling  us  that  we  are  entering  011  a  new  era 
with  reference  to  the  question  of  defence.  What  does  all  this 
mean  1  It  means  that,  in  connection  with  this  union,  we  are  to 
have  entailed  upon  us  untold  expenditures  for  the  defence  of  the 
country.  Ought  they  not  to  place  this  information,  these  des- 
patches, before  the  House  and  the  country,  before  any  final  and 


230  CONFEDERATION. 

irrevocable  action  is  taken  with  regard  to  the  scheme  1  These  are 
a  few,  and  but  a  few  of  the  leading  topics  which  constitute  the 
contents  of  this  scheme  of  Federation,  in  respect  to  which  we  had 
a- right  to  expect  the  fullest  possible  information,  but  in  respect  to 
which  honourable  gentlemen  have  either  maintained  a  studied 
reserve,  or  have  spoken,  like  the  Delphic  oracles,  in  language 
which  defies  interpretation.  I  say,  then,  let  these  speeches  go  to 
the  country;  and  if  the  country,  by  perusing  them,  is  not  awak- 
ened to  the  dangers  which  threaten  it  from  the  adoption  of  this 
crude,  immature,  ill-considered  scheme  of  honourable  gentlemen, 
a  scheme  which  threatens  to  plunge  the  country  into  measureless 
debt,  into  difficulties  and  confusions  utterly  unknown  to  the  pre- 
sent constitutional  system,  imperfect  as  that  system  confessedly 
is — if  the  country  is  not  awakened  to  a  sense  of  its  danger  by  the 
perusal  of  these  speeches,  I  do  not  say  I  will  despair  of  my  coun- 
try, for  I  will  never  despair  of  my  country,  but  I  anticipate  for 
my  country  a  period  of  calamities,  a  period  of  tribulation,  such  as 
it  has  never  heretofore  known." 

On  the  16th  February,  Hon.  Mr.  Dorion  followed  in  support  of 
Mr.  Hoi  ton,  and  in  resuming  the  adjourned  debate,  after  remark- 
ing that  he  had  heard  no  sufficient  reasons  assigned  for  changing 
the  views  he  had  before  entertained  on  the  subjects  of  the  Elec- 
tive Council  and  Intercolonial  Railway,  and  the  question  of 
union,  when  first  proposed  by  Mr.  Gait  in  1858,  proceeded 
to  observe  that  the  present  scheme  was  submitted  on  two  grounds^ 
first,  the  necessity  for  meeting  the  constitutional  difficulties  which 
have  arisen  between  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  owing  to  the 
growing  demands  on  the  part  of  Upper  Canada  for  representation 
by  population;  and,  secondly,  the  necessity  for  providing  more 
efficient  means  for  the  defence  of  the  country  than  now  exist. 
The  first  time  representation  by  population  was  mooted  in  this 
House,  on  behalf  of  Upper  Canada,  was,  I  believe,  in  the  session 
of  1852,  when  the  Conservative  party  took  it  up,  and  the  Hon. 
Sir  Allan  Macnab  moved  resolutions  in  favour  of  the  principle. 
We  then  found  the  Conservatives  arrayed  in  support  of  this  con- 
stitutional change.  It  had  been  mooted  before  on  behalf  of 


CONFEDERATION.  '2'11 

Lower  Canada,  but  the  Upper  Canadians  had  all  opposed  it.  I 
think  two  votes  were  taken  in  1852,  and  on  one  of  these  occa- 
sions the  Hon.  Attorney-General  West  (Hon.  J.  A.  Macdonald) 
voted  for  it;  it  came  up  incidentally.  In  1854,  the  Macna-b- 
Morin  coalition  took  place,  and  we  heard  no  more  of  represen- 
tation by  population  from  that  quarter — that  is,  as  mooted  by  the 
Conservative  party,  who  from  that  moment  uniformly  opposed  it 
on  every  occasion.  It  was,  however,  taken  up  by  the  present 
Hon.  President  of  the  Council  (Hon.  Mr.  Brown),  and  he  caused 
such  an  agitation  in  its  behalf  as  almost  threatened  a  revolution. 
I  never  hesitated  to  say  that  something  ought  to  be  done  to  meet 
the  just  claims  of  Upper  Canada,  and  that  representation  based 
on  population  was,  in  the  abstract,  a  just  and  correct  principle.  I 
held,  at  the  same  time,  there  were  reasons  why  Lower  Canada 
could  not  grant  it.  In  1856,  when  Parliament  was  sitting  in 
Toronto,  I  suggested  that  one  means  of  getting  over  the  difficulty 
would  be  to  substitute  for  the  present  legislative  union  a  con- 
federation of  the  two  Canadas,  by  means  of  which  all  local 
questions  could  be  consigned  to  the  deliberations  of  local  legis- 
latures, with  a  central  government  having  control  of  commercial 
and  other  questions  of  common  or  general  interest.  The  first 
time  the  matter  was  put  to  a  practical  test  was  in  1858.  On  the 
resignation  of  the  Macdonald-Cartier  administration,  the  Brown- 
Dorion  government  was  formed,  and  one  of  the  agreements  made 
between  its  members  was  that  the  constitutional  question  should 
be  taken  up  and  settled,  either  by  a  confederation  of  the  two 
Provinces,  or  by  representation  according  to  population,  with  such 
checks  and  guarantees  as  would  secure  the  religious  faith,  the 
laws,  the  language,  and  the  peculiar  institutions  of  each  section 
of  the  country  from  encroachments  on  the  part  of  the  other.  I 
still  hold  to  the  same  views,  the  same  opinions.  I  still  think  that 
a  federal  union  of  Canada  might  hereafter  extend  so  as  to 
embrace  other  territories  either  west  or  east ;  that  such  a  system 
is  well  adapted  to  admit  of  territorial  expansion  without  any 
disturbance  of  the  federal  economy,  but  I  cannot  understand  how 
this  can  be  regarded  as  any  indication  that  I  have  ever  been  in 
favour  of  confederation  with  the  other  British  Provinces.  On 


232  CONFEDERATION. 

the  contrary,  whenever  the  question  came  up,  I  set  my  face 
against  it.  Such  a  confederation  could  only  bring  trouble  and 
embarrassment;  there  was  no  social,  no  commercial  connec- 
tion between  the  Provinces  proposed  to  be  united — nothing  to 
justify  their  union  at  the  present  juncture.  Of  course  I  do  not 
say  that  I  shall  be  opposed  to  their  confederation  for  all  time  to 
come.  Population  may  extend  over  the  wilderness  that  now  lies 
between  the  maritime  Provinces  and  ourselves,  and  commercial 
intercourse  may  increase  sufficiently  to  render  confederation 
desirable.  The  confederation  I  advocated  was  a  real  confeder- 
ation, giving  the  largest  powers  to  the  local  governments,  and 
merely  a  delegated  authority  to  the  general  government ;  in  that 
respect  differing  in  toto  from  the  one  now  proposed,  which  gives 
all  the  powers  to  the  central  government,  and  reserves  for  the 
local  governments  the  smallest  possible  amount  of  freedom  of 
action.  There  was,  then,  another  cause  for  this  Confederation 
scheme,  of  which  representation  by  population  was  made  the  pre- 
text. It  is  not  so  well  known,  but  far  more  powerful.  In  the 
year  J861,  Mr.  Watkiii  was  sent  from  England  by  the  Grand 
Trunk  Railway  Company.  He  came  with  the  distinct  view  of 
making  a  large  claim  on  the  country  for  aid,  but  in  the  then 
temper  of  the  people,  he  soon  found  that  he  could  not  expect  to 
obtain  that.  He  then  started  for  the  Lower  Provinces,  and  came 
back  after  inducing  people  there  to  resuscitate  the  question  of  the 
Intercolonial  Railway.  Parties  were  readily  found  to  advocate  it, 
if  Canada  would  only  pay  the  piper.  A  meeting  of  delegates 
took  place,  resolutions  were  adopted,  and  an  application  was  made 
to  the  Imperial  Government  for  a  large  contribution  to  its  cost, 
in  the  shape  of  an  indemnity  for  carrying  the  troops  over  the 
road.  Mr.  Watkin  and  Hon.  Mr.  Vankoughnet,  who  was  then  a 
member  of  the  Government,  went  to  England  about  this  scheme, 
but  the  Imperial  authorities  were  unwilling  to  grant  the  required 
assistance,  and  rejected  their  propositions.  Mr.  Watkin,  although 
baffled  in  his  expectations,  did  not  give  up  his  project.  He 
returned  again  to  Canada,  and  induced  the  Hon.  J.  S.  Macdonald, 
and  other  honourable  members  of  his  Cabinet  to  enter  into  his 
views.  As  to  the  advantages  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  my 


CONFEDERATION.  233 

honourable  friend  had  no  suspicion  whatsoever  of  the  motives 
which  animated  these  Grand  Trunk  officials,  and  that  their  object 
was  to  have  another  haul  at  the  public  purse  for  the  Grand  Trunk, 
— but  this  was  the  origin  of  the  revival  of  the  scheme  for 
constructing  the  Intercolonial  Railway.  At  a  meeting  of  dele- 
gates of  the  several  Provinces,  which  took  place  in  September, 
1862,  a  new  scheme  for  building  the.  Intercolonial  was  adopted, 
by  which  Canada  was  to  pay  five-twelfths  and  the  Lower  Pro- 
vinces seven-twelfths.  So  unpopular  was  this  arrangement  that 
when  its  terms  were  made  known,  if  a  vote  of  the  people  had 
been  taken  upon  it,  not  ten  out  of  every  hundred,  from  Sandwich 
to  Gaspe,  would  have  declared  in  its  favour,  although  Canada  was 
only  to  pay  five-twelfths  of  its  cost.  This  project  having  failed, 
some  other  scheme  had  to  be  concocted  for  bringing  aid  and  relief 
to  the  unfortunate  Grand  Trunk, — and  the  Confederation  of  all 
the  British  North  American  Provinces  naturally  suggested  itself 
to  the  Grand  Trunk  officials,  as  the  surest  means  of  bringing  with 
it  the  construction  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway.  Such  was  the 
origin  of  this  Confederation  scheme.  The  Grand  Trunk  people 
are  at  the  bottom  of  it.  I  repeat  that  representation  by  popula- 
tion had  very  little  to  do  with  bringing  about  this  measure. 
Again,  is  the  scheme  presented  to  us  the  same  one  that  was 
promised  to  us  by  the  Administration  when  it  was  formed  1 
There  were  two  propositions.  The  first  was  that  the  Govern- 
ment would  pledge  themselves  to  seek  a  Confederation  of  the 
British  American  Provinces,  and  if  they  failed  in  that  to  federate 
the  two  Canadas,  and  this  was  rejected ;  the  second,  which  was 
accepted  by  the  President  of  the  Council,  pledged  the  Govern- 
ment to  bring  in  a  measure  for  the  Confederation  of  the  two 
Canadas,  with  provision  for  the  admission  of  the  other  Provinces 
when  they  thought  proper  to  enter." 

Hon.  Attorney-General  Macdonald — "  "When  they  were  ready." 
Hon.  Attorney-General  Cartier — " Everything  is  accomplished." 
Hon.  Mr.  Dorion — "But,  I  may  be  asked,  granting  that  the 
scheme  brought  down  is  not  the  scheme  promised  to  us,  what  dif- 
ference can  our  bringing  in  the  Provinces  at  once  make  ?     This 
I  will  explain.    When  they  went  into  the  conference,  hon.  gentle- 
16 


234  CONFEDERATION. 

men  opposite  submitted  to  have  the  votes  taken  by  Provinces. 
Well,  they  have  now  brought  us  in,  as  was  natural  under  the 
circumstances,  the  most  conservative  measure  ever  laid  before  a 
Parliament.  When  the  Government  went  into  that  conference 
they  were  bound  by  the  majority,  especially  since  they  voted  by 
Provinces,  and  the  1,400,000  of  Upper  Canada  with  the  1,100,000 
of  Lower  Canada — together  2,500,000  people — were  over-ridden 
by  900,000  people  of  the  Maritime  Provinces.  Were  we  not 
expressly  told  that  it  was  the  Lower  Provinces  who  would  not 
hear  of  our  having  an  elective  Legislative  Council  1  If,  instead 
of  going  into  conference  with  the  people  of  the  Lower  Provinces, 
our  Government  had  done  what  they  pledged  themselves  to  do, 
that  is,  to  prepare  a  constitution  themselves,  they  would  never 
have  dared  to  bring  in  such  a  proposition,  as  this  which  is  now 
imposed  upon  us  by  the  Lower  Colonies — to  have  a  Legislative 
Council,  with  a  fixed  number  of  members,  nominated  by  four 
Tory  Governments.  Taking  the  average  time  each  councillor  will 
be  in  the  Council  to  be  fifteen  to  twenty  years,  it  will  take  a 
century  before  its  complexion  can  be  changed.  The  new  House 
for  the  Confederation  is  to  be  a  perfectly  independent  body — these 
gentlemen  are  to  be  named  for  life — and  there  is  to  be  no  power 
to  increase  their  number.  How  long  will  the  system  work  with- 
out producing  a  collision  between  the  two  branches  of  the  Legis- 
lature "?  I  venture  to  prophesy  that  before  a  very  short  time  has 
elapsed  a  dead  lock  may  arise,  and  such  an  excitement  be  created 
as  has  never  yet  been  seen  in  this  country.  Now,  if  this  consti- 
tution had  been  framed  by  the  members  of  our  Government,  we 
could  change  some  of  its  provisions ;  but  it  is  in  the  nature  of  a 
compact,  a  treaty,  and  cannot  be  changed.  The  composition  of 
the  Legislative  Council  becomes  of  more  importance  when  we 
consider  that  the  governors  of  the  Local  Legislatures  are  to  be 
appointed  by  the  General  Government,  as  well  as  the  Legislative 
Council ;  their  appointment  is  to  be  for  five  years,  and  they  are 
not  to  be  removed  without  cause.  I  will  venture  upon  another 
prediction,  and  say  we  shall  find  there  will  be  no  such  thing  as 
responsible  government  attached  to  the  Local  Legislatures." 
Mr.  Dunkin — "  There  cannot  be." 


CONFEDERATION.  235 

Hon.  Mr.  Dorion — "  There  will  be  two,  three,  or  four  minis- 
ters chosen  by  the  Lieutenant-Governors,  who  will  conduct  the 
administration  of  the  country,  as  was  formerly  done  in  the  times 
of  Sir  Francis  Bond  Head,  Sir  John  Colborn,  or  Sir  James  Craig. 
You  will  have  governments,  the  chief  executives  of  which  will  be 
appointed  and  hold  office  at  the  will  of  the  Governor.  Is  this 
House  going  to  vote  a  constitution  with  the  Upper  House  as 
proposed,  without  knowing  what  sort  of  Local  Legislatures  we 
are  to  have  to  govern  us  1  The  whole  scheme  is  absurd  from 
beginning  to  end.  The  instincts  of  honourable  gentlemen 
opposite,  whether  you  take  the  Hon..  Attorney-General  East  or 
the  Hon.  Attorney-General  West,  lead  them  to  this — they  think 
the  hands  of  the  Crown  should  be  strengthened,  and  the  influence 
of  the  people,  if  possible,  diminished — and  this  constitution  is  a 
specimen  of  their  handiwork,  with  a  Governor-General  appointed 
by  the  Crown;  with  local  Governors  also  appointed  by  the 
Crown;  with  Legislative  Councils,  in  the  General  Legislature 
and  in  all  the  Provinces,  nominated  by  the  Crown;  we  shall 
have  the  most  illiberal  constitution  ever  heard  of  in  any  coun- 
try, where  constitutional  government  prevails.  The  Speaker  of 
the  Legislative  Council  is  also  to  be  appointed  by  the  Crown 
this  is  another  step  backwards,  and  a  little  piece  of  patronage  for 
the  Government.  Another  point  : — It  is  said  that  this  Confeder- 
ation is  necessary  for  the  purpose  of  providing  a  better  mode  of 
defence  for  this  country.  You  add  to  the  frontier  four  or  five 
hundred  more  miles  than  you  now  have,  and  an  extent  of  country 
immeasurably  greater  in  proportion  than  the  additional  population 
you  have  gained  ;  and  if  there  is  an  advantage  at  all  for  the  defence 
of  the  country,  it  will  be  on  the  part  of  the  Lower  Provinces,  and 
not  for  us.  As  Canada  is  to  contribute  to  the  expenditure  to 
the  extent  of  ten-twelfths  of  the  whole,  the  other  Provinces  paying 
only  two-twelfths,  it  follows  that  Canada  will  pay  ten-twelfths 
also  of  the  cost  of  defence,  which,  to  defend  the  largely  extended 
country  we  will  have  to  defend,  will  be  much  larger  than  if  we 
remained  alone.  Why,  take  the  line  dividing  New  Brunswick 
from  Maine,  and  you  find  it  separates  on  the  one  side  250,000, 
thinly  scattered  over  a  vast  territory,  from  750,000  on  the  other, 


236  CONFEDERATION. 

compact  and  powerful.  These  250,000,  Canada  will  have  to 
defend,  and  it  will  have  to  pledge  its  resources  for  the  purpose  of 
providing  means  of  defence  along  that  extended  line.  And,  if 
rumour  be  true,  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  this  so-called  great 
defensive  work,  is  not  to  pass  along  Major  Robinson's  line.  The 
statement  has  been  made — I  have  seen  it  in  newspapers  usually 
well  informed — that  a  new  route  has  been  found  that  will  satisfy 
everybody  or  nobody  at  all ;  and,  while  I  am  on  this  point,  I 
must  say  that  it  is  most  singular  that  we  are  called  upon  to  vote 
these  resolutions,  and  to  pledge  ourselves  to  pay  ten-twelfths  of 
the  cost  of  that  railway,  without  knowing  whether  there  will  be 
ten  miles  or  one  hundred  miles  of  it  in  Lower  Canada,  or  whethei 
it  will  cost  $10,000,000  or  $20,000,000." 

Hon.  Mr.  Holton— "  It  will  be  nearer  $40,000,000." 
Hon.  Mr.  Dorion — "  It  is  folly  to  suppose  that  this  Inter- 
colonial Railway  will  in  the  least  degree  be  conducive  to  the 
defence  of  the  country.  We  have  expended  a  large  sum  of 
money — and  none  voted  it  more  cordially  and  heartily  than 
myself — for  the  purpose  of  opening  a  military  highway  from 
Gasp6  to  Rimouski ;  and  that  road,  in  case  of  hostilities  with  our 
neighbours,  would  be  found  of  far  greater  service  for  the 
transport  of  troops,  cannon,  and  all  kinds  of  munitions  of  war, 
than  any  railway  following  the  same  or  a  more  southern  route 
possibly  can  be.  That  road  cannot  be  effectually  destroyed  ;  but 
a  railway  lying  in  some  places  not  more  than  fifteen  or  twenty 
miles  from  the  frontier,  will  be  of  no  use  whatever,  because  of 
the  readiness  with  which  it  may  be  attacked  and  seized.  The 
battles  of  Canada  cannot  be  fought  on  the  frontier,  but  on  the 
high  seas  and  at  the  great  cities  on  the  Atlantic  coast ;  and  it  will 
be  nothing  but  folly  for  us  to  cripple  ourselves  by  spending  fifteen 
or  twenty  millions  a  year  to  raise  an  army  of  50,000  men  for  the 
purpose  of  resisting  an  invasion  of  the  country.  Now,  when  I 
look  into  the  provisions  of  this  scheme,  I  find  another  most 
objectionable  one.  It  is  that  which  gives  the  General  Govern- 
ment control  over  all  the  acts  of  the  Local  Legislatures.  What 
difficulties  may  not  arise  under  this  system  1  Now,  knowing  that 
the  General  Government  will  be  party  in  its  character,  may  it  not 


CONFEDERATION.  237 

for  party  purposes  reject  laws  passed  by  the  Local  Legislatures, 
and  demanded  by  a  majority  of  the  people  of  that  locality.  This 
power  conferred  upon  the  General  Government,  has  been  com- 
pared to  the  veto  power  that  exists  in  England  in  respect  to  our 
legislation ;  but  we  know  that  the  statesmen  of  England  are  not 
actuated  by  the  local  feelings  and  prejudices,  and  do  not  partake 
of  the  local  jealousies  that  prevail  in  the  colonies.  It  is  quite 
possible  for  a  majority  in  a  Local  Government  to  be  opposed  to 
the  General  Government ;  and  in  such  a  case  the  minority  would 
call  upon  the  General  Government  to  disallow  the  laws  enacted 
by  the  majority  ?  The  men  who  shall  compose  the  General 
Government  will  be  dependent  for  their  support  upon  their 
political  friends  in  the  Local  Legislatures,  and  it  may  so  happen 
that,  in  order  to  secure  this  support,  or  in  order  to  serve  their 
own  purposes  or  that  of  their  supporters,  they  will  veto  laws 
which  the  majority  of  a  Local  Legislature  find  necessary  and 
good.  What  will  be  the  result  of  such  a  state  of  things  but  bitter- 
ness of  feeling,  strong  political  acrimony  and  dangerous  agitation? 
Then,  among  the  powers  granted  to  local  legislatures,  we  find  the 
power  to  pass  by-laws  imposing  direct  taxation.  That  is  the  first 
power  they  have,  and  I  have  no  doubt  that,  before  many  months 
have  passed  after  they  are  constituted,  they  will  find  it  necessary 
to  resort  to  it.  But,  in  addition  to  this,  I  find  that  New  Bruns- 
wick and  Nova  Scotia,  which,  no  doubt,  are  the  favoured  children 
of  the  Confederation,  have  powers  not  granted  to  the  other  pro- 
vinces. New  Brunswick,  tha  resolution  declares,  shall  have  the 
power  to  impose  an  export  duty  on  timber,  logs,  masts,  spars, 
deals  and  sawn  lumber,  and  Nova  Scotia  on  coal  and  other  mine- 
rals, for  local  purposes  ;  so  that  while  our  timber  and  minerals 
exported  from  Upper  and  Lower  Canada  will  be  taxed  by  the 
General  Government  for  general  purposes,  the  timber  and  mine- 
rals of  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia  will  be  exempt,  the 
revenue  derived  from  them  going  to  the  benefit  of  the  local  gov- 
ernments, to  be  expended  on  local  objects.  Now,  among  the 
other  powers  granted  to  the  General  Government  is  its  control 
over  agriculture  and  immigration,  as  well  as  the  fisheries.  What 
will  be  the  operation  of  this  provision1?  The  local  legislature 


238  CONFEDERATION. 

will  pass  a  law  which  will  then  go  to  the  General  Government ; 
the  latter  will  put  its  veto  upon  it,  and  if  that  does  not  answer, 
it  will  pass  a  law  contrary  to  it,  and  you  have  at  once  a  conflict. 
I  shall  now  pass  to  the  consideration  of  a  portion  of  the  financial 
scheme.  I  shall  certainly  not  attempt  to  follow  the  Hon.  Finance 
Minister  in  what  I  admit  was  the  able  statement,  or  rather  able 
manipulation  of  figures,  he  made  the  other  day.  When  that 
honourable  gentleman  was  able  to  prove  to  the  satisfaction  of  the 
Barings,  the  Glyns,  and  the  leading  merchants  of  England,  that 
the  investment  they  would  make  in  the  Grand  Trunk  Railway 
would  yield  them  at  least  eleven  per  cent.,  it  is  not  astonishing 
that  he  was  able  to  show  to  this  House  that  the  finances  of  the 
Confederation  will  be  in  a  most  flourishing  condition,  and  that  we 
shall  have  a  surplus  every  year  of  at  least  a  million  dollars.  I 
have  a  million  more  than  I  want,  he  exclaims,  and  I  will  reduce 
the  duties  to  fifteen  per  cent.  But  the  honourable  gentleman  for- 
gets that  he  has  the  Intercolonial  Railway  to  provide  for,  as  well 
as  that  military  and  naval  defensive  force  which  we  are  going  to 
raise.  He  forgets  all  this,  but  the  promise  is  there ;  aad  just  as 
he  held  out  to  the  expected  shareholders  of  the  Grand  Trunk  Rail- 
way the  eleven  per  cent,  dividends  upon  their  investments,  he  now 
tells  the  people  of  these  several  colonies  that  the  customs  duties  will 
be  reduced  to  fifteen  per  cent.  The  first  thing  that  the  Confede- 
ration will  have  to  provide  for  is  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  which 
will  certainly  cost  twenty  millions  of  dollars,  the  interest  upon 
which,  at  five  per  cent.,  will  amount  to  one  million  of  dollars 
annually.  Then  to  Newfoundland  we  are  bound  to  pay  $150,000 
a  year,  for  all  time  to  come,  to  purchase  the  mineral  lands  of  that 
colony  ;  while,  as  regards  the  other  provinces,  all  the  public  lands 
are  given  up  to  the  local  governments.  But  this  is  not  all,  for, 
in  order  to  manage  these  '  valuable  lands  '  in  Newfoundland,  we 
shall  have  to  establish  a  Crown  Lands  department  under  the  Gene- 
ral Government.  Now,  supposing  the  increased  extent  of  terri- 
tory to  be  defended  under  the  Confederation,  augments  the  militia 
expenditure  to  the  extent  of  a  million  a  year.  Then  add  the 
interest  of  the  sum  required  to  build  the  Intercolonial  Railway, 
five  per  cent,  on  $20,000,000,  and  we  have  an  annual  payment  of 


CONFEDERATION.  239 

$1,000,000  more,  which  is  increased  by  $150,000,  the  indemnity 
paid  to  Newfoundland  for  its  valuable  mineral  lands.  Then  we 
have  to  pay  the  local  governments,  at  the  rate  of  eighty  cents  per 
head,  $3,056,849,  The  interest  on  the  debt  of  Nova  Scotia, 
$8,000,000,  will  amount  to  $400,000  ;  on  that  of  New  Brunswick, 
$7,000,000,  to  $350,000;  that  of  Newfoundland,  $3,250,000,  to 
$162,000  ;  and  on  the  debt  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  $2,021,425* 
to  $101,071.  Adding  all  these  sums  together,  we  find  that 
the  annual  expenditure,  in  addition  be  it  remembered  to  the  bur- 
dens which  we  now  bear,  will  be  $6,237,920,  representing  a  capi- 
tal of  $124,758,400.  The  share  of  Canada  in  this  annual 
expenditure  will  be  $1.89  per  head,  amounting  to  the  sum  of 
$4,725,000.  This  is  altogether  irrespective  of  the  debt  of  $62, 
500,000  with  which  Canada  enters  the  union.  The  whole  expen- 
diture of  the  province,  exclusive  of  interest  on  public  debt,  cost  of 
legislation,  militia,  subsidy  to  ocean  steamers,  and  collection  of 
revenue,  which  will  have  to  be  paid  even  with  Confederation, 
if  it  takes  place,  does  not  amount  to  more  than  $2,500,000, 
or  one  dollar  per  head  of  the  whole  population.  Then  sup- 
posing that  Upper  Canada  pays  two-thirds  of  that  sum,  or 
$1,666,666,  and  Lower  Canada  one-third,  Upper  Canada  would 
only  pay  $266,666  more  than  her  share  according  to  population. 
And  it  is  to  get  rid  of  this  expenditure  of  a  couple  of  hundred 
thousand  dollars  that  the  Upper  Canadian  members  of  the  Govern- 
ment propose  that  their  section  of  the  country  should  pay  an  addi- 
tional yearly  expenditure  of  $3,181,000,  yielding  no  return  what- 
soever, and  to  saddle  on  Lower  Canada  an  additional  expenditure 
of  from  $1,500,000  to  $2,000,000  a-year,  the  amount  depending 
on  the  proportion  which  they  respectively  contribute  to  the  revenue 
of  the  country.  And  this  was  only  the  immediate  and  necessary 
expenditure  that  would  fall  upon  the  people  of  Canada  at  the  very 
outset.  There  was  not  a  single  sixpence  in  this  estimate  for  any 
improvement  to  be  made  in  the  eastern  or  western  portion  of  the 
Confederacy.  Respecting  the  defences  of  the  country,  he  should 
have  said,  at  an  earlier  stage  of  his  remarks,  that  this  scheme  pro- 
poses a  union  not  only  with  Nova  Scotia,  New  Brunswick,  Prince 
Edward  Island  and  Newfoundland,  but  also  with  British  Columbia 


240  CONFEDERATION. 

and  Vancouver's  Island.  I  must  confess,  Mr.  Speaker,"  said  the 
honourable  member,  "  that  it  looks  like  a  burlesque  to  speak,  as  a 
means  of  defence,  of  a  scheme  of  confederation  to  unite  the  whole 
country  extending  from  Newfoundland  to  Vancouver's  Island, 
thousands  of  miles  intervening  without  any  communication,  except 
through  the  United  States  or  around  Cape  Horn." 

Hon.  Attorney-General  Cartier— "  There  is  an  interoceanic  rail- 
way to  be  built." 

Hon.  Mr.  Dorion — "Yes,  I  suppose  that  is  another  necessity  of 
confederation  to  which  we  may  soon  look  forward :  some  western 
extension  of  this  Grand  Trunk  scheme,  for  the  benefit  of  Messrs. 
Watkin  &  Co.,  of  the  new  Hudson's  Bay  Company.  So  far  as 
Lower  Canada  was  concerned,  he  need  hardly  stop  to  point  out  the 
objections  to  the  scheme.  It  was  evident  from  what  had  transpired, 
that  it  was  intended  eventually  to  form  a  legislative  union  of  all 
the  Provinces.  The  local  governments,  in  addition  to  the  general 
government,  will  be  found  so  burdensome,  that  a  majority  of  the 
people  will  appeal  to  the  Imperial  Government  for  the  formation 
of  a  legislative  union.  I  may  well  ask,"  said  he,  "  if  there  is  any 
member  from  Lower  Canada,  of  French  extraction,  who  is  ready 
to  vote  for  a  legislative  union"?  This  confederation  is  the  first 
necessary  step  towards  it.  The  British  Government  is  ready  to 
grant  a  federal  union  at  once ;  and  when  that  is  accomplished,  the 
French  element  will  be  completely  overwhelmed  by  the  majority  of 
British  representatives.  Perhaps  the  people  of  Upper  Canada 
think  a  legislative  union  a  most  desirable  thing.  He  could  tell 
those  gentlemen  that  the  people  of  Lower  Canada  are  attached  to 
their  institutions  in  a  manner  that  defies  any  attempt  to  change 
them  in  that  way.  They  will  not  change  their  religious  institu- 
tions, their  laws  or  their  language  for  any  consideration  whatever. 
A  million  of  inhabitants  may  seem  a  small  affair  to  the  mind  of  a 
philosopher  who  sits  down  to  write  out  a  constitution.  He  may 
think  it  would  be  better  that  there  should  be  one  religion,  one 
language  and  one  system  of  laws,  and  he  goes  to  work  to  frame 
institutions  that  will  bring  all  to  that  desirable  state;  but  the 
history  of  every  country  goes  to  show  that  not  even  by  the  power 
of  the  sword  can  such  changes  be  accomplished.  If  a  legislative 


CONFEDERATION.  241 

union  of  the  British  American  Provinces  be  attempted,  there  will 
be  such  an  agitation  in  this  portion  of  the  Province  as  was  never 
witnessed  before  :  you  will  see  the  whole  people  of  Lower  Canada 
clinging  together  to  resist,  by  all  legal  and  constitutional  means, 
such  an  attempt  at  wresting  from  them  those  institutions  that  they 
now  enjoy.  I  think  that  the  whole  scheme,  apart  from  the  con- 
struction of  the  railway,  is  worse  than*  the  railway  scheme  itself, 
and  ought  to  be  still  more  strongly  opposed.  It  is  a  mere  revival 
of  a  scheme  that  has  been  rejected  by  the  people  on  every  occasion 
on  which  it  has  been  presented  to  them  during  the  past  seven  years. 
In  1841,  nearly  twenty-five  years  ago,  Lower  Canada  entered  into 
the  union  of  the  Provinces  with  a  debt  of  £133,000.  Since  the 
union,  $12,000,000  have  been  expended  for  public  works  in  Lower 
Canada,  with  perhaps  another  million  for  other  small  works ;  in 
all  $13,000,000.  Twelve  or  thirteen  millions  of  dollars'  worth  of 
public  works  is  all  we  are  able  to  show  for  an  increase  of  our  debt 
from  £133,000  at  the  time  of  the  union,  to  $27,500,000,  which,  on 
going  out  of  the  union  to  enter  into  the  confederation,  is  the 
Lower  Canada  proportion  of  the  $62,500,000  of  public  debt  we 
are  bringing  into  it.  I  do  not  take  into  consideration  the  Municipal 
Loan  Fund  indebtedness,  nor  the  Seigiiorial  Tenure  redemption, 
because  if  we  have  received  any  benefit  from  the  outlay,  we  are 
going  to  be  charged  for  those  items  separately,  over  and  above  our 
share  in  the  $62,500,000.  From  the  explanations  given  the  other 
day  by  the  honourable  Finance  Minister,  I  infer  that  by  putting 
the  Seignorial  Tenure  to  the  charge  of  Lower  Canada,  and  by 
Upper  Canada  abandoning  its  indemnity  for  the  Seignorial  Tenure 
expenditure,  there  is  no  necessity  for  taking  those  items  into 
account  as  part  of  the  liability  of  Cana'da  in  the  Confederation ; 
that  the  charge  for  the  redemption  of  the  Seignorial  Tenure,  the 
township  indemnity  [under  the  Seignorial  Act  of  1859,  the  interest 
on  that  indemnity,  the  liability  of  the  Province  to  the  Superior 
Education  Fund,  and  the  loss  on  the  Lower  Canada  Municipal  Loan 
Fund,  amounting  in  all  to  about  $4,500,000,  will  have  to  be  paid 
by  Lower  Canada  alone.  Upper  Canada  came  into  the  union  with 
a  debt  of  £1,300,000.  Immediately  after  the  union,  £1,500,000 
sterling  was  borrowed  for  public  works,  most  of  which  amount  was 


242  CONFEDERATION. 

expended  in  Upper  Canada ;  and  yet  Upper  Canada  goes  out  of 
the  union  by  simply  abandoning  its  claim  for  indemnity  under  the 
Seignorial  Tenure  Act,  having  nothing  to  assume  but  its  Municipal 
Loan  Fund  and  its  share  in  the  Federal  debt ;  while  Lower  Canada, 
on  the  contrary,  goes  out  with  a  load  of  $4,500,000  of  local  debt, 
besides  the  $27,500,000  which  falls  to  its  share  to  be  paid  through 
the  General  Government.  I  submit  that  no  such  project  ought  to 
be  voted  by  the  House,  before  we  have  the  fullest  information 
necessary  to  enable  us  to  come  to  right  conclusions.  We  ought? 
besides,  to  have  a  clear  statement  of  what  are  the  liabilities  speci- 
ally assigned  to  Upper  and  Lower  Canada.  It  is  well  that  Upper 
Canada  should  know  if  she  has  to  pay  the  indebtedness  of  Port 
Hope,  Cobourg,  Brockville,  Niagara,  and  other  municipalities,  which 
have  borrowed  from  the  Municipal  Loan  Fund,  and  what  these 
liabilities  are ;  and  it  is  important  for  Lower  Canada  to  be  told 
what  are  the  amounts  they  will  be  required  to  tax  themselves  for. 
And  we  ought  to  obtain  some  kind  of  information  upon  the  subject 
of  the  Intercolonial  Railway — what  is  the  proposed  cost,  and  what 
route  is  to  be  followed ;  and  before  these  facts  are  before  the  House, 
we  ought  not  to  take  it  upon  ourselves  to  legislate  on  the  subject. 
Still  further,  the  people  of  the  country  do  not  understand  the 
scheme.  There  is  a  provision  that  the  nomination  of  the  judges 
of  the  superior  courts  shall  be  vested  in  the  General  Government, 
but  it  would  seem  that  the  constitution  of  the  courts  is  to  be  left 
to  the  local  governments;  and  I  put  the  question — what  does  this 
mean  1  Do  you  mean  that  the  local  governments  are  to  establish 
as  many  courts  as  they  please,  declare  of  how  many  judges  they 
shall  be  composed,  and  that  the  General  Government  will  have  to 
pay  for  them  1  Is  a  local  government  to  say,  Jiere  is  a  court  with 
three  judges ;  we  want  five,  and  those  five  must  be  appointed,  and 
paid  by  the  General  Government1?  He  could  well  understand 
what  was  meant  by  the  regulation  of  the  law  of  divorce ;  but  what 
was  meant  by  the  regulation  of  the  marriage  question?  Is  the 
General  Government  to  be  at  liberty  to  set  aside  all  that  we  have 
been  in  the  habit  of  doing  in  Lower  Canada  in  this  respect  1  It  is 
said  that  the  division  of  the  debt  is  a  fair  one.  We  have  given, 
say  the  Government,  $25  of  debt  to  each  inhabitant.  There  is 


CONFEDERATION.  243 

another  aspect  in  which  this  question  of  debt  is  to  be  considered. 
To  equalize  it,  the  Conference  have  increased  it  on  the  basis  of  the 
population  of  the  several  Provinces.  This  is  fair  enough  at  present, 
supposing  that  each  Province  contribute  the  same  proportion  to 
the  general  revenue,  and  would  continue  to  be  so  if  their  popula- 
tion progressed  in  the  same  ratio  of  increase ;  but,  from  the  natural 
advantages  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  and  their  greater  area  of 
arable  lands,  there  is  no  doubt  they  will  increase  in  population  and 
wealth  in  a  much  greater  ratio  than  the  Lower  Provinces ;  and  in 
ten  years  hence,  this  proportion,  which  this  day  appears  a  fair  one? 
will  have  much  increased  for  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  while  it 
will  have  diminished  for  the  Lower  Provinces."  He  maintained 
that  we  ought  not  to  pass  this  measure  now,  but  leave  it  to  another 
year,  in  order  to  ascertain  in  the  meantime  what  the  views  and 
sentiments  of  the  people  actually  were. 

On  the  20th,  Mr.  Joly,  sustaining  Messrs.  Holton  and  Dorion, 
expressed  his  want  of  confidence  in  all  confederations,  denouncing 
them  for  their  instability  and  tendency  to  intestine  wars  and  com- 
motions. He  referred  to  the  confederacies  of  Greece  and  Italy, 
citing  Lords  Brougham  and  Macaulay,  and  illustrated  by  refer- 
ence to  the  South  American  confederacies  the  correctness  of  his 
position,  particularly  objecting  to  the  weakness  of  the  central 
power,  which  he  declared  to  be  not  the  fruit  but  the  root  of  the 
system;  that  the  central  power  now  wielded  by  England  over 
us  was  free  from  the  weakness  incident  to  the  federal  system,  and 
we  felt  only  its  benefits;  that  there  was  nothing  exceptional 
in  Lower  Canada  to  alter  the  rule  ;•  that  in  Lord  Durham's  time, 
as  described  by  himself,  there  was  an  antagonism  between  its  two 
races,  French  and  English ;  that  the  union  had  removed  it,  and 
they  worked  in  harmony ;  but  place  them  in  their  former  position, 
and  the  old  sentiment  would  revive  again.  He  referred  to  a  reso- 
lution then  before  the  House,  suggesting  that  for  the  proposed 
confederation  Canada  should  be  divided  into  three  civil  divisions, 
"Western,  Central  and  Eastern,  as  illustrative  of  his  position ; 
that  at  the  mere  idea  of  a  legislature  in  which  the  French  ele- 
ment is  to  be  in  a  majority  in  Lower  Canada,  the  passions 


244  CONFEDERATION. 

described  by  Lord  Durham  are  evinced.  "I  do  not  believe,"  said 
lie,  "that  the  French  Canadians  will  abuse  the  power  of  their 
majority  in  Lower  Canada,  by  striving  to  oppress  the  English 
Canadians ;  but  there  are  too  many  points  on  which  they  dis- 
agree to  allow  of  their  living  long  in  peace  together,  in  spite  of 
their  sincere  wish  to  do  so,  under  the  system  of  local  government 
which  is  proposed  to  us.  The  honourable  Prime  Minister  said  in 
the  Council  :  '  I  believe  the  French  Canadians  will  do  all  in  their 
power  to  render  justice  to  their  fellow-subjects  of  English  origin  ; 
and  it  should  not  be  forgotten  that,  if  the  former  are  in  a  majority 
in  Lower  Canada,  the  English  will  be  in  a  majority  in  the  General 
Government,  and  that  no  act  of  real  injustice  can  take  place  with- 
out its  being  reversed  by  the  Federal  Parliament.'  But  who  is  to 
decide  whether  any  act  of  the  French  Canadians  is  really  an  act 
of  injustice  1  The  Federal  Parliament  in  which  the  English  ele- 
ment will  be  all-powerful !  In  political  matters,  a  disinterested 
opinion  is  but  seldom  come  to ;  the  sympathies  of  the  majority  in 
the  Federal  Parliament  will  be  against  us.  I  see  in  this  the  pros- 
pect of  a  position  which  may  prove  to  be  a  most  dangerous  one 
for  us  ;  if  the  strife  should  commence,  no  one  can  tell  when  it 
will  end.  Confederation,  by  changing  the  state  of  things  which 
established  harmony  between  the  English  and  French  races  in 
Lower  Canada,  will  destroy  that  harmony,  and  the  consequences 
may  be  only  too  easily  foreseen.  In  Upper  Canada  there  is  much 
more  homogeiiiety,  and,  by  consequence,  the  danger  of  intestine 
trouble  there  is  much  less  great.  True  it  is  that  the  enormous 
power  of  the  Orangemen,  and  the  law  respecting  separate  schools, 
may  give  rise  to  difficulties,  but  I  fear  more  for  the  relations  of 
Upper  Canada  with  the  other  provinces,  and  especially  the  Atlan- 
tic Provinces.  Upper  Canada  objects,  in  general  terms,  to  the 
construction  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway.  Its  wish  is  to  see  the 
resources  of  the  future  Confederation  applied  to  opening  up  the 
immense  territory  of  the  North- West,  and  to  the  enlargement  of 
its  canals.  The  Atlantic  Provinces  desire  the  Intercolonial  Rail- 
way ;  but  they  hold  in  dread  the  expenditure  which  would  be  en- 
tailed by  the  opening  up  of  the  North- West  territory  and  the 
enlargement  of  the  canals.  Upper  Canada  already  fears  lest  the 


CONFEDERATION.  245 

Atlantic  Provinces  should  unite  with  Lower  Canada  against  her  ; 
the  French  Canadians  fear  for  their  nationality,  threatened  by  the 
English  majority  from  the  other  provinces,  and  yet  Confederation 
only  exists  as  a  scheme.  But  when  the  different  provinces  shall 
meet  in  the  Federal  Parliament  as  on  a  field  of  battle,  when  they 
have  there  contracted  the  habit  of  contending  with  each  other  to 
cause  their  own  interests,  so  various  and  so  incompatible  with 
each  other,  to  prevail,  and  when,  from  repetition  of  this  undying 
strife,  jealousy  and  inevitable  hatred  shall  have  resulted,  our  sen- 
timents towards  the  other  provinces  will  no  longer  be  the  same ; 
and  should  any  great  danger,  in  which  our  safety  would  depend 
upon  our  united  condition,  arise,  it  would  then  perhaps  be  found 
that  our  Federal  union  had  been  the  signal  for  our  disunion.  In 
such  a  position  the  greatest  danger  would  result  from  the  neigh- 
bourhood of  the  United  States,  a  nation  which  for  a  long  time  has 
looked  on  our  Provinces  with  a  covetous  eye.  They  will  follow 
up  our  political  struggles  closely,  will  encourage  the  discon- 
tented, and  will  soon  find  an  opportunity  for  interfering  in 
our  internal  affairs,  being  called  in  by  the  weaker  party. 
History  is  full  of  similar  occurrences.  The  Government, 
knowing  well  how  much  the  people  fear  direct  taxes>  tell 
them  that  Confederation  involves  them  in  no  such  risk.  What 
new  method  are  they  going  to  invent  then  for  raising  money  ? 
It  is  perfectly  clear  that  confederation  will  largely  increase 
our  expenditure.  And,  in  face  of  this  increased  expenditure, 
our  chief  source  of  revenue  is  to  be  considerably  diminished. 
I  refer  to  the  import  customs  duties.  We  are  told  that  Lower 
Canada  will  have  a  revenue  of  nearly  a  million  and  a  half  to 
meet  her  local  expenditure  •  with  what  shall  we  meet  our  propor- 
tion of  the  Federal  expenditure,  which  will  be  far  larger]  But  I 
shall  now  deal  with  the  advantages  which  we  are  told  must 
certainly  result  from  confederation.  They  may  be  divided  into 
three  classes — political,  military,  and  commercial.  The  honour- 
able Minister  of  Finance,  faithful  to  the  doctrine  that  the  greatness 
of  a  State  is  proportioned  to  the  greatness  of  its  debt,  announces 
to  us  that  our.  credit  will  be  considerably  increased,  and  that  we 
shall  be  enabled  to  borrow  much  more  extensively  than  we  have 


246  CONFEDERATION. 

hitherto  done,  a  prospect  at  which  he  seems  greatly  to  rejoice. 
This  facility  of  borrowing  is  not  always  an  unmixed  good  ;  but  it 
must  be  remembered  that  our  credit  will  depend  entirely  on  the 
success  of  our  Confederation.  If  it  should  not  succeed,  if  any 
serious  difficulty  should  arise  within  it — a  thing  which  is  possible 
— public  opinion  will  be  more  prompt  to  take  alarm,  in  that  our 
Federal  form  of  government  does  not  afford  strong  guarantees  for 
the  maintenance  of  order  and  peace,  and  our  credit  will  soon  be 
worth  less  than  the  credit  of  a  single  Province  is  worth  to-day. 
Let  us  be  content  with  our  lot ;  few  nations  have  a  better  one. 
The  territorial  formation  of  the  future  Federation  will  also  be  an 
insurmountable  obstacle  to  the  establishment  of  a  strong  govern- 
ment ;  it  amounts  to  a  deformity.  We  do  not  need  Confederation 
to  give  us  that  unity  which  is  indispensable  in  all  military  oper- 
ations— unity  of  headship.  A  commander-in-chief  will  direct  the 
defence  of  all  our  Provinces;  he  will  forward  troops,  and,  if  he 
can,  vessels  of  war,  to  the  points  most  seriously  threatened,  and 
will  assist  each  Province  to  defend  the  post  which  Providence  has 
already  assigned  to  each  in  our  long  line  of  battle.  Moreover,  in 
the  event  of  war  with  the  United  States,  if  we  were  to  trust  to 
numbers  we  should  be  sadly  disappointed.  What  we  need  above 
all  is  enthusiasm ;  our  citizen  soldiers  must  be  convinced  that 
they  are  risking  their  lives  for  something  worth  while ;  that  they 
are  happier  in  being  under  the  flag  of  England  than  they  could 
be  under  that  of  the  United  States,  and  that  they  must  lose  by 
an  exchange.  In  the  present  position  of  the  United  States  it  is 
not  difficult  to  make  them  understand  that ;  the  taxes  alone  with 
which  the  Americans  are  now  crushed  down,  and  of  which  the 
vast  volume  is  growing  from  day  to  day,  suffice  to  shew,  at  a  first 
glance,  how  far  our  position  is  superior  to  theirs  in  a  material  point 
of  view.  But  if,  in  order  to  meet  the  extravagant  expenture  the 
Confederation  must  bring  with  it,  the  people  find  themselves  taxed 
beyond  their  resources,  the  case  will  be  different.  Deprive  the 
French-Canadians  of  their  nationality,  and  you  deprive  them  of  the 
enthusiasm  which  would  have  doubled  their  strength.  I  concur 
with  the  Government  in  their  desire  to  form  more  intimate 
commercial  relations  between  the  different  Provinces ;  but  it  is  as 


CONFEDERATION.  247 

well  to  form  a  proper  appreciation  of  those  advantages,  and  see 
whether  we  cannot  secure  them  without  Confederation.  The 
Gulf  Provinces  possess  timber,  coal,  and  fisheries  ;  our  own  two 
great  articles  of  export  are  timber  and  wheat.  With  regard  to 
timber,  the  Gulf  Provinces  have  no  more  need  of  ours  than  we  of 
theirs.  As  to  coal  we  import  from  England  what  we  need  for  our 
present  wants,  in  ballast,  on  board  the  numerous  ships  which 
come  here  for  our  timber,  and  we  thus  get  it  cheaper  than  we 
could  import  it  from  the  Gulf  Provinces.  When  this  supply 
becomes  insufficient  to  meet  our  growing  wants,  it  will  be  neces- 
sary to  look  somewhere  for  a  supply  of  coal.  If  the  Lower  Pro- 
vinces can  furnish  it  to  us  at  cheaper  rates  than  we  can  get  it  in 
the  United  States,  we  shall  buy  it  from  them.  Upper  Canada 
will  probably  get  its  coal  from  the  Pennsylvania  mines,  which  are 
in  direct  communication  with  Lake  Erie,  on  the  north  shore  of 
which  the  richest  and  most  thickly  settled  portion  of  Upper 
Canada  is  situated.  As  regards  fisheries,  Canada  has  a  stock  of 
fish  in  its  waters  sufficient  not  only  to  supply  all  its  own  require- 
ments, but  to  enable  it  to  export  largely  from  Gaspe"  to  Europe. 
Now  as  to  wheat.  The  Honourable  President  of  the  Council 
told  us  that  in  a  single  year  the  Atlantic  Provinces  paid 
$4,440,000  to  the  United  States  for  flour,  and  that  a  portion  of 
that  flour  came  from  Upper  Canada ;  and  the  honourable  gentle- 
man asks  why  should  not  we  ourselves  sell  our  flour  to  the  Lower 
Provinces  ?  For  the  simple  reason  that,  instead  of  having  to  pay 
$4,447,000  to  the  United  States,  they  would  have  to  pay  us 
$5,000,000,  and  they  would,  therefore,  refuse  to  buy  from  us. 
There  is  no  such  thing  as  sentiment  in  matters  of  business ;  men 
buy  in  the  cheapest  market.  The  Gulf  Provinces  will  buy  their 
flour  from  the  United  States  so  long  as  they  can  obtain  it  at  a 
lower  price  there  than  in  Canada ;  and  the  fact  that  they  do 
obtain  it  cheaper  from  the  United  States  is  clearly  demonstrated 
by  their  buying  from  the  Americans  and  not  from  us.  But  a 
single  glance  at  the  map  will  account  for  the  difference  in  price. 
I  do  not  believe  that  the  Intercolonial  Railway  can  be  advantage- 
ously employed  for  the  transport  of  flour  from  Riviere  du  Loup 
to  Halifax.  He  contended  that  they  could  secure  every  one  of 


248  CONFEDERATION. 

these  commercial  advantages  without  the  Confederation.  What 
hindered  them  from  having  free  trade  with  the  Gulf  Provinces  1 
To  sum  up  all  in  a  few  words,"  said  he,  "all  the  advantages  are 
negative,  that  is  to  say,  Confederation  will  do  no  harm  to  our 
interests,  military  or  commercial,  but  neither  do  they  require  it. 
As  to  the  inconveniences  of  which  it  may  be  productive,  I  leave 
them  to  the  judgment  of  the  House,  who  will  decide  whether  they 
are  positive.  I  am  asked  :  '  If  you  will  have  nothing  to  do  witli 
Confederation,  what  will  you  have  ?  I  answer — we  would  remain 
as  we  are.  That,  I  am  told,  is  impossible,  in  our  present  position 
with  respect  to  Upper  Canada.  But  are  we  really  bordering  on 
civil  strife  1  Of  course  it  is  representation  based  on  population 
which  is  the  exciting  cause.  Do  the  people  of  Upper  Canada 
demand  representation  based  on  population  as  a  condition  sine 
qua  non  of  the  continuation  of  our  peaceful  relations  with 
them  1  Has  this  desire  to  obtain  representation  based  on  popu- 
lation taken  such  deep  root  in  the  bosom  of  Upper  Canada, 
that  it  is  ready  to  plunge  us  and  itself  into  the  horrors  of 
civil  war  in  order  to  achieve  it?  Or  is  not  representation  by 
population  rather  one  of  those  political  clap-traps  which  ambitious 
men,  who  can  catch  them  no  other  way,  set  to  catch  the  heedless 
multitude  1  I  look  upon  this  threat  of  civil  war  as  resembling  a 
farce.  These  two  reasons  advanced  by  ministers  are  merely 
intended  as  a  veil  to  conceal  the  true  motive  for  this  complete 
revolution  in  our  constitution  ;  that  true  motive  is  simply  a  desire 
on  their  parts  to  remain  in  power.  He  then  turned  to  the 
details  of  the  scheme,  and  objected  to  the  provisions  respecting 
the  representation,  also  to  the  declaration  made  by  the  leader 
of  the  Government  that  the  Government  would  accept  no 
amendment,  but  that  the  resolutions  must  be  adopted  in  the 
shape  brought  down.  He  then  addressed  himself  especially  to 
the  French  Canadian  members,  and  asked  them  if  proper  steps 
were  taken  to  protect  the  interests  of  Lower  Canada,  and  sought 
to  arouse  their  sectional  fears  by  pointing  out  that  the  English  of 
Lower  Canada  might  join  with  the  English  of  Upper  Canada, 
and  by  means  of  their  majority  in  the  Federal  Parliament  im- 
pose upon  them  measures  objectionable  to  their  interests  as  French 


CONFEDERATION.  249 

Canadians.  He  objected  to  the  proposed  military  system,  and 
asked  : — "  why  should  we  vest  in  the  Federal  Government  the  right 
of  giving  instruction  in  the  military  art,  and  of  arming  the  other 
provinces  at  the  expense  of  Lower  Canada  ?  Why,  while  there 
is  yet  time,  should  we  neglect  to  take  those  salutary  precautions 
on  which  our  existence  as  French-Canadians  depend  1  Our  Local 
Government  ought  to  have  the  same  active  part  in  the  organiza- 
tion, instruction  and  equipment  of  our  militia  which  belongs  to  all 
local  governments  which  form  part  of  other  confederacies.  They 
offer  to  protect  the  French-Canadians  ;  but  when,  under  the  pre- 
sent constitution,  they  can  protect  themselves,  why  should  they 
abdicate  the  right  of  so  doing  ?  The  French-Canadians,  at  the 
present  day,  are  in  a  better  position  than  they  were  at  the  time  of 
the  union.  They  are  at  the  same  time  both  judges  and  suitors. 
They  are  asked  to  adopt  a  new  form  of  government ;  it  is  not  im- 
posed upon  them  ;  and,  to  induce  them  to  do  so,  the  Hon.  Minis- 
ter of  Agriculture  tells  them  that  this  new  form  of  government 
was  recommended  successively  by  Chief  Justice  Sewell,  Judge 
Robinson  and  Lord  Durham.  The  names  of  "these  three  men 
ought  to  suffice  to  open  our  eyes  ;  their  avowed  object  always  was 
to  obliterate  French-Canadian  nationality,  to  blend  the  races  into 
one  only,  and  that  the  English ;  and  to  attain  that  end  they 
recommended  the  system  of  government  now  submitted  for  our 
approval."  The  honourable  gentleman  concluded  his  address  in  a 
powerful  appeal  to  his  fellow  French-Canadians  to  preserve  their 
nationality  by  resisting  confederation. 

Mr.  Joly  was  immediately  followed  by  the  Solicitor-General 
East,  Mr.  Langevin,  himself  a  French-Canadian,  born  and  edu- 
cated in  Lower  Canada,  and  identified  with  its  people,  its  inte- 
rests, and  its  prejudices.  He  observed  : 

"This  question  of  confederation  is  bound  up  with  the  common 
interests  of  empires  and  the  general  policy  of  nations,  for  it  is  110 
unimportant  matter  for  the  great  nations  who  bear  sway  among 
mankind  to  know  into  what  hands  the  Provinces  of  British  North 
America  may  fall.  On  the  present  occasion  the  thousand  voices 
of  the  press  proclaim  the  interest  which  the  question  of  con- 
17 


250  CONFEDERATION. 

federation  excites  both  in  America  and  in  Europe  itself,  and  how 
closely  the  governments  observe  our  proceedings  ;  and  this  interest 
which  they  feel  and  proclaim  is  legitimate  and  natural,  for  the 
measure  is  destined  to  make  us  rank  among  the  nations  of  the 
earth.  It  has  been  charged  that  the  plan  of  a  confederation  was 
adopted  and  moved  by  the  present  administration,  for  the  mere 
purpose  of  stifling  the  cry  of  'representation  by  population.'  Is 
it  not  most  important  that  we  should  stop  that  cry  for  representa- 
tion based  on  population,  in  our  present  condition.  Representation 
by  population  would  have  left  us  Lower  Canadians_iii_aji  inferior 
position  relatively  to  that  of  Upper  Canada — would  have  conferred 
on  the JattejLJJie^pri vilege  of  legislating  for  us,  not  only  in  general 
but  in  local  matters.  But  the_ob]ect  of  the  confederation^  is  not 
merely  to  do  away  with  existing  difficulties.  It  has  become  a 
necessity,  because  we  have  become  sufficiently  great ;  because  we 
have  become  strong,  rich  and  powerful  enough ;  because  our  pro- 
ducts are  numerous  enough,  and  considerable  enough ;  because  our 
population  has  become  large  enough  to  allow  of  our  aspiring  to 
another  position,  and  of  our  seeking  to  obtain  an  outlet  through 
some  seaport  for  our  products.  At  the  present  day  we  stand  in  a 
position  of  vassalage  to  the  United  States  :  with  respect  to  the 
exportation  of  our  products  to  Europe,  we  are  at  their  mercy. 
The  plan  of  confederation  of  the  two  Canadas  would  only  have 
settled  one  difficulty,  and  would  have  allowed  others  of  the  greatest 
importance  to  arise ;  and  among  others,  that  respecting  our  com- 
munication with  the  seaboard.  That  plan,  for  instance,  would  not 
have  allowed  vis  to  construct  the  Intercolonial  Railway ;  for  it  is 
almost  impossible  that  so  great  an  enterprise  should  succeed  unless 
it  is  in  the  hands  of  a  great  central  power,  and  if  it  is  necessary 
to  consult  five  or  six  governments  before  commencing  it.  But  the 
question  of  the  confederation  of  the  two  Canadas  is  not  the  only 
one  which  is  presented  as  a  means  of  escaping  from  our  difficulties. 
Some  propose  that  we  should  remain  in  the  position  in  which  we 
now  are ;  others  wish  for  annexation  to  the  United  States  ;  some 
would,  perhaps,  be  in  favour  of  complete  independence ;  others 
would  favour  a  confederation  of  the  two  Canadas ;  and,  lastly,  the 
confederation  of  all  the  British  North  American  Provinces  is  pro- 


CONFEDERATION.  251 

posed.  Well,  let  us  cursorily  examine  these  various  propositions. 
It  may  be  that  there  are  some  members  who  are  desirous  that  we 
should  remain  as  we  are.  The  honourable  members  for  Hochelaga 
and  Lottbiniere  (Messrs.  Dorion  and  Joly)  consider  our  position 
an  excellent  one,  and  so,  in  their  speeches,  they  have  told  us. 
They  consider  that  we  are  extremely  prosperous,  and  that  we  have 
nothing  to  wish  for.  For  my  part,  I  consider  that  in  our  present 
position  we  are  under  a  great  disadvantage  :  it  is,  that  if  we  remain 
isolated  and  alone,  we  cannot  communicate  with  the  metropolis, 
except  through  the  United  States;  if  we  remain  alone,  we  can 
aspire  to  no  position,  we  can  give  rein  to  no  ambition  as  a  people. 
Again,  we  have  at  the  present  time  as  many  systems  of  judicature 
as  we  have  Provinces  ;  with  confederation,  on  the  contrary,  this 
defect  will  be  removed,  and  there  will  be  but  two  systems — one  for 
Lower  Canada,  because  our  laws  are  different  from  those  of  the 
other  Provinces,  because  we  are  a  separate  people,  and  because  we 
do  not  choose  to  have  the  laws  of  the  other  populations,  and  the 
other  for  the  remainder  of  the  Confederation.  All  the  other  Pro- 
vinces having  the  same  laws,  or  their  system  of  law  being  derived 
from  one  and  the  same  source,  may  have  one  and  the  same  system 
of  judicature ;  and,  in  fact,  a  resolution  of  the  Conference  allows 
them  to  resolve  that  they  will  have  one  code  and  one  judicial  sys- 
tem ;  but  an  exception  is  made  in  favour  of  Lower  Canada  and 
our  laws.  There  are  also  as  many  different  tariffs  as  there  are 
different  Provinces — as  many  commercial  and  customs  regulations 
as  Provinces.  Currency  and  the  interest  of  money  are  also  regu- 
lated by  different  systems  in  the  several  Provinces.  But,  with 
confederation,  all  these  matters  would  be  placed  under  the  control 
of  one  central  legislature ;  the  currency  would  become  "uniform 
throughout,  and  capital  might  be  everywhere  invested  without 
obstacle.  So  also  it  will  be  with  respect  to  the  rights  of  authors, 
patents  for  mechanical  inventions,  &c.  When  speaking  of  the 
Intercolonial  Railway,  I  made  no  mention  of  the  Pacific  Railway, 
because  I  consider  that  we  ought  to  devote  our  attention  to  accom- 
plishing the  works  of  which  we  at  present  stand  in  need.  At  a 
later  period,  when  our  resources  and  our  population  shall  have 
sufficiently  increased,  we  may  direct  our  attention  to  the  Pacific 


' 


252  CONFEDERATION. 

Railway.  And  should  it  become  necessary,  we  can,  with  confede- 
ration, hope  to  build  it  in  less  than  ten  years;  whereas,  by  remaining 
by  ourselves  as  we  are,  we  could  not  hope  to  have  it  for  perhaps  one 
hundred  years.  I  think  that  I  have  now  held  up  in  a  salient  point 
of  view  the  disadvantages  of  the  status  quo.  The  necessary  conse- 
quence of  what  I  have  just  demonstrated  is,  that  we  cannot  remain 
in  the  position  in  which  we  now  are,  whether  we  will  or  not.  The 
question  of  representation  based  on  population  must  be  met ;  that 
question  must  be  settled.  To  say  that  we  will  grant  it,  is  to  wish 
to  place  us  in  a  position  of  inferiority ;  and  I,  for  my  part,  will 
never  consent  to  place  my  section  of  the  Province  in  that  position- 
Then  there  is  another  alternative  that  is  proposed — annexation  to 
the  United  States.  I  do  not  believe  there  is  a  single  member  in 
the  House  or  out  of  the  House  who  would  consent  to  the  annexa- 
tion of  Canada  to  the  United  States.  I  now  come  to  the  other 
alternative  proposed — that  of  independence.  Men  may  be  found, 
both  in  the  House  and  out  of  it,  who  would  be  disposed  to  say 
that  we  had  better  have  independence  than  confederation.  For 
my  part,  I  believe  that  the  independence  of  the  British  North 
American  Provinces  would  be  the  greatest  misfortune  which  could 
happen  to  them ;  it  would  be  to  leave  us  at  the  mercy  of  our  neigh- 
bours, and  to  throw  us  into  their  arms.  Lastly,  we  have  the  fourth 
alternative — the  confederation  of  the  two  Canadas,  proposed  by  the 
honourable  member  for  Hochelaga.  The  position  in  which  con- 
federation will  place  us  is  very  different  from  that  which  we  should 
have  occupied  under  the  system  proposed  by  the  honourable  mem- 
ber, inasmuch  as  the  seventeen  members  which  Upper  Canada  will 
have  more  than  Lower  Canada  will  have  nothing  to  do  with  our 
local  affairs,  our  religious  questions  or  particular  institutions ;  and 
the  honourable  member  for  Hochelaga,  by  his  scheme,  would  have 
entrusted  all  that  to  the  good-will  of  the  Upper  Canadian  majority; 
but  for  my  part,  I  wowld  rather  entrust  the  management  of  these 
matters  to  my  own  people  than  to  them.  As  regards  the  seven- 
teen additional  members  which  Upper  Canada  will  have  in  the 
Federal  Parliament,  I  am  not  alarmed  at  their  presence,  any  more 
than  at  that  of  the  members  from  the  Lower  Provinces,  because 
in  Parliament  there  will  be  no  questions  of  race,  nationality, 


CONFEDERATION.  253 

religion  or  locality,  as  this  legislature  will  only  be  charged  with 
the  settlement  of  the  great  general  questions  which  will  interest 
alike  the  whole  Confederacy,  and  not  one  locality  only.  But, 
supposing  that  an  unjust  measure  was  passed  in  the  House  of 
Commons  of  the  Federal  Legislature,  it  would  be  stopped  in  the 
Legislative  Council ;  for  there  we  shall  be  represented  equally  with 
the  other  sections,  and  that  is  a  guarantee  that  our  interests  will 
be  amply  protected.  In  the  Legislative  Council  we  shall  have 
twenty-four  members,  like  Upper  Canada  and  the  Lower  Provinces. 
I  repeat  that  the  confederation  of  all  the  Provinces  of  British 
North  America  is  our  only  remedy.  The  Confederation  would 
have1  the  effect  of  giving  us  more  strength  than  we  now  possess ; 
we  should  form  but  one  nation,  one  country,  for  all  general  mat- 
ters affecting  our  interests  as  a  people.  Having  confederation, 
the  Central  Government  will  be  in  a  position  to  have  its  orders 
carried  out  over  its  whole  territory ;  and  when  the  question  of 
defence  comes  up,  it  will  not  be  obliged  to  consult  four  or  five 
different  legislatures,  but  it  will  be  able  to  organize  our  defences 
immediately  and  without  obstruction.  Besides,  we  shall  have 
acquired  a  standing  which  we  have  not  hitherto  attained  in  our 
relations  with  other  countries  with  which  we  have  dealings.  It  is 
of  no  small  importance  for  the  inhabitants  of  a  country  to  have  a 
standing  in  foreign  countries,  and  not  to  be  treated  as  men  of 
inferior  position.  When  Canadians  go  to  London  or  elsewhere 
out  of  their  own  country,  they  have  no  recognized  position,  be- 
cause we  are  only  a  simple  colony.  But  under  the  Confederation 
we  shall  be  protected  by  England,  and  besides  we  shall  have  a 
position  in  foreign  lands,  the  position  which  every  man  enjoys  who 
belongs  to  a  great  nation.  Under  confederation  England  will 
consult  us  in  all  matters  which  affect  our  interests,  and  we  shall 
be  able  to  make  ourselves  effectually  heard  in  London.  But  we 
are  told:  '  You  wish  to  form  a  new  nationality.'  What  we 
desire  and  wish  is  to  defend  the  general  interests  of  a  great 
country  and  of  a  powerful  nation,  by  means  of  a  central  power. 
On  the  other  hand,  we  do  not  wish  to  do  away  with  our  different 
customs,  manners  and  laws ;  on  the  contrary,  those  are  pre- 
cisely what  we  are  desirous  of  protecting  in  the  most  complete 


254  CONFEDERATION. 

manner  by  means  of  confederation.  Under  confederation,  all 
questions  relating  to  the  colonization  of  our  wild  lands,  and  the 
disposition  and  sale  of  those  same  lands,  our  civil  laws  and  all 
measures  of  a  local  nature — in  fact  everything  which  concerns 
and  affects  those  interests  which  are  most  dear  to  us  as  a  people, 
will  be  reserved  for  the  action  of  our  local  legislature ;  all  our 
charitable  and  other  institutions  will  be  protected  by  the  same 
authority.  There  is  also  the  question  of  education.  That  question 
has  been  left  to  our  Local  Legislature,  so  that  the  Federal  Legisla- 
ture shall  not  be  able  to  interfere  with  it.  It  has  been  said  that 
with  regard  to  agriculture,  the  powers  of  legislation  would  be  exer- 
cised concurrently  by  the  Federal  Legislature  and  the  local  Legis- 
latures. Certain  general  interests  may  arise,  respecting  which  the 
intervention  of  the  central  Legislature  may  be  necessary ;  but  all 
interests  relating  to  local  agriculture,  everything  connected  with 
our  land  will  be  left  under  the  control  of  our  Lower  Canadian  Legis- 
lature." After  answering  the  objections  that  had  been  taken  to 
the  constitution  of  the  Legislative  Council,  he  pointed  out  that, 
in  the  appointment  of  the  Lientenant-Governors  by  the  Federal 
Government,  we  secured  a  privilege  which  we  had  not  before  pos- 
sessed ;  that  under  the  existing  system,  the  Lieutenaiit-Governors 
sent  from  England  were  responsible  neither  to  the  people  nor  the 
House  but  to  the  English  Government  alone  ;  Avhereas,  under  the 
proposed  arrangement,  the  Federal  Government  that  appointed  was 
responsible  both  to  our  own  people  and  Parliament.  He  repudi- 
ated the  imputation  thrown  upon  the  delegates,  that  they  would 
betray  and  deliver  up  their  several  Provinces  for  an  appointment, 
even  of  a  Lieutenant-Governor  or  a  Chief  Justice.  In  answer  to 
the  position  taken  by  Mr.  Dorion  011  the  defence  question,  that 
our  best  plan  was  to  remain  quiet,  and  to  give  110  pretext  to  our 
neighbours  for  making  war  upon  us,  he  well  observed,  that  while 
our  wish  was  to  live  with  them  in  peace  and  quietness,  yet  the 
most  certain  way  to  avoid  an  attack  and  subjugation  by  our 
neighbours,  to  have  our  independence  and  our  privileges  respected, 
was  to  show  them  that  we  were  prepared  to  defend  them  at  any 
cost.  He  clearly  explained  the  power  of  disallowance  in  the 
Federal  Government  of  bills  passed  by  the  Local  Legislature,  and 


CONFEDERATION.  255 

shewed  that  neither  injustice  nor  inconvenience  could  ensue.  He 
entered  into  the  question  of  Finance,  and  shewed  that  under  the 
arrangement,  Lower  Canada  would  have  a  clear  revenue  of  nearly 
$1,500,000  for  local  purposes,  a  revenue  sufficient  to  meet  all  its 
expenses ;  that  the  interest  on  the  portion  of  the  public  debt  to 
be  assigned  to  Lower  Canada  would  be  above  $90,000,  and  that 
the  total  yearly  expenditure  would  reach  $1,237,000,  leaving  a 
surplus  revenue  of  $209,000.  Referring  to  the  statement  made 
by  Mr.  Dorion,  that  the  share  of  the  surplus  debt  beyond  the 
$62,500,000  which  would  be  apportioned  to  Lower  Canada  would 
be  $4,500,000,  he  stated  that  it  would  not  be  so ;  that  Lower 
Canada  would  only  have  its  just  share  of  the  $5,000,000  to  be 
divided.  Mr.  Dorioii  reminded  him  that  he  had  forgotten  the 
explanation  of  the  Minister  of  Finance,  who  stated  that  the  debt 
incurred  for  the  redemption  of  the  Seigniorial  Tenure,  which 
amounted  to  $3,000,000,  was  not  included  in  the  general  debt. 
Mr.  Langevin  then  observed,  that  the  Minister  of  Finance  stated 
the  whole  debt,  in  his  speech  at  gherbrooke,  at  $67,263,994.  The 
amount  of  the  debt  is  $75,578,000  ;  but  it  is  necessary  to  deduct 
the  Sinking  Fund  and  cash  in  bank,  $7,132,068,  reducing  it  to 
$68,445,953.  The  Minister  of  Finance  also  deducted  the  Common 
School  Fund,  which  amounts  to  $1,181,958,  and  he  arrived  at  the 
result  I  have  just  given,  that  is  to  say,  that  the  real  debt  of  Canada 
is  $67,263,994.  He  then  defended  the  financial  arrangements 
with  the  other  Provinces,  and  passed  to  the  consideration  of  the 
future  admission  of  the  North- West  Territory  and  British  Columbia, 
quoting  from  Professor  Hind  as  to  the  character  and  facilities  of  the 
country.  In  answer  to  the  endeavours  by  Messrs.  Dorion  and 
Joly  to  instil  mistrust  into  the  minds  of  the  French- Canadian  and 
Catholic  population  of  Lower  Canada,  he  read  extracts  from  letters 
from  the  Roman.  Catholic  Archbishop  of  Halifax,  and  the  Roman 
Catholic  Bishop  of  Newfoundland,  strongly  in  favour  of  confedera- 
tion, and  not  seeing  in  it  any  danger  for  their  flocks ;  and  referred 
to  the  fact  that  Mr.  Joly,  himself  a  Protestant,  represented  a 
Roman  Catholic  constituency,  as  did  also  several  other  Protestant 
members  in  the  House — abundant  proof,  as  he  alleged,  of  the  liber- 
ality of  his  fellow-countrymen.  Again,  referring  to  the  statements 


256  CONFEDERATION. 

made  by  Mr.  Dorion  of  the  debt  with  which  Lower  Canada  entered 
the  union  in  1841,  and  that  with  which  she  would  leave  it  on 
confederation,  he  described  in  strong  terms  the  position  at  the  two 
periods.     He  said  that  that  gentleman  conceived  he  had  produced 
"  an  argument   that  would  be  irresistible  by  asserting  that  th^ 
distribution  of  the    debt  was  unfair   and  burdensome  to  Lower 
Canada.     To  give  a  greater  force  to  this  argument,  he  stated  that 
Lower  Canada  entered  into  the  union  with  a  debt  of  $400,000, 
and  that  she  would  leave  it  with  a  burden  of  $30,000,000,  after 
having  only  expended  in  the  interval  the  sum  of  $12,000,000  for 
public  works  within  her  limits.     This  argument  is  most  specious. 
Supposing  that  our  debt  was  $400,000,  and  that   to-day   it   is 
$30,000,000,  the  honourable  member  must,  at  all  events,  admit 
that  the  circumstances  also  have  very  much  changed.      At  the 
time  of  the  union  our  population  was  only  630,000,  and  to-day  it 
is  1,250,000.     The  honourable  member,  too,  must  not  forget  that 
at  the  time  of  the  union  our  territory  only  produced  21,000,000 
bushels  of  grain,  whilst  to-day  it  produces  more  than  50,000,000 
bushels.     At  the  time  of  the  union  we  had  only  1,298  schools, 
and  to-day  we  have   3,600.     At  the  time  of    the   union   these 
schools  were  attended  only  by  39,000  children,  whilst  to-day  they 
are  attended  by  more  than  200,000.     At  the  union  the  expor- 
tations   from   the   ports  of   Quebec   and  Montreal  amounted  to 
$9,000,000 ;  to-day  they  exceed  $18,000,000.     At  the  union  the 
number  of  vessels  built  annually  in  our  ship-yards  was  48  only ; 
now  we  have  88,  and  the  tonnage  is  quadrupled.     At  the  time  of 
the  union  our  importations  amounted  to  $10,000,000,  and  to-day 
they  reach  $45,000,000.     At  the  time  of  the  union  our  expor- 
tations  and  importations  amounted  to  $16,000,000;    to-day  they 
reach  the  enormous  sum  of  $87,000,000.     And  it  is  with  such 
figures  as  these  before  us,  that  we  are  to  be  told  that  we  are  leav- 
ing the  union  with  a  debt  of  $30,000,000  !     At  the  time  of  the 
union,  the  revenue  arising  from  the  tax  on  bank  notes,  which 
affords  a  fair  indication  of  the  extent  of  business  done,  amounted 
to  $2,200 ;  to-day  it  amounts  to  $15,800.     At  the  time  of  the 
union,  the  number  of  merchantmen  arriving  in  Quebec  every 
year  was  1,000 ;   now  it  is  1,660,  and   the  number  of  vessels 


CONFEDERATION.  257 

arriving  at  all  the  ports  in  Lower  Canada  is  2,463.  At  the  time 
of  the  union,  the  tonnage  of  these  vessels  was  295,000  tons ;  and 
now  in  the  port  of  Quebec  it  is  807,000  tons,  and  for  the  whole 
of  Lower  Canada  1,041,000  tons.  At  the  time  of  the  union, 
25,000  sailors  arrived  here  annually  ;  now  we  have  35,000.  In 
1839  the  revenue  of  Lower  Canada  was  $588,000  ;  when  we  enter 
the  Confederacy,  although  we  are  not  called  upon  to  pay  any 
of  the  expenditure  for  general  purposes,  our  revenue  will  be 
$1,446,000,  that  is  to  say  that  we  shall  have,  under  the  confeder- 
ation, a  revenue  three  times  as  large  as  what  it  was  at  the  time  of 
the  union ;  and  instead  of  having,  as  we  then  had,  an  excess  of 
expenditure  amounting  to  about  $80,000,  the  total  expenditure  of 
Lower  Canada,  under  the  confederation,  will  be  about  $1,200,000, 
leaving  a  surplus  of  more  than  $200,000  !  If  then  our  debt  has 
increased,  we  have  made  most  rapid  progress,  and  we  have 
received  the  full  value  for  our  money.  Nor  must  it  be  forgotten 
that  at  the  time  of  the  union  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  the 
country  had  not  a  single  railway,  and  now  it  is  traversed  from 
end  to  end  by  one  of  the  finest  railways  on  this  continent ;  and 
ere  long,  let  us  hope  in  the  interest  of  our  commerce  and  our 
safety,  that  this  iron  band  will  connect  the  extreme  west  with  the 
Atlantic  ocean.  We  entered  the  union  when  the  Welland  Canal 
had  hardly  been  begun ;  we  leave  it  with  one  of  the  most  magni- 
ficent canal  systems  the  world  has  ever  seen.  And  then  the 
telegraph  lines.  We  leave  the  union  with  a  debt  greater  than 
that  with  which  we  entered  it,  but  we  leave  it  with  a  most  perfect 
system  of  lighthouses,  wharves,  piers,  slides,  in  fact  with  a  large 
number  of  other  public  works,  which  have  mainly  contributed  to 
the  settlement  and  the  prosperity  of  the  country,  and  which  have 
more  than  doubled  its  resources  since  the  union.  The  Grand 
Trunk  Railway  alone,  for  the  $16,000,000  which  it  has  cost  us, 
has  contributed  to  increase  the  value  of  our  lands  by  millions  and 
millions  of  dollars,  by  enhancing  the  value  of  our  agricultural 
productions,  which  are  by  its  means  brought  with  greater  ease  to 
the  different  markets,  and  has,  moreover,  entailed  an  expenditure 
in  our  midst  of  more  than  $70,000,000  for  its  construction  alone. 
If  we  entered  the  union  with  a  debt  of  $400,000,  and  if  to-day 


258  CONFEDERATION. 

we  leave  it  with  a  debt  of  $30,000,000,  we  can,  at  all  events, 
show  what  we  have  done  with  the  money,  by  the  immense  extent 
of  territory,  then  uncleared,  which  is  now  covered  with  abundant 
crops,  and  which  have  served  to  keep  in  the  country,  not  indeed 
all  the  children  of  our  farmers,  but  at  least  a  very  great  number 
of  them,  who  but  for  these  improvements  would  have  emigrated 
en  masse  to  the  neighbouring  country."  He  then  defended  the 
provisions  of  the  proposed  constitution,  relative  to  the  judiciary 
and  the  administration  of  justice,  and  pointed  out  that  the  civil 
rights  of  Lower  Canada  were  preserved.  Referring  to  the  power 
given  to  the  Federal  Government  in  matters  touching  marriage 
and  divorce,  and  stating  that  as  Roman  Catholics  they  acknow- 
ledged no  power  of  divorce,  he  claimed  credit  to  the  delegates 
from  Lower  Canada  for  the  course  they  pursued.  After  mature 
consideration  he  resolved  to  leave  it,  the  question  of  divorce,  to 
the  central  Legislature,  thinking  thereby  to  increase  the  difficul- 
ties of  a  procedure  which  is  at  present  so  easy.  He  found  this 
power  existing  in  the  constitutions  of  the  different  Provinces,  and 
not  being  able  to  get  rid  of  it,  he  wished  to  banish  it  as  far  from 
us  as  possible.  He  then,  after  referring  to  the  argument  of  Mr. 
Joly,  as  to  the  weakness  inherent  in  confederations,  turned  to  the 
subject  of  the  increase  of  representation  from  the  increase  of 
population,  and  observed  that  the  resolutions  do  not  prevent 
Lower  Canada  from  having  more  than  sixty-five  representatives, 
if  its  population  should  increase  faster  than  that  of  the  other 
Provinces.  The  French  translation  of  these  resolutions  is  errone- 
ous, for  it  says  that  "for  the  purpose  of  determining  the  number 
of  representatives  from  each  Province  at  the  end  of  every 
decennial  census,  Lower  Canada  shall  never  have  either  more  or 
less  than  sixty-five  representatives,"  whereas  the  English  version 
of  the  resolutions,  which  is  the  official  version,  says,  "  Lower 
Canada  shall  always  be  assigned  sixty-five  members."  This  does 
not  mean  that  Lower  Canada  can  never  have  more  than  sixty-five 
members,  but  that  it  cannot  have  less  than  sixty-five  members. 
He  then  concluded  his  able  speech  with  a  well-merited  defence  of 
the  Attorney- General  for  Lower  Canada,  the  Hon.  Geo.  E.  Cartier. 
He  referred  to  the  numerous  public  measures  he  had  introduced, 


CONFEDERATION.  259 

and  to  the  esteem  and  gratitude  in  which  he  was  held  by  his 
countrymen  in  Lower  Canada.  "  In  the  midst  of  a  terrible 
crisis,"  he  said,  "his  country  confided  to  him  all  its  interests,  all 
its  rights,  all  its  institutions,  its  nationality,  its  religion,  in  a 
word  everything  it  held  most  dear.  The  Hon.  Attorney-General 
received  the  whole  trust  into  his  safe  and  faithful  keeping,  and 
when  called  upon  to  render  an  account,  lie  exhibited  all  those 
interests,  rights  and  institutions,  our  nationality  and  religion, 
in  fact  everything  that  the  people  held  dear,  and  restored  them 
guaranteed,  protected,  and  surrounded  by  every  safeguard  in  the 
confederation  of  the  British  North  American  Provinces." 

On  the  22nd  February  Mr.  Rose  resumed  the  adjourned  debate 
in  support  of  the  motion.  He  presumed 

"  There  were  few  who,  in  the  abstract,  would  not  favour  the 
idea  of  a  union  between  a  number  of  small  states  adjoining  each 
other,  rather  than  that  they  should  remain  isolated  under  separate 
governments.  To  the  idea  of  union  in  the  abstract  between  states 
so  circumstanced,  no  one  would  be  opposed.  But  the  principle 
ground  of  the  opposition  to  the  present  scheme  is  this,  that  the 
mere  abstract  principle  of  union  does  not  apply  with  full  force  to 
the  five  colonies  that  are  parties  to  this  scheme.  It  is  feared  by 
many  that  it  is  the  first  step  towards  independence ;  that  it  may 
probably  result  in  not  only  severing  our  connection  with  the 
mother  country,  but  in  forcing  us  to  a  union  with  the  neighbour- 
ing republic.  The  change  will  be  of  that  character,  that,  instead 
of  loosening,  or  weakening,  or  diminishing  the  connection  with 
the  mother  country,  it  will  tend  to  put  it  on  a  footing  which  will 
make  it  stronger  and  more  enduring.  It  cannot  be  denied  that 
there  is  a  state  of  public  feeling  growing  up  in  England  just  now, 
not  confined,  as  it  was  a  few  years  ago,  to  a  class  of  extreme  theo- 
rists, that  the  connection  which  subsists  between  the  colonies — 
Canada  especially — and  the  mother  country,  is  a  source  of  expense 
and  danger.  There  is  another  consideration  which  makes  this 
subject  stand  out  more  prominently  before  the  people  of  England 
at  the  present  time  than  otherwise  it  would  do,  and  that  is  the 
state  of  its  relations  with  the  republic  adjoining  us,  and  the  enor- 


260  CONFEDERATION. 

mous  military  power  which  the  United  States  have  shewn,  within 
the  last  two  or  three  years,  that  they  possess.  It  is  this  which 
has  forced  public  opinion  so  strongly  in  England  to  a  considera- 
tion of  the  actual  relations  between  this  country  and  the  mother 
country,  and  it  is  this  state  of  facts  with  which  we  must  deal 
now.  It  is  our  duty  to  see  whether  we  cannot  find  in  the  union 
of  these  colonies  security  to  ourselves  and  a  source  of  strength  to 
the  empire  at  large.  We  find  in  our  position  towards  the  United 
States,  and  in  the  great  preponderating  power  they  possess,  a 
guarantee  that  we  need  not  apprehend  that  there  will  be  anything 
like  practical  independence  of  England  asserted  by  the  colonies  of 
North  America ;  because,  from  the  very  necessities  of  our  posi- 
tion, we  shall  always  have  to  look  up  to  her  for  protection  and  aid. 
I  put  aside,  for  the  moment,  the  instinct  of  attachment  to  the 
mother  country,  and  I  put  the  case  on  this  ground  alone,  that  the 
necessity  of  self-preservation  will  for  centuries — for  generations  at 
all  events — prevent  the  possibility  of  these  colonies  asserting  their 
independence  of  England,  unless  it  were,  indeed,  to  become  a  por- 
tion of  the  republic  which  adjoins  us,  and  to  which,  I  think,  it  is 
neither  the  interest  nor  the  inclination  of  any  member  of  this 
House  to  become  united.  Whatever  fate  may  be  in  store  for  us, 
that  is  a  destiny  to  which  no  one  looks  with  favour.  The  genius 
and  instincts  of  our  people  are  monarchical  and  conservative — 
theirs  levelling  and  democratic.  I  believe  that  the  attachment 
to  England  will  be  increased  tenfold  by  this  proposed  union.  We 
will  have  a  sentiment  of  nationality  among  ourselves ;  and  I  con- 
sider it  to  be  one  of  the  first  duties  of  a  statesman  to  inculcate 
that  national  feeling  that  gives  the  people  a  strong  interest  in  their 
country's  welfare.  With  a  stable  government  and  a  strong  cen- 
tral power  controlling  an  immense  territory,  we  shall  1)3  able  to 
enter  upon  a  well  considered,  well  devised  and  attractive  system 
of  immigration.  In  this  continuous  recruiting  of  our  population 
I  see  one  of  the  great  elements  we  will  have  to  look  to  for 
the  perpetuation  of  the  attachment  of  this  country  to  the  Crown. 
But,  it  may  be  said,  that  from  the  necessity  of  our  position  there 
is  danger  that  we  shall  feel  our  material  and  commercial  interests 
so  strongly  bound  up  with  the  United  States,  and  feel  so  reliant 


CONFEDERATION.  261 

in  our  own  strength  as  a  great  country,  that  we  will  eventually 
form  a  closer  alliance  with  that  republic  than  any  of  us  desire, 
and  that  the  formation  of  the  present  union  is  the  first  step 
towards  annexation.  I  do  not  think  our  interests  would  lead  us 
in  that  direction.  /At  the  present  time  we  are  almost  entirely 
dependent  upon  the  United  States  commercially.  We  are  depen- 
dent upon  them  for  an.  outlet  to  the  ocean  during  the  winter 
months.  If  they  choose  to  suspend  the  bonding  system,  or  by  a 
system  of  consular  certificates  make  it  practically  useless ;  if  they 
abolish  the  reciprocity  treaty,  and  carry  the  passport  system  to  a 
greater  degree  of  stringency,  we  should  feel  our  dependence  upon 
that  country,  even  in  a  greater  and  much  more  practical  way  than 
we  do  at  the  present  time.  And  perhaps  it  is  worth  our  while  to 
consider,  whether  this  may  not  be  the  real  motive  which  dictates 
the  policy  they  are  now  pursuing  !  But  give  us  this  Intercolonial 
Railway,  affording  us  communication  with  Halifax  and  St.  John 
at  all  seasons  of  the  year,  and  we  shall  be  independent  of  the 
United  States  commercially  as  we  now  are  politically.  We  may 
not  find  this  route  to  the  ocean  more  economical,  especially  in  the 
winter  season,  than  to  go  through  the  United  States,  but  if  we 
have  a  route  of  our  own  to  which  we  may  resort,  in  case  of  neces- 
sity, our  neighbours  will  find  it  to  their  interest  to  give  us  the  use 
of  their  channels  of  communication  at  a  cheaper  rate.  I  see  that 
if  we  do  not  unite  and  form  one  central  Government,  giving  it 
the  power  to  direct  all  the  physical  energies  of  this  country  in 
whatever  direction  may  be  necessary,  that  we  are  liable  to  be 
overrun  by  the  United  States.  And  this  I  conceive  to  be  one  of 
the  very  strongest  arguments  in  favour  of  the  confederation  of  the 
Provinces,  that  it  enables  us  to  prepare  appropriate  defences  along 
the  whole  frontier  of  our  country.  I  believe  that  the  formation  of  a 
Government  having  the  power  to  direct  the  whole  strength  of  five 
colonies  would  greatly  add  to  our  security.  I  do  not  believe  that,  if 
we  reverted  back  to  our  original  condition,  the  Imperial  Govern- 
ment would  be  as  much  disposed  to  aid  us  in  the  construction  of  the 
works  necessary  for  our  defence,  as  if  they  found  that  in  the 
presence  of  a  common  danger  we  were  united  together  to  repel 
the  common  enemy.  I  say  the  Imperial  Government  would  not, 


262  CONFEDERATION. 

in  such  a  case,  be  actuated  simply  by  a  regard  to  the  expense  of 
constructing  these  works,  in  which  I  understand  the  Lower  Pro- 
vinces will  have  to  bear  a  share,  but  she  would  be  deterred  from 
so  doing  by  the  further  consideration  that  when  built,  these  works 
would  be  less  likely  to  serve  the  purpose  they  were  designed  to 
accomplish.  What  we  have  to  guard  against  is  this  :  a  sudden 
conquest  or  surprise,  for  which  we  might  be  unprepared.  I 
believe  myself  that,  if  works  can  be  constructed,  by  means  of 
which  we  can  effectually  defend  the  country  against  sudden 
attack,  no  one  will  grudge  the  expense.  We  know  that  in  modern 
warfare,  if  you  can  erect  certain  works  which  will  compel  an 
enemy  to  sit  down  before  them,  so  as  to  prevent  him  from  making 
progress  into  the  country,  you  may  by  such  means  defend  it  for 
many  months.  By  the  construction  of  certain  works  at  various 
points,  the  manning  of  which  is  quite  within  the  compass  of  our 
power,  we  can  arrest  the  progress  of  an  invader  for  many  months, 
we  can  compel  him  to  expend  and  exhaust  liis  strength  before 
these  works,  and  we  could  throw  embarrassments  in  his  way  such 
as  would  take  an  invading  force  many  months  to  overcome.  It  is 
impossible  to  have  more  than  a  six  months'  campaign  in  this 
country.  An  aggressive  warfare  in  this  country  is  one  thing,  and 
a  defensive  warfare  another,  and  a  very  different.  Our  country  is 
well  adapted  for  defensive  purposes,  and  it  is  next  to  impossible 
to  subdue  us.  The  badness  of  our  roads,  the  difficulties  presented 
by  our  winters,  our  deep,  broad,  and  unfordable  rivers,  and  the 
means  we  could  establish  for  keeping  an  enemy  in  check  at 
certain  points  for  the  necessary  time,  would  enable  us  to  resist 
the  United  States  with  all  their  power  and  resources.  Do 
we  not  know  that  in  the  event  supposed  we  should  find  the 
Atlantic  coast  swarming  with  English  vessels  carrying  moveable 
columns  of  troops,  menacing  and  landing  at  every  point.  The 
navy  of  England,  the  arsenals  of  England,  the  purse  of  England, 
and  all  the  appliances  and  requirements  of  war  would  be  brought 
to  bear  upon  and  be  available  to  us  in  such  a  straggle.  We 
should  not  suffer  from  the  lack  of  the  material  of  war,  which  is 
perhaps  the  very  thing  of  all  other  things  the  most  essential. 
Neutrality  has  been  spoken  of.  But  how  could  neutrality  be 


CONFEDERATION.  263 

possible  in  a  struggle  between  England  and  the  United  States  1 
The  country  which  cannot  put  forth  an  effort  to  defend  itself  occu- 
pies a  despicable  position,  and  forfeits  on  the  score  of  weakness 
even  the  wretched  privilege  of  being  neutral.  If  we  show  that 
we  are  in  earnest  on  this  question  of  defence,  England  will  be 
encouraged  to  come  to  our  assistance  in  time  of  danger,  knowing 
that  she  can  look  to  us  not  only  to  contribute  towards  the  con- 
struction of  works,  but  effectually  to  defend  them  when  constructed. 
If  we  show  England  that  she  can  depend  on  a  population  of  four 
millions,  with  a  strength  wielded  from  a  common  centre,  she  will 
be  encouraged  to  aid  us  with  both  men  and  material  of  war,  and 
will  lend  us  the  assistance  necessary  to  protect  ourselves  both  now 
and  in  time  to  come.  I  will  now  say  a  few  words  in  reference  to 
the  objections  which  have  been  urged  against  the  character  of  this 
scheme,  viz.,  because  it  embraces  those  elements  of  disruption 
which  are  to  be  found  in  every  federal  union.  That  is  the  objec- 
tion of  many  who,  while  they  would  be  willing  to  go  for  a  purely 
legislative  union,  object  to  one  of  a  federal  character.  That  is  at 
present  utterly  impracticable.  It  is  remarkable  that  a  proposition 
having  so  few  of  the  objections  of  a  federal  system,  should  have 
been  assented  to  by  the  representatives  of  five  distinct  colonies, 
which  had  heretofore  been  alien,  practically  independent,  not  only 
of  each  other,  but  almost  of  England,  and  almost  hostile  to  each 
other.  As  to  the  charge  of  inconsistency  against  honourable 
members  on  this  question,  I  have  only  to  say  that  a  man  who 
does  not  change  his  opinions  is  a  very  unsafe  man  indeed  to  guide 
the  affairs  of  a  nation.  Such  a  man  is  like  an  old  sign-post  on  a 
road  that  is  no  longer  used  for -travel.  The  sign-post  is  consistent 
enough,  it  remains  where  it  had  been  placed  ;  but  though  a  type 
of  consistency,  it  is  an  emblem  of  error.  There  are  two  main 
features  which  to  my  judgment  commend  themselves  to  the  atten- 
tion of  every  one  who  has  any  doubts  as  to  the  stability  of  the 
system,  and  which  give  us  a  sufficient  guarantee,  that  guarantee 
which  federal  unions  have  heretofore  wanted,  namely,  that  it 
establishes  a  central  authority  which  it  will  not  be  within  the 
power  of  any  of  the  Local  Governments  to  interfere  with  or  rise 
up  against.  It  appears  to  me  that  they  have  avoided  the  errors 


264  CONFEDERATION. 

into  which  the  franiers  of  the  American  constitution  not  unnatu- 
rally fell.  The  great  advantage  which  I  see  in  the  scheme  is  this, 
that  the  powers  granted  to  the  Local  Governments  are  strictly 
defined  and  circumscribed,  and  that  the  residuum  of  power  lies  in 
the  central  Government.  You  have,  in  addition  to  that,  the  local 
governors  named  by  the  central  authority,  an  admirable  provision 
which  establishes  the  connection  of  authority  between  the  central 
power  and  the  different  localities ;  you  have  vested  in  it  also  the 
great  questions  of  the  customs,  the  currency,  banking,  trade,  and 
navigation,  commerce,  the  appointment  of  the  judges,  and  the 
administration  of  the  laws,  and  all  those  great  and  large  questions 
which  interest  the  entire  community,  and  with  which  the  General 
Government  ought  to  be  entrusted.  There  can,  therefore,  be  no 
difficulty  under  the  scheme  between  the  various  sections,  no  clash- 
ing of  authority  between  the  local  and  central  Governments  in 
this  case,  as  there  has  been  in  the  case  of  the  Americans.  The 
powers  of  the  Local  Governments  are  distinctly  and  strictly 
denned,  and  you  can  have  no  assertion  of  sovereignty  on  the  part 
of  the  Local  Governments,  as  in  the  United  States,  and  of  powers 
inconsistent  with  the  rights  and  security  of  the  whole  community. 
Then,  the  other  point  which  commends  itself  so  strongly  to  my 
mind  is  this,  that  there  is  a  veto  power  on  the  part  of  the  General 
Government  over  all  the  legislation  of  the  local  Parliament.  That 
was  a  fundamental  element,  which  the  wisest  statesmen  engaged 
in  the  framing  of  the  American  constitution  saw,  that  if  it  was 
not  engrafted  in  it,  must  necessarily  lead  to  the  destruction  of  the 
constitution.  These  men  engaged  in  the  framing  of  that  consti- 
tution at  Philadelphia  saw  clearly,  that  unless  the  power  of  veto 
over  the  acts  of  the  state  Legislatures  was  given  to  the  central 
Government,  sooner  or  later  a  clashing  of  authority  between  the 
central  authority  and  the  'various  states  must  take  place.  What 
said  Mr.  Madison  in  reference  to  this  point  1  I  quote  from  The 
Secret  Debates  upon  the  federal  constitution,  which  took  place  in 
1787,  and  during  which  this  important  question  was  considered. 
On  the  motion  of  Mr.  Pinkney,  '  that  the  National  Legislature 
shall  have  the  power  of  negativing  all  laws  to  be  passed  by  the 
state  legislature,  which  they  may  judge  improper,'  he  stated  that 


CONFEDERATION.  265 

lie  considered  '  this  as  the  corner  stone  of  the  system,  and  hence 
the  necessity  of  retrenching  the  state  authorities  in  order  to  pre- 
serve the  good  government  of  the  National  Council.'  And  Mr. 
Madison  said,  '  the  power  of  negativing  is  absolutely  necessary  ; 
this  is  the  only  attractive  principle  which  will  retain  its  centrifu- 
gal force,  and  without  this  the  planets  will  fly  from  their  orbits.' 
I  believe  this  power  of  negative,  this  power  of  veto,  this  con- 
trolling power  on  the  part  of  the  Central  Government  is  the 
best  protection  and  safeguard  of  the  system;  and  if*  it  had  not 
been  provided,  I  would  have  felt  it  very  difficult  to  reconcile  it  to 
my  sense  of  duty  to  vote  for  the  resolutions.  But  this  power 
having  been  given  to  the  Central  Government,  it  is  to  my  mind, 
in  conjunction  with  the  power  of  naming  the  local  governors,  the 
appointment  and  payment  of  the  judiciary,  one  of  the  best  features 
of  the  scheme,  without  which  it  would  certainly  have  been  open 
to  very  serious  objection.  I  will  not  now  criticize  any  other  of 
the  leading  features  of  the  resolutions  as  they  touch  the  funda- 
mental conditions  aud  principles  of  the  union.  There  has  been 
throughout  a  most  wise  and  statesman-like  distribution  of  powers, 
and  at  the  same  time  those  things  have  been  carefully  guarded 
which  the  minorities  in  the  various  sections  required  for  their 
protection,  and  the  regulation  of  which  each  province  was  not 
unnaturally  desirous  of  retaining  for  itself.  But  there  is  another 
objection  made  to  it,  that  is  with  reference  to  the  manner  in  which 
the  rights  of  the  various  minorities  in  the  provinces  have  been  pro- 
tected. I  believe  that  the  rights  of  both  minorities — the  French 
minority  in  the  General  Legislature  and  the  English  speaking 
minority  in  the  Local  Legislature  of  Lower  Canada — are  properly 
guarded.  This  is  an  era  in  the  history  of  both  races — the  ear- 
nest plighting  of  each  other's  faith  as  they  embrace  this  scheme. 
It  is  remarkable  that  both  should  place  such  entire  confidence  in 
one  another ;  and  in  future  ages  our  posterity  on  both  sides  will 
be  able  to  point  with  pride  to  the  period  when  the  two  races  had 
such  reliance  the  one  on  the  other,  as  that  each  was  willing  to 
trust  its  safety  and  interest  to  the  honour  of  the  other.  But 
although  this  feeling  of  mutual  confidence  may  be  strong  enough 
at  this  time,  the  Attorney-General  East,  as  representing  the 
18 


266  CONFEDERATION. 

French  majority  in  Lower  Canada,  and  the  Minister  of  Finance, 
as  representing  the  English  speaking  minority,  have  each  carefully 
and  prudently  endeavoured  to  place  as  fundamental  conditions 
in    this    basis  of   union    such    safeguards    and  protection  as  the 
two  races  may  respectively  rely  upon.     Looking  at  the  scheme, 
then,    from  the  stand-point   of  an  English  Protestant  in  Lower 
Canada,   let  me  see  whether  the  interests  of  those  of  my  own 
race  and  religion  in  that  section  are  safely  and  properly  guarded. 
There  are  certain  points  upon  which  they  feel  the  greatest  in- 
terest,   and   with  regard   to   which   it   is   but   proper  that  they 
should  be  assured  that  there  are   sufficient  safeguards  provided 
for  their  preservation.     Upon  these  points  I  desire  to  put  some 
questions  to  the   Government.     The  first  of  these  points  is,   as 
to  whether  such  provision  has  been  made  and  will  be  carried 
out  that  they  will  not  suffer  at  any  future  time  from  a  system  of 
exclusion  from  the  federal  or  local  legislatures,  but  that  they  will 
have  a  fair  share  in  the  representation  in  both ;  and  the  second  is, 
whether  such  safeguards  will  be  provided  for  the  educational  system 
of  the  minority  in  Lower  Canada  as  will  be  satisfactory  to  them. 
Upon  these  points  some  apprehensions  appear  to  exist  in  the  minds 
of  the  English  minority  in  Lower  Canada ;  and  although  I  am  free 
to  confess  that  I  have  not  shared  in  any  fear  of  injustice  at  the 
hands  of  the  majority,  as  I  consider  that  the  action  of  the  past 
forms  a  good  guarantee  for  the  future,  yet  I  desire,  for  the  full 
assurance  of  that  minority,  to  put  some  questions  to  my  honorable 
friends  in  the  Government.     I  wish  to  know  what  share  of  repre- 
sentation the  English-speaking  population  of  Lower  Canada  will 
have  in  the  Federal  Legislature,  and  whether  it  will  be  in  the 
same  proportion  as  their  representation  in  this  Parliament  1     This 
is  one  point  in  which  I  think  the  English  inhabitants  of  Lower 
Canada  are  strongly  interested.     Another  is  with  regard  to  their 
representation  in  the  Local  Legislature  of  Lower  Canada  :  whether 
the  same  proportion  will  be  given  to  them  as  is  now  given  to  them 
in  this  House,  that  is  to  say,  about  one-fourth  of  the   Lower 
Canadian  representation,  which  is  the  proportion  of  the  English- 
speaking  to  the  French-speaking  population  of  Lower  Canada,  the 
numbers  being  260,000  and   1,100,000  respectively.     Now,  the 


CONFEDERATION.  267 

spirit  of  the  resolutions,  as  I  understand  them — and  I  will  thank 
my  honourable  friend  the  Attorney-General  to  correct  me  if  I  am 
in  error  in  regard  to  them — provides  that  the  electoral  districts  in 
Lower  Canada  for  representatives  in  the  first  Federal  Legislature 
shall  remain  intact  as  they  now  are ;  and,  although  the  resolution 
is  somewhat  ambiguously  expressed,  I  take  that  to  be  its  spirit." 

Hon.  Mr.  Holton — "  Have  the  kindness  to  read  it,  and  see." 

Hon.  Mr.  Rose — "  The  23rd  resolution  reads  :  '  The  Legislature 
of  each  Province  shall  divide  such  Province  into  the  proper  number 
of  constituencies,  and  define  the  boundaries  of  each  of  them.' 
Then  the  24th  resolution  provides  that  '  the  Local  Legislature 
may  from  time  to  time  alter  the  electoral  districts  for  the  purpose 
of  representation  in  such  Local  Legislature  and  distribute  the 
representativs  to  which  the  Province  is  entitled  in  such  Local 
Legislature,  in  any  manner  such  Legislature  may  see  fit.'  In 
these  resolutions  I  presume  that  power  is  given  to  the  Legis- 
lature of  each  Province  to  divide  the  Province  into  the  proper 
number  of  constituencies  for  representation  in  the  Federal 
Parliament,  and  to  alter  the  electoral  districts  for  representation 
in  the  Local  Legislature.  Now,  to  speak  quite  plainly,  the 
apprehension — which,  I  desire  to  say  again,  I  do  not  personally 
share  in,  but  which  has  been  expressed  to  me  by  gentlemen  in 
my  own  constituency  —  is  this,  that  with  respect  to  the  Local 
Legislature,  it  will  be  competent  for  the  French  majority  in 
Lower  Canada  to  blot  out  the  English-speaking  minority  from  any 
share  in  the  representation,  and  so  to  apportion  the  electoral 
districts  that  no  English-speaking  member  can  be  returned  to  the 
Legislature.  That  is  an  apprehension  upon  which  I  would  be  very 
glad  to  have  an  expression  of  opinion  by  my  honourable  friend  the 
Attorney-General  East.  As  I  read  the  resolutions,  if  the  Local 
Legislature  exercised  its  powers  in  any  such  unjust  manner,  it 
would  be  competent  for  the  General  Government  to  veto  its  action, 
and  thus  prevent  the  intention  of  the  Local  Legislature  being 
carried  into  effect,  even  although  the  power  be  one  which  is 
declared  to  be  absolutely  vested  in  the  Local  Government,  and 
delegated  to  it  as  one  of  the  articles  of  its  constitution." 


268  CONFEDERATION. 

Hon.  Attorney- General  Cartier — "There  is  not  the  least  doubt 
that  if  the  Local  Legislature  of  Lower  Canada  should  apportion 
the  electoral  districts  in  such  a  way  as  to  do  injustice  to  the 
English-speaking  population,  the  General  Government  will  have 
the  right  to  veto  any  law  it  might  pass  to  this  effect,  and  set  it  at 
nought." 

Hon.  Mr.  Hoi  ton — "Would  you  advise  itl" 

Hon.  Attorney-General  Cartier — "  Yes,  I  would  recommend  it 
myself  in  case  of  injustice." 

Hon.  Mr.  Rose — "  I  think  that  under  this  scheme  the  French 
minority  in  the  General  Legislature  and  the  English  minority  in 
Lower  Canada  will  both  be  amply  and  satisfactorily  protected. 
Now,  in  reference  to  the  education  measure  which  the  Government 
has  promised  to  bring  down  to  the  House,  I  believe  this  is  the  first 
time  almost  in  the  history  of  the  country  that  there  has  been  any 
serious  apprehension  aroused  amongst  the  English  Protestant 
population  of  Lower  Canada  regarding  the  elementary  education 
of  their  children.  I  am  not  aware  that  there  has  ever  been  any 
attempt  in  Lower  Canada  to  deprive  the  minority  of  their  just 
rights  in  respect  to  the  education  of  their  youth.  We  cannot 
forget  that  in  no  way  was  there  any  attempt  to  prevent  us  educat- 
ing our  children  in  the  manner  we  saw  fit  and  deemed  best ;  and 
the  distribution  of  state  funds  for  educational  purposes  was  made 
in  such  a  way  as  to  cause  no  complaint  on  the  part  of  the  minority, 
I  believe  we  have  always  had  our  fair  share  of  the  public  grants. 
in  so  far  as  the  French  element  could  control  them,  and  not  only 
the  liberty,  but  every  facility  for  the  establishment  of  separate 
dissentient  schools  wherever  they  were  deemed  desirable.  A  single 
person  has  the  right,  under  the  law,  of  establishing  a  dissentient 
school,  and  obtaining  a  fair  share  of  the  educational  grant,  if  he 
can  gather  together  fifteen  children  who  desire  instruction  in  it. 
Now,  we  cannot  forget  that  in  the  past  this  liberality  has  been 
shown  to  us,  and  that  whatever  we  desired  of  the  French  majority 
in  respect  to  education,  they  were,  if  it  was  at  all  reasonable, 
willing  to  concede.  I  would  ask  my  honourable  friend,  the 
Attorney-General  East,  whether  the  system  of  education  which  is 
in  force  in  Lower  Canada  at  the  time  of  the  proclamation  is  to 


CONFEDERATION.  260 

remain  and  be  the  system  of  education  for  all  time  to  come,  and 
that  whatever  rights  are  given  to  either  of  the  religious  sections 
shall  continue  to  be  guaranteed  to  them1?  After  affirmative 
answers  by  Attorney-General  Cartier  to  the  questions  on  several 
points  put  by  Mr.  Rose,  the  latter  observed  :  The  manner  and 
spirit  in  which  the  Government  have  given  explanations  on  the 
subject,  ought  to  be  satisfactory  to  the  people  of  Lower  Canada  of 
the  Protestant  religion.  So  far  as  the  three  questions  to  which 
I  have  made  allusion  are  concerned,  the  apprehensions  of  being 
shut  out  from  the  General  Government — being  handed  over  to  the 
French  in  the  Local  Parliament  of  Lower  Canada,  and  our  educa- 
tional rights  being  interfered  with,  I  feel  every  assurance  that  the 
spirit  of  the  answers  just  given  will  be  carried  out. 

After  referring  in  terms  of  approbation  to  the  debates  in  the 
House  of  Lords  on  that  portion  of  Her  Majesty's  speech  which 
referred  to  the  proposed  confederation,  to  the  financial  position  of 
Lower  Canada  at  the  time  of  entering  the  union  of  1841,  and  the 
then  present  day,  in  language  corroborative  of  the  statements 
of  Mr.  Langevin,  and  stating  that  of  the  $62,000,000  which  is 
regarded  as  Canada's  proportion  of  the  joint  debt,  $49,000,000 
had  been  actually  expended  on  and  was  represented  by  public 
works  of  that  value,  he  turned  to  the  question  of  the  Intercolo- 
nial Railway,  and  answering  the  objection  that  it  was  one  of 
doubtful  advantage,  if  not  of  positive  uselessiiess,  asked  :  "  Can 
we  safely  continue  in  our  present  position  of  commercial  depend- 
ence on  the  United  States  1  Shall  we  be  denied  access  to  the 
seaboard  for  a  bale  of  goods  or  a  bag  of  letters  1  Are  we  to  be  for 
all  time  to  come  dependent  on  the  fiscal  legislation  of  the  United 
States'?  Is  it  to  come  to  this,  that  in  the  winter  season  the 
Upper  Canada  farmer  shall  have  no  means  whereby  he  can  send  a 
barrel  of  flour,  or  the  Lower  Canada  merchant  a  bale  of  goods,  to 
the  seaboard,  without  the  leave  of  the  United  States  1  Are  we  to 
be  left  in  this  condition  of  commercial  dependency  for  ever? 
Under  what  conditions  shall  the  expense  of  constructing  the 
Intercolonial  Railway  be  incurred1?  I  believe  that  that  work 
is  a  great  and  grave  undertaking,  and  one  that  will  involve  a 
serious  charge  on  the  wealth  of  the  country.  But  then  it  is 


270  CONFEDERATION. 

one  which  we  cannot  avoid — it  is  a  necessity.  We  must  have 
it.  It  is  called  for  by  military  reasons  and  commercial  necessity, 
and  the  date  of  its  construction  cannot  safely  be  postponed. 
Why,  what  have  we  not  seen  within  a  very  recent  period? 
Restrictions  have  been  put  on  goods  sent  through  the  United 
States,  by  the  establishment  of  consular  certificates,  to  such  an 
extent  that  you  could  not  send  a  bale  of  goods  through  the  States 
without  accompanying  it  with  one  of  these  certificates,  the  cost  of 
which  I  am  told  was  nearly  two  dollars — perhaps  more  than  the 
worth  of  the  package,  or  more  than  the  cost  of  the  freight.  Still 
further,  the  Senate  of  the  United  States  had  also  before  them  a 
motion  to  consider  under  what  regulations  foreign  merchandise  is 
allowed  to  pass  in  bond  through  the  neighbouring  country ;  and 
this  was  evidently  done  with  an  intention  of  abolishing  the  sys- 
tem under  which  goods  were  permitted  to  pass  in  bond  from 
England  through  the  United  States.  I  do  not  hesitate  to  say  that 
if  the  bonding  system  were  done  away  with,  half  the  merchants 
in  Canada  would  be  seriously  embarrassed  if  not  ruined  for  the 
time.  In  the  winter  season  you  could  not  send  a  barrel  of  flour 
to  England — you  could  not  receive  a  single  package  of  goods 
therefrom.  The  merchants  would  have  to  lay  in  a  twelve  months' 
stock  of  goods,  and  the  farmer  would  be  dependent  on  the  condi- 
tion of  the  market  in  spring,  and  would  be  compelled  to  force  the 
sale  of  his  produce  at  that  moment,  whether  there  was  a  profitable 
market  for  it  then  or  not,  instead  of  having  as  now  a  market  at 
all  seasons,  as  well  in  England  as  the  United  States.  So  that 
whatever  sacrifices  attach  to  the  construction  of  the  Intercolonial 
Railway,  we  must  have  it,  seeing  that  it  is  impossible  for  xis  to 
remain  in  our  present  position  of  isolation  and  suspense.  It  is 
one  of  the  unfortunate  incidents  of  our  position  which  we  cannot 
get  rid  of.  No  one  can  foresee  what  the  future  of  the  neighbour- 
ing States  will  be — whether  they  will  be  constructed  as  one  union, 
or  split  up  into  two  or  more  confederacies.  If  we  are  alive  to  the 
natural  advantages  of  our  position,  unless  we  deliberately  throw 
them  away,  we  can,  whatever  that  future  may  be,  secure  a  profit- 
able intercourse  with  them.  Unless  the  St.  Lawrence  and  Ottawa 
cease  to  flow,  and  the  lakes  dry  up,  those  roads  to  the  ocean  are 


CONFEDERATION.  271 

the  natural  outlets  for  the  west,  and  we  can  turn  them  to  good 
account.  We  know  something  of  the  great  productiveness  of  the 
Western  States.  There  is,  in  fact,  no  limit  to  that  productive- 
ness, and  the  necessity  of  their  having  another  outlet  to  the  sea, 
without  being  altogether  dependent  on  New  York  and  Boston,  is 
to  my  mind  very  plain.  This  necessity  of  the  powerful  western 
interests  must  have  a  controlling  influence  on  the  commercial 
policy  of  the  United  States  ;  and  if  we  can  direct  the  trade  of  the 
Western  States  down  the  St.  Lawrence  by  giving  them  additional 
facilities,  it  cannot  be  doubted  that  we  shall  find  therein  a  great 
element  of  security  for  the  future  peace  of  the  two  countries. 
Then,  give  us  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  give  us  the  command  of 
the  St.  Lawrence,  give  us  a  government  by  which  we  can  direct 
our  national  policy,  give  us  the  control  of  the  fisheries,  and  we 
will  be  able  to  secure  such  reciprocal  trade  with  the  United  States 
for  Upper  Canada  as  it  requires.  But  if  we  are  disunited — if  the 
Lower  Provinces  retain  the  control  of  the  fisheries,  and  Canada 
has  nothing  to  give  in  exchange  for  the  concession  she  seeks  from 
the  United  States  in  the  way  of  commercial  intercourse,  in  bread- 
stuffs  and  otherwise — I  say  that  in  such  a  case  as  this  we  are  very 
much  hampered  indeed."  Turning  to  the  suggestion  that  there 
ought  to  be  a  dissolution  and  an  appeal  to  the  people,  he  contended 
that  such  a  course  would  be  so  anomalous  and  absurd  as  not  to 
commend  itself  to  the  common  sense  of  the  country ;  that  the 
elections  would  not  be  limited  to  the  consideration  or  merits  of  the 
scheme  itself,  but  be  governed  by  individual  predilections  and 
local  questions  ;  that  the  measure  was  already  stamped  with  the 
approval  of  the  people,  because  their  reason  and  judgment  con- 
vinced them  not  only  that  it  was  desirable,  but  a  necessity  of  their 
condition. 

Mr.  Dimkin,  in  replying  to  Mr.  Ros3,  addressed  the  House  for 
two  days  and  two  nights.  His  speech  was  certainly  the  most 
elaborate  and  the  most  exhaustive  of  all  the  speeches  either  for  or 
against  the  proposition.  Every  conceivable  and  almost  incon- 
ceivable objection  was  taken  and  worked  out  to  its  extremest 
limit.  All  that  a  well-read  public  man,  all  that  a  strong  party 
politician,  all  that  an  ingenious  lawyer,  all  that  a  thorough  sophist, 


272  CONFEDERATION. 

a  dexterous  logician,  a  timid  patriot,  or  a  prophet  of  evil  could 
array  against  the  scheme  was  brought  up  and  pressed  with  un- 
flagging energy.  Though  worthy  of  attentive  perusal,  its  extreme 
length  forbids  its  transmission  entire  to  these  pages,  and  from  its 
one  hundred  and  twenty  columns  of  the  official  reports,  we  must 
endeavour  to  extract  substantially  its  salient  points.  Throughout 
this  long  speech  it  must  be  observed,  no  improper  motive  is  attri- 
buted by  Mr.  Dunkin  to  the  promoters  of  the  measure.  The 
question  is  fairly  argued  upon  its  merits ;  too  minutely  perhaps, 
bnt  with  perfect  candour.  Amid  the  asperity  of  party,  such  an 
example  cannot  be  too  highly  commended. 

He  feared  there  was  a  foregone  conclusion  in  the  House  against 
the  views  he  was  about  to  express,  and  declaring  that,  abstractedly 
speaking,  he  was  a  unionist  in  the  largest  sense,  he  proceeded  to 
detail  his  objections  to  the  scheme  proposed.  He  believed  it  was 
a  measure  of  disunion  instead  of  union  ;  that  it  would  certainly 
lead  to  the  severance  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  and  would 
tend  to  an  early  separation  of  the  Provinces  from  the  British 
Empire ;  that  the  proposition  of  a  federal  union,  or  any  union  of 
the  British  North  American  Provinces,  had  not  been  discussed 
until  very  lately ;  that  in  1858  the  proposition  could  not  even 
obtain  a  hearing  in  the  House,  and  all  parties  were  utterly  indif- 
ferent to  it ;  that  study  strengthened  him  in  his  convictions 
against  the  scheme  every  day ;  that  in  the  very  announcement  of 
it  the  Canadian  Government  stated  it  was  their  own  difficulties 
which  made  them  desire  -to  bring  it  about ;  that  down  to  1862  the 
public  mind  was  not  occupied  with  it,  and  in  1864  it  was  a  mere 
matter  of  accident  resulting  from  a  vote  of  the  House  adverse  to 
the  administration,  following  on  the  same  day  011  which  a  report 
from  a  committee  suggesting  confederation  was  brought  in,  which 
report  itself  was  a  mere  accident,  was  received  by  the  House  witli 
more  than  cool  indifference,  and  was  followed  by  a  succession  of 
accidents  more  extraordinary  than  the  state  of  things  to  which 
those  accidents  led  ;  that  he  himself  voted  for  the  committee  and 
sat  on  it,  on  the  express  ground  he  believed  it  would  do  no  harm, 
and  that  the  Attorney-General  for  Upper  Canada,  the  leader  of 
the  House,  was  on  that  committee,  and  voted  against  the  report, 


CONFEDERATION.  273 

so  that  what  had  since  happened  was  unexpected  even  by  the 
actors  in  the  occurrences  ;  that  the  scheme  was  got  up  in  haste, 
yet  it  was  brought  down  as  a  treaty,  and  the  House  was  told  that 
its  details  were  not  to  be  criticised ;  that  it  was  got  up  with  great 
ingenuity  to  catch  everybody — legislative  councillors,  Lieutenant- 
Governors,  uniformity  of  the  laws  for  all  but  Lower  Canada — 
promised  everything  to  everybody,  but  when  it  was  examined  it 
was  found  to  be  ambiguous,  imsubstantial  and  unreal ;  that  it 
displayed  a  great  deal  of  that  cleverness  which  might  be  character- 
istic of  an  astute  politician,  but  was  far  from  the  wisdom  of  a 
statesman ;  that  the  representation  of  the  House  of  Commons 
was  based  on  a  set  of  special  shifting  districts,  which  from  a 
British  point  of  view  was  unsound  ;  that  the  mode  of  readjust- 
ment of  the  decennial  census  was  a  bad  innovation  on  our  usages, 
and  destructive  of  convenience  and  stability ;  that  the  Legislative 
Council,  as  proposed,  would  operate  as  no  federal  check,  was  based 
on  no  public  opinion,  could  not  last,  and  was  a  near  approach  to 
the  worst  system  which  could  be  devised  in  legislation ;  that  the 
difficulties  in  the  formation  of  the  cabinet  would  be  insurmount- 
able ;  that  it  could  not  be  formed  on  any  other  principle  than  that 
of  a  representation  of  the  several  Provinces  in  the  cabinet ;  that 
such  a  formation  was  inconsistent  with  British  practice  and  prin- 
ciple ;  that  the  British  cabinet  was  no  cabinet  of  sections  ;  that  if 
in  Canada  they  had  not  been  able  to  work  satisfactorily  with  a 
cabinet  of  two  sections,  how  were  they  going  to  do  so  with  this 
schemed  "  It  starts,"  he  said,  to  use  his  own  words,  "with  a 
principle,  as  to  the  election  of  the  House  of  Commons,  which  must 
involve  the  arraying  011  the  floor  of  that  House,  not  of  a  set  of 
members  of  Parliament  coming  there  to  judge  and  to  act  each  for 
the  whole  of  British  North  America,  but  of  a  certain  fixed  number 
of  Upper  Canadians,  a  certain  fixed  number  of  Lower  Canadians, 
a  certain  fixed  number  of  Nova  Scotians,  of  New  Brunswickers, 
of  Prince  Edward  Islanders,  of  Newfoundlanders,  of  Red  River 
men,  of  men  from  Vancouver's  Island,  of  British  Columbia  men, 
of  Saskatchewan  men — each  to  act  there  for  his  own  Province. 
If  we  ever  get  all  these  territories  laid  out  into  provinces,  we  are 
to  have  just  so  many  sections,  numerically  most  unequal,  upon 


274  CONFEDERATION. 

the  floor  of  this  House,  and  the  only  abiding  distinctions  between 
members  will  be  those  represented  by  the  territorial  lines  between 
their  provinces.  The  Legislative  Council,  we  have  seen,  will  not 
be  the  check  which  these  sections  will  require.  The  Executive 
Council  has  got  to  be  that  check,  and  in  the  Executive  Council 
these  sections  will  have  to  reproduce  themselves.  Apart  from  the 
provinces  or  vast  territory  to  the  west  of  us,  we  shall  thus  have 
over  six  such  sections  on  the  floor  of  the  Commons  House,  with 
their  six  corresponding  sections  in  the  Executive  Council,  and  six 
parliamentary  majorities  to  be  worked  together,  if  possible,  while 
hitherto  we  have  found  our  two  sections  and  two  majorities  one 
too  many.  Our  constitutional  difficulties,  I  repeat,  are  referable 
to  that  very  practice,  and  so  it  is  proposed  that  we  should  try  a 
system  three  times — and  more  than  three  times — more  complex 
still.  That  cleverest  of  politicians  who,  for  two  or  three  years 
running,  under  such  a  system,  shall  have  managed  to  carry  on  his 
cabinet,  leading  six  or  more  sections  in  our  Commons  House,  six 
or  more  sections  in  the  Legislative  Council,  and,  forsooth,  six  or 
more  local  parliaments  and  lieutenant-governors,  and  all  the  rest 
of  it  besides — that  gifted  man  who  shall  have  done  this  for  two  or 
three  years  running,  had  better  be  sent  home  to  teach  Lords  Pal- 
merston  and  Derby  their  political  alphabet.  The  task  will  be 
infinitely  more]  difficult  than  the  task  these  English  statesmen 
find  it  none  too  easy  to  undertake." 

Hon.  Attorney-General  Cartier — "  There  will  be  no  difficulty." 
Mr.  Dunkin — "  The  honourable  gentleman  never  sees  a  diffi- 
culty in  anything  he  is  going  to  do."  Then  he  contended  that, 
even  assuming  the  cabinet  was  brought  down  to  the  number  it 
would  be  possible  to  allow,  say  eleven,  twelve  or  thirteen,  it  would 
be  difficult  to  satisfy  not  only  the  sectional  demands  for  places  in 
it,  but  the  national  sub-divisions  of  the  sections,  for  instance,  in 
Quebec  the  French,  Irish  and  British  ;  that  the  mode  of  appoint- 
ment and  tenure  of  office  of  the  Lieu  tenant-Governors  was  objec- 
tionable ;  that  the  federal  system  itself  was  simply  inconsistent 
with  the  first  principles  that  must  prevail  in  a  properly  organized 
British  responsible  central  government ;  that  the  Federal  and 
Local  Governments  must  come  into  collision  on  many  subjects — 


CONFEDERATION.  275 

by  way  of  illustration,  fisheries,  agriculture,  immigration,  marriage 
and  divorce.  He  objected  to  the  looseness  of  the  wording  of  the 
resolutions ;  to  there  being  no  provision  for  a  separate  district  for 
the  federal  capital ;  to  the  provisions  respecting  the  judiciary  ;  to 
the  confusion  as  to  the  criminal  law,  and  described  in  graphic 
language  the  painful  position  of  a  judge  under  the  proposed  system. 
"  We  are  not  quite  sure,"  he  said,  "  whether  we  are  going  to  have 
any  distinctively  federal  judiciary  or  not.  There  is  a  power  given 
to  have  one — there  may  be  one  ;  but  we  are  expressly  told  that 
perhaps  there  will  not  be.  But  what  are  we  told  on  the  other 
hand  ?  Oh,  there  is  no  doubt  whatever,  according  to  the  resolu- 
tions laid  before  us — 110  doubt  whatever — that  whether  we  have 
a  federal  judiciary  or  not,  the  provincial  judiciaries  are  to  be  a 
sort  of  joint  institutions.  And  a  very  curious  kind  of  co-partner- 
ship the  Federal  Government  and  the  Provincial  Governments — 
the  Federal  Legislature  and  the  provincial  legislatures — are  thus 
to  have  in  the  judicial  institutions  of  the  country  generally.  All 
the  courts,  judges,  and  other  judicial  officers  of  the  provinces  are 
to  be,  for  all  manner  of  federal  purposes,  servants  of  the  Federal 
Government.  There  is  an  old  saying,  '  No  man  can  serve  two 
masters.'  But  all  these  unfortunate  courts,  and  all  their  officers, 
and  specially  all  their  judges,  must  serve  two  masters,  whether 
they  can  or  not.  All  the  Superior  Court  judges — and,  in  Upper 
Canada,  the  judges  of  the  County  Courts — are  to  be  named  and 
paid  by  the  Federal  authority,  and  are  only  to  be  removable  by 
the  Federal  authority,  on  a  joint  address  of  the  two  Houses  of  the 
Federal  Parliament.  But,  on  the  other  hand,  the  provinces  are 
to  constitute  the  courts,  are  to  say  what  their  functions  shall  be, 
what  the  number  of  the  judges,  how  they  are  to  perform  their 
function,  are  to  give  them  more  work  or  less,  to  make  their  work 
pleasant  or  disagreeable,  high  work  or  dirty  Avork,  as  they  like. 
In  this  way  they  can  wrong  a  judge  just  as  much  as  they  please  ; 
the  only  check  on  them  being  the  power  of  the  Federal  Govern- 
ment to  disallow  their  legislation.  The  Federal  Government, 
forsooth,  names  the  judges,  and  pays  them,  and  alone  can  remove 
them.  Does  that  take  away  the  power  from  the  local  parliaments 
and  governments,  the  power  to  change  the  constitution  of  the 


276  CONFEDERATION. 

court,  to  change  it  in  the  way  most  distasteful  to  those  judges,  to 
legislate  away  the  court  altogether,  to  legislate  down  its  functions 
in  such  a  manner  as  may  drive  the  judge  to  resign  1  And  we  are 
told  there  will  be  no  clashing  !  I  have  no  doubt  the  honourable 
Attorney-General  East  thinks  he  could  manage  courts  on  this 
system  ;  could  have  one  authority  constituting  the  courts,  and 
another  naming  and  removing  the  judges,  and  have  the  system 
work  harmoniously.  He  may  think  so.  I  do  not.  I  am  satisfied 
if  ever  the  scheme  is  tried,  it  will  be  found  that  it  will  not  work. 
Human  nature  is  human  nature ;  and  here  is  a  first-rate  lot  of 
matters  to  quarrel  over,  and  to  quarrel  over  seriously.  Why, 
there  is  even  a  special  refinement  of  confusion  as  to  criminal 
matters.  Criminal  procedure  is  to  be  Federal ;  civil  procedure, 
Provincial ;  criminal  legislation  proper,  is  to  be  Federal ;  but  with 
a  most  uncertain  quantity  of  what  one  may  call  legislation  about 
penalties,  Provincial ;  civil  rights,  in  the  main,  Provincial ;  but  no 
one  can  tell  how  much  of  Federal  interference  and  overruling,  and 
all  with  courts  Provincial  in  constitution,  but  whose  judges  hold 
by  Federal  tenure  and  under  Federal  pay.  I  pity  the  poor  man 
who  is  at  once  a  criminal  judge  and  a  civil  judge.  Between  the 
clashing  of  his  masters  and  the  clashing  of  his  book  authorities,  he 
had  better  mind  what  he  is  about,  with  the  painful  doubt  rising 
at  every  turn  whether  Provincial  legislation  may  not  be  over- 
ridden by  Federal  legislation.  His  Province  may  well  have  legis- 
lated on  what  it  holds  a  local  matter,  while  the  Federal  Parliament 
may  have  legislated  on  it,  thinking  it  a  Federal  matter.  Anywhere 
there  may  well  be  some  bit  of  Federal  legislation  contradicting 
something  in  a  local  statute.  And  do  our  resolutions  say  that 
the  federal  statute  shall  always  override  the  local  statute  1  No, 
only  in  cases  where  there  is  concurrent  jurisdiction.  And  yet 
our  judge,  who  is  to  decide  these  nice  questions,  is  paid  by  one 
power  and  removable  by  that  power,  and  may  have  his  functions 
taken  away  and  be  persecuted  to  the  death  by  the  other. 
He  will  have  a  bad  time  of  it." 

He  objected  that  the  disinctions  andvdifierences  between  Upper 
and  Lower  Canada  would  be  kept  up,  instead  of  being  obli- 
terated, and  were  prophetic  of  disaster.  He  exhausted  the 


CONFEDERATION.  277 

comparison  between  the  constitution  of  the  United  States  and 
the  one  proposed  for  the  Confederation,   to  the   disadvantage  of 
the  latter,   and  denounced  the  financial  part  of  the  plan  from 
beginning  to  end.      "  The  system  proposed  for  adoption,"  said  he, 
"  is  not  one  of  entire  and  simple  separation  of  the  Federal  from 
the  Provincial  treasuries,  but  a  system  of   the  most  entire  and 
complex  confusion  between  them.     One  has  to  think  a  good  deal 
upon  the  subject,  and  to  study  it  pretty  closely,  to  see  precisely 
how  the  confusion  is  going  to  operate ;  but  there  it  is,  unmistaka- 
bly, at  every  turn.     I  do  not  mean  to  say  that  under  all  the 
circumstances  of  the  case,  something  of  this  sort  was  not  unavoid- 
able.    Of  course,  in  the  mere  view  of  making  the  scheme  palatable, 
it  was  clever  to  make  the  Federal  treasury  pay  for  Provincial 
expenditure ;  but  the  system  that  had  need  be  established  should 
bear  testimony,  not  to  cleverness,  but  to  wisdom.     Is  the  system 
proposed  for  our  acceptance  as  good,  then,  as  statesmen  ought  to 
and  would  have  made  it?     I  think  not;  and  the  extraordinary 
thing  is,  that  it  is  brought  out  with  a  flourish  of  trumpets,  on  the 
ground  that  in  some  undescribable  way  it  is  to  work  most  econo- 
mically !    Well,  to  test  it,  I  will  take  it  up  in  three  points  of  view : 
first,  as  to  assets ;  next,  as  to  debts  and  liabilities ;  and,  lastly,  as 
to  revenues.     As  to  the  asset  part  of  the  question,  the  tale  is  soon 
told.    The  assets  of  these  Provinces,  speaking  generally,  are  of  very 
little  commercial  value.     They  are  much  like  the  assets  of  an 
insolvent  trader,  with  lots  of  bad  debts  upon  his  books  ;  it  is  of 
small    consequence    to  whom    or   how  they  are    assigned.      The 
general  principle  upon  which  the  scheme  proceeds,  is  to  give  the 
Federal  Government  the  bulk  of  these  assets.     The  only  excep- 
tions of  any  consequence — I  am  not  going  into  the  details  of  the 
scheme,  but  still  I  must  present  to  the  House  so  much  of  detail  as 
to  show  that  I  am  making  no  rash  statement,  not  borne  out  by 
facts — the  only  important  exceptions,  I  say,  to  this  rule  are  those 
1  am  about  to  notice.     Certain  properties,  such  as  penitentiaries, 
prisons,  lunatic  asylums,  and  other  public  charitable  institutions, 
and  other  buildings  and  properties  of  the  kind,  which,  together 
with  those  I  have  just  mentioned,  may  be  characterized  as  excep- 
tional properties,  are  to  be  assigned  by  the  General  to  the  Provin- 


278  CONFEDERATION. 

•cial  Governments.  Also,  with  the  exception  of  Newfoundland, 
the  several  Provinces  are  to  take  the  public  lands,  mines,  minerals 
and  royalties  in  each,  and  all  assets  connected  with  them — in  com- 
mon parlance,  their  territorial  revenues.  The  General  Govern- 
ment is,  however,  to  have  the  mines,  minerals  and  public  lands  of 
Newfoundland,  paying  for  them  of  course.  Then,  Upper  and 
Lower  Canada  are  severally  to  have  those  assets  which  are  con- 
nected with  the  debts  reserved  for  payment  by  them  respectively ; 
but  these  will  not  be  worth  much,  and  I  shall  not  take  the  trouble 
of  saying  much  about  them.  It  is  enough  to  know  that  the 
proportion  of  the  debts  to  be  assumed  by  the  two  has  not  yet,  for 
some  reason,  been  stated,  and  that  the  assets  connected  with  them 
amount  to  very  little."  The  debts  are  disposed  of  in  an  equally 
unsatisfactory  way,  but  in  the  length  of  discussion  the  revenues 
ultimately  escaped  further  attention.  He  proceeded  to  point  out 
that  the  proposed  financial  system  would,  if  adopted,  lead  to 
further  demands  upon  the  Federal  treasury  from  each  of  the 
Provinces,  and  that  in  such  demands  they  would  mutually  support 
each  other,  observing  : — "  With  OUT  Upper  and  Lower  Canada 
have  had  pretty  good  proof  of  this.  We  know  that  whenever  we 
anything  has  had  to  be  done  for  one  section  of  this  Province,  it 
has  constantly  been  found  necessary  to  do  something  of  the  same 
or  of  some  other  kind  for  the  other.  If  either  needed  anything 
very  badly,  then  the  ingenuity  of  the  Minister  of  Finance  had  to 
be  exercised  to  discover  something  else  of  like  value  to  give  the 
other.  In  one  word,  unless  I  am  more  mistaken  than  I  think  I 
can  be,  these  local  governments  will  be  pretty  good  daughters  of 
the  horse-leech,  and  their  cry  will  be  found  to  be  pretty  often  and 
pretty  successfully,  *  Give,  give,  give  ! '  He  expressed  his  dread 
of  the  expenses  connected  with  the  defences,  the  Intercolonial 
Railway,  the  communications  with  the  North- West,  the  enlarge- 
ment of  the  canals,  the  purchase  of  the  Hudson's  Bay  Territory, 
the  acquisition  of  Vancouver's  Island,  and  the  making  "  a  grand 
road  all  across  the  continent,  which  Great  Britain  shrinks  from 
contemplating  herself;"  and  asked,  "  Well,  with  this  certain  pros- 
pect before  us  of  a  gigantic  outlay,  what  is  the  prospect  for  a 
gigantic  income?"  He  contemplated  the  decrease  of  the  revenue, 


CONFEDERATION".  279 

from  the  necessity  of  meeting  the  wishes  of  the  people  of  the 
Lower  Provinces,  whose  tariffs  were  less ;  and  if  so,  dreaded  the 
taxation  that  was  to  meet  the  deficiency.  "We  are  marching,  said 
he,  fast  and  steadily  towards  free  trade.  We  must  meet  the  views 
of  the  people  of  the  Lower  Provinces,  who  are  hostile  to  high 
tariffs,  and  the  demand  of  the  Imperial  authorities  that  we  should 
not  tax  their  manufactures  so  heavily  as,  in  their  phrase,  almost  to 
deprive  them  of  our  market.  And  if,  with  this  state  of  things 
before  us,  to  oblige  the  Imperial  authorities  and  the  Lower  Pro- 
vinces, under  pressure  of  an.  inevitable  state  necessity,  we  are  "to 
reduce  our  customs  rates,  or  any  number  of  them,  below  what  I 
may  call  their  figure  of  largest  productiveness,  then  surely  it  is 
little  to  say  that  we  cannot  look  forward  to  an  increase  in  the 
revenue,  or  even  to  a  continuance  of  our  present  income  ;  and  it  is 
rather  strange  that  we  should  be  called  upon  withal,  at  the  same 
time,  so  to  change  our  whole  system  as  to  involve  ourselves  in  the 
enormous  extravagances  here  contemplated.  No  taxing  scheme 
can  ever  meet  the  case.  Nothing  can  be  looked  to  but  a  device 
of  borrowing  without  limit — the  incurring  of  an  amount  of  debt 
that,  in  interest  and  sinking  fund,  must  prove  to  be  simply  unen- 
durable hereafter.  But,  in  fact,  we  cannot  even  borrow  to  any 
large  amount,  unless  under  false  pretences.  We  cannot  borrow 
without  telling  tales  of  our  condition,  resources  and  expectations, 
that  in  the  end  will  be  found  out  to  be  lies.  We  must  awaken 
hopes  in  the  minds  of  money-lenders  abroad,  that  cannot  but  prove 
delusive — the  memory  of  which  must  work  us  hereafter  an  aggra- 
vation of  punishment  that  we  shall  then  scarcely  need.  And  when 
that  time  of  reckoning  shall  have  come,  then,  staggering  under  the 
load,  without  credit  at  home  or  abroad,  the  country  will  have  to 
choose  whether  it  will  have  heavy  direct  taxation — for  heavy  taxa- 
tion there  must  be — or  have  recourse  to  more  or  less  of  repudiation, 
or  even  run  some  risk  of  both.  If  ever  that  time  shall  come,  the 
public  men  of  that  day,  and  the  people  on  whom  the  burthen  will 
then  press,  will  not  bless  the  memory  of  those  who  held  out  the 
false  hopes  and  inducements  under  whichat  is  now  sought  to  decoy 
us  into  wild  expenditure  and  crushing  debt."  He  objected  to  a 
federation  of  the  Provinces,  but  wanted  a  federation  of  the  Empire, 


280  CONFEDERATION. 

and  suggested  a  Colonial  Council — something,  perhaps,  after  the 
manner  of  the  Council  for  the  East  Indies.  He  asserted  that  the 
tendency  of  the  present  proposition  was  rather  to  separation  than 
to  a  closer  connection  with  the  Empire,  and  that  it  must  inevita- 
bly lead  to  the  former.  He  declared  that  a  legislative  union  with 
the  United  Kingdom  was  utterly  impossible,  and  that  if  the  ques- 
tion should  arise,  whether  we  are  so  to  be  merged  in.  the  United 
Kingdom,  or  are  to  separate  entirely  from  it,  the  answer  could 
only  be,  At  whatever  cost,  we  separate.  And  it  was  because  he 
believed  that  the  present  scheme  would  lead  to  separation,  even  if 
it  bid  fair  to  answer  ever  so  well  in  the  other  respects — because  he 
was  an  Englishman,  and  held  to  the  connection  with  England,  he 
would  oppose  it.  He  believed  that  a  commercial  union  with  the 
Lower  Provinces  could  take  place,  and  he  anticipated  that  the 
United  States  would  be  jealous,  and  possibly  aggressive,  if  the 
scheme  was  carried  out.  After  stating  that  he  had  gone  through 
the  leading  points  of  his  argument  so  far,  he  observed  :  If  I  am 
not  entirely  wrong,  the  only  way  in  which  this  proposed  machinery 
can  be  got  to  work  at  all,  will  be  by  an  aggregation,  so  to  speak,  in 
the  first  Federal  cabinet,  of  the  leading  men  of  the  different 
existing  Provincial  administrations.  The  attempt  must  be  made 
to  combine  .the  six  majorities,  so  as  to  carry  on  an  administration 
in  harmony  with  the  understood  wishes  of  the  six  several  Pro- 
vinces, irrespective  of  every  consideration  of  principle,  or  of  sound, 
far-seeing  policy.  I  do  not  see  how,  although  this  thing  may  be 
done  at  starting,  it  can  be  carried  on — I  was  going  to  say,  for  any 
length  of  time — I  might  say,  for  any  time,  long  or  short,  unless 
by  a  system  of  the  most  enormous  jobbery  and  corruption." 

He  objected  to  the  haste  with  which  the  measure  was  pressed, 
and  combatted  the  grounds  on  which  it  was  pressed — considera- 
tions connected  with  the  United  States,  with  Great  Britain,  the 
Lower  Provinces,  and  with  our  own  domestic  affairs.  He  discussed 
all  these  points  at  great  length.  With  reference  to  the  United 
States,  our  attitude  would  be  one  of  semi-defiance,  for  which  there 
was  no  reason.  With  reference  to  Great  Britain,  he  referred  in 
strong  language  to  the  latent  feeling  which  was  showing  itself  there 
against  the  Colonies ;  quoted  largely  from  the  Edinburgh  Review  ; 


CONFEDERATION.  281 

denounced  the  Goldwiii  Smith  school ;  read  extracts  from  the  Times 
and  the  Edinburgh  Review  to  show  that  the  measure  was  hailed 
as  a  step  towards  independence ;  and  declared  that  he  regarded  the 
cutting  the  tie  as  a  certain  result  of  this  measure;  and  "of  that 
again,  I  hold,  said  he,  the  inevitable  result  to  be  our  early  absorp- 
tion into  the  Republic  south  of  us,  the  United  States,  or  the 
Northern  States,  be  which  it  may."  After  several  further  observa- 
tions, he  concluded  as  follows  :  "I  feel  that  I  have  taken  up  a  great 
deal  of  the  time  of  the  House,  and  that  I  have  presented  but 
imperfectly  the  views  I  am  anxious  to  impress  upon  it  as  to  this 
great  question.  But  for  sheer  want  of  strength,  I  might  have  felt 
it  necessary,  at  whatever  risk  of  wearying  the  House,  to  go  into 
some  matters  more  thoroughly,  and  more  especially  into  that 
branch  of  the  subject  which  relates  to  what  I  may  call  the  alter- 
native policy  I  myself  prefer  to  this  measure,  and  would  wish  to 
see  adopted  and  carried  out.  As  it  is,  I  have  but  to  say,  in  con- 
clusion, while  warmly  thanking  the  House  for  the  attention  and 
patience  with  which  it  has  for  so  many  hours  listened  to  me,  that 
I  have  said  nothing  but  what  I  firmly  believe,  and  felt  myself 
bound  to  say  j  and  that  I  trust  the  sober  good  sense  of  the  people 
of  these  Provinces,  after  full  reflection  and  discussion,  will  decide 
rightly  upon  this  the  largest  question  by  far  that  has  ever  been 
before  them  for  decision." 

The  House  listened  to  this  long  and  able  speech  with  much 
attention,  it  only  being  occasionally  interrupted  by  observations  of 
incredulity  from  the  Hon.  Attorney-General  Cartier,  and  playful 
expressions  of  confidence  in  his  own  ability  to  meet  the  dreaded 
emergencies  wherever  they  arose.  The  conclusion,  as  Mr.  Dunkin 
himself  said,  was  foregone  against  his  views. 

Mr.  Shanly,  with  clear  practical  common  sense,  put  the  issue  of 
Confederation  or  Annexation  before  the  House  in  a  remarkably 
lucid  manner.  After  observing  that  the  opponents  of  the  project 
while  giving  it  a  sweeping  condemnation,  offer  nothing,  suggest 
nothing  to  replace  that  which  they  so  summarily  reject,  and  after 
stating  his  objections  to  the  Federal  system  and  his  preference  for 
a  Legislative  Union,  and  finding  fault  with  some  of  the  details, 
19 


282  CONFEDERATION. 

referring  to  the  public  opinion  in  England  and  the  United  States 
with  reference  to  Canada,  and  the  events  then  pending  in  the 
latter  country,  he  observed  : 

"It  appears  to  me  there  are  just  three  states  of  political 
existence  possible  for  us  here  when  we  emerge  from  the  chrysalis 
form  in  which  we  have  hitherto  existed.  First,  there  is  the 
attempt  to  stand  alone  as  a  separate  nationality  on  this  continent 
— that  is  one  alternative.  Secondly,  there  is  the  prospect  held 
out  to  us  in  these  resolutions,  namely,  a  union  of  all  the  British 
North  American  Colonies  under  the  flag  of  England,  becoming 
more  and  more  every  year  a  homogenous  British  people,  and 
building  up  a  consolidated  British  Power  on  this  continent.  The 
last  and  inevitable  alternative  if  we  reject  the  other  two  is  exactly 
that  stated  by  the  honourable  member  for  South  Lanark  (Mr. 
Morris) — absorption  into  the  United  States.  It  is  in  vain  to  shut 
our  eyes  to  that  fact,  or  that  the  time  is  at  hand  when  we  will 
have  to  make  our  selection.  The  latter  alternative,  he  was 
satisfied,  would  be  most  distasteful  to  the  great  mass  of  the 
people  of  this  country.  *  *  And  in  making  the 

choice  which  I  know,  said  he,  the  people  of  this  country  will 
make — as  between  annexation  to  the  United  States  and  connection 
with  Great  Britain — as  between  republicanism  and  monarchy — as 
between  Canada  our  country,  or  Canada  our  state — I  believe  they 
will  be  chosing  that  which  will  best  advance  the  material  pro- 
spects, and  best  ensure  the  future  happiness  and  greatness  of  the 
country.  If  we  were  to  be  absorbed  into  the  republic,  and 
become  a  state  of  the  union,  that  would  in  no  way  relieve  us  of 
the  great  undertakings  that  are  before  us  for  the  improvement 
and  development  of  our  resources.  We  would  still  have  a  large 
debt  on  our  hands,  of  which,  unaided,  we  would  have  to  bear  the 
burden ;  our  canals  and  other  public  works  would  be  treated,  not 
as  national,  but  as  state  enterprises,  and  the  expense  of  enlarging 
or  extending  them  would  have  to  be  charged  upon  a  diminished 
revenue,  for  nearly  the  whole  of  the  revenue  we  now  raise  from 
customs  and  excise  would  go,  not  to  the  improvement  of  this  state 
of  Canada,  but  would  be  poured  into  the  coffers  of  the  General 


CONFEDERATION.  283 

Government  at  Washington.  I  cannot  understand  how  any 
patriotic  Canadian,  even  of  those  who  regard  political  matters 
from  a  material  point  of  view  only,  can  advocate  annexation  to 
the  United  States.  I  believe  there  are  many  persons  in  Canada, 
who,  though  entertaining  feelings  of  true  loyalty  to  the  Crown  of 
England,  imagine  that  in  some  way.  or  other — they  cannot  exactly 
tell  how — annexation  would  bring  about  an  extraordinary  and 
sudden  state  of  prosperity.  I  differ  entirely,  even  in  the  material 
and  practical  points  of  view,  from  the  theorists  and  visionaries 
who  entertain  so  false  a  conviction.  How,  I  would  ask,  is  this 
country,  with  diminished  means  at  its  command,  to  be  enabled  to 
carry  out  those  great  works  through  which  alone  it  could  hope  to 
become  great,  but  the  ways  and  means  for  constructing  or  im- 
proving which  still  puzzle  our  financiers  1  I  have  always  been  of 
opinion,  since  I  first  came  to  ponder  carefully  the  future  of 
Canada,  that  that  future  does  not  depend  so  much  upon  our  lands 
as  upon  our  waters.  The  land — the  terra  Jtrma — of  Canada  is 
not  inviting  to  those  who  have  tilled  the  soil  of  Great  Britain  or 
explored  the  vast  fertile  plains  to  the  west  of  Lake  Michigan. 
Our  country  is  just  on  a  par  with  the  northern  part  of  the  State 
of  New  York,  and  with  the  States  of  Vermont  and  New  Hamp- 
shire in  respect  of  climatic  conditions  and  conditions  of  soil. 
But  we  possess  one  immense  advantage  over  those  countries,  an 
advantage  which  gives  us  a  distinctive  position  on  this  continent 
— the  possession  of  the  noble  river  which  flows  at  our  feet.  It  is 
through  that  river  and  our  great  chain  of  inland  waters  that  the 
destiny  of  this  country  is  to  be  worked  out.  But  we  cannot 
fulfil  our  destiny — or  the  destiny  of  this  country  rather — by 
standing  idle  in  the  market  place ;  by,  as  one  honourable  member 
has  suggested,  doing  nothing  to  improve  our  natural  highways  or 
create  artificial  ones,  trusting  to  fortune  or  to  Providence  for  the 
development  of  our  resources.  I  believe  that  we  have  a  high  and 
honourable  destiny  before  us,  but  that  it  has  to  be  worked  out  by 
hard  toil  and  large  expenditure ;  and  we  certainly  would  not  be 
in  a  better  condition  to  work  it  out  were  we  to  be  united  to  a 
country  that  would  at  once  absorb  four-fifths  of  the  revenue  on 
which  we  now  depend  for  our  very  existence.  The  improvement 


284  CONFEDERATION. 

of  our  internal  navigation,  is  the  first  great  undertaking  we  should 
consider,  whether  for  commercial  purposes  or  for  purposes  of 
defence.  And  as  regards  the  promoting  of  our  commercial  interest 
in  the  improvement  of  our  navigation,  what  advantage,  I  would 
ask,  could  we  expect  to  gain  by  becoming  a  state  of  the  American 
union  1  There  is  not  one  of  the  seaboard  states  but  would  be  in 
every  way  interested  in  diverting  the  western  trade  from  our  into 
their  own  channels,  and  in  endeavouring  to  obstruct  the  improve- 
ments calculated  to  attract  that  trade  to  the  St.  Lawrence.  The 
Western  States,  doubtless,  would  have  interests  in  common  with 
us,  but  they  are  not  in  a  position  to  render  us  material  aid  for  the 
construction  of  our  works,  being  themselves  borrowers  for  the 
means  of  carrying  out  their  own  internal  improvements.  I 
believe,  then,  that  even  from  a  material  point  of  view,  every  un- 
prejudiced thinker  must  admit  that  our  future  prosperity  and 
importance  lie  in  preserving  our  individuality,  and  in  making  the 
most  of  our  heritage  for  our  own  special  advancement.  I  feel 
quite  certain  that  nine-tenths  of  the  people  of  Canada  would  not 
be  deterred  from  taking  their  chance  as  a  nation  through  the  fear 
that  they  may  some  day  have  to  strike  a  blow  in  defence  of  their 
country,  and  of  all  else,  whether  of  reality  or  of  sentiment,  that 
should  be  dear  to  a  brave  and  loyal  people.  We  stand  here  the 
envied  possessors  of,  take  it  all  in  all,  the  greatest  river  in  the 
Avorld ;  the  keepers  of  one  of  the  great  portals  to  the  Atlantic ; 
and  I  trust  that  Canadians  will  never  be  found  to  yield  possession 
of  their  heritage  till  wrested  from  them  by  force  !  And  that 
must  be  a  force,  they  may  rest  assured,  not  merely  sufficient  to 
over-match  the  people  of  these  Provinces,  but  all  the  power  of  the 
Empire  besides. 


[285] 


CHAPTER  VIIL 

Death  of  Sir  E.  P.  Tach6 — Character — Reconstruction  of  the  Government — 
Ministerial  negotiations — Action  of  the  Government  after  reconstruc- 
tion— Confederate  Council  on  Trade — Resolutions — Deputation  to  Wash- 
ington— Negotiations  at  Washington  for  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty — Failure — Report  to  the  British  Minister  at  Washington — Terms 
proposed  by  Canada-r— Counter  terms  by  the  United  States — Public 
satisfaction  at  the  rejection  of  the  latter — Effect  on  Confederation — 
A.  D.  1865  &  1866. 

Before  the  close  of  the  session  the  result  of  the  elections  in 
New  Brunswick,  and  the  consequent  temporary  defeat  of  Confe- 
deration in  that  Province,  was  known.  The  Government  there- 
upon at  once  closed  the  business  of  the  session,  took  a  vote  of 
credit,  including  $1,000,000  (one  million),  for  defence,  and  deter- 
mined to  send  a  deputation  to  England  to  confer  with  the  Imperial 
Government.  In  the  month  of  April  the  Attorney-Generals 
West  and  East,  Macdonald  and  Cartier,  and  Messrs.  Brown  and 
Gait,  set  out  for  that  purpose,  receiving  on  their  way,  as  the 
steamer  stopped  at  Halifax,  a  perfect  ovation,  indicative,  as  was 
supposed  at  that  time,  of  the  feeling  in  favour  of  Confederation  in 
the  important  Province  of  Nova  Scotia. 

About  this  time  the  assassination  of  President  Lincoln  at 
Washington  created  a  profound  sensation  throughout  the  whole  of 
British  North  America.  Public  demonstrations  of  respect  were 
shewn,  and  resolutions  of  sympathy  and  condolence  passed  by 
every  legislature  then  sitting,  and  by  almost  every  municipality 
throughout  the  Provinces.  Some  little  anxiety  was  entertained 
at  the  time  as  to  the  course  his  successor,  Mr.  Johnson,  might 
pursue  towards  Canada,  urged  on  as  he  was  by  that  portion  of  the 
press  in  the  United  States  well  known  for  its  hostility  to  England. 
It  however  passed  away  in  a  very  short  time. 

Not  long  after  the  prorogation  of  the  Legislature,  in  the  month 
of  July,  the  President  of  the  Council,  Sir  Etienne  P.  Tache,  died 
at  the  ripe  age  of  seventy-one.  A  Canadian  by  birth  and  affec- 


'J80  CONFEDERATION. 

tion,  he  had  long  filled  a  distinguished  position  in  the  country. 
Of  undoubted  loyalty  to  the  Crown  of  England,  his  practical  mind 
was  not  led  astray  by  the  theories  of  the  French  Revolution,  or 
the  meretricious  glare  of  the  Empire.  The  rapid  advance  of  the 
United  States,  in  trying  contrast  to  the  slower  progress  of  his 
own  Province,  caused  no  deviation  in  his  devotion  to  the  Bri- 
tish cause.  In  1812  he  gallantly  threw  himself  into  the  ranks  of 
those  who  were  struggling,  and  successfully  struggled,  to  preserve 
Canada  to  England.  In  later  years,  on  the  establishment  of  the 
principles  which  gave  to  Canada  the  unconditional  control  of  her 
own  local  affairs,  he  entered  political  life,  and  became  a  warm 
supporter  of  those  measures  of  progress  which  tended  so  rapidly 
to  develop  her  resources  and  promote  her  interests.  With  the 
correctness  of  instinct,  he  saw  that  the  preservation  of  the  pecu- 
liar institutions  and  privileges  of  Lower  Canada,  guaranteed  by 
the  treaties  of  Paris  of  1763,  and  of  Versailles  of  1783,*  could 
only  be  maintained  by  the  continued  connection  with  England, 
and  his  is  the  well-known  saying,  "  that  the  last  shot  that  would 
be  fired  on  the  American  continent  in  the  defence  of  the  British 
flag,  would  be  by  a  French-Canadian."  He  had  from  the  first 
been  a  warm  advocate  of  Confederation,  and  the  closing  act  of  his 
public  life  was  in  its  support  in  the  legislature.  He  passed  away 
full  of  honours  and  of  years,  and  the  future  historian  of  Canada 
will  refer  to  him  as  one  who  left  to  his  countrymen  of  French 
descent  a  name  without  reproach  ;  to  his  countrymen  of  English 
descent  the  noble  example  of  a  man  rising  above  the  prejudices  of 
race,  and  devoting  himself  to  the  advancement  of  all  without  dis- 
tinction. A  good  man  and  a  true  patriot,  his  memory  will  long 
be  revered  by  the  statesmen  over  whom  he  presided,  and  by  the 
people  whom  he  loved. 

His  death  caused  an  important  vacancy  in  the  cabinet,  and 
developed  in  a  strong  light  the  hollow  nature  of  the  alliance  be- 
tween Messrs.  BrOwn  and  Macdonald,  and  the  latent  causes  which 
in  a  few  months  later  led  to  the  resignation  of  the  former,  and  his 
subsequent  bitter  hostility. 

*  The  stipulations  of  the  Treaties  of  Paris  and  Versailles  are  given  in  Appendix. 


CONFEDERATION.  287 

The  facts  cannot  be  better  set  forth  than  in  the  official  narrative 
of  the  Ministerial  negotiations  which  took  place  for  the  recon- 
struction of  the  Government,  and  which  was  laid  before  Parlia- 
ment in  the  session  of  1865,  namely  : 

No.  1. — Memorandum  made  4th  August,  1865,  of  conversation, 
held  on  the  preceding  day  between  Messrs.  Macdonald  and 
Brown. 

Mr.  Macc^nald,  yesterday,  sought  -an  interview  with  Mr.  Brown 
and  informed  him  that  His  Excellency  the  Governor-General  had 
sent  for  him,  that  morning,  and  had  stated  his  desire  that  the 
Administration,  as  it  was  formed  in  1864,  should  continue  in 
office,  with  as  few  changes  as  possible,  in  order  to  carry  out  the 
policy  announced  by  the  Government  on  its  formation — that, 
with  that  view  His  Excellency  had  expressed  the  opinion  that 
the  most  obvious  mode  of  supplying  the  place,  vacated  by  the 
death  of  Sir  Etienne  Tache,  would  be  for  Mr.  Macdonald  to 
assume  the  position  of  first  minister — as  being  the  senior  member 
of  the  Ministry — and  that  Mr.  Cartier  would,  on  the  same 
principle,  become  the  leader  of  the  Lower  Canadian  section  of  the 
Government — and  -  that,  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  those  views 
into  effect,  he  had  commissioned  Mr.  Macdonald  to  take  the  post 
of  first  minister — at  the  same  time  requesting  all  the  other 
ministers  to  retain  their  offices.  Mr.  Macdonald  further  informed 
Mr.  Brown  that  he  had  assented  to  this  proposition  of  His 
Excellency,  and  had  seen  Mr.  Cartier,  who,  at  once,  agreed  to  it. 
He  then  invited  Mr.  Brown  to  accede  to  the  proposal  of  His 
Excellency. 

Mr.  Brown  replied  that  he  was  quite  prepared  to  enter  into 
arrangements  for  the  continuance  of  the  Government  in  the  same 
position  it  occupied  previous  to  the  death  of  Sir  Etienne  Tache" ; 
but  that  the  proposal  now  made,  involved  a  grave  departure  from 
that  position.  The  Government,  heretofore,  had  been  a  coalition 
of  three  political  parties,  each  represented  by  an  active  party 
leader,  but  all  acting  under  one  chief — who  had  ceased  to  be 
actuated  by  strong  party  feelings  or  personal  ambitions,  and  who 
was  well  fitted  to  give  confidence  to  all  the  three  sections  of  the 


288  CONFEDERATION. 

coalition  that  the  conditions  'which  united  them  would  be  carried 
out  in  good  faith  to  the  very  letter.  Mr.  Macdonald,  Mr.  Cartier, 
and  himself  (Mr.  Brown)  were,  on  the  contrary,  regarded  as  party 
leaders,  with  party  feelings  and  aspirations ;  and  to  place  any  one 
of  them  in  an  attitude  of  superiority  over  the  others,  with  the 
vast  advantage  of  the  Premiership,  would,  in  the  public  mind, 
lessen  the  security  for  good  faith,  and  seriously  endanger  the 
existence  of  the  Coalition.  It  would  be  an  entire  change  of  the 
situation.  Whichever  of  the  three  was  so  preferred,  the  act 
would  amount  to  an  abandonment  of  the  ^coalition  basis  and  a  re- 
construction of  the  Government  on  ordinary  party  principles, 
under  a  party  leader  unacceptable  to  a  large  portion  of  those  on 
whose  support  the  existence  of  the  Ministry  depended.  Mr. 
Brown  reminded  Mr.  Macdonald  that  when  the  coalition  was 
formed,  the  Liberal  party  in  opposition,  constituted  a  majority  of 
the  House  of  'Assembly  :  that,  solely  for  the  accomplishment  of  a 
great  measure  of  reform  essential  to  the  peace  and  progress  of  the 
country,  they  had  laid  aside,  for  the  time,  party  considerations, 
and  consented  to  form  a  coalition  with  their  opponents,  on  con- 
ditions which  nothing  but  the  strongest  sense  of  public  duty  could 
have  induced  them  to  accept.  He  reminded  Mr.  Macdonald  of  the 
disadvantageous  and  embarrassing  position  he  (Mr.  Brown)  and 
his  colleagues,  Mr.  McDougall  and  Mr.  Rowland,  had  occupied 
during  the  past  year, — united  as  they  were  with  nine  political 
opponents,  who  held  all  the  important  departments  of  state ; — 
and  he  asked  him  to  reflect  in  what  light  the  liberal  party  must 
regard  this  new  proposition  to  abandon  their  distinctive  position, 
and  place  one  of  their  chief  opponents  in  the  premiership,  though 
his  conservative  supporters  in  Parliament  were  much  inferior, 
numerically,  to  the  Reform  supporters  of  the  coalition.  Mr. 
Brown  stated  his  conviction  that  the  right  mode  of  settling  the 
question,  would  be  to  invite  some  gentleman,  of  good  position  in 
the  Legislative  Council,  under  whom  all  the  three  great  parties 
to  the  coalition  could  act  with  confidence,  to  become  the  successor 
of  Colonel  Tache.  In  no  other  way,  he  thought,  could  the 
position,  heretofore  existing,  be  continued.  Mr.  Brown  concluded 
by  saying  that  the  proposal  of  Mr.  Macdonald  was,  palpably,  one 


CONFEDERATION.  289 

for  the  construction  of  a  new  Government,  and  that  if  the  aid  of 
the  Reform  party  of  Upper  Canada  in  the  Assembly  were  desired 
in  its  formation,  a  distinct  statement  of  the  policy  of  the  new 
Government  must  be  made,  and  a  definite  proposition  submitted. 
Speaking,  however,  for  himself  alone,  he  (Mr.  Brown)  occupied 
now  precisely  the  ground  that  he  had  held  in  the  negotiations  of 
1864;  he  stood  prepared  to  give  an  outside  but  frank  and  earnest 
support  to  any  administration  that  might  be  formed,  pledged  like 
the  Coalition  Government,  to  carry  through  Parliament,  in  the 
spring  session  of  next  year,  either  a  measure  for  the  final  com- 
pletion of  the  Confederation  scheme  of  the  Quebec  Conference, 
or  one  for  removing  existing  difficulties  in  Canada,  by  the  intro- 
duction of  the  Federal  principle  into  the  system  of  Government 
coupled  with  such  provisions  as  will  permit  the  Maritime  Pro- 
vinces and  the  North-West  Territory  to  be  incorporated  into  the 
system. 

Mr.  Macdonald  stated  in  answer  that  at  the  time  the  Coalition 
was  effected  in  1864,  Sir  Etienne  Tache  held  the  position  of 
Premier  with  him  (Mr.  Macdonald,)  as  leader  of  the  Lower  House, 
and  of  the  Upper  Canadian  section  of  the  Government.  That  on 
reference  to  the  memorandum  containing  the  basis  of  Coalition,  it 
will  be  seen  that  Mr.  Brown  at  first  preferred  to  support  the 
Government  in  its  policy  as  then  settled  without  entering  the 
Government,  but  that  it  was  afterwards  agreed  in  deference  to 
the  wishes  of  his  supporters  and  at  the  pressing  instance  of  Mr. 
Macdonald  that  he  and  two  of  his  political  friends  should  enter 
the  Government.  These  terms  were  acceded  to,  the  offices  that 
happened  to  be  then  vacant  placed  at  Mr.  Brown's  disposal,  and 
the  Coalition  was  completed.  Mr.  Macdonald  further  stated  that 
Sir  Etienne  Tache  was  not  selected  at  the  time  of  the  Coalition  or 
as  a  part  of  the  agreement  for  the  Coalition,  as  first  minister,  but 
he  had  been  previously  and  was  then  the  head  of  the  Conservative 
Government,  and  was  accepted  with  all  his  Lower  Canadian 
colleagues  without  change.  That  on  the  lamented  decease  of  Sir 
Etienne,  His  Excellency  had,  without  any  previous  communica- 
tion of  his  opinion  to  him  or  (as  he  understood)  to  any  one  else, 
come  to  the  conclusion  that  the  best  mode  of  carrying  on  the 


290  CONFEDERATION. 

Government  was  .(as  already  stated)  for  Mr.  Macdonald  to  take 
one  step  upward ;  that  Mr.  Cartier,  as  next  in  seniority  should 
do  so  also,  and  that  the  other  arrangements  should  remain 
as  before.  That  he  (Mr.  Macdonald)  thought  with  His  Excel- 
lency that  this  was  the  best  solution  of  the  matter,  and 
could  not  but  accede  to  it;  that,  however,  he  had  110  personal 
feeling  in  the  matter,  and  that  if  he  had,  he  thought  it  his 
duty  to  set  aside  such  feeling  for  the  sake  of  carrying  out  the 
great  scheme  so  happily  commenced  to  a  successful  issue.  He 
therefore  would  readily  stand  aside  and  waive  his  pretensions, 
so  that  some  other  party  than  himself  might  be  appointed  to 
the  Premiership;  that  he  thought  Mr.  Cartier  should  be  that 
party ;  that  after  the  death  of  Colonel  Tache  Mr.  Cartier,  beyond 
a  doubt,  was  the  most  influential  man  in  his  section  of  the  coun- 
try, and  would  be  selected  by  the  Lower  Canadian  supporters  of 
the  Government  as  their  leader ;  that  neither  Mr.  Brown  nor  Mr. 
Macdonald  could  dictate  to  Lower  Canada  as  to  their  selection  of 
leader ;  that  the  Premier  must  be,  according  to  usage,  the  leader 
or  senior  member  either  from  Upper  or  _  Lower  Canada ;  and  that 
as  he  (Mr.  Macdonald)  had,  in  consequence  of  the  position  taken- 
by  Mr.  Brown,  waived  his  own  pretensions,  it  followed  that  Mr. 
Cartier  should  be  appointed  as  Prime  Minister.  Mr.  Macdonald 
stated  in  conclusion  that  although  he  had  no  reason  to  suppose 
that  His  Excellency  would  object  to  the  selection  of  Mr.  Cartier, 
yet  he  must  of  course  submit  the  proposition  to  him,  and  obtain 
His  Excellency's  assent  to  it. 

Mr.  Brown  replied  that  in  some  of  the  views  suggested  by  Mr. 
Macdonald,  there  was  a  difference  between  this  proposition  and 
the  original  one  ;  but  still  that  this,  like  the  other,  would  be  a 
proposal  for  the  construction  of  a  new  Government,  in  a  manner 
seriously  affecting  the  security  held  by  the  Liberal  party.  Before 
saying  anything  upon  such  a  proposition,  however,  were  it  formally 
made,  he  would  desire  to  consult  his  friends,  Mr.  McDougall  and 
Mr.  Howland. 

The  interview  then  terminated,  and  the  following  correspond- 
ence took  place  : 


CONFEDERATION.  291 

2\fo.  2. — Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald  to  Hon.  George  Brown  : 

QUEBEC,  August  4)  1865. 

MY  DEAR  SIR, — Immediately  after  our  conversation,  the  heads 
of  which  we  have  reduced  to  writing,  I  obtained  His  Excellency's 
permission  to  propose  to  you  that  Mr.  Cartier,  as  being  the  leader 
of  the  ministerial  majority  of  Lower  Canada  in  Parliament,  should 
assume  the  position  of  Prime  Minister,  vacated  by  the  death  of 
Sir  Etienne  Tache,  the  other  members  of  the  administration  con- 
tinuing to  hold  their  position  and  offices  as  before.  All  the  Lower 
Canadian  members  of  the  Council  assent  to  this  proposition ;  so 
do  Mr.  Campbell  and  myself;  and  I  am  sure  I  can  also  speak  for 
Mr.  Solicitor-General  Cockburn,  who  is  now  absent.  May  I 
request  the  favour  of  an  early  reply  ? 

Believe  me,  my  dear  Sir,  yours  faithfully, 

JOHN  A.  MACDONALD. 

Hon.  Geo.  Brown,   £c.  &c.  &c. 

j\r0  g — Hon.  George  Brown  to  Han.  John  A.  Macdonald  : 

QUEBEC,  August  4,  1865. 

MY  DEAR  SIR, — I  have  received  your  letter  of  this  afternoon, 
inviting  me  to  retain  my  present  position  in  a  Government  to  be 
formed  under  the  Premiership  of  Mr.  Cartier.  In  reply  I  have 
now  to  state,  after  consultation  with  Messrs.  Rowland  and 
McDougall,  that  we  can  only  regard  this  proposition  as  one  for 
the  construction  of  a  new  Government,  in  a  manner  seriously 
affecting  the  security  heretofore  held  by  the  Liberal  party.  Anxi- 
ously desirous  as  we  are,  however,  that  nothing  should  occur  at 
this  moment  to  jeopardise  the  plans  of  the  Coalition  Government 
on  the  constitutional'  question,  we  cannot  assume  the  responsibility 
of  either  accepting  or  rejecting  it,  without  consultation  with  our 
political  friends.  This  I  am.  prepared  to  do  without  any  delay,  and 
to  that  end  it  will  be  necessary  that  I  have  clearly  stated  in  writing 
the  basis  on  which  Mr.  Cartier  proposes  to  construct  the  new 
Government. 

I  am,  my  dear  Sir,  yours  truly, 

GEO.  BROWN. 
Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald,  &c.  &c.  &c. 


292  CONFEDERATION. 

No.  4 — Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald  to  Hon.  George  Brown  : 

QUEBEC,  Saturday,  5th  August,  1865. 

MY  DEAR  SIR, — I  regret  to  learn  from  your  note  of  yesterday, 
that  you  cannot  assume  the  responsibility,  without  first  consulting 
your  political  friends,  of  either  accepting  or  rejecting  the  proposi- 
tion that  Mr.  Cartier  should  be  placed  at  the  head  of  the  Govern- 
ment, in  the  stead  of  the  late  Sir  Etienne  Tache,  with  the  under- 
standing that  the  rest  of  the  Council  should  retain  their  present 
offices  and  positions  under  him.  I  have  conferred  with  Mr.  Cartier 
on  the  subject,  and  we  agree  that,  at  this  late  hour,  it  would  be 
highly  inexpedient  to  wait  for  the  result  of  this  consultation. 

Parliament  is  to  assemble  on  Tuesday  next ;  and  in  our  opinion, 
it  would  greatly  prejudice  the  position  of  the  Government,  as  well 
as  the  future  prospects  of  the  great  scheme  in  which  we  are  all 
engaged,  if  we  met  Parliament  with  the  administration  in  an 
incomplete  state,  and  therefore  with  no  fixed  policy. 

I  have  His  Excellency's  permission  to  state  his  concurrence  in 
this  view,  and  his  opinion  that  the  public  interests  require  the 
immediate  reconstruction  of  the  Ministry. 

Under  these  circumstances,  and  to  prevent  the  possibility  of  the 
scheme  for  the  confederation  of  British  North  America  receiving 
any  injury  from  the  appearance  of  disunion  among  those  who 
coalesced  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  it  into  effect,  Mr.  Cartier  and 
I,  without  admitting  that  there  are  any  sufficient  grounds  for 
setting  either  of  us  aside,  have  agreed  to  propose  that  Sir  Narcisse 
Belleau  shall  assume  the  position  of  First  Minister  and  Receiver- 
General,  vice  Sir  Etienne  Tach6 ;  that  the  position  and  offices  of 
the  other  members  of  the  Executive  Council  shall  remain  as 
before,  and  that  the  policy  of  the  Government  shall  be  the  same 
as  was  laid  before  Parliament  in  July,  1864,  as  the  basis  of  the 
Coalition  which  was  then  formed.  His  Excellency  authorizes  me 
to  make  this  proposition,  and  expresses  his  desire  for  an  early 
answer. 

Believe  me,  my  dear  Sir,  yours  faithfully, 

JOHN  A.  MACDONALD. 
Hon.  George  Brown,  &c.  &c.  &c. 


CONFEDERATION.  293 

j^o.  5. — Hon.  George  Brown  to  Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald  : 

QUEBEC,  5th  August,  1865. 

Saturday,  5  P.M. 

MY  DEAR  SIR, — Your  note  of  this  afternoon  was  handed  to  me 
by  Colonel  Bernard ;  and  having  communicated  its  contents  to  my 
colleagues,  I  now  beg  to  state  the  conclusions  at  which  we  have 
arrived. 

Without  intending  the  slightest  discourtesy  to  Sir  Narcisse 
Belleau,  we  deem  it  light  to  remind  you  that  we  would  not  have 
selected  that  gentleman  as  successor  to  Sir  Etienne  Tachd ;  but  as 
he  is  the  selection  of  Mr.  Cartier  and  yourself,  and  as  we  are 
equally  with  you  desirous  of  preventing  the  scheme  for  the  con- 
federation of  British  America  receiving  injury  from  the  appearance 
of  disunion  among  us,  we  shall  offer  no  objection  to  his  appointment. 

I  think,  however,  that  it  will  be  necessary  that  Sir  Narcisse 
Belleau  shall  have  stated  to  him,  and  shall  accept,  in  more  distinct 
terms  than  you  have  indicated,  the  policy  on  which  our  Coalition 
now  rests.  It  is  quite  right  that  the  basis  of  June,  1864,  should 
be  stated  as  the  basis  still ;  but  he  should  also  clearly  understand 
the  modification  of  that  agreement,  rendered  necessary  by  succeed- 
ing events,  and  which  was  ratified  by  Sir  Etienne  Tache"  in  March, 
1865.  The  agreement  of  June,  1864,  was  as  follows  : 

"  The  Government  are  prepared  to  pledge  themselves  to  bring 
in  a  measure  next  session,  for  the  purpose  of  removing  existing 
difficulties  by  introducing  the  Federal  principle  into  Canada,  cou- 
pled with  such  provisions  as  will  permit  the  Maritime  Provinces 
and  the  North- West  Territory  to  be  incorporated  into  the  same 
system  of  government.  And  the  Government  will  seek,  by  send- 
ing representatives  to  the  Lower  Provinces  and  to  England,  to 
secure  the  assent  of  those  interests  which  are  beyond  the  control 
of  our  own  legislation  to  such  a  measure  as  may  enable  all  British 
North  America  to  be  united  under  a  general  legislature,  based 
upon  the  federal  principle." 

Sir  Narcisse  Belleau  should  understand  that  occurrences  in  the 
Maritime  Provinces  unfortunately  prevented  this  agreement  from 
being  carried  out,  so  far  as  regards  time  ;  that  it  became  necessaiy 


294  CONFEDERATION. 

to  consider  what  course  ought  to  be  pursued  in  consequence  of 
these  occurrences;  and  that  we  came  to  an  agreement  that  we 
should  earnestly  strive  for  the  adoption  of  the  scheme  of  the 
Quebec  Conference ;  but  should  we  be  unable  to  remove  the  objec- 
tions of  the  Maritime  Provinces  in  time  to  present  a  measure  at 
the  opening  of  the  session  of  1866,  for  the  completion  of  the  Con- 
federation scheme,  we  would  then  present  to  Parliament,  and  press 
with  all  the  influence  of  Government,  a  measure  for  the  reform  of 
the  constitutional  system  of  Canada,  as  set  forth  in  the  above 
agreement  of  June,  1864. 

I  remain,  my  dear  Sir,  yours  truly, 

GEO.  BROWN. 
Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald. 


No.  6. — Hon.  John  A.  Macdonall  to  Hon.  George  Brown : 

QUEBEC,  August  7,  1865. 

MY  DEAR  SIR, — Sir  Narcisse  Belleau  returned  from  the  country 
yesterday,  and  I  am  happy  to  inform  you  that  he  has,  though  with 
great  reluctance,  acceded  to  the  request  of  Mr.  Cartier  and  myself, 
&nd  accepted  the  position  of  First  Minister,  with  the  office  of 
Receiver-General. 

He  accepts  the  policy  of  the  late  Government,  as  stated  in  your 
note  of  Saturday  to  me,  and  adopts  it  as  that  which  will  govern 
his  administration. 

This  policy  will  of  course  be  announced  in  both  Houses  of  Par- 
liament, as  soon  as  possible. 

Believe  me,  faithfully  yours, 

JOHN  A.  MACDONALD. 
Hon.  George  Brown,  &c.  &c.  &c. 

The  Government  thus  re-formed  proceeded  with  apparent  ear- 
nestness in  the  work  they  had  undertaken.  The  progress  of  events 
in  New  Brunswick  was  becoming  more  favourable  to  the  confede- 
rate cause,  and  its  ultimate  triumph  was  loudly  proclaimed  by  its 
friends.  But  there  was  a  disturbing  element  in  our  relations  with 
the  United  States  which  boded  no  good.  Most  unjustly,  an  inten- 


CONFEDERATION.  295 

sity  of  bad  feeling  towards  Canada  had  been  fostered  in  that 
country  by  designing  men — a  class  who  for  selfish  purposes  en- 
deavoured to  promote  a  conflict  with  Great  Britain,  and  to  encour- 
age a  pretended  desire  for  revenge  for  alleged  injustice  to  Ireland. 
The  matter  of  the  St.  Alban's  raid,  throughout  which  Canada  had 
acted  in  the  most  honourable  manner  towards  the  United  States — 
had  not  only  repaid  the  loss  sustained,  with  the  inflicting  of  which 
she  had  nothing  to  do,  but  had  actually  legislated,  almost  in  con- 
travention of  the  sacred  right  of  asylum,  to  prevent  such  occur- 
rences for  the  future — was  grossly  misrepresented.  An  invidious 
passport  system  was  established  between  the  two  countries  by 
the  United  States  ;  notice  for  the  abolition  of  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty,  and  the  convention  respecting  the  armaments  on  the  lakes, 
served  upon  Great  Britain  ;  and  every  means  adopted  to  prevent 
their  renewal  and  the  re-establishment  of  friendly  intercourse. 
Insulting  preparations  were  openly  made,  in  direct  defiance  of  the 
United  States  laws,  by  Fenians,  for  the  purpose  of  invading 
Canada ;  the  public  arsenals  pillaged  of  their  arms  in  the  very 
presence  of  the  authorities ;  wordy  proclamations  issued,  and 
bombastic  drillings  carried  on,  avowedly  to  seize  a  portion  of  an 
empire  with  which  the  United  States  were  at  peace,  and  to  inflict 
injuries  on  a  community  which  had  done  them  no  wrong. 

In  the  presence  of  such  circumstances  the  Canadian  Govern- 
ment acted  with  moderation  and  discretion.  They  permitted  no  of- 
fensive demonstrations  to  be  made,  quietly  prepared  to  meet  any 
emergency,  and  relying  upon  the  loyalty  of  their  countrymen,  and 
the  good  sense  of  the  main  body  of  the  American  people,  endea- 
voured to  open  negotiations  for  the  renewal  or  temporary  continu- 
ance of  the  treaty.  The  farming  interests  of  Upper  Canada  had 
become  accustomed  to  the  markets  of  the  United  States  for  the 
surplus  productions  of  their  growing  country.  An  immense 
trade  had  sprung  up  across  the  lines  ;  not  only  were  friendly  rela- 
tions promoted,  but  business  connections  had  been  made,  the 
disruption  of  which  would  lead  to  serious  complications.  To  those 
so  deeply  interested  no  equivalent  trade  at  the  moment  suggested 
itself.  There  were  others,  however,  who  were  of  a  different  opi- 
nion, who  did  not  regard  the  treaty  as  of  such  vital  importance, 


296  CONFEDERATION. 

though  they  did  not  hesitate  to  approve  of  its  renewal,  and  desire 
that  all  reasonable  means  should  be  taken  to  bring  it  about. 
They  thought  the  country  would  not  be  injured  by  being  thrown 
upon  its  own  resources,  by  being  compelled  to  ascertain  what 
other  avenues  of  trade  could  be  opened  up.  South  America,  the 
West  Indies,  and  the  Mediterranean  markets  wanted  their  fish 
and  lumber.  By  Canada  these  countries  and  markets  had  been 
almost  ignored,  and  Canadian  goods  filtered  through  the  United 
States  supplied  but  to  a  limited  degree  the  demand  under  a  foreign 
name  and  foreign  character.  The  internal  markets  of  their  own 
Provinces  were  open  to  them.  The  Maritime  Provinces  wanted 
the  flour  and  cereals,  the  homespuns  and  tweeds  of  Canada,  and, 
in  return,  the  coal  and  fish  and  manufactures  of  those  Provinces 
were  wanted  in  Canada.  Why  not  seize  these  markets  and  throw 
down  the  internal  barriers '? 

In  the  conflict  of  opinion  the  Government  adopted  the  wise 
course  of  preparing  for  both  emergencies.  On  the  15th  of  July  a 
minute  of  Council  was  adopted  to  send  two  members  of  the  cabi- 
net to  Washington  to  confer  with  Sir  F.  Bruce.  This  decision, 
however,  subsequent  events  rendered  unimportant.  Arising  out 
of  an  application  made  by  Nova  Scotia,  the  British  Government, 
by  a  despatch  dated  the  22nd  of  July,  1865,  suggested  to  the  Go- 
vernor-General the  formation  of  a  Confederate  Council,  chosen  by 
the  different  Provinces,  and  presided  over  by  himself,  for  the  pur- 
pose of  expressing  an  opinion  to  Her  Majesty's  Government  on  the 
negotiation  of  commercial  treaties,  and  instructed  him  to  commu- 
nicate with  the  several  Lieut-Governors  accordingly.  On  14th 
of  August  the  Governor- General  did  so,  and  in  the  early  part  of 
September  the  Council  was  formed  at  Quebec,  and  was  called  the 
"  Confederate  Council  on  Commercial  Treaties."  Under  the  sug- 
gestion of  this  Council  a  commission  was  organized  late  in  the  au- 
tumn, and  sent  to  the  West  Indies  and  South  America,  and 
negotiations  with  the  United  States  in  due  time  opened. 

With  the  latter  it  is  our  duty  first  to  deal  : 

Of  the  Council  on  Commercial  Treaties  Messrs.  Brown  and 
Gait  were  members  for  Canada,  Ritchie  for  Nova  Scotia,  Wilmot 
for  New  Brunswick,  Pope  for  Prince  Edward  Island,  and  Shea 


CONFEDERATION.  297 

for  Newfoundland,  being  members  of  their  respective  Executive 
Councils.  Messrs.  Macdonald  and  Cartier  were  by  courtesy  fur- 
ther admitted  on  behalf  of  Canada  to  be  present  at  the  Council 
and  take  part  in  the  discussion.  Under  the  notice  from  the 
United  States  the  treaty  was  to  expire  on  the  17th  of  March,  1866. 

On  the  18th  of  September,  1865,  this  Council  reduced  their 
views  to  resolutions,  in  which  they  declared  the  colonies  satisfied 
with  the  treaty  ;  but  that  if  a  new  one  was  entered  into,  that  the 
coasting  trade  and  registration  of  vessels  ought  to  be  included ; 
and  that  if  terms  could  not  be  agreed  upon  with  the  United 
States  bsforethe  17th  March,  it  would  be  desirable  that  the  Im- 
perial Government  should  endeavour  to  obtain  a  prolongation  of 
the  treaty  to  such  a  period  as  would  enable  the  negotiations  to  be 
brought  to  a  successful  issue  ;  and  that  in  the  event  of  negotia- 
tions some  of  the  members  of  the  Council  should  attend  at  Wash- 
ington to  confer  with  the  British  Minister,  and  afford  information 
in  respect  to  the  interests  of  the  British  North  American  Provinces. 
They  also  recommended  that  steps  be  taken  to  enable  the  Provinces 
to  open  communication  with  the  West  Indies,  Spain  and  South 
America  for  the  purposes  of  trade. 

The  text  of  the  resolutions  was  as  follows  : 

Monday,  18th  Sept.,  1865. 

The  Council  met. 

Present :  His  Excellency  the  Governor-General,  the  Honourable 
Messieurs  Cartier,  Brown,  Shea,  Pope,  Ritchie  and  Wilmot. 

The  minutes  of  the  last  meeting  were  read  and  approved. 

The  report  from  the  committee  appointed  on  the  last  day  of 
meeting  was  read,  and,  in  conformity  with  its  purport,  the  follow- 
ing resolutions  were  unanimously  adopted  by  the  Council. 

1st.  That  the  existing  treaty  of  trade  with  the  United  States 
is  acceptable,  and  that  its  renewal,  as  it  now  stands,  would  be 
assented  to  by  the  respective  Provinces. 

2nd.  That  in  the  opinion  of  the  Council,  any  reasonable  pro- 
posals for  the  modification  or  extension  of  the  treaty  that  may  be 
suggested  by  the  United  States  Government,  ought  to  be  enter- 
tained by  the  Provinces. 
20 


298  CONFEDERATION. 

3rd.  That  in  the  event  of  a  new  Reciprocity  Treaty  being 
negotiated,  it  would  be  highly  desirable  that  the  coasting  trade, 
and  the  registration  of  vessels,  should  be  included  in  its  pro- 
visions. 

4th.  That  in  the  event  of  the  abolition  of  the  treaty  by  the 
United  States  Government,  it  is  the  opinion  of  this  Council  that 
all  the  British  North  American  Provinces  should  combine  cordially 
together  in  all  commercial  matters  and  adopt  such  a  common  com- 
mercial policy  as  will  best  advance  the  interest  of  the  whole. 

5th.  That  in  the  opinion  of  this  Council  it  would  be  highly 
desirable  that  application  be  made  to  Her  Majesty's  Imperial 
Government,  requesting  that  steps  be  taken  to  enable  the  British 
North  American  Provinces  to  open  communications  with  the 
West  India  Islands,  with  Spain  and  her  colonies,  and  with  Brazil 
and  Mexico,  for  the  purpose  of  ascertaining  in  what  manner  the 
traffic  of  the  Provinces  with  these  countries  could  be  extended, 
and  placed  on  a  more  advantageous  footing. 

6th.  That  in  the  event  of  negotiations  for  a  new  treaty  of 
Reciprocity  with  the  United  States,  being  opened  by  Her 
Majesty's  Government,  but  not  concluded  before  the  17th  March 
next,  application  be  made  to  Her  Majesty's  Government  suggest- 
ing that  an  arrangement  be  entered  into  with  the  United  States 
Government  for  such  a  continuation  of  the  existing  treaty,  as 
may  afford  time  for  concluding  the  pending  negotiations. 

7th.  That  Her  Majesty's  Government  be  requested  to  authorize 
the  members  of  this  Council,  or  a  committee  to  be  appointed  from 
amongst  them,  to  proceed  to  Washington,  in  the  event  of  negotia- 
tions being  opened  for  the  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty,  in 
order  to  confer  with  the  British  Minister  there,  and  afford  him 
information  with  respect  to  the  interests  of  the  British  North 
American  Provinces. 

The  Council  then  adjourned. 

(Signed)         W.  A.  HIMSWORTH, 

Secretwy. 

On  the  1st  January,  1866,  Messrs.  Gait  and  Howland  of  Canada, 
Smith  of  New  Brunswick,  and  Henry  of  Nova  Scotia,  delegates 


CONFEDERATION.  290 

from  their  respective  Governments,  of  which  they  were  members, 
went  to  Washington.  Negotiations,  with  the  concurrence  of  the 
British  Minister,  were  opened  with  the  United  States,  and  conti- 
nued until  the  month  of  February,  without  any  successful  result. 
,The  demands  of  the  United  States  were  totally  inadmissible;  and 
on  the  6th  February,  the  Delegates  delivered  the  following  memo- 
randum (marked  A)  in  reply  to  the  Committee  of  Ways  and 
Means  (Congress  being  then  sitting),  to  which  Committee,  under 
the  action  of  the  American  Government,  they  had  been  referred  : 

(A.) 

WASHINGTON,  February  6,  1866. 

In  reference  to  the  memorandum,  received  from  tine  Committee 
of  Ways  and  Means,  the  Provincial  Delegates  regret  to  be  obliged 
to  state,  that  the  proposals  therein  contained,  in  regard  to  the 
commercial  relations  between  the  two  countries,  are  not  such  as 
they  can  recommend  for  the  adoption  of  their  respective  Legisla- 
tures. The  imposts  which  it  is  proposed  to  lay  upon  the  produc- 
tions of  the  British  Provinces,  on  their  entry  into  the  markets  of 
the  United  States,  are  such  as,  in  their  opinion,  will  be  in  some 
cases  prohibitory,  and  will  certainly  seriously  interfere  with  the 
natural  course  of  trade.  These  imposts  are  so  much  beyond  what 
the  Delegates  conceive  to  be  an  equivalent  for  the  internal  taxa- 
tion of  the  United  States,  that  they  are  reluctantly  brought  to  the 
conclusion  that  the  Committee  no  longer  desire  the  trade  between 
the  two  countries  to  be  carried  on  upon  the  principles  of  recipro- 
city. With  the  concurrence  of  the  British  Minister  at  Washington, 
they  are  therefore  obliged  respectfully  to  decline  to  enter  into  the 
engagement  suggested  in  the  memorandum  ;  but  the  present  views 
of  the  United  States  may  soon  be  so  modified  as  to  permit  of  the 
interchange  of  the  productions  of  the  two  countries  upon  a  more 
liberal  basis. 

On  the  following  day  they  made  their  report  to  Sir  Frederick 
Bruce,  Her  Majesty's  Minister  at  Washington,  and  returned  to 
their  several  Governments ;  Mr.  Henry,  the  Attorney-General  of 
Nova  Scotia,  having  taken  the  place  of  Dr.  Tupper,  and  Mr. 


300  CONFEDERATION. 

Howland,  Postmaster-General  of  Canada,  the  place  of  Mr.  Brown. 
The  Report  was  as  follows  : 

WASHINGTON,  February  7th,  1866. 

SIR, — We  have  the  honour  to  inform  your  Excellency  that  our 
negotiations  for  the  renewal  of  reciprocal  trade  with  the  United 
States  have  terminated  unsuccessfully.  You  have  been  informed, 
from  time  to  time,  of  our  proceedings,  but  we  propose  briefly  to 
recapitulate  them. 

On  our  arrival  here,  after  consultation  with  your  Excellency,  we 
addressed  ourselves,  with  your  sanction,  to  the  Secretary  of  the 
Treasury,  and  we  were  by  him  put  in  communication  with  the 
Committee  of  Ways  and  Means  of  the  House  of  Representatives. 

After  repealed  interviews  w;.th  them,  and  011  ascertaining  that 
no  renewal  or  extension  of  the  existing  treaty  would  be  made  by 
the  American  authorio-.es,  bub  that  whatever  was  doae  must  be 
done  by  legislation,  we  submitted,  as  the  basis  upon  which  we 
desired  arrangements,  the  enclosed  paper  (marked  B). 

In  reply  we  received  Ihe  memorandum  from  the  Committee,  of 
which  a  copy  is  enclosed  (C) ;  and  finding,  after  discussion,  that 
110  important  modifications  in  their  views  could  be  obtained,  and 
that  we  were  required  to  consider  their  proposition  as  a  whole,  we 
felt  ourselves  under  the  necessity  of  declining  it,  which  was  done 
by  the  memorandum,  also  enclosed  (A). 

It  is  proper  to  explain  the  grounds  of  our  final  action. 

It  will  be  observed  that  the  most  important  provisions  of  the 
expiring  treaty,  relating  to  the  free  interchange  of  the  products  of 
the  two  countries,  were  entirely  set  aside,  and  that  the  duties 
proposed  to  be  levied  were  almost  prohibitory  in  their  character. 
The  principal  object  of  our  entering  into  negotiations  was,  there- 
fore, unattainable,  and  we  had  only  to  consider  whether  the  minor 
points  were  such  as  to  make  it  desirable  for  us  to  enter  into  specific 
arrangements. 

These  points  are  three  in  number. 

With  regard  to  the  first — the  proposed  mutual  use  of  the  waters 
of  Lake  Michigan  and  the  St.  Lawrence — we  considered  that  the 
present  arrangements  were  sufficient,  and  that  the  common  interests 


CONFEDERATION.  301 

of  both  countries  would  prevent  their  disturbance.  We  are  not 
prepared  to  yield  the  right  of  interference  in  the  imposition  of  tolls 
upon  our  canals.  We  believe,  moreover,  that  the  privilege  allowed 
the  United  States,  of  navigating  the  waters  of  the  St.  Lawrence, 
was  very  much  more  than  an  equivalent  for  our  use  of  Lake 
Michigan. 

Upon  the  second  point — providing  for  the  free  transit  of  goods 
under  bond  between  the  two  countries — we  believe  that  in  this 
respect,  as  in  the  former  case,  the  interests  of  both  countries  would 
secure  the  maintenance  of  existing  regulations.  Connected  with 
this  point  was  the  demand  made  for  the  abolition  of  the  free  ports 
existing  in  Canada,  which  we  were  not  disposed  to  concede,  espe- 
cially in  view  of  the  extremely  unsatisfactory  position  in  which  it 
was  proposed  to'  place  the  trade  between  the  two  countries. 

On  both  the  above  points,  we  do  not  desire  to  be  understood  as 
stating  that  the  existing  arrangements  should  not  be  extended  and 
placed  on  a  more  permanent  basis,  but  only  that,  taken  apart  from 
the  more  important  interests  involved,  it  did  not  appear  to  us  at 
this  time  necessary  to  deal  with  them  exceptionally. 

With  reference  to  the  third  and  last  point — the  concession  of 
the  right  of  fishing  in  the  Provincial  waters — we  considered  the 
equivalent  proposed  for  so  very  valuable  a  right  to  be  utterly 
inadequate.  The  admission  of  a  few  unimportant  articles  free, 
with  the  establishment  of  a  scale  of  high  duties  as  proposed,  would 
noo,  in  our  opinion,  have  justified  us  in  yielding  this  point. 

While  we  regret  this  unfavourable  termination  of  the  negotia- 
tions, we  are  not  without  hope  that,  at  no  distant  day,  they  may 
be  resumed,  with  a  better  prospect  of  a  satisfactory  result. 

We  have  the  honour  to  be, 
Your  Excellency's  most  obedient  servants, 

A.  T.  GALT,  Minister  of  Finance,  Canada. 
W.  P.  HOWLAND,  Postmaster-General,  Canada. 
W.  A.  HENRY,  Attorney-General,  Nova  Scotia. 
A.  J.  SMITH,  Attorney-General,  New  Brunswick. 

His  Excellency  Sir  F.  Bruce,  K.C.B.,  &c. 


f}  CONFEDERATION. 

(B.) 

1st.  Free  trade  in  the  natural  productions  of  the  United  States 
and  the  Provinces ;  subject,  on  both  sides,  to  the  internal  revenue 
duties. 

2nd.  That  the  present  arrangement  with  regard  to  the  fisheries 
shall  continue. 

3rd.  The  free  navigation  of  the  internal  waters  of  the  continent, 
coupled  with  an  effort  to  improve  Canadian  water  communications. 

4th.  That  Canada  would  adjust  her  excis3  duties  upon  spirits 
beer  and  tobacco,  in  accordance  with  a  revenue  standard  to  be 
mutually  adopted. 

5th.  A  continuance  of  the  present  bonded  system  through  both, 
countries. 

(C.) 

1st.  That  they  should  decline  to  admit  free  any  article  whatever 
from  Canada,  with  the  exception  of  burr  millstones,  rags,  fire- 
wood, grindstones,  plaster  and  gypsum. 

2nd.  That  they  ask  a  right  to  fish  as  at  present.  They  would 
abolish  the  present  fish  bounties,  but  impose  an  import  duty  more 
than  an  equivalent  to  these  bounties. 

3rd.  That  the  navigation  arrangement  would  continue,  pro- 
viding that  no  discrimination  as  to  tolls  should  be  made  between 
United  States  and  British  craft. 

4th.  That  the  present  bonding  system  should  continue. 

5th.  That  the  following  should  be  the  duties  levied  on  other 
articles  proposed  to  be  included  in  this  treaty  : 

Animals,  living,  of  all  sorts,  20  per  cent,  (ad  valorem.) 

Apples,  and  garden  fruit  and  vegetables,  10  per  cent,  (ad  val.) 

Barley,  15  cents  per  bushel. 

Beans,  except  vanilla  and  castor  oil,  30  cents  per  bushel. 

Beef,  1  cent  per  pound. 

Buckwheat,  10  cents  per  bushel. 

Butter,  4  cents  per  pound. 

Cheese,  4  cents  per  pound. 

Corn,  Indian  and  oats,  10  cents  per  bushel. 

Cornmeal,  Indian  and  oatmeal,  15  cents  per  bushel. 


CONFEDERATION.  30  3 

Coal,  bituminous,  50  cents  per  ton. 

Coal,  all  other  kinds,  25  cents  per  ton. 

Flour,  25  cents  (ad  valorem.) 

Hams,  2  cents  per  pound. 

Hay,  $1  per  ton. 

Hides,  10  per  cent  (ad  valorem.) 

Lard,  3  cents  per  pound. 

Lumber,  pine,  round  or  log,  $1  50  per  1,000  feet. 

Pine,  sawed  or  hewn,  $2  50  per  1,000  feet ;  planed,  tongued  and 
grooved,  or  finished,  25  per  cent,  (ad  valorem.) 

Spruce  and  hemlock,  sawed  or  hewn,  $1  per  1,000  feet. 

Spruce,  planed,  finished,  or  partly  finished  25  per  cent,  (ad 
valorem.) 

Shingle  bolts,  10  per  cent,  (ad  valorem.) 

Shingles,  20  per  cent,  (ad  valorem.) 

All  other  lumber  of  black  walnut,  chestnut,  bass,  whitewood, 
ash.  oak — round  hewn  or  sawed, — 20  per  cent,  ad  valorem.) 

If  planed,  tongued  and  grooved,  or  finished,  25  per  cent,  (ad 
valorem.) 

Ores,  10  per  cent,  (ad  valorem.) 

Peas,  25  cents  per  bushel. 

Pork,  1  cent  per  pound. 

Potatoes,  10  cents  per  bushel. 

Seed,  timothy  and  clover,  20  per  cent,  (ad  valorem.) 

Trees,  plants  and  shrubs,  ornamental  and  fruit,  15  per  cent, 
(ad  valorem.) 

Tallow,  2  cents"  per  pound. 

Wheat,  20  cents  per  bushel. 

Thus  ended  the  efforts  to  renew  a  treaty  which  had  covered  a 
reciprocal  trade  of  sixty-eight  millions  per  annum,  and  which  had 
been  looked  upon  by  its  promoters  in  1854  as  tending  to  cement 
perpetual  amity  with  the  United  States.  The  action  of  the  dele- 
gates at  Washington  met  with  the  universal  approval  of  the  people 
of  the  Provinces.  The  propositions  of  the  Government  of  the 
United  States,  as  conveyed  through  the  Committee  of  Ways  and 
Means,  it  was  considered  would  simply  have  made  the  British 


304  CONFEDERATION. 

Provinces  insignificant,  outlying  portions  of  their  territory,  con- 
trolled by  their  laws,  without  having  any  voice  in  their  legislation, 
dependent  for  their  trade  and  commerce  upon  the  fluctuating 
views  of  the  preponderating  party  for  the  time  being  in  the 
United  States;  governed  one  day  by  the  restrictive  policy  of 
Pennsylvania  coal  owners,  and  the  next  by  the  necessities  of  gold 
speculators  in  New  York ;  unable  to  enter  the  British  or  any 
foreign  market,  but  with  the  badge  of  American  vassalage ;  and 
having  to  Iqok  in  their  own  legislation  and  their  own  parliaments, 
not  to  the  interests  of  their  own  country,  but  to  the  directions 
they  might  receive  from  their  commercial  masters  at  Washington. 
It  was  well  for  the  governments  of  the  day  that  their  delegates 
returned  without  having  given  even  a  qualified  assent.  The  Pro- 
vinces were  thrown  together,  and  confederation  was  secured, 

To  this  action  of  the  American  Government  on  the  question  of 
reciprocity,  and  to  the  Trent  affair,  the  rapid  achievement  of 
Canadian  union  may  be  mainly  attributed.  It  would  have  come 
in  time,  but  the  latter  acting  upon  the  British  Government,  and 
the  former  upon  the  British  Provinces,  brought  it  about  at  once ; 
and  if  hereafter  a  great  northern  nation  should  spring  from  the 
confederation,  rivalling  the  United  States  in  power,  in  constitu- 
tional freedom,  in  commercial  enterprise,  and  in  the  development 
of  all  those  elements  of  strength  which  indicate  a  progressive  and 
contented  people,  rivals  in  all  the  pursuits  of  peace,  and  equals  in 
the  emergencies  of  war,  the  United  States  will  have  to  look  back 
to  their  own  action  in  1862  and  1865  as  one  of  the  main  con- 
ducing causes. 


[305] 


CHAPTER  IX. 

Resignation  of  Mr.  Brown — Parliamentary  explanations — Reasons  assigned—- 
Examination of  minutes  of  Council  and  Mr  Gait's  memorandum — 
Reasons  existing — Subsequent  conduct — A.  D.  1865  &  1856. 

But  the  events  narrated  in  the  previous  chapter  did  not  take 
place  without  producing  in  the  Canadian  Cabinet  a  change  of 
singular  significance.  In  the  month  of  December  Mr.  Brown, 
owing,  as  it  was  said,  to  a  difference  with  his  colleagues  as  to  the 
mode  in  which  the  negotiations  with  the  United  States  should  be 
conducted,  resigned  his  seat  as  President  of  the  Council,  and  left 
the  cabinet.  Mr.  McDougall  was  at  that  time  absent  with  the 
West  India  Trade  Commission,  and  the  leader  of  the  Government 
tendered  to  Mr.  Howland,  the  remaining  member  of  the  Reform 
party  in  the  cabinet,  the  position  held  by  Mr.  Brown,  with  the 
assurance  that  the  conditions  on  which  the  Coalition  Government 
had  been  formed  were  still  to  continue.  Mr.  Howland,  after 
consulting  his  friends,  accepted  the  position.  Mr.  Fergusson  Blair, 
another  Reformer,  and  avowed  supporter  of  confederation,  was 
offered  and  accepted  the  situation  of  President  of  the  Council, 
with  the  full  consent  and  approbation  of  his  party,  went  back  for 
re-election,  and  was  triumphantly  returned. 

Though  it  was  well  understood  throughout  the  country  that  it 
was  011  the  question  of  the  negotiations  for  the  renewal  of  the 
Reciprocity  Treaty  with  the  United  States  that  Mr.  Brown's 
resignation  had  taken  place,  and,  so  far  as  the  facts  were  supposed 
to  be,  his  views  in  that  respect  approved  of;  yet  no  specific 
statement  of  the  difference  between  himself  and  his  la,te  colleagues 
had  been  made  either  on  behalf  of  the  Government  or  himself, 
official  prudence  requiring  that  pending  the  negotiations  reticence 
should  be  observed.  The  meeting  of  Parliament  was  therefore 
looked  forward  to  with  interest  when  it  was  known  the  necessary 
ministerial  explanations  must  be  given.  In  the  meantime  the 
seat  of  government  had  been  removed  to  Ottawa.  The  public 


.306  CONFEDERATION. 

attention  was  occupied  with  the  Fenian  invasion  in  the  spring  of 
1866.  The  treaty  had  been  disposed  of,  and  no  anxiety  was  felt 
on  that  account.  The  new  elections  in  New  Brunswick  had 
terminated  in  favour  of  the  confederate  party  ;  the  Nova  Scotian 
legislature  had  passed  resolutions  authorising  their  government  to 
act  in  that  direction  ;  and  thus  when  the  Parliament  assembled  at 
Ottawa  on  the  8th  of  June,  1866,  and  for  the  first  time  held  its 
sittings  "  in  the  magnificent  buildings  erected  in  the  city  chosen 
by  Her  Majesty  as  the  seat  of  government,"  the  assembled  repre- 
sentatives were  prepared  to  consider  dispassionately  the  reasons 
which  had  induced  an  influential  member  of  the  cabinet,  and  the 
leader  of  the  liberal  section,  to  abandon  his  post  at  the  moment 
when  the  great  object  for  which  he  had  joined  it,  and  for  which  he 
had  entered  into  a  coalition  contrary  to  the  avowed  policy  of  his 
political  life,  was  passing  through  its  darkest  hour. 

Immediately  upon  the  opening  of  the  House,  the  Attorney- 
General  West,  the  Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald,  introduced  in  lieu 
of  the  ordinary  formal  bill  to  assert  the  privileges  of  the  House, 
before  going  into  consideration  of  the  speech  from  the  throne,  a 
bill  for  the  suspension  of  the  Habeas  Corpus,  and  the  Attorney- 
General  East,  Hon.  Geo.  E.  Cartier,  a  bill  for  extending  to  Lower 
Canada,  the  Act  then  in  force  in  Upper  Canada  for  the  trial  of 
hostile  marauders.  These  two  measures  were  passed  without 
opposition,  were  sent  up  to  the  Council,  passed  there  and  received 
the  Governor-General's  assent  the  same  day. 

On  the  re-assembling  of  the  House  in  the  following  week,  and 
so  soon  as  the  ordinary  business  had  been  disposed  of,  the  question 
of  Mr  Brown's  resignation  came  up.  The  mere  fact  of  a  particular 
individual  joining  or  leaving  a  Government  would  not  as  a  "general 
rule  demand  an  exhaustive  narrative  [of  the  causes  which  led  to 
it ;  but  Mr.  Brown's  position  was  peculiar — the  history  of  Con- 
federation would  not  be  complete  without  his  name.  His  per- 
sistent assertion  of  a  policy  had  brought  about  the  dead-lock, 
which  had  rendered  Constitutional  Government  almost  a  mockery 
in  Canada.  In  1864  his  .entering  the  Government  of  the  day, 
which  he  had  always  persistently  opposed  and  denounced,  to  bring 
about  a  great  constitutional  change,  had  met  with  the  approbation 


CONFEDERATION.  307 

of  both  friends  and  foes,  and  had  extorted  from  his  opponents, 
the  admission,  that  for  a  good  purpose,  he  was  strong  enough  to 
treat  with  indifference,  the  charges  of  inconsistency  and  change 
which  might  have  deterred  a  weaker  man — that  like  Peel  he  could 
boldly  throw  himself  upon  the  nation's  judgment,  and  rise  above 
the  trammels  of  party.  When,  therefore,  he  left  the  ship,  just 
as  she  was  going  into  action,  every  one  looked  for  a  good  reason 
for  it. 

The  fairest  way  is  to  give  the  explanations  as  they  were  made 
in  Parliament  by  the  parties  themselves. 

In  the  Legislative  Council,  the  Hon.  Sir  N.  F.  Belleau  on 
rising  to  give  the  Ministerial  explanations  touching  the  resigna- 
tion of  the  late  President  of  the  Council  in  the  autumn  previous, 
observed : 

"  It  was  generally  known  all  over  the  country  that  Mr.  Brown 
resigned  upon  a  question  regarding  the  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty  with  the  United  States.  The  best  way  to  make  known  to 
the  House  the  policy  of  the  Government  on  the  subject  at  the 
time,  was  to  read  the  minute  in  Council  on  which  that  gentleman 
had  resigned.  It  was  as  follows  : 

Copy  of  a  Report  of  a  Committee  of  the  Executive  Council,  ap- 
proved by  His  Excellency  the  Administrator  of  the  Govern- 
ment, on  the  2%nd  December,  1865. 

The  committee  have  had  under  consideration  the  memorandum 
dated  18th  December,  1865,  from  the  honourable  the  Minister  of 
Finance,  submitting  for  the  consideration  of  your  Excellency  in 
Council,  that  it  appears  from  the  report  to  Congress,  of  the 
Secretary  of  the  Treasury  of  the  United  States,  as  well  as  from 
the  information  obtained  by  him,  the  Minister  of  Finance,  in 
recent  conversations  had  at  Washington  with  the  Secretary  of 
State  and  the  Secretary  of  the  Treasury  of  the  United  States,  that 
the  American  Government  are  not  disposed  to  submit  to  Congress 
any  proposal  for  the  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty,  but  con- 
sider that  the  commercial  relations  between  the  United  States 
and  the  British  North  American  Provinces  should  form  the  sub- 
j  ect  of  concerted  legislation. 


308  CONFEDERATION. 

That  under  these  circumstances  he  submits  that  inasmuch  as 
the  treaty  will  expire  on  the  17th  of  March  next,  there  is  no 
reasonable  probability  that  the  Congress  of  the  United  States  will, 
before  that  date,  decide  in  any  way  upon  their  policy  in  this 
respect,  while  it  is  manifest  that  no  corresponding  legislation  could 
possibly  take  place  in  each  of  the  British  Provinces ;  that  it  is 
therefore  evident  that  unless  some  understanding  be  arrived  at 
with  the  American  Government,  for  a  temporary  continuance  of 
existing  arrangements,  the  trade  between  the  two  countries  must 
be  subject  to  serious  disturbance,  by  the  expiry  of  the  treaty  on 
the  17th  March. 

That  the  proposal  of  the  Secretary  of  the  Treasury  to  substitute 
legislation  in  lieu  of  the  treaty,  can  only  apply  to  those  portions 
of  the  treaty  which  refer  to  commercial  subjects.  That  the 
national  rights  involved  in  the  engagements  relative  to  the 
fisheries,  and  to  the  navigation  of  the  great  lakes,  and  the  St. 
Lawrence,  cannot,  he  believed,  be  dealt  with  otherwise  than  by 
treaty  or  convention  between  Great  Britain  and  the  United  States. 

That  the  subjects  embraced  in  the  Reciprocity  Treaty  are  two- 
fold. That  those  relating  to  trade  and  commerce  can,  if  it  be  so 
determined,  be  reserved  for  the  action  of  the  respective  Legis- 
latures, each  country  pursuing  the  policy  that  is  most  in  accord- 
ance with  its  own  interests,  while  those  relating  to  International 
engagements  must  either  be  continued  by  treaty  or  each  nation 
will  revert  to  its  position  prior  to  the  execution  of  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty. 

That  as  the  latter  class  of  subjects  has  not  been  referred  to  by 
the  Secretary  of  the  Treasury,  it  is  possible  it  has  not  received 
full  attention  in  the  decision  that  would  appear  to  have  been 
arrived  at  for  the  abrogation  of  the  treaty,  as  it  can  scarcely  be 
supposed  that  the  United  States  desire  to  reproduce  that  state  of 
things  which  was  happily  put  an  end  to  by  the  execution  of  the 
treaty. 

That  the  concessions  which  were  considered  to  be  made  by 
Great  Britain  in  relation  to  the  fisheries  question  were,  however, 
so  intimately  blended  with  the  commercial  advantages  alleged  to 
have  been  granted  by  the  United  States,  that  it  does  not,  at  this 


CONFEDERATION.  309 

moment,  appear  possible  to  consent  to  the  concessions  by  Great 
Britain  being  continued  and  made  permanent  in  favour  of  the 
United  States  by  a  new  treaty,  while  the  latter  country  de- 
termines to  retain  within  its  own  control,  all  the  subjects  by 
which  equivalents  were  considered  to  have  been  given  to  the 
British  Provinces. 

That  if  the  objections  by  the  United  States  to  a  renewal  of  the 
commercial  treaty  rest  upon  its  being  an  unconstitutional  act  on 
their  part,  it  no  longer  becomes  a  subject  of  discussion,  and  some 
other  course  must  be  devised  for  the  division  of  the  subject,  deal- 
ing with  national  rights  by  treaty,  and  with  commercial  relations 
by  legislation.  And  he  offers  as  his  opinion  that  no  insuperable 
difficulty  need  be  apprehended  in  this  course,  if  the  subject  be 
approached  in  a  spirit  of  mutual  desire  to  perfect  and  to  perpetuate 
the  friendly  intercourse  and  trade  between  the  two  countries ;  but 
that  it  is  manifestly  impracticable,  within  the  time  limited  for  the 
termination  of  the  treaty,  to  give  the  required  consideration  to  the 
subject,  and  to  settle  all  the  various  details  connected  with  it ;  and 
that  it  is  therefore  very  much  to  be  apprehended  that  the  whole 
engagements  of  the  treaty  will  end  on  the  17th  March,  unless  the 
Government  of  the  United  States  acquiesce  in  their  temporary 
continuance  with  a  view  to  negotiations.  But  in  case  it  should  be 
ultimately  found  necessary  to  deal  with  the  question  of  trade  by 
legislation,  it  must  be  apparent  to  the  United  States  Government 
that  extreme  difficulty  must  be  experienced  in  bringing  into  har- 
mony the  views  of  so  many  different  legislatures,  and  much  time 
will  be  required  for  the  purpose.  That  in  view,  therefore,  of  the 
proposed  confederation  of  the  British  North  American  Provinces 
probably  taking  place  at  an  early  day,  it  would  appear  more  desir- 
able to  defer,  if  possible,  any  legislative  arrangements  with  the 
United  States  to  the  Legislature  of  the  Confederated  Provinces, 
especially  as  the  earliest  duty  of  that  body  will  be  to  revise  and 
assimilate  the  existing  separate  systems  of  finance  and  trade  now 
existing  in  each ;  thus  affording  the  most  favourable  opportunity 
for  the  consideration  of  any  proposals  of  the  American  Govern- 
ment relating  to  trade  and  revenue. 


310  CONFEDERATION. 

He,  the  Minister  of  Finance,  therefore  recommends  that  com- 
munication be  had  with  Her  Majesty's  representative  at  Wash- 
ington, for  the  purpose  of  submitting  to  the  Government  of  the 
United  States  a  proposal  for  the  continuance  of  the  existing 
treaty  for  such  period  as  may  be  agreed  upon,  for  the  purpose  of 
negotiation,  and  that  two  members  of  the  Council  be  instructed 
to  put  themselves  in  communication  with  His  Excellency  and 
(subject  to  his  concurrence),  with  the  authorities  at  Washington 
on  the  subject. 

The  Minister  of  Finance  further  recommends  that  the  action 
proposed  to  be  taken  for  the  purpose  of  obtaining  delay  in  the 
abrogation  of  the  treaty  be  communicated  by  your  Excellency  to 
the  Lieutenant-Governors  of  the  Maritime  Provinces,  and  that 
they  be  requested  to  inform  their  respective  governments  that  it 
is  not  the  intention  of  the  Canadian  Government  to  depart  from 
the  course  proposed  by  the  Confederate  Council  on  Commercial 
Treaties,  or  act  in  any  manner  separately  or  distinctly  from  the 
other  Provinces,  in  the  ultimate  discussion  and  decision  of  the 
various  questions  involved  ;  but  solely  in  view  of  the  vast  interests 
in  Canada  affected  by  the  possible  termination  of  the  treaty,  to 
use  every  exertion,  in  the  meantime,  to  obtain  delay,  with  the 
intention  hereafter  of  considering,  in  connection  with  the  sister 
Provinces,  any  suggestions  that  may  be  made  on  the  part  of  the 
United  States,  in  relation  to  the  future  commercial  intercourse 
between  the  two  countries,  and  that  the  Maritime  Provinces  bo 
invited  to  send  representatives  to  Washington  for  the  same  pur- 
pose, and  be  informed  that  it  is  proposed  to  hold  a  meeting  of  the 
Confederate  Council  on  Commercial  Treaties  at  Ottawa,  as  soon  as 
the  position  of  that  question  would  warrant  it,  founded  upon  the 
information  to  be  received  from  Washington  as  to  the  probable 
extension  or  final  abrogation  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty. 

(Certified.)  W.  H.  LEE,  C.  E.  C. 

At  this  stage  Mr.  Brown,  after  a  long  and  earnest  discussion, 
said  he  could  not  concur  in  the  policy  indicated,  and  if  the  Council 
adopted  it  he  would  be  obliged  to  take  other  steps.  The  question, 
however,  was  put  and  unanimously  carried,  the  Provincial  Secre- 
tary alone  being  absent.  Upon  the  declaration  that  it  was  passed 


CONFEDERATION.  311 

Mr.  Brown  rose  and  said  lie  would  not  sign  it,  and  would  resign. 
Before  giving  his  resignation  that  honourable  gentleman  had 
stated,  however,  that  he  would  support  the  policy  of  confederation, 
and,  as  far  as  possible,  the  general  measures  of  the  Government. 
These  were  the  sensible  facts,  and  it  was  now  for  the  country  to 
judge  them. 

On  Friday,  June  the  15th,  1866,  in  the  House  of  Assembly, 
the  Speaker  took  the  chair  at  the  usual  hour. 

After  the  ordinary  routine  business  had  been  disposed  of,  on  the 
order  of  the  day  being  called,  the  Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald  rose 
and  said  : 

"  In  accordance  with  the  promise  made  yesterday,  he  would  give 
explanations  regarding  the  changes  which  had  been  made  in  the 
Administration  since  last  session.  The  explanations,  so  far  as  the 
Government  are  concerned,  would  be  short,  simple,  and  occupy  the 
attention  of  the  House  but  a  very  brief  period.  It  was  known 
the  honourable  member  for  South  Oxford  had  retired  from  the 
position  of  President  of  the  Council,  and  had  been  succeeded  by  the 
Hon.  Fergusson  Blair.  It  was  also  known,  from  public  rumour, 
which  in  this  case,  contrary  to  general  rule,  was  correct,  that  the 
member  for  South  Oxford  had  retired  from  the  Government  in 
consequence  of  a  difference  of  opinion  with  the  majority  of  the; 
Executive  Council  on  the  subject  of  the  best  mode  of  continuing 
negotiations  for  the  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty  with  the 
United  States.  The  majority  of  the  Council,  after  long  and 
serious  discussion,  and  full  consideration  of  the  whole  question, 
came  to  a  certain  conclusion  as  to  the  best  policy  to  pursue  under 
the  circumstances,  and  the  honourable  gentleman  who  had  resigned 
would  not  assume  the  responsibility  of  adopting  that  policy.  The 
subject  in  question  had  occupied  the  attention  of  the  whole  country 
for  a  considerable  time — indeed  ever  since  the  honourable  gentle- 
man entered  the  Coalition  Cabinet  it  engaged  continually  the 
attention  of  the  Government.  In  December  last  the  members  of 
the  Government  (who  were  all  here  except  the  Provincial  Secre- 
tary, then  absent  on  a  commercial  mission)  came  to  a  conclusion 
upon  the  best  mode  of  conducting  negotiations  with  the  United 


312  CONFEDERATION. 

States  for  the  renewal  of  the  old  Treaty,  or  for  securing  by  some 
other  arrangement  the  advantages  which  flowed  to  the  Province 
and  to  the  United  States  from  the  Treaty  of  1854.  The  Govern- 
ment exceedingly  regretted  that  he  could  not  conscientiously  assent 
to  that  policy,  as  in  accordance  with  his  view  of  what  was  right, 
and,  yielding  his  opinion  to  that  of  the  rest  of  his  colleagues, 
remain  in  the  Council.  However,  he,  like  every  political  man, 
was  the  only  judge  of  what  was  the  proper  course  to  pursue ;  and, 
while  he  was  subjected  to  a  degree  of  pressure  by  his  colleagues 
to  withdraw  his  resignation  and  yield  his  opinion,  he  could  not 
bring  himself  conscientiously  to  do  so,  and  said  that  the  only 
thing  that  remained  was  for  the  Administrator  of  the  Govern- 
ment to  accept  his  resignation,  and  for  the  vacant  place  to  be 
filled  up  by  another.  The  House  knew  the  honourable  member 
for  South  Oxford  did  not  hold  an  ordinary  position  in  the  Govern- 
ment as  Minister  of  the  Crown.  He  was  not  only  a  Minister 
holding  office  like  the  rest  of  his  colleagues,  but  he  was  the  repre- 
sentative of  a  great  party,  and  the  leader  of  the  three  gentlemen 
who,  at  the  time  of  the  coalition,  went  into  the  Government  for 
the  purpose  of  effecting  the  great  object  which  now,  he  was  happy 
to  say,  was  so  nearly  accomplished;  and  it  was  an  additional 
source  of  regret  that  the  honourable  gentleman  was  not  now  in 
the  Government,  as  a  minister  of  the  Crown,  to  witness  the  success 
of  that  project,  for  which  he  had  sacrificed  so  much,  and  worked 
so  earnestly  and  patriotically.  He  had,  however,  pursued  the  only 
course  that  was  open  to  him  as  a  statesman — to  resign  when  he 
found  he  could  not  honestly  and  conscientiously  approve  of  the 
course  which  the  Government  had  made  up  its  mind  to  follow. 
Having  done  so,  he  (Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald),  on  behalf  of  his 
colleagues,  and  with  the  approbation  of  His  Excellency  the  Admin- 
istrator of  the  Government,  invited  the  Postmaster-General,  then 
the  head  of  the  Liberal  section  of  the  Government,  from  Upper 
Canada,  to  assume  the  task  of  filling  up  the  vacancy,  and  that 
gentleman  replied  that  he  could  not  give  an  answer  without  an 
opportunity  of  considering  the  matter  and  consulting  his  friends. 
He  (Mr.  Macdonald)  could  not  do  better  than  read  to  the  House  a 
report  made  by  that  hon.  gentleman  on  the  subject,  as  follows  : — 


CONFEDERATION.  313 

'  Mr.  Howland  reported  to  the  Council,  that  by  the  resignation 
of  Mr.  Brown,  he  was  placed  in  a  position  in  which  he  felt  that 
great  responsibility  rested  upon  him  ;  and  that  before  coming  to  a 
decision  as  to  whether  he  should  continue  in  the  Government, 
he  felt  it  to  be  his  duty  to  consult  and  obtain  the  advice  of  those 
members  of  both  branches  of  the  Legislature  who  belonged  to  the 
Reform  party.  Pending  this,  he  would  decline  to  take  any  part 
in  the  proceedings  of  the  Council.  He  therefore  asked  the  consent 
of  the  Council  to  the  step  he  proposed.' 

This  consent  was  accorded,  and  a  letter  was  at  the  same  time 
placed  in  Mr.  Rowland's  hands,  which  read  as  follows  : 

EXECUTIVE  COUNCIL  OFFICE, 

OTTAWA,  Dec.  20th,  1866. 

MY  DEAR  HOWLAND, — I  have  only  time,  before  you  leave,  to  say 
to  you  that  the  policy  of  the  Coalition  Government  will  in  no 
respect  be  changed  by  the  resignation  of  G.  Brown ;  that  all  the 
conditions  entered  into  at  the  time  of  the  formation  of  the  Coali- 
tion Government  will  be  fully  carried  out ;  that  I  ask  you  to  take 
Mr.  Brown's  position  in  the  Government,  and  that  you  have  carte 
blanche  in  the  choice  of  a  gentleman  of  your  party  to  fill  the  vacant 
seat  in  the  Council. 

In  haste,  yours  sincerely, 

JNO.  A.  MACDONALD. 
To  Hon.  W.  P.  Howland. 

P.S. — When  I  speak  of  the  conditions  on  which  the  Coalition 
Government  was  formed,  I  of  course  refer  to  original  arrangements 
under  Sir  E.  P.  Tache,  and  to  continuations  of  them  when  Sir 
N".  F.  Belleau  became  Premier.  J.  A.  M. . 

Mr.  Howland,  continued  Mr.  Macdonald,  after  seeing  his  friends, 
consented  to  remain  in  the  Government,  and,  as  he  had  said  before, 
the  Hon.  Mr.  Blair  had  accepted  the  office  of  President  of  the 
Council,  with  the  consent  and  approbation  of  his  party.  These, 
so  far  as  Government  was  concerned,  were  all  the  explanations 
they  had  to  offer.  The  papers  on  the  subject  would  be  submitted 
to  the  House." 
21 


314  CONFEDERATION. 

Hon.  George  Brown — "  Before  proceeding  to  enter  into  explana- 
tions on  the  subject  of  his  retirement  from  the  Government, 
desired  it  to  be  distinctly  understood  that  his  resignation  was 
entirely  on  account  of  the  course  which  had  been  pursued  on  the 
question  of  the  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty.  He  was 
bound  to  admit  that  no  slight  cause  would  justify  him  in  leaving 
the  Government  before  the  great  question  of  Confederation,  for 
the  carrying  of  which  he  had  taken  office,  had  not  been  finally 
disposed  of.  At  the  same  time,  he  thought  that  Confederation 
had  even  then  reached  that  point  where  no  danger  of  its  failure, 
need  have  been  apprehended.  He  had  entered  the  Government 
with  very  great  reluctance  and  would  have  preferred,  as  he  had 
stated  at  the  time,  to  have  remained  on  his  own  side  of  the 
House  and  sustained  the  gentlemen  opposite  in  maturing  the 
great  question  and  carrying  it  to  a  successful  issue.  He  thought 
still  that  it  would  have  been  the  proper  course  for  himself  and 
his  friends  to  have  sustained  the  Government  from  their  own  side 
of  the  House,  than  to  have  joined  in  the  Government,  and  he 
was  still  prepared  to  give  the  Government  his  hearty  and  cordial 
support  in  carrying  out  that  measure.  With  regard  to  the 
occasion  of  his  leaving  the  Government,  the  policy  on  the 
Reciprocity  question  the  matter  in  connection  with  it  which  led 
to  his  resignation,  was  the  negotiations  of  Canada  with  the  United 
States.  It  was  in  the  course  pursued  by  the  Hon.  Finance 
Minister,  that  he  had  found  his  reasons  for  the  course  he  had 
taken.  He  was  glad,  however,  that  the  policy  on  which  he  had 
resigned  had  not  been  carried  out,  and  thought  his  resignation 
had  done  some  good  in  preventing  that  policy  from  bearing  fruit. 
The  honourable  gentleman  opposite  knowing  he  (Mr.  B.)  was 
present,  had  not  thought  fit  to  give  his  view  of  the  case,  and  he 
begged  to  state  before  entering  upon  it,  that  he  had  left  the 
Government  in  perfect  friendship  and  without  any  difference  or 
disagreement  upon  any  other  question  than  that  of  Reciprocity. 
As  the  Attorney-General  had  stated  that  question  was  before  the 
Cabinet  from  the  time  of  the  formation  of  the  Coalition  Govern- 
ment, and  on  the  15th  July,  1865,  feeling  it  necessary  that  the 
Government  should  know  what  were  the  views  of  the  United 


CONFEDERATION.  315 

States  Government  that  ministers  might  come  down  and  meet 
the  House  with  a  statement  of  policy,  it  was  proposed  to  send  a 
deputation  to  Washington.  A  long  discussion  took  place  upon 
this  point.  The  Council  did  not  agree  upon  it,  but  011  applying 
for  the  document  it  could  not  be  found.  A  deputation  was  sent 
to  Washington  to  ascertain  the  views  of  the  American  Govern- 
ment. We  were  satisfied  with  the  treaty  ;  they  were  not,  there- 
fore they  should  make  a  proposition  to  us  and  not  us  to  them 
as  a  basis  for  renewal  of  negotiations.  The  result  of  that  mission 
was  that  the  American  Government  desired  some  arrangement 
with  regard  to  certain  articles  in  which  a  great  deal  of  smuggling 
was  carried  on  from  this  country  to  the  United  States,  and  he  was 
perfectly  satisfied  to  enter  into  an  arrangement  of  this  kind  from 
first  to  last.  During  the  last  session  of  Parliament  on  discussion 
on  the  enlargement  of  the  canals,  the  honourable  Minister  of 
Finance  had  made  some  remarks  which  he  supposed  members 
would  recollect,  and  which  he  did  not  hesitate  to  say  conveyed  an 
idea  of  the  policy  of  the  Government.  (Mr.  B.  then  read  from 
Mr.  Gait's  speech  showing  that  enlargement  of  canals  would  only 
be  wise  policy  for  Canada  as  an  inducement  to  Americans  to  renew 
the  treaty,  &c.)  The  Ministry  last  year  had  suggested  to  the 
Imperial  Government  the  propriety  of  consulting  the  British 
American  Colonies  in  any  negotiations  that  might  take  place  for 
a  renewal  of  the  treaty.  The  British  Government  had  agreed, 
and  appointed  the  Inter-Colonial  Council  of  Trade.  The  Canadian 
Ministers  who  were  members  of  that  Council  were  the  Hon. 
Attorney- Generals  East  and  West,  Hon.  A.  T.  Gait  and  himself 
(Mr.  B.)  He  held  in  his  hand  the  resolutions  which  had  been 
agreed  upon  at  that  Council,  after  a  full  discussion,  which  it  was 
proper  he  should  read.  Mr.  Brown  read  resolutions  to  the  effect 
that  the  Colonies  were  satisfied  with  the  present  treaty,  but  willing 
to  enter  upon  a  new  one  upon  any  reasonable  basis  ;  that  in  any 
new  treaty  the  coasting  trade  should  be  included  j  and  in  case  of 
the  failure  to  negotiate  before  the  17th  March,  then  the  Imperial 
Government  should  be  appealed  to,  to  get  a  renewal  of  the  then 
existing  treaty  for  a  brief  period,  to  enable  negotiations  to  be 
carried  to  a  successful  issue.  These  resolutions  were  agreed  to  on 


316  CONFEDERATION. 

the  1 7th  September  last.  Shortly  after  that  time  the  departments 
were  removed  to  Ottawa,  the  cabinet  meetings  were  held  in  Mon- 
treal, so  that,  properly  speaking,  the  Government  had  no  abiding 
place.  On  the  17th  November  he  had  gone  to  the  Lower  Pro- 
vinces on  a  mission  connected  with  our  trade  relations,  and  shortly 
after  his  return  to  Toronto  he  had  been  surprised  to  see  in  the 
American  papers  a  statement  that  Messrs.  Gait  and  Howland, 
who  had  been  sent  on  a  mission  to  New  York  to  confer  with  the 
Internal  Revenue  Commissioners,  were  negotiating  with  the  Com- 
mittee of  Ways  and  Means  in  Washington.  He  thought  there 
surely  must  have  been  some  mistake,  as  no  authority  had  been 
given  our  delegation  to  make  any  propositions,  and  he  feared  that 
this  step  would  have  a  most  dangerous  effect  on  the  Lower  Pro- 
vinces, and  even  be  detrimental  to  the  prospects  of  confederation, 
as  indicating  that  Canada  desired  to  act  without  consulting  the 
other  governments  equally  concerned.  It  was  desirable  to  know 
exactly  what  had  taken  place,  and  though  he  had  no  doubt  his 
honourable  friend  had  acted  in  the  •  best  of  faith,  still  from  the 
course  pursued,  had  it  not  been  for  the  great  question  of  confede- 
ration, he  (Mr.  B.)  would  not  have  stayed  in  the  Government 
one  hour.  Mr.  B.  then  read  the  following  memorandum  : 

"  When  the  Council  met  at  Ottawa  on  the  13th  December  Mr. 
Gait  gave  a  full  narrative  of  his  proceedings  in  the  United  States, 
but  did  not  submit  it  to  writing.  I  asked  him  to  do  so,  but  he 
thought  it  unnecessary,  which  I  think  is  to  be  regretted,  He 
stated  that  he  met  the  Commissioners  at  New  York,  and  arranged 
with  them  that  they  should  report  to  their  Government  in  favour 
of  a  renewal  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty,  and  of  a  year's  extension 
of  the  existing  treaty,  to  enable  a  new  one  to  be  arranged  by  the 
Commissioners.  He  also  stated  that  he  had  agreed  with  them  for 
the  assimilation  of  duties  during  the  year,  so  as  to  prevent,  or  at 
least  render  unprofitable,  smuggling  on  the  border.  Mr.  Gait 
then  went  on  to  say  that  after  seeing  the  Commissioners  at  New 
York,  he  proceeded  to  Washington,  where  he  saw  Mr.  Seward 
and  Mr.  McCulloch.  He  said  both  were  very  friendly,  and  depre- 
cated any  interruption  to  our  commerce;  but  that  Mr.  Seward 
declared  no  new  treaty  could  be  made,  and  that  only  reciprocal 


CONFEDERATION.  317 

legislation  could  be  assented  to.  Mr.  Gait  said  he  combatted 
this  proposal,  and  shewed  the  difficulty  of  getting  all  the  Pro- 
vinces to  consent  to  reciprocal  legislation,  to  which  Mr.  Seward 
replied  that  he  did  not  care  about  the  Lower  Provinces,  it  was  an 
arrangement  with  Canada  he  wanted.  Mr.  Gait  said  he  urged 
that  the  fishery  question  could  not  be  arranged  except  by  treaty, 
to  which  Mr.  Seward  replied  that  he  did  not  care  about  the 
fisheries,  and  also  that  that  could  be  separately  arranged.  The 
result  was  that  Mr.  Gait  proceeded  to  discuss  with  Mr.  Seward 
and  Mr.  McCulloch  (separately,  I  understood)  the  arrangements 
possible  under  reciprocal  legislation.  He  suggested  to  them  that 
such  manufactures  of  the  two  countries,  as  the  United  States 
might  designate,  might  be  admitted  free,  provided  the  same 
articles  from  England  were  admitted  into  Canada  free.  He 
suggested  that  all  the  natural  products  of  the  two  countries 
should  be  admitted  free,  with  this  exception,  that  when  the 
Americans  impose  an  excise  duty  on  articles  made  or  grown  in 
their  country,  they  might  impose  an  equal  customs  duty  on  the 
same  articles  coming  in  from  Canada.  He  suggested  that  our 
inland  waters  and  canals  might  be  made  a  highway,  common  to 
both  countries,  and  maintained  at  the  joint  expense  of  both.  He 
suggested  that  the  customs  duties  on  foreign  merchandise  of  the 
two  countries  should  be  assimilated  as  far  as  possible,  and  when 
the  rate  of  duty  was  the  same  in  both  countries,  such  articles 
should  pass  free  from  country  to  country,  and  a  settlement  be 
made  between  the  governments  at  the  end  of  each  year,  on  a 
balance  of  accounts  from  the  customs  entries  on  the  lines.  Other 
suggestions  were  made  by  Mr.  Gait  equally  important,  and  all 
likely  to  cause  much  agitation  in  the  Provinces.  Mr.  Gait 
followed  up  his  narrative  by  proposing  that  a  minute  of  council 
be  adopted,  endorsing  what  he  had  done,  and  authorising  him  to 
proceed  to  Washington  and  continue  his  negotiations.  A  discus- 
sion of  several  days  followed.  I  contended  that  Mr.  Gait  had  no 
authority  for  going  on  to  Washington,  and  had  acted  most 
indiscreetly  in  making  such  suggestions,  even  on  his  own  personal 
responsibility.  That  what  he  had  done  was  in  direct  opposition 
to  the  deliberate  decision  of  the  Government  •  and  Confederate 


318  CONFEDERATION. 

Council,  and  calculated  to  be  most  seriously  injurious  to  us  in  tlie 
coming  negotiations,  I  contended  that  even  had  Mr.  Gait  full 
authority  for  going  to  Washington,  and  had  the  council  not 
previously  determined  the  line  of  discussion  to  be  then  adopted, 
the  action  taken  was  worse  than  folly.  Mr.  Gait  had  flung  at  the 
heads  of  the  Americans  every  concession  that  we  had  in  our 
power  to  make,  and  some  that  we  certainly  could  not  make,  so 
that  our  case  was  foreclosed  before  the  commission  was  opened. 
Every  suggestion  he  had  made  would  be  regarded  as  a  boon 
we  were  seeking,  and  our  eagerness  in  making  them  would 
convince  the  Americans  more  than  ever  that  we  were,  and 
that  we  thought  ourselves,  at  their  mercy.  But  I  went  on 
to  contend  that  the  worst  part  of  the  matter  was  that  all 
these  sacrifices  were  to  be  made  to  secure  "  Reciprocal 
Legislation,"  that  is,  an  Act  of  Congress  and  an  Act  of 
the  Canadian  Legislature  which  either  might  repeal  at  any 
moment.  I  pointed  out  the  astuteness  of  these  suggestions  on 
the  part  of  the  United  States  Government — that  it  simply  meant 
an  arrangement  by  which  the  Americans  could  get  over  their 
present  difficulties  and  have  our  aid  in  collecting  their  revenues — 
the  one  sole  thing  they  were  then  bent  on,  and  after  that  hold 
our  people  dangling  from  year  to  year  on  the  Legislation  of  the 
American  Congress,  looking  to  Washington  instead  of  Ottawa  as 
the  controller  of  their  commerce  and  prosperity, — knowing,  as  I 
well  did,  the  determination  of  the  leading  United  States  public 
men  to  absorb  the  Provinces  into  the  Union,  I  pointed  out  how 
admirably  this  scheme  was  designed  to  attain  their  end,  and  what 
a  position  we  would  be  in,  with  the  public  mind  excited  before 
each  meeting  of  Congress  by  articles  in  the  United  States  press, 
threatening  ruin  to  our  trade — and  resolutions  proposed  in  Congress 
by  protectionist  members.  I  also  pointed  out  the  effect  all  this 
would  have  on  the  Lower  Provinces.  Here  had  Mr.  Gait  been 
settling  the  basis  of  a  new  treaty  without  one  word  of  communi- 
cation with  the  sister  colonies,  nay,  in  direct  opposition  to  what 
they  had  determined  was  the  best  course  to  pursue.  I  told  my 
colleagues  what  had  been  done  by  the  Confederate  Council,  that 
I  was  bound  in  honour  to  stand  by  the  course  taken  by,  and  the 


CONFEDERATION.  319 

promises  made  to,  the  members  of  the  Confederate  Council.  I 
expressed  my  fear  that  great  offence  would  be  taken  if  Mr.  Gait's 
proposal  was  persisted  in,  and  that  result  might  be  the  loss  of 
Confederation  as  well  as  Reciprocity.  I  stated  that  I  could  not 
be  responsible  for  Mr.  Gait's  proposed  order  in  Council,  and  for 
his  continuing  the  negotiations  alone,  and  if  it  were  insisted  on  I 
must  leave  the  Government.  I  was  asked  to  state  what  course 
I  suggested.  I  said — treat  Mr.  Gait's  proceedings  at  Washington 
as  unofficial,  call  the  Confederate  Council  together  and  at  once  by 
telegraph,  and  commence  anew.  Make  a  dead  set  to  have  this 
reciprocal  legislation  idea  upset  before  proceeding  with  the  dis- 
cussion, and  if  you  fail  after  every  exertion  has  been  made  to 
restore  the  proposal  for  a  treaty,  then,  before  breaking  off  all 
negotiations,  ascertain  the  conditions  proposed,  for  the  purpose  of 
seeing  whether  all  the  present  advantages  of  our  position  should 
be  sacrificed  for  a  boon  dependent  from  day  to  day  on  American 
whim.  I  endeavoured  earnestly  to  impress  my  colleagues  with 
the  dangerous  nature  of  this  reciprocal  legislation.  I  pointed  out 
that,  until  Mr.  Gait  met  Mr.  Seward,  such  an  idea  had  never 
been  broached  by  any  one.  I  pointed  out  also  that,  apart  from 
its  political  effect,  no  extension  of  the  scope  of  the  treaty  would 
be  worth  much  that  was  capable  of  repeal  at  any  moment.  Who 
would  put  his  money  in  any  enterprise  that  might  be  knocked  on 
the  head  at  a  month's  notice.  I  also  reminded  them  that  even  in 
the  United  States  those  friendly  to  Reciprocity,  and  who  were  striv- 
ing for  its  renewal,  would  be  equally  dissatisfied  with  us  at  such  an 
unreliable  arrangement.  At  last  Mr.  Gait,  after  consulting  with 
others,  made  a  suggestion  for  a  compromise.  He  consented  that 
his  proceedings  at  Washington  should  be  treated  as  unofficial,  that 
no  order  in  Council  be  passed  on  the  subject,  and  that  he  and 
Mr.  Howland,  be  sent  down  to  Washington  to  secure  a  treaty  if 
they  could,  but,  if  not,  to  find  the  best  terms  that  could  be  got, 
and  report  to  the  Government  without  delay,  for  their  approval. 
I  replied  that  I  quite  understood  this  as  intended  to  strike  my 
name  from  the  Confederate  Council  of  trade,  and  place  Mr. 
Rowland's  in  lieu  of  it,  that  I  would  not  011  that  account  object 
to  the  proposal,  but  accept  the  compromise.  I  supposed  the  matter 


320  CONFEDERATION. 

settled,  but  Mr.  Gait  then  proposed  that  a  second  draft  minute  he 
had  placed  before  the  Council  should  be  adopted.  I  said  I 
thought  no  minute  whatever  was  to  be  passed,  and  on  his  reading 
what  he  proposed  now  to  be  adopted,  it  appeared  that  the 
document  referred  to  Mr.  Gait's  mission  to  Washington,  endorsed 
his  policy,  and,  instead  of  calling  the  Confederate  Council  to- 
gether, ordered  that  an  intimation  of  what  had  been  done,  and 
what  was  proposed  to  be  done,  should  be  sent  to  the  Governments 
of  the  Lower  Provinces,  so  that  they  might  if  they  chose  send 
representatives  to  Washington.  On  pointing  out  these  objections 
a  clause  was  added  intimating  that  a  meeting  of  the  Confederate 
Council  would  be  held  when  Messrs.  Gait  and  Howland  re- 
turned from  Washington.  He  (Mr.  B.)  had  not  been  able 
to  read  the  first  memorandum,  though  he  had  applied  for 
it,  but  could  not  get  it,  that  was  the  reason  why  the  ex- 
planations had  not  been  given  yesterday,  and  not  as  stated 
in  one  of  the  papers,  that  he  required  time  to  refresh  his 
memory.  Had  both  minutes  been  withdrawn  he  would  have 
been  satisfied,  but  as  only  one  was  withdrawn  and  the  other 
being  substantially  the  same,  he  could  not  consent  to  undertake 
the  responsibility  involved  in  agreeing  to  substitute  reciprocal 
legislation  for  the  provisions  of  a  treaty.  The  Secretary  of  the 
Treasury  had  more  than  a  week  to  prepare  his  report,  after  his 
conference  with  our  Finance  Minister,  and  even  in  that  report  the 
objection  of  the  treaty  .  being  unconstitutional,  was  not  so 
decidedly  put  as  in  Mr.  Gait's  report.  The  Secretary  only  said 
there  were  grave  doubts  whether  such  treaties  were  not  uncon- 
stitutional, as  infringing  the  rights  of  Congress  to  legislate,on  all 
matters  of  commerce,  and  he  (Mr.  B.)  was  surprised  that  his 
honourable  friend  should  have  fallen  in  with  such  an  absurd 
proposition.  It  was  a  mere  delusion -to  suppose  that  there  could 
have  been  any  constitutional  objection  to  the  treaty,  because  the 
United  States  had  made  twenty  treaties  of  a  similar  import  since 
the  one  of  1854.  Having  fully  considered  this  matter,  and 
having  viewed  it  in  the  light  of  an  improper  concession  to  the 
United  States,  being  of  opinion  that  the  Minister  of  Finance  was 
not  authorised  to  proceed  to  Washington,  and  offer  terms  on 


CONFEDERATION.  321 

behalf  of  Canada,  and  believing  that  reciprocal  legislation  would 
be  no  rightful  substitute  for  the  treaty,  he  had  come  to  the 
conclusion  that  it  was  his  duty  to  resign  his  position  in  the 
Government.  Having  decided  upon  this  step,  he  then  considered 
how  he  should  carry  it  out.  There  were  two  ways,  one  to  place 
his  resignation  at  once  in  the  hands  of  the  leader  of  the  Govern- 
ment, the  other  to  wait  upon  the  administrator  of  the  Govern- 
ment. He,  considering  the  peculiar  circumstances  under  which 
he  had  entered  the  Government,  considered  it  his  duty  to  adopt 
the  latter  course,  and  lest  there  should  have  been  any  appearance 
of  discourtesy  to  his  friend  at  the  head  of  the  Government,  he  at 
once  sent  his  resignation  to  the  Premier.  His  Excellency  the 
administrator  had  received  him  with  great  kindness,  indeed  he 
would  never  forget  the  consideration  extended  him  on  that 
occasion.  After  explaining  the  whole  matter,  the  administrator 
said,  '  Then,  Mr.  Brown,  I  am  called  upon  to  decide  between  your 
policy  and  that  of  the  other  members  of  the  Government.'  He 
(Mr.  B.)  replied,  '  Yes,  sir,  and  if  I  am  allowed  to  give  advice  in 
the  matter,  I  should  say  that  the  Government  ought  to  be  sus- 
tained, though  the  decision  is  against  myself.  I  consider  the 
great  question  of  confederation  as  of  far  greater  consequence  to 
this  country  than  reciprocity  negotiations.  My  resignation  may 
aid  in  preventing  their  policy  on  the  reciprocity  question  from 
being  carried  out,  or  at  least  call  forth  a  full  expression  of  public 
opinion  on  the  subject,  and  the  Government  should  be  sustained 
if  wrong  in  this  for  the  sake  of  confederation.'  Mr.  Brown 
continued  that  he  was  as  much  in  favour  of  a  renewal  of  the 
reciprocity  treaty  as  any  other  member  of  the  House,  but  he 
wanted  a  fair  treaty ;  and  they  should  not  overlook  the  fact, 
while  admitting  its  benefits,  that  the  treaty  was  attended  with 
some  disadvantages  to  us.  He  contended  that  we  should  not 
have  gone  to  Washington  as  suitors  for  any  terms  they  were 
pleased  to  give  us.  We  were  satisfied  with  the  treaty,  and  the 
American  Government  should  have  come  to  us  with  a  proposition 
since  they,  not  we,  desired  a  change.  There  was  something  in 
building  up  a  great  country  besides  mere  commercial  advantages, 
and  he  did  not  desire  that  by  a  system  of  reciprocal  legislation 
Canada  should  be  bound  to  sail  in  the  wake  of  Washington. 


322  CONFEDERATION. 

Hon.  Mr.  Gait,  after  complimenting  Mr.  Brown  on  the  temper 
of  his  explanations,  said  that  he,  too,  would  endeavour  to  refrain 
from  the  use  of  any  word  which  could  provoke  acrimonious  discus- 
sion. He  would  have  been  glad  if  there  had  been  no  necessity  for 
him  to  add  a  single  word  to  the  explanations  of  Mr.  Macdonald, 
but  Mr.  Brown  had  represented  him  (Mr.  Gait)  as  acting  without 
authority  in  his  first  visit  to  Washington.  The  fact  was  that  Mr. 
Brown  had  left,  after  some  preliminary  discussion,  for  the  Lower 
Provinces  ;  and  on  subsequent  days,  in  council,  he  had  received 
the  sanction  of  all  his  colleagues  to  the  course  adopted,  and  had 
been  authorized,  at  the  same  time,  to  proceed  to  Washington  to 
lay  papers  respecting  the  threatened  Fenian  invasion  before  Sir 
F.  Bruce.  In  his  interviews  there  with  the  Secretaries  of  State 
and  Treasury  he  had  not  presumed  to  speak  as  authorized  by  the 
Canadian  Government  to  propose  any  definite  line  of  policy.  He 
had  only  endeavoured  to  ascertain  what  was  the  practicable  method 
of  obtaining  the  advantages  of  continued  commercial  intercourse. 
He  would  not  follow  the  honourable  member  in  the  discussion  of 
of  the  policy  actually  adopted  and  pursued  by  the  Government ; 
that  would  probably  be  brought  up  by  itself  apart  from  mere  per- 
sonal issue  ;  but  for  himself  he  would  only  say  that  in  the  course 
taken  he  and  his  colleagues  had  sincerely  at  heart  a  desire  to  secure 
for  the  people  of  Canada  the  benefits  derivable  from  unfettered 
commercial  intercourse  with  the  United  States.  In  respect  of  the 
proposal  to  proceed  by  legislation,  mutually  agreed  upon,  instead 
of  by  treaty,  there  was  a  good  deal  to  be  said  in  its  favour.  A 
treaty  must  have  been  negotiated  for  a  term  of  years  ;  and  to 
settle  the  basis  of  a  treaty  now  in  1866,  with  the  burthens  of  a 
recent  war  pressing  on  the  United  States  government,  and  pre- 
venting them  from  acting  with  liberality,  and  agreeing  that  it 
should  continue  in  force  until  1876,  would  be  a  most  disadvan- 
tageous manner  of  proceeding.  Legislation  on  the  subject  would 
be  as  much  under  our  control  as  under  that  of  the  Congress  of  the 
United  States.  We  could  change  ours  at  any  time  as  well  as 
they,  adapting  on  both  sides  year  by  year  to  changing  circum- 
stances, till  the  United  States  again  found  themselves  in  a  position 
to  grant  as  liberal  terms  as  in  1854.  In  regard,  therefore,  to  this 


CONFEDERATION.  323 

basis  they  had  not  sacrificed  or  offered  to  sacrifice  any  of  the  in- 
terests or  independence  of  Canada ;  and  as  for  looking  to  Wash- 
ington, or  subjecting  the  country  to  "Washington  influences,  if  his 
colleagues  or  himself  could  have  been  weak  or  base  enough  to 
entertain  any  such  designs  as  hinted  at,  the  country  had  in  the 
last  few  weeks  shown  unmistakably  what  their  will  was  in  this 
regard.  The  people  had  spoken  in  a  manner  no  Ministry  could 
misunderstand  or  venture  to  disregard.  One  more  matter  of  a 
personal  nature  :  the  honourable  gentleman  had  complained  that 
he  had  not  been  furnished  with  the  memorandum  submitted  by 
him.  Now,  that  had  been  rejected  at  the  instance  of  the  honour- 
able member  himself.  He  (Mr.  Gait)  withdrew  it,  and  it  ceased 
to  be  a  public  document.  It  did  not  belong  to  the  Executive 
Council,  but  to  him  (Mr.  Gait).  Yet,  lest  it  might  be  thought 
there  was  anything  in  it  which  he  had  an  interest  to  conceal  from 
the  Council,  he  would  himself  read  it  to  the  House  : 

'  The  Minister  of  Finance  has  the  honour  to  submit  for  the  con 
sideration  of  his  colleagues  in  the  Government,  that  the  approach 
of  the  period  when,  under  the  notice  given,  the  Reciprocity  Treaty 
will  expire,  renders  it  necessary  to  consider  the  steps  necessary  to 
be  taken  to  procure  such  an  extension  of  the  notice  from  the 
Government  of  the  United  States,  as  will  afford  time  for  fully 
considering  and  arranging  the  best  mode  for  establishing  perma- 
nent regulations  for  the  trade,  navigation  and  intercourse  between 
the  United  States  and  Canada,  under  the  circumstances,  and  with 
the  view  of  defining  the  general  limits  of  the  discussion  of  the 
question  of  reciprocity  with  the  American  authorities.  It  appears 
necessary  to  decide  upon  the  principles  by  which  the  Canadian 
Government  would  be  guided,  in  case  it  should  become  necessary 
to  proceed  by  concerted  legislation.  The  Minister  of  Finance, 
therefore,  respectfully  recommends  that  the  following  points  be 
now  settled  as  expressing  the  views  of  the  Administration  in 
regard  to  the  commercial  relations  of  Canada  with  the  United 
States ;  and  in  the  event  of  the  Government  of  the  United  States 
declining  to  make  a  treaty  of  commerce  with  Great  Britain  as 
regards  Canada  and  the  other  British  North  American  Provinces, 


324  CONFEDERATION. 

the  Canadian  Government  are  willing  to  endeavour  to  effect  such 
arrangements  by  concerted  legislation  as  will  establish  such  regu- 
lations as  it  may  agree  upon  to  adopt. 

1st.  Canada  would  be  willing  to  agree  to  the  reciprocal  inter- 
change of  the  natural  productions,  shipping  and  manufactures  of 
both  countries,  provided  she  were  not  required,  in  any  case,  to 
impose  differential  duties  in  favour  of  the  United  States. 

2nd.  Canada  would  be  willing  to  place  the  navigation  of  the 
great  lakes  and  the  St.  Lawrence  on  a  footing  of  perfect  equality, 
and  hereafter  to  consider  the  best  mode  of  perfecting  the  canals, 
so  as  to  afford  the  greatest  possible  facilities  to  the  trade  of  the 
west.  If  practicable,  the  coasting  trade  of  the  two  countries 
should  be  made  reciprocal,  and  the  regulations  for  the  transit 
trade  made  permanent  and  satisfactory. 

3rd.  With  the  view  of  preventing  illicit  trade,  Canada  would 
be  willing  to  agree  upon  the  assimilation  of  the  excise  duties  upon 
spirits,  beer  and  tobacco,  and  of  the  customs  duties  upon  the  same 
and  cognate  articles.  She  would  also  willingly  consider  any  sug- 
gestion, by  the  United  States,  for  the  extension  of  such  assi- 
milation to  other  articles,  provided  the  settlement  of  the  whole 
commercial  relations  between  the  two  countries  be  made  upon  the 
principle  of  perfect  reciprocity,  and  the  greater  freedom  afforded 
to  the  citizens  of  both  countries  to  purchase  and  sell  in  the  mar- 
kets they  may  prefer. 

4th.  Canada  may  state  that  the  Maritime  Provinces  are  prepared 
to  unite  with  her  in  the  discussion  of  all  the  subjects  arising  out 
of  the  abrogation  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty,  and  she  therefore 
desires  that  the  negotiations  should  be  carried  on  with  Commis- 
sioners appointed  to  represent  the  several  Provinces.  But  as  such 
negotiations  could  not  possibly  be  completed  before  the  1 7th  March 
Canada  suggests  that  the  notice  for  the  abrogation  of  the  Treaty 
be  withdrawn,  pending  negotiations,  reserving,  however,  to  both 
countries  the  right  of  imposing  customs  duties  upon  any  or  all  of 
the  articles  enumerated  in  the  4th  section  of  the  treaty,  pro- 
vided the  same  do  not  exceed  the  duties  now  levied  by  the  Internal 
Revenue  Act  of  the  United  States  ;  or,  if  necessary,  Canada  would 
accept  a  declaration  from  the  United  States,  that  they  will  not 


CONFEDERATION.  325 

act  upon  the  notice  given  for  the  abrogation  of  the  treaty,  further 
than  to  impose  such  duties  as  aforesaid  upon  the  productions  of 
British  North  America,  and  will  not  consider  such  duties  as  incon- 
sistent with  the  reciprocity  provided  by  the  treaty,  which  shall  in 
all  other  respects  be  held  to  be  in  force. 

5th.  If  no  other  course  can  be  taken  for  obtaining  an  extension 
of  the  treaty,  the  Canadian  Government  are  prepared  to  recom- 
mend, at  the  next  session  of  Parliament,  the  enactment  of  such 
measures  as  may,  meantime,  be  agreed  upon  with  the  American 
Government,  provided  the  legislation  of  both  countries  be  made 
concurrent  and  reciprocal. 

(Signed)         A.  T.  GALT,  Minister  of  Finance.1 

"  Hon.  Mr.  Howland  said,  on 'Mr.  Brown's  resignation,  he  felt 
placed  in  a  position  of  peculiar  difficulty.  Had  he  consulted  his 
own  feelings  he  would  hare  followed  the  leader  of  his  party  out 
of  Government.  But  he  was  convinced  that  he  (Mr.  Brown)  was 
wrong  and  his  colleagues  right  in  the  course  taken.  Under  these 
circumstances,  seeing  that  coalition  had  been  formed  to  effect  a 
certain  great  object,  and  that  great  object  might  be  endangered  if 
coalition  were  altogether  dissolved,  he  had  to  call  his  political 
friends  together  at  Guelph,  and  afterwards  at  his  own  house  in 
Toronto,  and  they  decided  he  ought  to  remain  in.  In  the  first 
instance,  he  was  authorised  to  offer  a  seat  in  the  Cabinet  to  Mr. 
McKenzie,  who,  after  consultation  with  Mr.  Brown,  declined. 
This  place  was  then  offered  to  Mr.  Ferguson  Blair,  who  accepted. 
This  was  all  he  had  to  say,  for  he  felt  it  inexpedient  to  discuss 
apropos  of  these  personal  explanations — the  policy  of  the  Govern- 
ment respecting  reciprocity." 

No  further  explanations  were  made,  nor  was  any  action  after- 
wards taken  upon  the  subject. 

On  an  examination  of  Mr.  Brown's  speech,  we  find  the  reason 
assigned  for  his  resignation  was  the  policy  suggested  by  Mr.  Gait, 
with  reference  to  the  negotiations,  and  the  adoption  of  that  policy 
by  the  Government.  That  policy,  according  to  Mr.  Brown's 
statement,  was  embraced  in  two  draft  minutes  by  Mr.  Gait,  one 


326  CONFEDERATION. 

of  them,  he  says,  he  could  not  get.  It  was,  however,  subsequent- 
ly in.  the  debate  produced  by  Mr.  Gait,  and  for  the  sake  of 
elucidation  may  here  be  called  No.  1.  The  other  was  produced 
by  Sir  N.  F.  Belleau,  in.  the  Legislative  Council,  and  for  the  same 
reason  may  here  be  called  No.  2. 

No.  1  was  abandoned  by  consent  and  withdrawn.  No.  2,  Mr. 
Gait  afterwards  proposed,  should  be  adopted,  and  on  an  objection 
made  by  Mr.  Brown,  a  clause  suggested  by  him  was  added. 

Mr.  Brown  then  says :  "  Had  both  minutes  been  withdrawn 
he  would  have  been  satisfied,  but  as  only  one  was  withdrawn  and 
the  other  being  substantially  the  same,  he  could  not  consent  to 
take  the  responsibility  involved  in  agreeing  to  substitute  recipro- 
cal legislation  for  the  provisions  of  a  treaty." 

First,  then — Were  the  two  substantially  the  same  1 

Secondly — Was  any  proposition  to  substitute  legislation  for 
treaty  adopted  by  the  Government  ] 

In  No.  1,  Mr.  Gait  Suggested  for  the  consideration  of  his 
colleagues  certain  points  as  guides  in  case  a  treaty  could  not  be 
obtained,  and  concerted  legislation  became  necessary. 

1st.  A  reciprocal  interchange  of  the  natural  productions,  ship- 
ping and  manufactures  of  both  countries,  provided  Canada  was  in 
no  case  required  to  impose  differentia]  duties  in  favour  of  the 
United  States. 

2nd.  To  place  the  navigation  of  the  great  lakes  and  the  St. 
Lawrence  on  a  footing  of  perfect  equality  and  afterwards  to 
consider  the  best  mode  of  perfecting  the  canals.  The  coasting 
trade  to  be  made  reciprocal,  and  the  negotiations  for  the  transit 
trade  permanent  and  satisfactory. 

3rd.  An  assimilation  of  Excise  duty  on  certain  named  articles, 
and  a  readiness  to  consider  the  extension  of  such  assimilation  to 
other  articles  provided  it  was  on  a  reciprocal  footing. 

4th.  That  Commissioners  from  the  other  Provinces  should  be 
included  in  the  negotiations  and  that  the  notice  for  the  termina- 
tion of  the  treaty  be  withdrawn,  pending  negotiations  reserving 
the  right  to  each  country  of  imposing  duties  on  the  articles  in  the 
free  list,  &c. 


CONFEDERATION.  327 

111  minute  No.  2,  after  pointing  out  that  certain  rights  must  be 
the  subject  of  treaty,  and  others  may  be  the  subject  of  concerted 
legislation  and  that  if  the  United  States  Government  adhered  to 
their  position,  viz.  :  "  that  such  a  treaty  on  their  part  was  con- 
stitutional," there  was  not  time  to  consider  the  question  before  the 
1 7th  March,  and  that  in  view  of  the  proposed  Confederation  of  the 
Provinces,  it  would  be  better  to  defer  any  legislation,  assuming  it 
was  necessary.  He  recommended 

1st.  A  proposal  for  the  continuance  of  the  existing  treaty  for 
an  agreed  period  for  the  purpose  of  negotiation  and  that  two 
members  of  Council  be  sent  to  Washington  therefor. 

2nd.  That  the  proposed  steps  be  communicated  to  the  Govern- 
ments of  the  Maritime  Provinces ;  and  that  they  be  informed  that 
it  was  not  the  intention  of  the  Canadian  Government  to  depart 
from  the  course  proposed  by  the  Confederate  Council  on  Commer- 
cial Treaties,  but,  solely  in  view  of  the  vast  interests  in  Canada 
that  would  be  affected  by  the  treaty,  to  obtain  delay,  with  the 
intention  of  considering  with  the  sister  Provinces  any  suggestions 
made  by  the  United  States ;  and  that  the  Maritime  Provinces  be 
requested  to  send  representatives  to  Washington ;  and  that  a 
meeting  of  the  Confederate  Council  on  Commercial  Treaties  should 
be  held  at  Ottawa  as  soon  as  circumstances  would  warrant,  founded 
upon  the  information  to  be  received  from  Washington  as  to  .the 
probable  extension  or  final  abrogation  of  the  treaty. 

Throughout  No.  1,  the  adoption  of  concerted  legislation  was 
only  a  dernier  resort,  and  in  no  case  does  Mr.  Gait  propose  to 
substitute  it  in  place  of  a  treaty,  if  a  treaty  could  be  obtained ; 
but  if  no  treaty  could  be  obtained,  then  he  names  certain  points  to 
be  considered.  But  that  minute  was  never  adopted  by  the  Govern- 
ment, and  was,  by  consent  of  Mr.  Brown  and  Mr.  Gait,  withdrawn. 

In  No.  2,  while  the  possibility  of  having  ultimately  to  deal  with 
the  question  by  concerted  legislation  is  referred  to,  the  substantive, 
proposition  is  to  obtain  an  extension  of  time  for  the  purpose  of 
considering  with  the  sister  Provinces  any  suggestion  made  by  the 
United  States ;  and  the  reiteration  is  clearly  made,  of  the  deter- 
mination of  the  Canadian  Government  "not  to  depart  from 
the  course  proposed  by  the  Confederate  Council  on  Commercial 


328  CONFEDERATION. 

Treaties;"  which  course,  Mr.  Brown  states,  had  been  agreed  upon 
by  the  Council  when  he  was  a  member,  and  to  which  lie  was  a 
party,  and  which,  it  must  be  remembered,  contemplated  nothing 
but  a  treaty.  Thus  the  two  minutes  are  not  substantially  the 
same. 

In  Sir  F.  1ST.  Belleau's  explanation,  in  the  Legislative  Council, 
he  states,  "  A  discussion  took  place  on  this  minute  (No.  2),  and  it 
was  the  contemplated  adoption  of  this  minute,  to  which  Mr.  Brown 
objected,  and  announced  his  determination  of  resigning,  and  on  its 
adoption  did  resign." 

While,  therefore,  Mr.  Brown  was  right  in  his  abstract  proposi- 
tion, that  legislation  for  such  a  purpose  was  not  as  good  as  a 
treaty,  he  was  wrong  it  is  considered  in  its  application  at  that  time, 
because  it  was  not  proposed.     The  minute  of  Council  which  was 
proposed  to  be  adopted,  and  which  would  be  the  guide  to  the 
instructions  the  Government  would  give  the  delegates,  would  not 
authorize  them  to  agree  to  legislation.     They  were  to  obtain  a 
renewal,  or  an  extension  of  time.     If  they  could  not,  and  legis- 
lation only  was  offered,  it  would  be  very  proper  to  see  on  what 
terms  it  was  proposed  to  base  such  legislation — proper,  both  in  the 
interests  of  a  renewal  of  friendly  intercourse,  and  of  eventuating 
if  possible  in  some  arrangement  that  could  be  adopted,  or  in  ascer- 
taining the  terms  which  might  form  the  basis  of  a  treaty,  if  one 
could  ultimately  be  obtained,  and  to  report  the  same  accordingly. 
Indeed  Mr.  Brown  himself  said, — "  If  you  fail,  after  every  exertion 
has  been  made  to  restore  the  proposal  for  a  Treaty,  then  before 
breaking  off  all  negotiations,  ascertain  the  conditions  proposed,  for 
the  purpose  of  seeing  whether  all  the  present  advantages  of  our 
position  should  be  sacrificed  for  a  boon  dependent  from  day  to  day 
on  American  whim."     And  that  was  exactly  the  plan  the  nego- 
tiations assumed  at  Washington.     When  the  delegates  found  the 
authorities  would  not  hear  of  a  treaty,  they  submitted  a  basis  for 
the  desired  arrangements.     In  reply,  the  committee  of  ways  and 
means  submitted  theirs.     On  both  sides  both  propositions  were 
rejected,  and  the  delegates  reported  accordingly.     Had  they  ven- 
tured to  transcend  their  instructions,  Mr.  Brown's  position  in  the 
Cabinet  would  have  been  more  influential  to  prevent  the  wrong 


CONFEDERATION.  329 

the  Country  would  have  sustained,  than  leaving  it  at  the  time  he 
did.  Throughout  the  whole  official  correspondence,  or  the  public 
records,  nothing  can  be  found  to  justify  the  assertion  that  legis- 
lation in  lieu  of  a  treaty  was  to  be  accepted.  The  time  for  sub- 
mitting that  proposition  had  not  come,  and  never  did  come. 

No  other  explanations  on  the  subject  were  made  in  Parliament, 
and  the  conclusion  is  irresistible,  that  the  reason  assigned  for  the 
resignation  was  not  the  reason  which  existed.  Mr.  Brown's 
resignation  at  such  a  time,  when  confederation  was  about  to  be 
put  upon  its  trial,  and  when  the  great  measure  in  which  he  had 
taken  so  prominent  a  part,  required  the  aid  of  all  the  talents  and 
patriotism  and,  if  necessary,  self-abnegation  of  the  leading  men  in 
the  country,  cannot,  it  is  conceived,  be  justified.  He  himself  had 
said,  "that  the  appearance  of  disunion  in  the  Government  would 
be  injurious  to  the  cause  of  confederation."  Either  he  ought  not 
to  have  joined  the  Government,  or. he. ought  not  to  have  left  it  at 
that  time.  The  people  sustained  him  in  the  first,  they  condemned 
him  in  the  latter.  The  reason  he  gave  no  one  accepted  as  the 
real  reason,  and  his  opponents  did  not  hesitate  to  say  that  he  left 
the  Government  because  he  was  not  permitted  to  be  its  master, 
and  that  jealousy  of  its  other  leading  men  was  the  true  cause. 
Whether  it  was  so  or  not,  unfortunately — because  it  is  a  mis- 
fortune, when  a  political  man  of  high  standing  affords  even 
plausible  grounds  for  the  public  to  attribute  his  conduct,  in  the 
discharge  of  public  duties,  to  other  than  public  considerations, 
still  more  so  when  that  conduct  precludes  even  his  friends  from 
justifying  the  position  he  has  taken — Mr.  Brown's  subsequent 
conduct  gave  too  much  reason  for  the  charge.  His  endeavour 
from  that  time  to  revive  the  old  internecine  quarrels,  that  had 
existed  previous  to  the  coalition ;  to  renew  the  charges  of  corrup- 
tion against  his  old  opponents,  which,  if  true,  he  at  any  rate  had 
condoned,  by  going  into  the  Government  with  them ;  his  attacks 
upon  his  own  colleagues  of  the  Reform  party,  who  had  joined 
him  in  the  effort  for  conciliation,  because  they  would  not  follow 
him  in  his  flight ;  his  unceasing  attempts  to  blacken  the  personal 
character  of  the  men,  who  but  just  previously  had  been  his  col- 
leagues, and  joint  sworn  advisers  of  the  Crown  ;  his  efforts  to  sow 
22 


330  CONFEDERATION. 

disunion  among  the  friends  of  confederation,  and  divide  its  sup- 
porters into  old  party  lines  at  the  very  moment  it  needed  the 
greatest  consideration,  and  the  most  united  action ;  his  jeopar- 
dising a  great  national  question,  in  which  not  only  the  interests 
of  Canada  but  of  all  British  America  were  involved,  to  gratify 
personal  or  political  animosity  brought,  as  they  usually  do,  their 
own  punishment.  In  one  year  the  work  of  his  suicide  was 
accomplished.  At  the  elections  for  the  Dominion  Parliament  in 
1867  throughout  the  vast  Province  of  Ontario,  in  which  he  had 
been  wont  to  be  a  moving  power,  no  constituency  returned  him, 
though  a  candidate,  to  that  first  Parliament  of  the  confederation, 
in  which  it  had  been  expected  he  would  play  so  conspicuous  a 
part.  The  people  pronounced  him  to  be  an  impracticable  man, 
who  allowed  his  temper  to  over-ride  his  judgment.  A  powerful 
debater,  an  experienced  politician,  of  indomitable  energy,  in 
many  respects,  but  for  one  weakness,  great,  he  passed  away  from 
the  sphere  of  a  statesman,  and  destroyed  a  power  which,  wielded 
with  moderation,  might  have  been  of  incalculable  service  to  his 
country.  A  more  painful  episode  never  occurred  in  political  life. 
Requiescat  in  pace. 


[331] 


CHAPTER  X. 

Deputation  to  England — Defence — Imperial  policy  on  Confederation  after 
defeat  in  New  Brunswick — The  West  Indian  and  Brazilian  Commis- 
sion—  Instructions  —  Report  —  Imperial  Despatches — Relaxation  of  the 
rule  with  reference  to  the  Inter- Provincial  Trade  as  to  British  North 
America  — Constitutional  question — Gait — Macdougall — Difficulty  of 
dealing  with  the  West  Indies — Gait  on  Colonial  Taxation— Action  of 
the  Imperial  Government — Negotiations  in  1862  with  France — Remon- 
strance— Removal  of  Baron  Boilleau — Importance  of  Trade  question — 
Necessity  of  concession  to  Canada  by  the  Imperial  Government  to 
make  exceptional  reciprocal  arrangements  with  South  America,  and 
with  all  the  British  Colonies  wherever  situate — Changed  position  of 
Canada  —  Increased  responsibilities  necessitate  increased  powers — 
A.D.  1865. 

In  order  that  the  narrative  might  be  unbroken  on  subjects  of 
importance,  it  has  been  necessary  occasionally  to  omit  reference 
to  concurrent  circumstances  that  were  equally  bearing  on  Con- 
federation. It  has  been  already  mentioned  that  at  the  close  of 
the  session  in  1865  a  deputation  of  the  Canadian  Ministers  had 
been  sent  to  England  to  confer  with  the  Imperial  Government  on 
the  questions  then  agitating  the  country.  The  position  was  at  this 
time  critical.  The  American  civil  war  had  virtually  closed ;  but 
the  irritation  engendered  towards  Canada  and  Great  Britain 
during  its  progress  continued.  The  American  Government  still 
enforced  the  Passport  system,  and  had  given  notice  to  the  British 
Government  both  for  the  termination  of  the  Reciprocity  Treaty, 
and  of  the  Convention  restricting  the  naval  armament  on  the 
lakes.  The  proposal  for  Confederation,  which  it  was  urged  would 
tend  to  consolidate  and  strengthen  the  Provinces  for  the  purposes 
of  defence  had  been  rejected  in  New  Brunswick  on  an  appeal  to 
the  people,  in  the  spring  of  1865,  and  its  advocates  signally 
defeated.  The  whole  line  of  frontier  from  Windsor  in  Upper 
Canada  to  St.  Andrew's,  in  New  Brunswick,  was  threatened 
with  invasion  by  lawless  Fenian  marauders.  The  rapid  disband- 
ment  of  the  American  army  was  casting  loose  a  body  of  reckless 
adventurers  whose  desire  was  plunder,  and  whose  consequent 


332  CONFEDERATION. 

object  was  to  embroil  the  two  countries.  Even  the  well  regulated 
classes  of  the  American  citizens  were  callous  or  indifferent.  The 
abnormal  excitement  resulting  from  their  long  war  had  not  yet 
subsided,  and  though  they  could  not  exactly  approve  of  the  act, 
they  did  not  regret  to  see  the  Canadians  or  the  British  Govern- 
ment worried  at  the  prospect  of  invasion  or  International  trouble. 
It  was  to  them  a  species  of  inexpensive  revenge.  All  this  tended 
to  create  a  sense  of  insecurity.  The  uncertainty  was  almost 
worse  than  the  actual  conflict  would  be. 

When,  therefore,  this  deputation  went  to  England,  the  question^ 
what  share  the  latter  was  going  to  take  in  defending  the  country 
was  a  serious  one.  Three  important  points  were  to  be  discussed. 

First.  The  proposed  Confederation,  and  by  what  means  it  could 
most  speedily  be  effected. 

Secondly.  The  arrangements  necessary  for  the  defence  of  Canada 
in  the  event  of  war  with  the  United  States,  and  the  extent  to 
which  the  same  should  be  shared  between  Great  Britain  and 
Canada. 

Thirdly.  The  steps  to  be  taken  with  reference  to  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty,  and  the  rights  conferred  by  it  upon  the  United  States. 

The  Deputation  did  their  duty  well.  The  third  point  has 
already  been  disposed  of.  Sir  Frederick  Bruce,  Her  Majesty's 
Minister  at  Washington,  was  instructed  to  negotiate  for  a  renewal 
of  the  treaty,  and  act  in  concert  with  the  Government  of  Canada. 
What  took  place  has  been  stated. 

On  the  second  point,  we  learn  from  the  report  made  by  the 
Deputation  to  the  Governor-General,  on  their  return,  in  July, 
1865,  that  after  much  discussion  with  the  Imperial  Government, 
the  result  arrived  at  was,  "  that  if  the  people  of  Canada  under- 
took the  works  of  defence  at  and  west  of  Montreal,  and  agreed  to 
expend,  in  training  their  militia,  until  the  union  of  all  the  Pro- 
vinces was  determined,  a  sum  not  less  than  is  now  expended 
annually  for  that  service,  Her  Majesty's  Government  would  com- 
plete the  fortifications  at  Quebec,  provide  the  whole  armament 
for  all  the  works,  guarantee  a  loan  for  the  works  undertaken  by 
Canada,  and,  in  the  event  of  war,  undertake  the  defence  of  every 
portion  of  Canada  with  all  the  resources  of  the  Empire." 


CONFEDERATION.  333 

The  annual  expenditure  on  the  militia  had  been  that  year  raised 
from  $300,000  to  $1,000,000  ;  and  a  report  on  the  whole  subject 
of  the  defence  of  Canada,  with  plans  and  estimates  by  the  highest 
military  and  naval  authorities,  had  been  asked  for,  and  confiden- 
tially communicated  to  the  Canadian  Ministers,  which  was  calcu- 
lated to  remove  all  doubt  as  to  the  capability  of  defending  Canada, 
so  long  as  the  people  remained  attached  to  the  British  flag,  and  the 
power  of  England  was  wielded  in  their  defence. 

Thus  satisfactorily  was  this  matter  arranged ;  but  the  necessary 
legislation  of  the  Imperial  and  Provincial  Parliaments,  and  the 
further  consideration  of  the  defensive  works,  was  postponed  for 
the  action  of  the  Government  and  Legislature  of  the  proposed 
Confederation ;  the  Imperial  Government  stating,  however,  at  the 
same  time,  that  they  should  prosecute  with  despatch  the  works  for 
the  improvement  of  the  fortifications  at  Quebec,  for  which  they 
had  obtained  a  grant,  and  which  had  already  been  commenced. 

On  the  third  point,  Her  Majesty's  Government  gave  the  assur- 
ance, that  it  would  urge  every  legitimate  means  for  securing  the 
early  assent  of  the  Maritime  Provinces  to  the  union,  and  also 
renewed  the  promise  of  the  Imperial  guarantee  for  the  construction 
of  the  Intercolonial  road.  It  is  unnecessary  to  observe  that  the 
idea  of  coercion  towards  the  Maritime  Provinces  was  not  for  a 
moment  entertained  by  any  party.  The  Secretary  of  State  enclosed 
to  the  Governor-General  a  copy  of  the  following  despatch,  which 
he  had  already  transmitted  to  the  Lieutenant-Govemor  of  New 
Brunswick,  as  indicative  of  the  policy  and  wishes  of  Her  Majesty's 
Government : — 

DOWNING  STREET,  24th  June,  1865. 

SIR, — I  have  the  honour  to  transmit  to  you  the  copy  of  a 
correspondence  between  Viscount  Monck  and  myself,  on  the  affairs 
of  British  North  America,  which  have  lately  formed  the  subject 
of  conferences  between  Her  Majesty's  Government  and  a  Deputa- 
tion from  the  Canadian  Government. 

This  correspondence  having  been  presented  to  both  Houses  of 
the  Imperial  Parliament  by  command  of  Her  Majesty,  I  have  to 
direct  you  to  communicate  it  also  to  the  Legislature  of  New 
Brunswick,  at  its  next  meeting. 


334  CONFEDERATION. 

You  will  at  the  same  time  express  the  strong  and  deliberate 
opinion  of  Her  Majesty's  Government,  that  it  is  an  object  much 
to  be  desired,  that  all  the  British  North  American  Colonies  should 
agree  to  unite  in  one  Government.  In  the  territorial  extent  of 
Canada,  and  in  the  maritime  and  commercial  enterprise  of  the 
Lower  Provinces,  Her  Majesty's  Government  see  the  elements  of 
power,  which  only  require  to  be  combined  in  order  to  secure  for 
the  Province  which  shall  possess  them  all,  a  place  amongst  the 
most  considerable  communities  of  the  world.  In  the  spirit  of 
loyalty  to  the  British  Crown,  of  attachment  to  British  connection, 
and  of  love  for  British  institutions,  by  which  all  the  Provinces  are 
animated  alike,  Her  Majesty's  Government  recognize  the  bond  by 
which  all  may  be  combined  under  one  Government.  Such  an 
union  seems  to  Her  Majesty's  Government  to  recommend  itself  to 
the  Provinces  on  many  grounds  of  moral  and  material  advantage, 
as  giving  a  well-founded  prospect  of  improved  administration  and 
increased  prosperity.  But  there  is  one  consideration  which  Her 
Majesty's  Government  feel  it  more  especially  their  duty  to  press 
upon  the  Legislature  of  New  Brunswick.  Looking  to  the  deter- 
mination which  this  country  has  ever  exhibited,  to  regard  the 
defence  of  the  Colonies  as  a  matter  of  Imperial  concern,  the  Colo- 
nies must  recognize  a  right  and  even  acknowledge  an  obligation 
incumbent  on  the  home  Government  to  urge  with  earnestness  and 
just  authority  the  measures  which  they  consider  to  be  most  expe- 
dient on  the  part  of  the  Colonies  with  a  view  to  their  own  defence. 
Nor  can  it  be  doubful  that  the  Provinces  of  British  North  America 
are  incapable,  when  separated  and  divided  from  each  other,  of 
making  those  just  and  sufficient  preparations  for  national  defence, 
which  would  be  easily  undertaken  by  a  Province  uniting  in  itself 
all  the  population  and  all  the  resources  of  the  whole. 

I  am  aware  that  this  project,  so  novel  as  well  as  so  important, 
has  not  been  at  once  accepted  in  New  Brunswick  with  that  cordi- 
ality which  has  marked  its  acceptance  by  the  Legislature  of  Canada; 
but  Her  Majesty's  Government  trust  that  after  a  full  and  careful 
examination  of  the  subject  in  all  its  bearings,  the  Maritime  Pro- 
vinces will  perceive  the  great  advantages  which,  in  the  opinion  of 


CONFEDERATION.  335 

Her  Majesty's  Government,  the  proposed  union  is  calculated  to 

confer  upon  them  all. 

I  have,  &c., 

(Signed)  EDWARD  CARD  WELL. 

To  His  Excellency  the  Lieut.  Governor  of  New  Brunswick. 

Plain  and  simple  as  this  dispatch  was,  fair  and  creditable  as  it 
seemed  to  the  British  Government,  the  enemies  of  confederation 
denounced  it  in  the  strongest  terms.  In  every  line  they  saw  a 
covert  meaning.  It  was  an  instruction  that  the  saleable  were  to 
be  bought,  the  obstructive  to  be  removed ;  that  the  British 
Government  wanted  confederation  for  the  purpose  of  getting  rid 
of  the  Provinces,  and  whatever  the  means  that  might  be  neces- 
sary they  must  be  adopted.  Roman  traditions  were  invoked, 
— Tarquin  and  the  poppies  revived, — and  the  dispatch  itself  sar- 
castically translated  : — 

"  Hoc  Ithacus  velit  et  magno  mercenter  Atreidoe." 

During  the  summer  the  Lieutenant-Governor  of  New  Bruns- 
wick went  to  England  an  anti-confederate.  Like  good  Madeira, 
mellowed  by  the  voyage,  in  the  autumn  he  returned  a  ripened 
confederate.  Dissensions  broke  out  in  his  council, — new  trade 
revelations  were  discovered, — a  modern  Ulysses  whispered  behind 
the  throne, — and  it  was  gravely  said  that  the  back  stairs  days  of 
George  the  Third  had  come  again,  though  responsible  Govern- 
ment had  been  conceded  to  the  Province. 

From  Nova  Scotia  Sir  Richard  Graves  Macdonnell,  an  anti- 
confederate,  was  promoted  to  Hong  Kong,  and  Sir  Fenwick 
Williams  of  Kars,  a  gallant  soldier,  who  could  hold  a  fortress,  or 
carry  a  Province,  was  sent  out  to  his  native  land  to  tell  his 
countrymen  that  confederation  was  for  their  good,— and  he  did  it. 

The  British  Government  in  expressing  its  wishes  in  favour  of 
confederation,  and  in  instructing  the  Lieutenant-Governors,  their 
own  Imperial  officers,  to  aid  the  movement,  and  afford  the  people 
of  the  country  every  opportunity  of  constitutionally  expressing 
their  wishes  and  opinions  on  the  point,  acted  legitimately,  as  the 
confederates  contended,  and  should  not  in  any  way  be  held 
responsible  for  the  means  adopted  by  local  politicians  to  attain 


336  CONFEDERATION. 

the  same  end.  The  anti-confederates  on  the  contrary  contended, 
that  such  influences,  however  legitimate,  were  not  fairly  used, 
that  the  self  interested  motives  of  local  parties  tainted  the  whole 
measure,  and  stamped  it  as  one  for  personal  aggrandisement,  and 
not  for  the  general  good.  Grave  as  these  charges  were  the 
consideration  of  them  must  for  the  present  be  postponed. 

The  commission  appointed  at  the  suggestion  of  the  Confederate 
Council  on  Commercial  Treaties,  mentioned  in  the  preceding 
chapter,  "to  proceed  to  the  British  West  Indies  and  to  the 
Foreign  West  India  Islands,  Brazil  and  Mexico,  for  the  purpose 
of  enquiry  as  to  the  trade  of  those  countries,  and  of  ascertain- 
ing how  far  it  might  be  practicable  to  extend  the  commerce  then 
existing  between  them  and  British  North  America,"  was  composed 
of  the  Hon.  William  Macdougall,  a  member  of  the  Canadian 
Government,  (Chairman),  Messrs.  Ryan,  Delisle,  and  Dunscomb 
on  behalf  of  Canada ;  of  Messrs.  Macdonald  and  Levisconte  on 
behalf  of  Nova  Scotia ;  of  Mr.  William  Smith,  Comptroller  of 
Customs  at  the  Port  of  Saint  John,  on  behalf  of  New  Bruns- 
wick ;  and  of  Mr.  William  H.  Pope,  a  member  of  the  Govern- 
ment, on  behalf  of  Prince  Edward  Island. 

Having  obtained  the  sanction  of  the  British  Government,  and 
the  necessary  authorisations  from  the  Foreign  and  Colonial 
Secretaries  of  State  in  England,  to  the  Foreign  and  Colonial 
Governments,  and  after  due  consultation  in  December,  1865, 
with  the  authorities  in  London,  as  to  the  general  nature  of  the 
policy  to  be  pursued,  these  gentlemen  proceeded  on  their  mission 
in  the  month  of  January,  1866. 

The  instructions  under  which  they  were  to  act  were  contained 
in  the  following  letters  : — 

FINANCE  DEPARTMENT, 
OTTAWA,  17th  November,  1865. 

GENTLEMEN, — By  command  of  His  Excellency  the  Administra- 
tor of  the  Government,  I  have  the  honour  to  inform  you  that  His 
Excellency  has  been  pleased  to  appoint  you  Commissioners  to 
proceed  to  the  British  West  Indies  and  to  the  foreign  West  India 
Islands,  Brazil  and  Mexico,  for  the  purpose  of  enquiring  into  the 
trade  of  these  countries,  and  of  ascertaining  how  far  it  may  be 


CONFEDERATION.  337 

practicable  to  extend  the  commerce  now  existing  between  them 
and  British  North  America. 

The  countries  referred  to  all  produce  articles  which  enter  very 
largely  into  the  consumption  of  the  people  of  Canada  and  the 
Maritime  Provinces,  while  at  the  same  time  they  consume  the 
staples  of  production  here  to  an  immense  amount.  Naturally, 
therefore,  trade  should  exist,  and  be  carried  011  between  them 
under  the  most  favourable  conditions.  Practically,  however,  it  i» 
found  that  the  commerce  is  very  restricted  in  amount  and  of  slow 
development. 

The  causes  for  this  state  of  things  may  be  found  partly,  no 
doubt,  in  the  difficulty  which  always  attends  the  opening  of  new 
markets  and  the  diversion  of  trade ;  but  principally  in  the  fiscal 
laws  which  both  on  our  part  and  on  theirs  interfere  with  the  free 
interchange  of  our  respective  commodities.  The  rapid  extension 
of  the  productive  power  of  Canada  in  lumber,  cereals  and  fish, 
and  the  early  prospect  that  the  great  resources  of  the  Maritime 
Provinces  will  equally  be  brought  under  an  uniform  commercial 
policy  for  all  British  North  America,  render  it  in  the  opinion  of 
the  Government  most  important  than  an  enquiry  should  be  made 
into  the  circumstances  and  conditions  of  our  trade  with  the  West 
Indies  and  South  America,  and  into  the  best  mode  by  which  it 
can  be  developed. 

The  subject  becomes  of  the  utmost  importance  at  a  time  when 
our  important  trade  with  the  United  States  is  threatened  with 
interruption,  and  will  certainly  hereafter  be  continued  under 
different  conditions  from  those  which  have  hitherto  existed. 

Knowing  then  that  the  countries  to  which  you  are  about  to 
proceed  offer  a  market  for  all  the  surplus  products  of  British 
North  America,  and  that  they  can  afford  us  in  exchange  all  the 
productions  of  the  tropics,  it  is  most  desirable  that  an  effort  should 
be  made  to  remove  the  artificial  obstructions  which  exist  to  free 
commercial  intercourse. 

The  Government  have  decided  to  confide  this  important  duty 
to  you,  in  which  it  is  probable  you  will  be  aided  by  one  or  more 
representatives  from  the  Maritime  Provinces.  It  is  confidently 
believed  that  the  views  of  these  gentlemen  will  coincide  with  your 


338  CONFEDERATION. 

own  on  all  points,  but  if  unfortunately  material  divergence  of 
opinion  should  be  found  to  exist,  it  will  then  be  your  duty  to  act 
under  the  authority  now  given  you,  on  behalf  of  Canada  alone, 
reporting  the  circumstances  to  His  Excellency  to  enable  him  to 
communicate  with  the  Governments  of  the  Sister  Provinces  for 
the  purpose  of  re-establishing  joint  and  united  action. 

The  instructions  under  which  you  will  act  must  necessarily  be 
of  a  very  general  character,  and  their  application  must  be  left  in 
a  great  measure  to  your  own  discretion,  in  which  the  utmost 
reliance  is  placed. 

You  will  in  all  cases  report  the  nature  and  extent  of  the  pro- 
ductions of  the  respective  countries  you  visit,  their  trade,  tariffs 
and  all  other  burdens  imposed  upon  commerce,  the  ordinary  prices 
current,  &c.  It  will  also  be  desirable  to  note  the  several  customs 
of  trade  among  merchants,  and  other  points  valuable  for  the 
information  of  our  commercial  community. 

It  will  then  become  your  duty  to  consider  whether  you  can 
offer  any  suggestions  for  removing  what  may  appear  to  you  to  be 
obstructions  to  direct  trade  with  British  North  America. 

It  would  be  improper  for  the  Government  to  anticipate  the 
action  of  the  Legislature  in  reference  to  taxation;  but  it  is 
necessary  that  you  should  be  informed  that  this  Government 
would  be  prepared  to  recommend  to  Parliament  the  reduction  or 
even  the  abolition  of  any  customs  duties  now  levied  on  the  pro- 
ductions of  these  countries,  if  corresponding  favour  were  shown 
to  the  staples  of  British  North  America  in  their  markets. 

Your  first  attention  will  probably  be  directed  to  the  British 
"West  Indies,  and  subsequently  to  the  Spanish,  French  and  other 
foreign  islands,  ultimately  visiting  Demerara  and  Brazil.  If  time 
will  permit  you  will  visit  Mexico,  but  in  the  disturbed  state  of 
that  Empire  it  is  not  desired  that  you  should  much  delay  your 
return  for  this  purpose.  It  is  hoped  that  your  labours  will  be 
completed  by  1st  April  next. 

You  will  proceed  to  England  as  soon  as  possible,  reporting 
yourselves  to  the  Secretary  of  State  for  the  colonies,  to  whom  His 
Excellency  will  furnish  you  with  letters,  and  you  will,  I  am  sure 
receive  from  him  such  introduction  to  the  British  authorities  in 


CONFEDERATION.  339 

the  places  you  intend  to  visit  as  will  secure  every  facility  for  your 
enquiries. 

You  will  be  pleased  to  report  to  me,  for  the  information  of  His 
Excellency  the  Administrator  of  the  Government,  from  time  to 
time,  the  progress  you  make,  with  advice  as  to  the  points  at  which 
you  may  be  addressed. 

I  have  the  honour  to  be,  Gentlemen, 

Your  obedient  humble  servant, 

A.  T.  GALT, 
Minister  of  Finance  of  Canada. 

The  instructions  to  the  Commissioner  from  New  Brunswick 
were  communicated  to  him  by  the  Governor  of  that  colony,  and 
were  as  follows  : 

FREDERICTON,  KB.,  December  15th,  1865. 

SIR, — Her  Majesty  having  been  pleased  to  authorize  the  appoint- 
ment of  Commissioners  charged  with  a  mission  of  enquiry  into 
the  most  available  means  of  extending  the  commerce  of  the  British 
North  American  Provinces,  I  have  nominated  you  as  Commissioner 
for  the  Province  of  New  Brunswick  on  that  behalf,  having  the 
fullest  reliance  on  the  ability  and  zeal  with  which  you  will  discharge 
the  duties  entrusted  to  you. 

I  have  now  to  instruct  you  to  proceed  to  the  West  Indies,  there 
to  join  and  co-operate  with  the  Commissioners  appointed  on  behalf 
of  the  other  British  North  American  Provinces. 

You  will,  in  conjunction  with  them,  endeavour  to  ascertain  how 
far  it  may  be  possible  to  effect  arrangements  with  any  of  the  British 
Colonies  or  foreign  possessions  in  the  West  Indies,  or  with  the 
Empires  of  Mexico  or  Brazil,  by  which  the  trade  between  these 
countries  and  the  British  North  American  Colonies  would  be 
further  developed  and  extended.  You  are  not  authorized  to  make 
any  engagement  or  give  any  pledge  on  behalf  of  the  Government 
of  New  Brunswick,  but  you  are  at  liberty  to  make  any  suggestions 
which  may  appear  to  you  to  be  suitable,  and  you  will  discuss  the 
subject  of  your  mission  with  those  appointed  to  confer  with  you 
in  the  fullest  and  frankest  manner.  It  will  be  your  duty,  ill  these 
conferences,  to  obtain  all  possible  information  as  to  the  mutual 


340  CONFEDERATION. 

commercial  concessions  and  corresponding  changes  in  the  respective 
tariffs  of  the  several  colonies  and  countries  referred  to,  which  may 
seem  calculated  to  facilitate  the  attainment  of  the  object  desired. 

You  will  further  generally  collect  such  information  at  the 
different  places  visited  as  may,  in  your  opinion,  be  of  utility  to 
the  commercial  community  of  New  Brunswick,  or  which  may  tend 
to  open  up  new  markets  for  the  productions  of  the  Province,  and 
new  fields  for  the  employment  of  its  industry. 

You  will  from  time  to  time  report  your  proceedings  to  the  Hon. 
the  Provincial  Secretaiy,  and  on  your  return  to  the  Province,  will 
make  a  general  report  of  the  information  you  have  obtained. 

I  have,  &c., 

(Signed)  ARTHUR  H.  GORDON. 

W.  Smith,  Esq.,  Comptroller  of  Customs,  &c. 

The  10th  paragraph  of  the  Canadian  Instructions  should  be 
noted.  How  far  it  was  in  contravention  of  the  Imperial  policy 
as  to  discriminating  duties  remains  to  be  seen. 

In  the  month  of  May,  1866,  the  Commissioners  returned,  and 
in  due  time  made  their  reports  to  their  respective  Governments. 

After  the  usual  acknowledgments  of  the  attention  and  hospi- 
talities with  which  they  were  received,  the  Commissioners  make 
"  suggestions  "  by  themselves  briefly  stated  as  follows  : — 

"  1st.  To  establish  promptly  a  line  of  steamers  suitable  for  the 
carriage  of  mails,  passengers  and  freight,  between  Halifax,  Nova 
Scotia,  and  St.  Thomas,  in  the  West  Indies,  touching  (until  the 
completion  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway)  at  Portland,  in  the  United 
States,  so  as  to  ensure  regular  semi-monthly  communication 
between  the  ports  mentioned. 

2nd.  To  make  a  convention  or  agreement  with  the  Postal 
authorities  of  the  United  States  for  the  prompt  transmission  of 
letters,  &c.,  from  Canada  and  the  Maritime  Provinces,  by  every 
United  States  mail  which  leaves  the  ports  of  Boston  or  New  York 
for  the  West  Indies,  Brazil,  Mexico,  &c.,  and  also  for  the  trans- 
mission through  United  States  mails  of  correspondence  originating 
in  those  countries. 


CONFEDERATION.  341 

3rd.  To  establish  a  weekly  line  of  steamers  between  Montreal 
and  Halifax,  and  to  complete  as  soon  as  possible  the  Intercolonial 
Railway. 

4th.  To  procure,  by  reciprocal  treaties  or  otherwise,  a  reduction 
of  the  duties  now  levied  on  flour,  fish,  lumber,  pork,  butter,  and 
other  staple  productions  of  British  North  America,  in  the  West 
Indies,  and  especially  with  Brazil  and  the  Colonies  of  Spain. 

5th.  To  obtain,  if  possible,  from  the  Spanish  and  Brazilian  autho- 
rities a  remission  of  the  heavy  dues  now  chargeable  on  the  trans- 
fer of  vessels  from  the  British  to  the  Spanish  and  Brazilian  flags.  ' 

6th.  To  procure,  by  negotiation  with  the  proper  authorities,  an 
assimilation  of  the  Tariffs  of  the  British  West  India  Colonies 
in  respect  to  flour,  lumber,  fish,  and  other  staples  of  British  North 
America,  a  measure  which  would  greatly  facilitate  commercial 
operations,  and  may  well  be  urged  in  view  of  the  assimilation 
about  to  be  made  in  the  tariffs  of  Canada  and  the  Maritime 
Provinces. 

7th  and  lastly.  To  promote,  by  prudent  legislation  'and  a  sound 
fiscal  policy,  the  rapid  development  of  the  great  natural  resources 
of  the  British  North  American  Provinces,  and  to  preserve,  as  far 
as  lies  in  their  power,  the  advantage  which  they  now  possess,  of 
being  able  to  produce  at  a  cheaper  cost  than  any  other  country 
most  of  the  great  staples  which  the  inhabitants  of  the  tropics 
must  procure  from  northern  ports." 

The  report  then  proceeds  to  give  very  valuable  statistical  infor- 
mation of  the  trade  and  productions  of  the  various  West  India 
Islands,  of  British  Guiana,  and  of  Brazil,  with  evidence  of  the 
desire  of  the  authorities  in  those  countries  to  enter  into  the  con- 
sideration of  any  propositions  tending  to  promote  the  object  for 
which  the  Commission  was  sent  out. 

From  the  return  of  the  Commission  to  the  present  time  no 
action  has  been  taken  upon  this  report.  For  the  first  two  years 
immediately  following  it  may  be  said  that  the  moulding  of  the 
constitution  under  the  new  Confederation,  which  had  come  into 
being  on  the  1st  of  July,  1867,  commanded  the  undivided  atten- 
tion of  the  Government.  But  with  reference  to  all  that  part  of 


342  CONFEDERATION. 

the  report  and  "  suggestions  "  which  related  to  the  establishment 
of  trade  by  means  of  "  Reciprocal  Treaties  or  otherwise,"  it  may 
be  questioned  whether  its  contravention  of  the  Imperial  policy  as 
to  discriminating  duties  was  not  of  itself  a  sufficient  objection. 

The  10th  paragraph  says  :  "It  would  be  improper  for  the 
Government  to  anticipate  the  action  of  the  Legislature  in  refer- 
ence to  taxation  ;  but  it  is  necessary  that  you  should  be  informed 
that  this  Government  would  be  prepared  to  recommend  to  Par- 
liament the  reduction,  or  even  the  abolition,  of  any  customs  duties 
now  levied  on  the  productions  of  those  countries,  if  corresponding 
favour  were  shown  to  the  staples  of  British  North  America  in 
their  markets." 

Among  the  enclosures  transmitted  by  the  Colonial  Secretary  to 
the  Governor-General,  on  the  14th  of  February,  1851,  and  on 
record  in  the  Canadian  Journals,  was  the  following,  which  had 
been  previously  sent  as  an  instruction  to  the  Lieutenant-Governor 
of  New  Brunswick  : — 

No.  220.  DOWNING  STREET,  1st  Nov.,  1850. 

SIR, — It  is  with  much  regret  that  I  have  learnt  from  your  dis- 
patch, No.  59  of  the  7th  ultimo,  that  dissatisfaction  has  been 
occasioned  among  the  inhabitants  of  New  Brunswick,  by  the 
instructions  given  you  to  withhold  your  assent  from  any  Acts 
which  may  be  passed  by  the  Provincial  Legislature,  in  contraven- 
tion of  the  system  of  commercial  policy,  which  the  Imperial 
Parliament  and  Her  Majesty's  Government  have  judged  it  advis- 
able to  adopt,  with  a  view  to  the  interests  of  the  empire  at  large. 

2.  While  it  is  the  desire  of  Her  Majesty's   Government  to 
advise  the  Crown  to  use  its  authority  in  such  a  manner,  as  to 
interfere  as  little  as  possible  with  the  management  of  their  own 
affairs,   by  the    Legislatures  of   the   several   colonies,   there  are 
subjects  011  which  measures  cannot  be  adopted  by  an  individual 
colony,  without  affecting  the  interests  of  others,  and  perhaps  of 
the  whole  empire. 

3.  Measures  for  the  regulation  of  trade  are  of  this  description, 
and  from  the  very  foundation  of  our  colonial  empire  the  Imperial 
Parliament  and  Government  have  always  claimed,  and  exercised, 


CONFEDERATION.  343 

the  right  of  deciding  on  the  commercial  policy,  which  should  be 
adopted  by  all  British  colonies. 

4.  Until  a  recent  period,   this    authority    was    used   for   the 
maintenance    of    restrictions    upon    trade,    in    many    cases    very 
onerous  both  to  the  mother  country  and  the  colony.     These  have 
now,  for  the  most  part,  been  abolished,  and  Her  Majesty's  Gov- 
ernment are  not  prepared  to  consent,  that  they  should  be  partially 
re-imposed  on  particular  colonies,  without  considering  the  effect 
of  such  re-imposition,  upon  that  general  system  of  policy,  which 
has  been  adopted  in  their  place. 

5.  As  you  have  pointed   out,    bounties   might   be   given   in 
particular  colonies,  in  such  a  manner  as  might  be  very  injurious 
to  others ;    and  the  imposition  of  differential  duties  on  foreign 
produce  by  a  particular  colony,   on  the  grounds  stated  in  the 
memorandum  of   the  Executive   Council,    would   be   still   more 
objectionable,  as  they  might  probably  clash  with  the  engagements 
of  this  country  under  treaties. 

6.  .It  is  true" that  there  are  still  differential  duties  levied  in  the 
Australian  colonies,  but  these  are  the  remains  of  a  former  system, 
which  has  not  yet  been  entirely  changed.     They  were  imposed  by 
authority  of  Parliament,  and  Parliament  has  now  empowered  the 
Local  Legislatures  to  abolish  them ;  at  the  same  time  prohibiting 
those  Legislatures  from  imposing  any  differential  duties  in  future. 

7.  These  are  the  general  considerations  on  which  Her  Majesty's 
Government  have  acted  with  reference  to  this  subject,  and  being 
satisfied  that  a  steady  adherence  to  that  system  of  commercial 
policy  which  has  been  sanctioned  by  Parliament,  is  the  course 
best  calculated  to  promote  the  general  welfare  of  the   British 
empire  as  a  whole,  and  the  interests  of  New  Brunswick  as  an 
important  part  of  that  empire,  it  is.  out  of  my  power  to  withdraw 
or  modify  the  instructions  I  have  already  transmitted  to  you. 

I  have,  &c., 

(Signed)         GREY. 

In  1855  Mr.  Hamilton  Merritt,  a  distinguished  member  of  the 
Canadian  Parliament,  had  as  "  chairman  of  a  Committee  of  the 
Legislative  Assembly  of  Canada,  appointed  to  inquire  into  the 


344  CONFEDERATION. 

Commercial  intercourse  between  Canada  and  Great  Britain,  the 
British  North  American  Colonies,  the  West  India  possessions,  the 
United  States,  and  other  Foreign  Countries,"  himself  opened  com- 
munication with  the  Government  of  Barbadoes  on  the  subject 
matter  embraced  in  the  report  made  by  the  Committee  to  the 
House,  though  the  report  had  not  been  adopted,  or  any  action 
taken  thereupon  either  by  the  House  or  the  Canadian  Government. 
The  Council  and  Assembly  of  Barbadoes  acquiesced  in  the  propo- 
sitions put  forward  by  Mr.  Merritt,  and  passed  the  following 
resolutions  : — 

HOUSE  OF  ASSEMBLY,  I7tk  April,  1855. 

Whereas  a  message  has  been  sent  to  this  House  by  His  Excel- 
lency the  Governor,  under  date  the  20th  March,  1855,  enclosing 
copy  of  correspondence  relative  to  a  proposed  free  interchange 
between  this  Island  and  Canada  of  the  native  products  of  the  two 
•countries,  and  recommending  the  same  to  the  favourable  consider- 
ation of  this  House. 

And  whereas  this  House  has  given  the  subject,  as  set  forth  in 
the  said  message  and  enclosure,  most  careful  consideration,  and 
has  come  to  the  conclusion  that  the  pioposed  interchange  of  com- 
modities, the  native  products  respectively  of  this  Island  and  of 
Canada  free  of  duty,  would  be  ultimately  beneficial  to  both  coun- 
tries, and  be  attended  with  peculiar  advantages  to  the  people  of 
this  Island  in  particular,  and  that  it  is  to  the  interests  of  the 
people  of  this  Island  to  accede  to  the  same  ;  therefore, 

I.  Resolved,  that  this  House  pledge  itself  to  pass  an  act  for 
admitting  articles  being  the  native  productions  of  Canada  into 
this  Island  free  of  duty,  so  soon  as  information  shall  have  duly 
reached  this  House  that  a  similar  act  has  been  passed  by  the  Legis- 
lature of  Canada,  for  admitting  into  that  country,  cluty  free,  articles 
being  the  native  productions  of  this  Island. 

II.  Resolved,  that  it  be  made  a  special  provision  of  such  acts 
respectively,  that  the  free  commercial  intercourse  thus  entered 
upon  between  the  two  countries  may  be  terminated  at  any  time 
by  either  country,  on  giving  one  whole  year's  notice    of   such 
intended  termination,  to  the  other  country,  through  their  respective 


CONFEDERATION.  345 

executives,  moved  thereunto  by  a  resolution  of  the  Legislature  of 
the  country  giving  such  notice. 

(Signed)  JOHN  MAYERS, 

Clerk  of  the  Geiwral  Assembly. 

These  resolutions  with  the  addresses  founded  thereon,  were  in 
due  course  transmitted  by  Sir  Wm.  Colebrooke,  the  Governor  of 
Barbadoes,  to  the  Governor-General  of  Canada,  and  also  to  the 
Colonial  Secretary  in  London.  The  Governor-General  of  Canada 
in  his  despatch  of  20th  July,  1855,  to  the  Secretary,  Lord  John 
Russell,  explained  Mr.  Merritt's  position,  and  stated  he  had  not 
been  aware  of  the  steps  taken  by  Mr.  Merritt  until  he  had  re- 
ceived the  communication  from  Barbadoes.  In  reply  he  received 
the  following  circular,  which,  he  was  informed,  was  transmitted 
for  his  information  and  guidance,  and  which  had  already  been 
addressed  to  the  Governors  of  the  several  West  Indian  Colonies 
on  this  subject : 

(CIRCULAR.) 
DOWNING  STREET,  llth  August,  1855. 

SIR, — I  have  to  acquaint  you  that  the  attention  of  Her 
Majesty's  Government  has  been  called  to  a  proposal  which  has 
been  made  for  the  mutual  abolition  of  custom  duties  upon  the 
productions  of  Canada  and  of  the  West  India  Colonies. 

In  a  recent  despatch  from  the  Governor-General  of  Canada, 
dated  the  20th  ultimo,  I  am  informed  that  the  communication  in 
which  that  arrangement  was  proposed  for  consideration,  emanated 
from  the  chairman  of  a  committee  of  the  Legislative  Assembly  of 
Canada.  It  appears,  however,  that  neither  the  suggestion  itself 
nor  the  Report  of  the  Committee,  which  was  subsequently  pre- 
sented to  the  Legislative  Assembly,  has  been  discussed  by  the 
Legislature  of  Canada,  and  that  it  would  be  premature  to  suppose 
that  the  Executive  Government  or  the  Legislature  of  Canada  are 
committed  to  the  adoption  of  the  policy  therein  indicated. 

I  transmit  to  you  for  your  information  a  copy  of  a  letter  from 
the  Lords  of  the  Committee  of  Privy  Council  for  Trade,  to  whom 
a  despatch  from  the  Governor  of  British  Guiana,  respecting  this 
proposition,  was  referred  for  consideration. 
23 


346  CONFEDEEATION. 

Her  Majesty's  Government  would  regard  the  proposed  arrange- 
ment as  very  objectionable ;  on  the  grounds,  First,  that  it  would 
separate  commercially  so  far  as  such  an  arrangement  is  concerned, 
the  colonies  who  entered  into  it  from  the  rest  of  the  Empire; 
Secondly,  that  it  would  be  injurious  not  only  to  the  interests  of 
consumers  in  the  colonies,  who  were  a  party  to  the  arrangement, 
but  to  the  interests  of  producers  in  every  other  part  of  the 
Empire;  and,  Thirdly,  that  it  would  be  inconsistent  with  the 
Imperial  policy  of  free  trade. 

It  is  the  earnest  desire  of  Her  Majesty's  Government  to  main- 
tain and  extend  a  course  of  policy  which  shall  closely  unite  to- 
gether by  ties  of  mutual  interest  the  whole  of  Her  Majesty's 
Colonial  Empire  with  the  mother  country.  To  such  a  policy  any 
measures  tending  to  form  the  colonies  into  separate  groups  with 
peculiar  and  exceptional  commercial  relations,  would  be  opposed, 
and  Her  Majesty's  Government,  therefore,  trust  that  they  will  not 
be  asked  to  submit  for  Her  Majesty's  approbation,  acts  or  ordin- 
ances, giving  effect  to  measures  of  that  character. 
I  have  the  honour  to  be, 

Sir,  yours,  &c.,  &c., 
(Signed)     WM.  MOLESWORTH. 

In  a  despatch  of  the  12th  July,  1855,  the  Imperial  policy  had 
with  equal  precision  been  declared  to  embrace  the  intercourse 
between  colony  and  colony.  It  says  : — 

"  But  this  policy  of  freedom  for  the  producer  and  the  trader,  as 
well  as  the  consumer,  would  be  seriously  affected,  if  colonial  legis- 
latures were  to  establish  differential  duties  in  favour  of  their  own 
natural  productions  or  manufactures,  whether  against  the  British 
or  the  foreign  producer.  And  a  similar  violation  of  the  principles 
of  free  trade  would  result,  if  favour  were  shown  in  the  legislation 
of  a  colony,  to  one  colony  over  another,  by  the  reduction  or  total 
abolition  of  duties  in  favour  of  particular  colonies." 

In  a  still  later  despatch,  of  the  15th  July,  1856,  already  cited 
in  a  previous  part  of  this  work,  Mr.  Labouchere,  in  referring  to 
the  treaty  then  lately  made  with  the  United  States,  and  suggesting 


CONFEDERATION.  347 

certain  modifications  in  the  Canadian  tariff  as  desirable  in  conse- 
quence thereof,  observes : — 

"  It  must  be  admitted  that  so  long  as  any  articles  are  admitted 
duty  free  from  the  United  States,  which  are  subject  to  duty  when 
the  produce  of  the  United  Kingdom,  the  British  colonies  or  other 
foreign  countries,  this  treaty  clashes  with  the  provisions  of  several 
existing  treaties  with  other  countries,  while  at  the  same  time  it 
presents  an  exception  to  the  whole  course  of  recent  legislation ; 
a  state  of  things  which  certainly  tends  to  encourage  other  proposi- 
tions equally  at  variance  with  economical  principles — such,  for 
instance,  as  that  which  has  been  put  forward  for  the  mutual  aboli- 
tion of  duties  between  the  West  Indies  and  the  North  American 
Provinces." 

By  a  correspondence  on  the  subject  of  a  renewal  of  the  Reci- 
procity Treaty  with  the  United  States,  laid  before  the  Canadian 
Parliament  in  May,  1869,  after  confederation,  it  will  be  seen  from 
the  report  of  Mr.  Rose,  then  Minister  of  Finance,  that  with 
reference  to  the  trade  between  the  North  American  Provinces 
themselves,  a  departure  from  this  principle  had  been  acquiesced  in 
for  several  years,  and  in  1861  was  distinctly  recognized  by  Her 
Majesty's  Government.  In  1868,  by  a  despatch,  dated  24th  July, 
to  the  Governor-General,  it  is  declared  that  no  objection  is  made 
"  to  the  power  taken  to  admit  the  produce  of  any  of  the  neigh- 
bouring North  American  Provinces  duty  free;"  and  a  bill,  passed 
by  the  Legislature  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  to  admit  Canadian 
flour  into  that  Island  duty  free,  which  had  passed  through  the 
United  States,  whilst  flour  the  growth  of  the  United  States  was 
liable  to  duty,  was,  after  discussion  assented  to ;  but  no  extension 
of  the  modification  is  made  to  the  British  West  Indies  or  other 
colonies. 

In  the  despatch  and  enclosures  from  the  Secretaiy  of  State  for 
the  Colonies,  approving  of  the  minute  of  the  Confederate  Council 
on  Trade,  and  transmitting  Her  Majesty's  approbation  of  the 
proposal  to  send  out  the  commissioners  to  the  West  Indies  and 
South  America,  the  Imperial  Government,  in  the  most  delicate 
but  at  the  same  time  in  the  most  distinct  manner,  calls  "  attention 


-348  CONFEDERATION. 

to  the  difficulties  which  may  arise  with  respect  to  foreign  countries 
having  reciprocity  treaties  with  this  country,  if  any  colony  or 
colonies  should  make  arrangements  for  giving  to  one  foreign 
country  advantages  which  are  not  given  to  others,"  and  gently 
reminding  the  Canadian  Government  "  that  this  point  had  been 
so  much  discussed  on  the  occasion  of  negociating  the  treaty  between 
the  United  States  and  British  North  America,  that  it  is  not  neces- 
sary now  to  do  more  than  express  a  hope  that  it  may  be  found 
possible  to  avoid  similar  difficulties  in  the  present  case." 

From  these  despatches,  it  is  difficult  to  see  how  the  mission, 
under  its  instructions,  could  prove  otherwise  than  abortive. 
Judging  from  the  report  made  by  the  Commissioners,  it  must 
be  presumed,  they  took  the  same  view — wisely  avoided  the  diffi- 
culties, and  contented  themselves,  on  their  return,  with  stating 
that  they  had  had  a  pleasant  voyage,  and  recommending  steam 
communication  between  Halifax  and  St.  Thomas,  with  other  simi- 
lar conveniences  for  passengers  and  letters,  "  and  the  completion 
of  the  Intercolonial  Railway  as  soon  as  possible." 

But  this  matter  is  too  important  to  be  thus  lightly  passed  over. 
The  names  of  two  prominent  Canadian  statesmen  are  involved. 
Mr.  Gait  had  been  for  years  the  Finance  Minister  of  Canada — the 
unflinching  advocate  of  the  right  of  Canada  to  regulate  her  own 
taxation,  without  interference  on  the  part  of  the  Imperial  Govern- 
ment ;  of  all  men  in  Canada,  perhaps,  the  most  familiar  with  the 
Imperial  despatches  on  this  subject;  the  minister  who,  on  the 
mere  suggestion  thrown  out  by  the  Duke  of  Newcastle,  in  1859, 
of  the  bare  possibility  that  Her  Majesty  might  have  been  advised 
to  disallow  the  Canadian  Tariff  Bill  of  that  session,  indignantly 
replied,  "that  Her  Majesty  cannot  be  advised  to  disallow  such 
acts,  unless  her  advisers  are  prepared  to  assume  the  administration 
of  the  affairs  of  the  Colony,  irrespective  of  the  views  of  its  inhabi- 
tants ;"  an  avowed  advocate  of  free  trade,  and  most  earnestly  desi- 
rous of  opening  the  West  Indian  and  South  American  markets  to 
the  productions  of  Canada.  Mr.  Macdougall  was  equally  known 
as  a  bold  and  advanced  Liberal,  a  Free-trader,  and  one  not  likely  to 
succumb  in  anything  affecting  Canadian  interests  to  Imperial  dicta- 
tion. Both  were  then  members  of  the  Government ;  both  were 


CONFEDERATION.  349 

earnest  advocates  of  confederation ;  Mr.  Gait,  from  the  first  its 
early  friend,  having,  as  far  back  as  1858,  made  it  his  declared 
policy  when  he  joined  the  Government  of  that  day.  Yet  this  10th 
paragraph  in  the  instructions  was  prepared  by  them,  and  acted 
upon  by  them  in  apparent  opposition  to  the  Imperial  policy,  so  far 
as  the  public  can  judge  from  the  published  official  journals  and 
documents. 

As  a  constitutional  question,  in  the  present  more  demonstrative 
position  of  Canada,  it  becomes  one  of  great  importance.  As 
applied  to  the  mere  question  of  this  past  West  India  commission 
it  is  of  none.  In  the  future,  it  is  plain  the  •  question  of  the  West 
Indian  and  South  American  trade  cannot  much  longer  be  delayed, 
other  important  questions  springing  immediately  out  of  confeder- 
ation may  have  deferred  its  consideration  for  a  time,  but  whatever 
Government  may  be  in  power  action  must  be  taken  upon  it  soon. 
As  a  matter  of  fact,  though  the  British  Government  did  not  by 
any  despatch  assent  to  the  instructions  given  by  Mr.  Gait,  yet 
those  instructions  were  made  the  subject  of  earnest  discussion 
with  Her  Majesty's  Government,  by  Mr.  Macdougall  and  his 
co-commissioners  when  in  London,  and  as  asserted  by  Mr.  Mac- 
dougall, assented  to  by  the  Government,  as  far  as  the  proposition 
concerned  the  British  West  India  Islands.  No  official  record 
however,  or  report  of  the  circumstances  can  be  found  in  Canada, 
among  the  papers  laid  before  Parliament. 

The  instructions  it  is  said  were  prepared  by  Mr.  Gait,  in  full 
assertion  of  the  right  of  Canada  to  make  such  reciprocal  arrange- 
ments with  other  countries,  or  with  colonies  having  responsible 
governments.  And  it  is  to  be  observed,  that  the  language  used 
does  not  necessarily  imply  that  it  was  the  intention  to  introduce  a 
system  of  differential  duties,  if  the  negotiations  succeeded ;  on 
the  contrary,  the  object  could  be  accomplished  by  rendering  duty 
free  similar  articles  from  all  countries.  Then  what  was  the 
use  of  the  commission  1  It  would  look  like  deception  towards 
the  country  to  which  Canada  sent  the  deputation,  and  proposed, 
in  consideration  of  reciprocity,  to  extend  certain  privileges,  at  the 
same  time  to  pass  an  act,  giving  the  same  privileges  to  other 
countries  which  refused  reciprocity  in  return.  Such  a  change,  if 


350  CONFEDERATION. 

general,  would  be  a  mere  matter  of  internal  legislation  as  to  the 
tariff,  requiring  no  negotiations  abroad.  Either  the  instructions 
were  hampered  by  the  despatches  or  they  were  nugatory,  as  they 
could  not  be  carried  out  in  the  direction  indicated. 

The  difficulty  of  making  trade  arrangements  with  the  West 
India  Islands  is  increased,  both  by  their  number  as  separate 
governments,  and  by  the  fact  that  they  do  not  possess  responsible 
government.  More  in  the  light  of  Crown  colonies  their  legislation 
is  immediately  under  Imperial  control,  but  these  obstacles  after  all 
are  only  partial,  the  main  difficulty  lies  in  the  restriction  imposed 
by  the  Imperial  Government  against  differential  duties.  An 
enlightened  effort  on  the  part  of  Great  Britain  to  make,  in  matters 
of  trade,  all  the  nations  of  the  earth  one  family  ;  but  an  effort  in 
which  most  of  those  nations  steadily  refuse  to  join.  To  the  latter 
Brazil  offers  a  striking  exception ;  but  she  could  not  enter  into 
such  arrangements  with  Canada  as  those  contemplated  by  the 
10th  paragraph,  however  willing,  if  remonstrated  with  by  Her 
Majesty's  Government,  as  being  contrary  to  the  commercial  policy 
of  the  empire. 

The  constitutional  question  as  to  the  right  of  taxation,  to  any 
extent,  not  infringing  the  above  rule,  is  considered  as  definitely 
settled.  It  is  succinctly  and  well  laid  down  by  Mr.  Gait,  as 
Finance  Minister,  in  a  report  made  by  him  to  the  Government  on 
the  25th  of  October,  1859,  on  the  occasion  above  referred  to  : 

"  Respect  to  the  Imperial  Government  must  always  dictate  the 
desire  to  satisfy  them,  that  the  policy  of  this  country  is  neither 
hastily  or  unwisely  formed,  and  that  due  regard  is  had  to  the 
interests  of  the  mother  country  as  well  as  of  the  Province.  But 
the  Government  of  Canada  acting  for  its  Legislature  and  people, 
cannot,  through  these  feelings  of  deference  which  they  owe  to  the 
Imperial  authorities,  in  any  manner  waive  or  diminish  the  right 
of  the  people  of  Canada  to  decide  for  themselves  both  as  to  the 
mode  and  extent  to  which  taxation  shall  be  imposed.  The  Pro- 
vincial Ministry  are  at  all  times  ready  to  afford  explanations  in 
regard  to  the  Acts  of  the  Legislature  to  which  they  are  a  party ; 
but  subject  to  their  duty  and  allegiance  to  Her  Majesty,  their  re- 


CONFEDERATION.  351 

sponsibility  in  all  general  questions  of  policy  must  be  to  the 
Provincial  Parliament  by  whose  confidence  they  administer  the 
affairs  of  the  country.  And  in  the  imposition  of  taxation  it  is  so 
plainly  necessary  that  the  administration  and  the  people  should  be 
in  accord,  that  the  former  cannot  admit  responsibility  or  require 
approval,  beyond  that  of  the  Local  Government.  Self-Govern- 
ment  would  be  utterly  annihilated  if  the  views  of  the  Imperial 
Government  were  to  be  preferred  to  those  of  the  people  of  Canada. 
It  is  therefore  the  duty  of  the  present  Government  distinctly  to 
affirm  the  right  of  the  Canadian  Legislature  to  adjust  the  taxation 
of  the  people  in  the  way  they  deem  best,  even  if  it  should  un- 
fortunately happen  to  meet  the  disapproval  of  the  Imperial 
Ministry.  Her  Majesty  cannot  be  advised  to  disallow  such  acts, 
unless  her  advisers  are  prepared  to  assume  the  administration  of 
the  affairs  of  the  colony  irrespective  of  the  views  of  its  inhabitants. 
The  Imperial  Government  are  not  responsible  for  the  debts  and 
engagements  of  Canada,  they  do  not  maintain  its  Judicial,  Educa- 
tional or  Civil  Service,  they  contribute  nothing  to  the  internal 
Government  of  the  country  and  the  Provincial  Legislature  acting 
through  a  Ministry  directly  responsible  to  it,  has  to  make  pro- 
vision for  all  these  wants.  They  must  necessarily  claim  and 
exercise  the  widest  latitude  as  to  the  nature  and  extent  of  the 
burdens  to  be  placed  upon  the  industry  of  the  people.  The  Pro- 
vincial Government  believes  that  His  Grace  must  share  their, own 
convictions  on  this  important  subject,  but  as  serious  evil  would 
have  resulted  had  His  Grace  taken  a  different  course  it  is  wiser  to 
prevent  future  complication  by  distinctly  stating  the  position  that 
must  be  maintained  by  every  Canadian  Administration.  These 
remarks  are  offered  on  the  general  principle  of  Colonial  Taxation." 

This  report  then  further  proceeds  at  great  length  to  discuss  the 
details  of  the  Canadian  tariff  of  that  year,  and  to  defend  the 
course  pursued.  It  was  transmitted  to  the  Duke  of  Newcastle, 
and  formed  the  subject  of  a  long  examination  by  the  statistical 
department  of  the  Board  of  Trade,  under  the  direction  of  the 
Committee  of  the  Privy  Council  for  Trade.  The  report  of  the 
examination  was  sent  to  the  Canadian  Government  in  a  despatch 


352  CONFEDERATION. 

dated  the  31st  January,  1860,  as  the  reply  of  the  Lords  of  the 
Committee  of  the  Privy  Council  for  Trade.  While  it  adheres  in 
a  modified  degree  to  the  objections  to  some  of  the  details  pre- 
viously expressed,  it  nowhere  questions  the  broad  principles  as- 
serted by  Mr.  Gait.  This  point,  therefore,  may  be  considered  as 
disposed  of. 

But  in  no  way — with  the  exception  of  the  British  North 
American  Provinces  before  mentioned — has  any  concession  been 
made  of  the  right  of  Canada  to  enter  into  reciprocal  arrange- 
ments with  particular  countries  or  colonies,  for  the  admission  of 
the  products  of  each  other,  on  terms  different  from  those  which 
are  extended  by  Canada  to  other  countries  and  colonies  making 
no  such  arrangement.  On  the  contrary,  with  reference  to  foreign 
countries,  this  right  is  expressly  denied,  and  with  reference  to 
our  own  sister  colonies,  the  despatches  heretofore  quoted,  and  the 
principles  there  laid  down,  have  never  been  withdrawn. 

In  1862  negotiations,  to  a  certain  degree  successful,  were  opened 
by  the  Canadian  Government  directly  with  France,  through  the 
instrumentality  of  the  Baron  Boilleau,  then  French  Consul  at 
Quebec,  for  the  admission  of  Canadian  produce  and  the  registra- 
tion of  Canadian  shipping  in  France,  on  very  advantageous  terms, 
and  a  corresponding  reduction  of  duties  on  French  wines  and 
other  French  products  was  made  in  the  Canadian  tariff.  The 
attention  of  the  merchants  in  New  Brunswick  was  called  to  simi- 
lar propositions  in  a  communication  addressed  by  the  Baron 
Boilleau  to  his  Vice-Consul  at  the  port  of  St.  John,  under  date  of 
December  30th,  1862,  and  there  can  be  little  doubt  that  under 
the  enlightened  trade  policy  of  the  Emperor  Napoleon,  at  that 
time  a  large  trade  would  have  sprung  up  between  France  and  the 
French  West  India  Islands  on  the  one  hand,  and  Canada  and  the 
other  British  North  American  Provinces  on  the  other ;  but  the 
British  Government,  on  learning  of  this  unofficial  mode  of  making 
treaties  by  one  of  her  colonies  with  foreign  countries,  except 
through  herself,  at  once  remonstrated  with  France,  and  the  Baron 
Boilleau  was  removed  from  Canada. 

From  that  time  up  to  the  West  India  Commission  no  effort  in 
this  direction  had  been  made.  It  is  impossible  the  question  can 


CONFEDEKATIO1ST.  353 

slumber  much  longer.  No  matter  'of  more  importance  looms  up 
before  the  Canadian  'statesman  than  this  question  of  the  foreign 
trade  of  the  country,  particularly  so  far  as  it  affects  the  Maritime 
Provinces.  Compared  to  it,  the  fact  whether  the  administration 
of  the  public  aifairs  of  the  country  is  in  the  hands  of  one  party  or 
the  other  is  utterly  insignificant. 

In  Canadian  Parliaments  where  there  are  no  churches  to  be 
dis-established,  no  vexed  tenants'  rights  to  be  legislated  upon,  no 
abuses  dating  from  the  time  of  Elizabeth  to  be  removed,  no  poor 
laws  to  worry,  and  no  great  public  social  reforms  to  be  inaugu- 
rated, the  "outs"  will  always  accuse  the  "ins"  of  corruption,  the 
"  ins  "  will  always  accuse  the  "  outs "  of  obstruction,  but  the 
material  progress  of  Canada  will  go  on  whatever  party  may  rule, 
whether  a  liberal  conservative  or  a  radical  grit  may  hold  the  reins 
of  power.  The  mercantile  man  only  plays  with  politics  as  a  pas- 
time ;  commercial  enterprise  is  utterly  indifferent  as  to  who  may 
open  the  gate,  provided  it  is  opened.  What  the  country  wants  is 
an  outlet  for  its  labour,  not  solely  for  its  wheat  and  flour,  but  for 
its  lumber,  its  ships,  its  other  manufactures.  What  cottons  are 
to  Manchester,  and  cutlery  to  Sheffield  and  Birmingham,  ships 
and  lumber  are  to  Canada.  England  will  have  markets  for  her 
cottons  and  cutlery — Canada  ought  to  have  for  her  ships  and 
lumber.  From  the  report  of  the  West  India  Commission  it 
appears  that  but  very  little  exertion  is  necessary  on  behalf  of 
Canada  to  obtain  from  the  Brazilian  Empire  reciprocal  advan- 
tages of  the  very  greatest  value,  not  only  the  interchange  of 
manufactures  and  natural  productions,  which  are  mutually  essen- 
tial to  each  other,  but  the  coasting  trade  and  the  registration 
of  vessels.  To  the  Maritime  Provinces  alone,  the  last  two 
concessions  would  be  inestimable.  There  is  no  country  in  the 
world  where  small  coasting  vessels  of  two  or  three  hundred 
tons,  can  be  built  so  cheaply  as  in  New  Brunswick  and  Nova 
Scotia.  Brazil  embraces  the  most  extensive  sea  coast,  and  com- 
mands the  largest  rivers.  It  produces  in  abundance  everything 
that  Canada  does  not  produce,  but  what  Canada  wants ;  yet  no 
arrangements  can  be  made  with  Brazil  for  interchanges,  conducing 
to  our  mutual  benefit,  unless  in  our  country  the  same  privileges 


' 


354  CONFEDERATION. 

are  given  to  Spain  and  other  nations,  who  will  make  no  concession 
in  return ;  thus  not  only  lessening  the  advantage  which  operates 
as  the  inducement  to  the  country  willing  to  make  the  concession, 
but  depriving  Canada  of  the  opportunity  of  raising  a  revenue 
except  by  direct  taxation,  or  the  abandonment  of  duties  even  for 
purposes  of  revenue  on  the  main  articles  of  trade  in  favour  of 
nations,  which  tax  her  products  of  exchange  to  the  highest 
extent,  and  with  whom  Canada  would  be  willing  to  enter  into  the 
same  reciprocal  arrangements  if  they  would.  The  rule,  of  which 
this  is  an  illustration,  extends  to  all  foreign  counties,  and  applies 
also  to  our  intercolonial  trade.  It  cripples  the  expansion  of 
Canada,  and  becomes  a  matter  for  most  serious  consideration. 
When  it  is  desirable  to  avoid  difficulties  with  the  United  States, 
which  may  involve  Imperial  responsibilities  or  affect  Imperial 
interests,  exceptional  treaties  and  exceptional  legislation  are  easily 
made,  and  the  celebrated  "  most  favoured  nation  "  clause  is  treated 
with  indifference. 

It  is  difficult  to  see  why  the  British  Colonies,  as  members  of 
the  same  family  cannot  have  the  most  perfect  freedom  of  trade 
with  each  other  without  necessarily  admitting  foreign  nations  to 
the  enjoyment  of  the  same  rights.  The  intercourse  between 
Australia  and  Canada  and  Jamaica  and  Canada  ought  to  be  as 
free  as  between  Ireland  and  England.  The  drawing  them  to- 
gether by  the  bonds  of  trade  and  a  mutuality  of  interest  will  do 
more  to  cement  the  British  races  throughout  the  world  and 
constitute  them  as  rallying  reserves  for  the  British  Empire  in  case 
of  contest  with  foreign  nations  than  any  other  course  that  could 
be  adopted. 

Under  the  present  system  Canada  has  no  more  material  interest 
in  Australia,  or  Australia  in  Canada,  than  each  may  have  in 
Spain,  and  Jamaica  so  far  as  any  benefit  to  be  derived  from  her 
sister  colonies,  might  as  well  belong  to  Russia.  The  suggestion  of 
an  Imperial  Confederation  and  representation  in  the  British 
Parliament  however  desirable  it  might  be  some  years  hence,  when 
Canada  and  Australia  shall  have  assumed  an  importance  in 
population  and  wealth  corresponding  to  the  extent  of  their 
territories,  and  would  bring  to  the  Councils  of  the  Empire  au 


CONFEDERATION.  355 

influence  commensurate  with  the  substantial  aid  they  could  afford 
in  case  of  an  Imperial  conflict  with  other  nations  (for  without 
such  substantial  aid,  pecuniary  as  well  as  otherwise,  they  could 
hardly  expect  to  have  any  weight  in  a  question  involving  peace 
or  war)  is  at  present,  in  Canada  at  least,  deemed  inopportune- 
Few  apparently  regard  it  with  favour.  Groups  of  Colonies  or 
Provinces  in  contiguous  positions  may  be  judiciously  confede- 
rated, so  as  to  give  strength  and  uniformity ;  but  as  far  as  public 
opinion  has  yet  expressed  itself,  Canadians,  simply  as  Cana- 
dians, do  not  desire  any  place  in  the  Imperial  Parliament  or 
any  participation  in  the  Home  Rule  of  the  British  Islands. 
Their  first  duty,  it  is  believed,  is  to  consolidate  and  connect 
their  own  country,  to  bend  all  their  energies  to  the  development 
of  Canadian  prosperity,  to  work  in  thorough  harmony  as  far  as 
possible  with  the  Imperial  policy  in  all  questions  of  trade  and 
foreign  connections,  but  not  in  any  way  to  mix  themselves  up 
in  matters  of  internal  Imperial  policy.  The  conflict  in  England 
between  those  who  are  seeking  to  change  her  old  institutions 
and  those  who  desire  to  preserve  the  ancient  landmarks,  will  be 
keen  enough  without  the  intervention  of  colonists  who  do  not 
contribute  to  her  taxation  and  who  do  not  permit  any  interference 
with  their  own.  The  views  of  a  Dominion  like  Canada  or 
Australia  so  far  as  affects  their  own  interest  can  be  far  more 
impressively  brought  to  bear  on  the  Imperial  Government  by  the 
distinct  action  of  their  own  Government  and  Parliament  than  by 
any  mere  personal  influence  of  a  few  members  in  a  large  assembly, 
who  from  their  representative  character  might  have  power  to 
bind,  but  whose  power  to  oppose  would  be  almost  futile. 

No  more  boundary  lines  will  be  agreed  upon  without  consulting 

the  Colony  affected,  and  where  the  Colonies  have  responsible 
governments,  there  is  nothing  else  in  which  the  Imperial  Parlia- 
ment can  affect  them  except  their  trade.  One  rule  for  those 
under  the  British  flag,  and  one  rule  for  those  under  any  other,  is 
an  intelligible  proposition.  One  rule,  one  tariff — the  same  on  the 
same  article  from  any  part  of  the  British  Empire  ;  one  rule,  one 
tariff,  (but  not  necessarily  identical  with  the  former),  the  same  on 
the  same  article  from  any  foreign  country — except  in  cases  where 


356  CONFEDERATION. 

under  the  right  to  be  conceded  by  the  Imperial  Government  of 
entering  into  free  or  reciprocal  trade  with  any  foreign  nation,  on 
terms  not  discriminating  against  the  goods  or  manufactures  of 
Great  Britain,  a  free  or  reciprocal  arrangement  may  have  been 
made — is  a  simple  chart  to  steer  by. 

Uniformity  of  tariff  for  purposes  of  revenue  suitable  to  its 
necessities  might  thus  be  secured  in  each  colony  or  group  of  colo- 
nies, and  would  exist  everywhere,  varying  only  in  degree  as 
each  colony  might  want  to  raise  more  or  less  revenue.  Each 
would  know  that  with  reference  to  the  Empire  the  same  rule  per- 
vaded every  part, — with  reference  to  foreign  nations  the  same  ; 
only  that  those  of  the  latter  who  chose  to  deal  liberally  could  do 
so — those  who  did  not  could  not  complain  as  the  option  was  their 
own.  Thus  the  "  most  favoured  nation "  clause  would  be  com- 
plied with.* 

Under  such  a  system  a  great  Canadian  trade  might  be  brought 
about  with  South  America.  The  preparation  for  it  could  be  a* 
once  inaugurated  by  Canada  without  any  intervention  on  the  part 
of  the  Imperial  Government,  by  the  at  once  subsidising  by  the 
Dominion  Government  of  a  line  or  lines  of  steamers  to  the  West 
Indies  and  South  America,  as  suggested  by  the  Commissioners  in 
their  report.  Inefficiently  as  this  would  supply  the  great  want, 
still  it  would  be  a  commencement ;  mutual  wants  would  be 
discovered,  mutual  sources  of  supply  would  at  once  suggest 

*  Since  the  above  was  in  press  information  has  reached  us  from  Australia  that  move- 
ments in  a  similar  direction,  though  not  to  the  same  extent,  being  merely  inter-provincial, 
are  in  progress  there.  A  conference  of  delegates  from  New  South  Wales,  Queensland, 
South  Australia,  Tasmania,  and  Victoria  recently  met  at  Melbourne,  when  after  much  dis- 
cussion on  the  important  questions  of  Intercolonial  Policy,  the  following  points  were 
unanimously  agreed  upon :  as  a  reply  to  a  dispatch  then  recently  received  from  Lord 
Kimberly,  the  Colonial  Minister,  namely,  — 

1st.  That  the  Australian  Colonies  claim  to  enter  into  arrangements  with  each  other 
through  their  respective  legislatures,  so  as  to  provide  for  the  reciprocal  admission  of  their 
respective  products  and  manufactures,  either  duty  free  or  on  such  terms  as  may  be 
mutually  agreed  upon. 

2nd.  That  no  treaty  entered  into  by  the  Imperial  Government  with  any  foreign  power 
should  in  any  way  limit  or  impede  the  exercise  of  such  right. 

3rd.  That  Imperial  interference  with  intercolonial  fiscal  legislation  should  finally  and 
absolutely  cease. 

4th.  That  so  much  of  any  act  or  acts  of  the  Imperial  Parliament  as  may  be  considered 
to  prohibit  the  full  exercise  of  such  right  should  be  repealed. 


CONFEDERATION.  357 

themselves,  and  the  larger  and  bolder  conception  would  not 
then  be  long  in  forcing  itself  upon  the  country.  The  propo- 
sition which  has  been  sometimes  mooted  of  a  Zolverein  with 
the  United  States  is  simply  a  commercial  amalgamation  with 
that  country  to  the  exclusion  of  all  others,  except  on  such  terms 
as  her  policy  might  dictate.  It  would  not  only  render  impossible 
our  present  connection  with  England;  but  it  may  be  seriously 
doubted,  whether  even  if  it  could  be  obtained  consistently  with 
that  connection  it  is  desirable.  It  would  be  impolitic  in  Canada, 
under  any  circumstances,  even  if  separated  from  England,  to  tie 
her  hands  to  one  country,  however  good  the  market  that  country 
may  offer.  The  more  varied  the  channels  of  trade,  the  more 
diverse  the  nations  with  which  she  may  have  to  deal,  the  more 
varied  will  be  the  development  of  her  own  powers,  and  the  greater 
the  stimulus  to  bring  into  existence  latent,  but  unused  sources  of 
wealth.  Some  nations  want,  what  others  do  not  want,  and  the 
effort  to  supply  the  varied  demand  tells  upon  the  productive  enter- 
prise of  the  country.  Desirable,  therefore,  as  may  be  the  market 
of  the  United  States,  the  price  paid  for  obtaining  it  by  such 
means  would  be  too  high.  The  British  and  Colonial  markets, 
including  the  East  India  possessions,  embracing  a  population  of 
nearly  200,000,000 ;  Brazil  with  a  coast  line  of  3000  miles,  and  a 
population  over  10,000,000,  willing  to  trade  with  us,  to  say 
nothing  of  other  foreign  nations  who  may  hereafter  be  willing  to 
do  so  on  liberal  reciprocal  arrangements,  would  all  be  thus 
rendered  subsidiary  to  the  attainment  of  trade  with  the  38  or 
40,000,000  of  the  United  States, — a  trade  less  varied  from  simi- 
larity of  production,  bringing  into  competition  rather  than  ex- 
change the  articles  of  the  two  countries,  and  from  geographical 
position  entirely  neutralising  one  of  the  great  elements  of  advan- 
tage— her  marine — which  Canada  now  possesses.  [See  Appendix.] 
Not  only  would  such  a  Zolverein  render  impossible  all  inde- 
pendent action  abroad.  Not  only  would  it  make  Canadian  pro- 
gress dependent  entirely  upon  the  fluctuations  of  business  or 
politics  in  the  United  States ;  but  it  would  in  a  very  short  time 

§  merge    Canada   into   the    United    States   politically   as   well   as 
commercially 


358  CONFEDERATION. 

The  Zolverein  of  the  German  States  terminated  in  their  political 
absorption  into  Prussia,  and  history  under  similar  circumstances 
on  the  American  continent  would  but  repeat  itself.  Canada  with 
her  unbounded,  but  yet  undeveloped  resources  with  her  com- 
paratively light  taxation,  with  her  freedom  from  the  necessity 
of  maintaining  burdensome  and  expensive  armaments  or  diplo- 
matic relations,  has  a  magnificent  future  before  her,  if  following 
the  example  of  the  parent  state,  she  will  look  to  the  whole  world 
as  her  customers  and  not  restrict  herself  by  an  injudicious  alliance 
to  any  one  country.* 

The  question  requires  the  consideration  of  the  ablest  mercantile 
minds.  It  is  in  the  direction  of  free  trade,  it  is  not  seeking  to 
protect  any  one  interest  at  the  expense  of  another,  or  to  make  a 
distinction  in  favour  of  particular  nations.  If  the  United  States 
will  not  give  her  coasting  trade  or  exchange  ships,  but  Brazil  will, 
why  should  not  Canada  be  at  liberty  to  do  so  with  Brazil  ]  If 
Brazil  will  take  Canadian  lumber  and  fish  at  duties  so  low  as  to 
create  a  great  trade,  in  consideration  of  Canada  taking  back 
Brazillian  coffee,  sugars,  and  tobacco  on  the  same  terms  as  might, 
under  the  provision  before  referred  to,  be  applied  to  Jamaica 
coffee,  sugar,  and  tobacco,  or  the  coffee,  sugar,  and  tobacco  of  any 
British  Colony,  why  should  such  an  arrangement  not  be  made 
with  Brazil,  simply  because  the  United  States  refused  to  make  a 
similar  one  1  At  present  all  must  come  in  alike,  and  no  induce- 

*  At  the  meeting  of  the  National  Board  of  Trade  which  took  place  at  St.  Louis,  in  the 
United  States,  in  the  early  part  of  December  1871,  the  following  resolutions  were  submitted 
as  the  terms  on  which  such  a  Zolverein  should  be  established,  and  which,  singular  to  say, 
received  the  approval  of  one  prominent  Canadian  then  present  : 

1.  The  introduction  of  all  the  manufactures,  products  of  the  United  States,  into  the 
Dominion  of  Canada,  free  of  import  duty  and  the  like  concession  by  the  United  States  to 
the  manufactures  and  products  of  the  Dominion. 

2.  Uniform  laws  to  be  passed  by  both  countries  for  internal  taxation,  the  sums  collected 
from  these  sources  to  be  placed  in  a  common  treasury  and  to  be  divided  between  the  two 
Governments  by  a  per  capita,  or  some  other  equally  fair  ratio. 

3.  The  admission  of  Dominion  built  ships  and  vessels  to  American  registry,  enrolment 
and  license,  and  to  all  privileges  of  the  coasting  and  foreign  trade. 

4.  The  Dominion  to  enlarge  its  canals  and  improve  the  navigation  of  the  St.  Lawrence 
and  to  aid  in  the  building  of  any  great  lines  of  international  railroad  and  to  place  the 
citizens  of  the  United  States  in  the  same  position  as  to  the  use  of  such  works  as  enjoyed 
by  the  citizens  of  the  Dominion,  the  United  States  and  the  several  states  giving  the 
citizens  of  the  Dominion  the  same  rights  and  privileges  over  works  of  the  same  character 
in  the  United  States. 


CONFEDERATION.  359 

ment  can,  therefore,  be  held  out  to  Brazil  to  give  Canada  her 
markets ; — but  if  Canada  could  make  a  distinctionin  favour  of  the 
British  Colonies,  and  of  such  nations  as  would  be  liberal  with 
her,  an  immediate  expansion  of  the  trade  of  the  country  would 
follow. 

By  a  proper  representation  to  the  Imperial  Government  it  is 
thought  a  change  in  the  present  policy  could  be  brought  about  in 
that  direction. 

So  far  as  Canada  is  concerned  justice  demands  it.  Thrown  now 
entirely  upon  her  own  resources  for  the  defence  against  aggression 
from  abroad,  and  the  maintenance  of  order  within  her  long  line 
of  frontier  of  many  thousand  miles,  with  every  soldier  of  Her 
Majesty's  regular  forces  withdrawn,  with  heavily  increased  ex- 
penses incidental  to  the  government  of  extensive  and,  in  some 
degree,  as  yet  unproductive  territories,  and  to  the  construction  of 
immense  ;  public  works,  rendered  necessary  by  her  geographical 
position,  and  the  assumption  of  duties  hitherto  borne  by  the 
Imperial  Government,  her  powers  must  rise  to  her  responsi- 
bilities, her  means  of  raising  a  revenue  adequate  to  her  necessi- 
ties must  be  unquestioned.  No  rightly-minded  Canadian  would 
desire  to  place  his  country  in  antagonism  to  the  commercial  policy 
of  the  empire  ;  but  if  the  internal  policy  of  the  Imperial  Govern- 
ment throws  upon  Canada  certain  duties,  then  (however  opposed 
to  a  particular  sub-division  of  the  general  policy  of  the  empire 
which  general  policy  involves  the  good  government  of  the  whole) 
it  must  be  regarded  as  a  part  of  that  general  policy,  that  Canada 
should  carry  out  the  duty  so  assigned  in  a  way  least  burdensome 
to  her  own  people.  The  rules  of  good  government  admit  of  no 
other  construction. 

The  responsibilities  thus  thrown  upon  Canada  she  accepts. 
Similar  responsibilities  educated  the  old  thirteen  colonies  to 
become  a  nation.  Their  citizens  became  soldiers,  their  soldiers 
statesmen.  What  made  Pepperall  and  Franklin,  Washington 
and  Adams,  Hamilton  and  Marshall  the  men  they  were  1  Long 
before  the  He  volution  they  were  dealing  with  questions  beyond 
the  sphere  of  local  politics.  Those  young  Provinces  trained  their 
Home  Guards  to  meet  the  Indian  Philip,  and  sent  their  regiments 


3GO  CONFEDERATION. 

to  wrest  Louisburg  from  France ;  but  the  trader  of  Boston  could 
not  buy  a  knife  from  France,  or  a  yard  of  cloth  from  Germany. 
Their  commerce  had  but  one  groove. 

The  history  of  Caspar  Hauzer  shews  that  the  mind  untrained, 
however  naturally  strong,  remains  in  a  state  of  imbecility,  though 
the  physical  frame  may  attain  its  fair  proportions.  The  Canadian 
statesman  has  now  to  consider  other  matters  than  those  of  mere 
internal  regulation.  He  has  to  look  abroad  to  the  development 
of  foreign  trade,  to  his  position  with  foreign  countries.  "  Far  as 
the  breezes  bear,  the  ocean  rolls,"  his  commerce  is  free.  He  must 
see  to  its  sustenance,  to  its  extension.  He  wishes  to  act  in  full 
accord  with  the  mother  country  ;  whatever  policy  she  deems  best 
for  herself,  as  a  general  nile,  is  best  for  Canada ;  what  strengthens 
her  strengthens  peace;  but  to  all  rules  there  must  be  some  ex- 
ception, and  the  South  American  and  Intercolonial  trade  with 
Canada  comes  within  the  exception. 

After  all,  the  West  India  Commission  may  do  the  country 
some  service. 


[361] 


CHAPTER  XL 

The  Fenian  Invasion  of  1866 — Lower  Canada  Education  Bill — Action  of  the 
Government — Gait's  resignation — Subsequent  conduct — Constitution  of 
the  Local  Governments  and  Legislatures  for  Upper  and  Lower  Canada — 
Resolutions  and  amendments — Parliamentary  action  of  prominent  Upper 
Canadian  Politicians  on  Representation  by  Population — Address  to  the 
Queen — Announcement  of  Deputation — Expiry  of  the  Parliament  of  Old 
Canada— A.  D.  1866. 

The  Fenian  Raid  which  took  place  in  the  summer  of  this  year 
(1866), — one  of  the  most  wanton  and  outrageous  violations  of 
international  law  that  has  occurred  since  modern  civilization  began, 
— though  not  one  of  the  causes  which  led  to  Confederation,  was 
yet  one  of  those  incidents  which  essentially  proved  the  necessity 
of  that  military  organization  which,  it  was  alleged,  would  spring 
from  Confederation,  and  which  was  one  of  the  first  measures  car- 
ried after  Confederation 'was  adopted. 

It  exemplified  in  a  strong  degree  the  alacrity  with  which  the 
young  men  of  the  country  were  ready  to  spring  to  arms  at  the  call 
of  duty,  and  intensified  the  devotion  of  her  people  to  Canada ;  but 
it  proved  the  defect  which  exists  in  most  Volunteer  organizations, 
that  of  too  great  an  anxiety  to  rush  into  combat,  too  great  an  idea 
of  individuality,  instead  of  waiting  to  carry  out  the  combinations 
which  an  experienced  and  prudent  commander  may  determine  on. 

Military  subordination  is  as  essential  to  the  successful  conduct- 
ing of  a  campaign  as  personal  courage.  If  the  accounts  of  the 
Invasion  can  be  relied  on,  the  latter  was  conspicuous — the  former 
may  be  improved.  Apart  from  the  opinion  prevalent  in  Canada, 
•f  mismanagement  and  inattention  in  the  highest  military  autho- 
rity at  that  time  in  Upper  Canada,  there  was  also  singular  want 
of  proper  information,  and  ignorance  of  the  topography  of  the 
country.  In  an  enemy's  country,  apparently,  the  routes  could 
not  have  been  more  thoroughly  unknown — on  this  point  all  seemed 
confusion.  Yet  the  whole  affair  took  place  in  a  small  angle  of  the 
oldest  settled  part  of  Canada,  had  been  anticipated  in  that  quarter 
24 


362  CONFEDERATION. 

for  weeks  before,  and  looked  for  by  those  in  charge  of  the  military 
defence  of  the  country. 

For  the  want  of  proper  topographical  information  it  seems  diffi- 
cult to  find  an  excuse.  It  is  as  essential  to  the  defence  of  a  frontier 
as  ammunition  is  to  the  discharge  of  a  firearm ;  and  the  attain- 
ment of  it  falls  as  much  within  a  legitimate  military  expenditure 
as  the  preliminary  drilling  of  a  body  of  men.  In  many  parts  of 
old  Canada,  and  throughout  the  Maritime  Provinces,  whole  coun- 
ties are  mapped  out  at  private  expense  with  perfect  accuracy — 
with  every  road  and  hill,  orchard  and  stream,  house,  forest  and 
lake — so  that  in  such  delineated  districts  an  authority  in  com- 
mand, however  remote,  may  with  certainty  direct  the  movement 
of  troops,  so  as  to  concentrate  any  required  number  on  any  given 
point.  In  Prince  Edward  Island,  a  stranger  may  land  at  one 
end,  traverse  the  whole  in  any  direction,  and  find  any  place  he 
desires  to  reach,  without  instructions  from  any  individual,  if  he 
has  sufficient  intelligence  to  examine  a  map.  The  ordnance  sur- 
veys of  England  and  Ireland  are  not  more  correct  as  to  surface 
details  or  distances. 

Col.  Peacock's  plan,  it  is  now  generally  admitted,  was  judicious; 
and  had  his  orders  been  carried  out,  the  Fenians  must  have  been 
placed  between  two  converging  forces  and  utterly  annihilated. 
As  it  was,  while  the  honor  of  the  conflict  fell  entirely  to  the  local 
troops,  the  loss  was  such,  it  was  considered,  as  ought  not  to  have 
been  incurred,  and  the  equivocal  character  of  the  triumph  might 
have  been  avoided.  Both  would  have  been  avoided  by  a  couple 
of  hours'  delay,  and  Her  Majesty's  Regulars  would  have  been  at 
hand  to  sustain  the  gallant  rashness  of  young  men  who  required 
to  be  checked  more  than  be  encouraged.  But  more  than  all,  such 
punishment  would  probably  have  been  inflicted  upon  the  marauders 
as  would  have  prevented  the  subsequent  attempts,  four  years  after, 
to  repeat  the  outrage. 

Again,  if  these  same  accounts  can  be  relied  on,  there  was  an 
entire  absence  of  those  preliminary  preparations  which  are  essen- 
tial to  any  success  in  war. 

Two  writers  have  given  their  narratives — Major  Denison,  of 
the  Governor-General's  Body  Guard,  and  Mr.  Alexander  Somer- 


CONFEDERATION.  363 

ville,  well  known  in  Canada  as  the  "  Whistler  at  the  Plough." 
Both  are  apparently  written  with  fairness,  after  a  thorough  exam- 
ination of  the  locality,  and  the  attainment  of  the  most  reliable 
information.  The  former  is  a  well  known  cavalry  officer  in 
Canada,  the  author  of  several  able  works  on  the  utility  of  that 
branch  of  the  service,  was  with  the  advancing  force,  and  came 
upon  the  field  at  Ridgway,  on  the  staff,  shortly  after  the  engage- 
ment. If  their  statements  are  correct — and  there  does  not  appear 
to  have  been  any  official  or  authoritative  contradiction  of  them — 
the  Volunteers  were  hurried  to  the  front  without  sufficient  ammu- 
nition or  proper  supplies  of  food — without  the  necessary  equip- 
ments for  a  march — with  a  divided  command,  and  without  any 
previous  co-operation — with  deficient  transport  arrangements,  un- 
certainty of  direction,  and  no  sufficient  medical  preparation. 

The  orders  of  Col.  Peacock,  of  Her  Majesty's  16th  Regiment, 
commanding  in  the  field,  were  heedlessly  departed  from,  without 
any  immediate  necessity  or  proper  justification,  and  a  well  arranged 
plan  disconcerted  by  two  officers  of  standing — one  of  them  an 
officer  of  Her  Majesty's  Regular  Army.  The  Volunteers  were 
unnecessarily  carried  into  action  at  Ridgway  unsupported,  when, 
by  their  orders,  they  should  have  been  at  an  intermediate  station, 
and  waited  for  the  junction  of  Col.  Peacock's  division.  From  not 
having  obtained,  any  previous  information  as  to  the  nature  of  the 
enemy's  force,  a  serious  misapprehension  arose  which  threw  them 
into  confusion,  and  led  to  great  loss  of  life. 

It  is  painful  to  read  of  boys  slaughtered  by  such  mismanage- 
ment, and  worse  to  be  told  that,  young  and  inexperienced  as  they 
were,  they  saw  the  error,  but  in  obedience  to  the  bugle  call,  twice 
repeated,  retired  and  closed  in,  only  to  certain  death. 

This  invasion,  however,  proved  two  things  conclusively.  First, 
That  we  had  depended  too  long  for  the  defence  of  the  country 
upon  Her  Majesty's  Regular  troops,  and  that,  in  order  to  prevent 
disaster  for  the  future,  it  was  necessary  that  the  entire  military 
organization  of  the  country  should  be  put  upon  a  better  footing. 
Secondly,  That  if  in  the  future  the  Government  did  its  duty,  and 
prepared  in  time,  the  personal  courage  and  patriotism  of  the  people 
would  be  sufficient  for  their  own  defence. 


364  CONFEDERATION. 

Lessons  of  this  character,  however  painful  at  the  time,  are 
generally  beneficial  in  their  results ;  and,  in  consequence,  we  can 
at  this  day  (in  1871)  point  to  a  system  sound  in  theory  and 
prompt  in  action — a  system  which,  tried  on  three  occasions  within 
eighteen  months,  has  thrown  into  the  field  with  wonderful  rapidity 
a  body  of  well  drilled,  able  men — able  in  number,  discipline  and 
spirit  to  meet  the  emergencies  which  demanded  their  services. 

In  the  spring  of  1870,  when  the  second  Fenian  invasion  was 
made,  and  terminated  in  the  disgraceful  rout  of  the  marauders  at 
Eccles'  Hill,  on  the  Eastern  Townships  frontier,  13,000  men  well 
equipped,  well  drilled,  ready  for  active  service,  with  all  arms, 
ammunition  and  appointments  complete  were,  in  forty-eight  hours, 
assembled  from  the  Ottawa  and  Central  district  alone,  and  trans- 
ferred to  one  of  the  expected  points  of  attack  on  the  line  of  the 
St.  Lawrence  canals.  Equally  sufficient  numbers  were,  with 
equal  promptitude,  brought  together  in  the  western  section,  where 
an  irruption  was  expected,  and  the  Eastern  Townships  had  their 
quota  without  calling  for  aid  from  any  other  point,  though  General 
Lindsay,  in  command  at  Montreal,  forthwith  sent  Mer  Majesty's 
69th  regiment  to  the  frontier — on  which  occasion  His  Royal 
Highness  Prince  Arthur  saw  his  first  active  service  in  the  field. 

Very  shortly  after,  the  Canadian  soldiers  shared  the  fatigues  of 
that  long  two  months'  march  with  Her  Majesty's  60th  Rifles, 
through  six  hundred  miles  of  wilderness,  to  Manitoba,  and  at  a 
still  later  day,  in  the  autumn  of  1871,  when  the  ice  was  forming 
on  the  lakes,  and  the  storms  of  winter  commencing,  at  a  week's 
notice  two  hundred  men,  fully  armed  and  equipped,  were  sent  off 
on  the  same  journey,  and  accomplished  it  with  success  in  less  than 
three  weeks.  The  Canadian  Army  may  not  have  the  port  or  bear- 
ing on  parade  of  Her  Majesty's  regular  forces;  but  in  the  field  the 
men  though  rough  are  ready — good  shots,  good  axemen,  muscular, 
capable  of  fatigue,  when  well  commanded  subordinate,  and  ready 
at  all  times  to  fight  for  the  protection  of  their  country  and  flag. 
This  result  has,  since  Confederation,  been  attained  by  the  gradual 
introduction  of  an  efficient  and  judicious  system,  worked  up  under 
many  disadvantages  and  against  great  prejudices,  a  system  which 
has  received  the  approbation  of  Her  Majesty's  Government,  and 


CONFEDERATION.  365 

of  the  highest  military  authorities  in  England,  and  has  at  the 
same  time  earned  for  itself  the  respect  of  our  neighbours  in  the 
United  States.* 

It  does  not  come  within  the  province  of  this  work,  to  enter  into 
the  details  of  the  invasion  of  1866,  or  to  refer  to  it  in  other  than 
general  terms.  A  grateful  country  marked  its  appreciation  of  the 
services  of  its  soldiers.  Compensation  and  pensions  were  granted 
by  Parliament  to  the  wounded  survivors,  and  to  the  widows  and 
orphans  of  those  who  fell.  The  University  of  Toronto  erected  a 
monument  in  honor  of  its  young  students,  who,  leaving  the  quiet 
studies  of  its  halls,  had  commenced  and  closed  their  lives  on  the 
field  of  battle  in  defence  of  the  liberties  of  their  country,  and  the 
press  throughout  British  America  commemorated,  in  becoming 
language,  events  which  it  is  well  should  not  be  forgotten. 

The  losses  sustained  by  this  and  subsequent  similar  invasions, 
have  been  made  the  subject  of  remonstrance  with  the  Imperial 
Government,  and  with  the  trials  and  punishment  of  the  prisoners 
which  followed,  the  conduct  of  the  Government  and  people  of  the 
United  States,  of  the  representative  of  Her  Majesty's  Government 
at  Washington,  and  of  the  Imperial  authorities  in  England,  to- 
gether with  the  question  of  international  duties  as  between  Eng- 
land and  the  United  States,  and  between  both  and  Canada  on  this 
subject,  will  have  to  be  considered  when  we  come  to  the  parlia- 
mentary and  other  proceedings  which  followed  the  consummation 
of  Confederation  in  1867. 

In  August,  1866,  Mr.  Gait  resigned  his  position  as  Finance 
Minister,  and  retired  from  the  Cabinet  on  the  determination  of 
the  Government  not  to  proceed  with  the  Lower  Canada  Education 
Bill.  This  Bill  was  wisely  abandoned  by  the  Government,  owing 
to  the  determination  expressed  by  their  Lower  Canada  supporters, 
not  to  permit  this  Bill  to  pass  unless  a  similar  Bill  with  reference 
to  the  Roman  Catholic  minorities  in  Upper  Canada  was  carried 

*  The  system  was  originated  in  Old  Canada,  by  Major-General  P.  L.  Macdougall,  ably 
assisted  by  Colonel  Dyde,  of  Montreal,  and  the  volunteer  officers,  both  in  Upper  and  Lower 
Canada ;  adopted  in  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia  by  the  Lieutenant  Governors  of 
those  Provinces,  assisted  with  equal  ability  by  their  officers  ;  and  after  Confederation  im- 
proved, extended  throughout  the  whole  Dominion  by  Act  of  Parliament,  and  effectively 
worked  out  by  Sir  George  E.  Cartier,  the  Minister  of  Militia,  with  the  Adjutant-General 
Colonel  Robertson  Ross. 


366  CONFEDERATION. 

pari  passu.  This  their  Upper  Canada  supporters  would  not  assent 
to,  alleging  that  their  existing  law,  but  lately  passed,  worked  well 
and  fairly,  giving  no  dissatisfaction,  and  requiring  no  amendment. 
In  announcing  the  determination  of  the  Government,  the  Hon. 
John  A.  Macdonald,  after  pointing  out  that  if  the  Bill  before  the 
House  was  pressed,  there  would  be  the  unfortunate  spectacle  of 
the  majority  in  Lower  Canada  in  a  conflict  with  the  majority  in 
Upper  Canada,  just  as  they  were  on  the  eve  of  separation,  ob- 
served that  "The  provisions  of  this  Bill  formed  part  of  the  guar- 
antees provided  by  Confederation, -and  any  laws  on  this  subject 
in  force  when  Confederation  is  consummated,  could  not  afterwards 
be  altered,  and  each  section  would  have  felt  itself  suffering  under 
grievances,  which  there  was  no  constitutional  method  of  escaping 
from.  Canada,  therefore,  instead  of  starting  on  a  new  race  of 
Confederation  in  peace  and  harmony,  would  present  to  the  Lower 
Provinces  an  unfortunate  spectacle  of  two  houses  divided  against 
themselves.  Instead  of  a  double  majority,  we  should  have  had 
a  double  minority." 

Mr.  Gait,  who  was  regarded  as  the  exponent  of  the  feelings  and 
wishes  of  the  Protestant  minority  in  Lower  Canada,  had  identified 
himself  with  this  bill,  and  pledged  himself  to  its  support.  Whilst 
therefore,  he  admitted  that  the  course  pursued  by  the  Government 
was,  under  the  circumstances,  the  most  judicious,  he  felt  it  was 
one  he  could  not  personally  support.  "  It  was  not,"  he  said, 
"that  he  thought  the  Protestants  of  Lower  Canada  would  be 
dealt  with  unfairly  by  the  Catholic  majority,  but  it  was  because 
he  had,  in  his  place  in  the  House  and  in  the  Government,  taken  a 
certain  ground  on  this  question,  which  rendered  it  impossible  for 
him  to  be  responsible  for  the  policy  of  the  Government  on  this 
measure." 

Mr.  Gait's  conduct  on  this  occasion  commanded  the  respect  of 
all  parties.  His  secession  from  the  Government  at  the  moment 
was  much  regretted,  as  one  of  the  ablest  and  most  earnest  sup- 
porters of  the  great  measure  of  confederation,  then  about  to  pass 
through  its  trying  ordeal,  the  final  arrangement  and  adjustment 
of  its  component  parts ;  but  the  conviction  was  general  that  he 
would  not  be  less  its  friend,  because  no  longer  a  member  of  the 


CONFEDERATION.  367 

Government,  and  that  it  would  still  receive  his  powerful  co-opera- 
tion, a  conviction  which  subsequent  events  amply  justified. 

About  a  month  after  the  opening  of  the  session  of  1866,  the 
honourable  the  Attorney-General  John  A.  Macdonald  introduced 
certain  resolutions  to  provide  for  the  Local  Governments  and 
Legislatures  of  Lower  and  Upper  Canada  respectively,  when  the 
union  should  be  effected.  For  the  Maritime  Provinces  no  such 
provisions  were  requisite.  Their  constitutions  would  remain  in 
operation  as  before  confederation,  restricted  only  by  such  limita" 
tions  as  would  be  introduced  by  the  Imperial  Act  effecting  the 
union  ;  but  with  reference  to  the  two  Canadas  they  were  again  to 
be  reconstructed  into  different  Provinces,  and  separately  clothed 
with  the  legislative  powers  necessary  for  the  management  of  their 
local  affairs. 

Little  public  excitement  or  discussion  was  aroused  on  the 
subject,  but  the  teachings  of  history  seemed  as  it  were  to  be 
reversed — Lower  Canada  with  its  French  element  preferred  to 
follow  Conservative  England  and  retain  two  chambers,  while 
Upper  Canada  with  its  English  element  preferred  to  follow  in  the 
wake  of  Republican  France,  and  have  only  one  chamber,  "  one  and 
indivisible."  The  French  were  more  English  than  the  English ; 
the  English  were  more  French  than  the  French. 

Provision  was  first  made  for  the  proper  maintenance  in  each  of 
responsible  Government.  Two  chambers  were  then  provided  for 
Lower  Canada,  to  be  called  "  The  Legislative  Council,"  and  "  The 
Legislative  Assembly."  One  chamber  only  for  Upper  Canada  to 
be  called  "  The  Legislative  Assembly." 

The  Legislative  Council  of  Lower  Canada  was  to  be  composed 
of  twenty-four  members,  appointed  by  the  Crown  for  life,  British 
subjects  by  birth  or  naturalization,  thirty  years  of  age,  with  a 
continuous  real  property  qualification  in  Lower  Canada  of  $4000, 
over  all  incumbrances,  debts,  and  liabilities,  the  Council  itself 
being  the  sole  tribunal  for  the  adjudication  of  any  question  as  to 
the  qualification  of  its  members  ;  the  Speaker  to  be  appointed  by 
the  Crown,  holding  office  during  pleasure,  and  voting  only  when 
there  was  a  tie,  each  councillor  representing  one  of  the  twenty- 
four  electoral  divisions,  into  which  Lower  Canada  was  then 


368  CONFEDERATION. 

divided,  for  the  purpose  of  representation  in  the  Legislative 
Council  of  United  Canada  of  that  day,  and  residing  or  possessing 
his  qualification  in  the  division  which  he  represented.  Thus  it 
will  be  perceived  that  the  constitution  of  this  branch  of  the  Legis- 
lature of  Lower  Canada  was  to  be  eminently  Conservative, 
possessing  both  a  territorial,  personal,  and  pecuniary  character. 

For  the  Lower  House  or  Legislative  Assembly,  the  existing 
sixty-five  Electoral  Divisions  into  which  Lower  Canada  was  then 
divided  for  representation  in  the  House  of  Assembly  of  United 
Canada  were  retained,  and  a  distinct  provision  was  inserted,  that 
such  number  should  not  be  altered,  unless  both  the  second  and 
third  readings  of  any  bill  to  effect  such  alteration  should  be  passed 
with  the  concurrence  of  three-fourths  of  the  members  of  the  said 
Legislative  Assembly. 

The  lone  Assembly  of  Upper  Canada  was  to  be  composed  of 
eighty-two  members  representing  constituencies  then  designated 
and  declared. 

Provision  was  also  made,  that  the  existing  laws  regulating 
elections  then  in  force  in  United  Canada,  and  applicable  to  either 
Upper  or  Lower  Canada,  should  continue  in  force  until  altered  or 
amended  by  the  Legislatures  newly  to  be  constituted,  only  that 
the  term  of  each  House  should  continue  for  four  years,  unless 
sooner  dissolved  by  the  Lieutenant-Governor  of  the  Province  to 
which  it  belonged,  and  that  a  longer  period  than  twelve  months 
should  not  intervene  between  any  two  sessions  of  the  Legislature. 

Thus,  as  contrasted  with  Lower  Canada,  it  will  be  seen  that  the 
constitution  of  the  Local  Legislature  of  Upper  Canada  was  singu- 
larly democratic ;  and  in  reality  the  only  similarity  which  existed 
between  the  two,  in  the  preliminary  formation,  namely,  the  pro- 
perty qualification  of  candidates  or  members,  was  abolished  by  the 
Legislature  of  Upper  Canada,  among  its  first  acts  after  coming 
into  power  under  Confederation. 

The  38th  and  41st  paragraph  of  the  Quebec  Resolutions  were 
re-resolved,  that  the  Lieutenant-Governors  of  the  several  Provinces 
of  the  Confederation,  when  formed,  should  be  appointed  by  the 
Governor-General  under  the  great  seal  of  Canada,  to  hold  office 
for  five  years,  unless  removed  for  cause ;  such  cause  to  be  imme- 


CONFEDERATION.  369 

diately  communicated  in  writing  to  the  Lieutenant-Governor  on 
the  exercise  of  the  power  of  removal,  and  to  both  Houses  of  the 
Confederated  Parliament  within  the  first  week  of  the  first  session 
afterwards  ;  and  that  the  Local  Government  and  Legislature  of 
each  Province  should  be  constructed  in  such  manner  as  the  exist- 
ing Legislature  of  each  Province  should  provide. 

During  the  debate  which  followed  the  moving  of  these  resolu- 
tions, an  additional  provision,  that  the  appointment  of  the  first 
Lieutenant-Governors  should  be  provisional  only,  and  strictly 
during  pleasure,  was  carried  without  a  division ;  the  necessity  for 
such  a  provision  being  so  apparent  as  to  require  no  discussion, 
inasmuch  as  their  appointment  on  the  day  of  the  inauguration  of 
the  Confederation  would  have  to  emanate  from  the  Governor- 
General,  on  the  advice  of  a  Privy  Council  which  would  not  at  the 
time  have  itself  received  the  sanction  of  the  people. 

An  amendment,  moved  by  Mr.  Gait,  seconded  by  the  Attorney- 
General  West,  (the  introducer  of  the  resolutions)  doing  away  with 
the  proposed  restrictions  as  to  the  alteration  of  the  number  of  the 
representatives  in  the  Legislative  Assembly  of  Lower  Canada; 
and  the  limits  of  the  Electoral  Districts, — confining  the  latter  to 
certain  specified  districts  only,  and  permitting  the  alteration  on 
being  assented  to  by  a  majority  of  the  members  representing  the 
said  specified  districts, — was  also  carried  on  a  division,  the  matter 
being  apparently  one  springing  from  local  causes  only,  and  intended 
to  provide  that  certain  constituencies — those  inhabited  by  people 
of  British  origin — should  not  be  altered  as  to  their  limits,  except 
with  the  concurrence  of  the  majority  of  their  own  representation. 

An  additional  resolution  was  also  passed,  providing  for  the 
adjustment  of  the  debts,  credits  and  liabilities,  properties  and  assets 
of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada  by  arbitration,  which  was  subse- 
quently embodied  in  the  British  North  America  Act  of  1867,  but 
for  which  no  provision  had  been  made  in  the  Quebec  Resolutions. 

A  motion  made  by  Mr.  M.  C.  Cameron,  and  seconded  by  Mr. 
Mackenzie,  limiting  the  Executive  Council  of  the  Local  Govern- 
ments to  five  members,  was  negatived. 

When  the  question  of  concurrence  in  the  resolutions  came  up, 
Mr.  Dorion  endeavoured  to  assimilate  the  proposed  constitution  of 


370  CONFEDEKATION. 

the  Local  Legislature  of  Lower  Canada  to  that  proposed  for  Upper 
Canada,  but  his  motion  was  negatived  on  a  division  of  69  to  31, 
apparently  a  party  vote. 

An  effort  in  a  similar  direction  on  behalf  of  Upper  Canada  was 
made  by  Mr.  Cameron  of  Peel,  seconded  by  Mr.  Morris,  to  obtain 
two  Chambers  for  Upper  Canada ;  but  the  division  showed  only 
13  in  favour  of  the  motion,  and  86  against  it. 

Mr.  Dorion  then  endeavoured  to  have  the  Legislative  Council 
for  Lower  Canada  made  elective,  but  failed,  the  division  being 
very  much  as  on  his  former  motion,  31  to  63.  ' 

He  then  proposed  a  very  important  amendment,  "  that  no  mem- 
ber of  the  Legislative  Council  should  hold  any  office  of  emolument 
under  either  the  General  or  Local  Government ;  nor  receive,  either 
directly  or  indirectly,  any  salary,  remuneration  or  indemnity  what- 
soever for  such  office,  or  for  his  services  as  such  member  of  the 
Legislative  Council,  while  he  shall  have  a  seat  in  the  Council ;" 
this  provision  not  to  apply  to  Executive  Councillors  and  the  sala- 
ries attached  to  the  respective  departments  or  offices  they  shall 
fill;"  but  this  amendment  was  also  lost  on  a  division  of  26  to  67. 

An  effort  to  have  the  Speaker  of  the  Legislative  Council  chosen 
by  its  members,  made  by  Mr.  Dorion,  equally  failed  by  a  vote  of 
24  to  63. 

A  similar  fate  befell  a  motion  made  by  Mr.  Cauchon,  seconded 
by  Mr.  Dorion,  to  strike  out  the  provision  relative  to  the  altera- 
tion of  the  limits  of  particular  Electoral  Districts,  except  with 
the  concurrence  of  the  majority  of  the  members  representing  the 
said  Districts, — the  vote  being  24  to  68  ;  and  the  formation  of  the 
Local  Legislatures  of  the  two  new  Provinces  to  be  re-formed  out 
of  old  Canada,  so  far  as  indicated  by  the  then  existing  Legislature 
of  old  Canada  at  its  last  session,  may  be  said  to  have  finally  closed. 

During  the  debates  which  took  place  on  these  several  resolutions 
and  amendments,  nothing  of  particular  interest  occurred,  save, 
perhaps,  the  views  of  one  or  two  members  on  the  subject  of  repre- . 
sentation  by  population — views  which  it  may  be  important  to 
reproduce,  as  evidencing  the  construction  put  upon  the  term  in 
Upper  Canada  by  some  of  its  leading  public  men,  pending  the 
discussion  on  the  details  of  Confederation,  and  as  bearing  upon 
the  terms  on  which  other  Provinces  might  afterwards  be  admitted. 


CONFEDERATION.  371 

On  the  motion  made  by  the  Attorney-General  John  A.  Mac- 
donald,  for  concurrence  in  the  schedule  distributing  the  new  seats 
in  Upper  Canada,  he  explained  that  as  village  municipalities  were 
constantly  springing  up  in  Upper  Canada,  they  would  of  course 
be  included  in  the  constituency,  within  the  limits  of  which  they 
were  situated.  The  Hon.  George  Brown  thereupon  declared  that 
the  plan  before  the  House  did  not  carry  out  the  principle  of 
representation  by  population.  "  On  looking  at  the  schedule,"  he 
said,  "  he  found  one  constituency,  Niagara,  with  only  4,470  of  a 
population,  and  another,  Essex,  with  no  less  than  25,211.  In 
adding  up  the  population  of  the  ten  smaller  constituencies  he  found 
they  contained  a  population  of  82,258,  while  the  ten  largest  con- 
stituencies contained  over  231,000.  By  adding  the  population  of 
the  twenty  smallest  constituencies  together,  it  appeared  that  they 
contained  only  214,000.  Thus  we  had  214,000  people  having 
twice  as  many  members  as  231,000.  Then  taking  the  represen- 
tation east  of  Kingston,  he  found  seventeen  members  whose 
constituencies  had  an  average  population  of  14,000,  while  the 
seventeen  western  constituencies  contained  an  average  population 
of  18,000.  He  thought  a  better  plan  would  have  been  to  have 
given  a  second  member  to  the  largest  constituencies,  than  to  have 
made  new  ones." 

Mr.  Mackenzie  said,  "That  three  principles  should  have  been 
regarded  in  distributing  the  representation,  namely,  population, 
area,  and  probable  value  of  the  land."  On  these  three  heads  he 
proceeded  to  show  that  gross  injustice  had  been  done  to  Lambton, 
and  moved  an  amendment  that  another  member  be  given  to  that 
county. 

Mr.  Rankin  called  the  attention  of  Mr.  Brown  to  the  fact,  that 
one  of  his  principal  justifications  for  having  gone  into  the  coalition 
was,  that  he  had  obtained  representation  by  population  for  Upper 
Canada,  and  now  he  had  done  his  best  to  prove  that  it  had  not 
been  gained. 

Mr.  Jones,  of  North  Leeds,  was  extremely  glad  that  the 
principle  had  not  been  carried  out  in  the  distribution  of  new 
seats,  but  that  the  prospective  development  of  the  country  had 
also  been  considered. 


372  CONFEDERATION. 

Mr.  Me  Kellar  supported  Mr.  Mackenzie's  amendment. 

It  was  lost  on  a  division,  names  and  numbers  not  taken.* 

An  address  was  then  voted  to  Her  Majesty  the  Queen,  praying 
that  a  measure  might  be  submitted  to  the  Imperial  Parliament  to 
provide  for  the  Local  Government  and  Legislatures  of  Upper  and 
Lower  Canada,  when  the  union  of  British  North  America  was 
effected,  on  the  basis  of  the  resolutions  passed  by  the  House,  and 
(after  unavailing  efforts  made  by  Mr.  Dorion,  to  secure  an  appeal 
to  the  people  of  Canada  before  the  final  adoption  of  the  new 
constitution,)  was  engrossed,  and  an  address  passed  to  the  Gover- 
nor-General,  to  transmit  the  same  to  the  Secretary  of  State  for 
the  Colonies,  to  be  laid  at  the  foot  of  the  Throne. 

The  Hon.  Attorney-General  Macdonald  announced,  a  day  or 
two  after,  in  reply  to  an  enquiry  from  Mr.  Holton,  that  it  had 
been  decided  to  send  a  deputation  to  England,  headed  by  the 
Governor-General,  to  arrange  with  the  Imperial  authorities  the 
necessary  steps  for  Confederation  ;  and  on  the  following  day — the 
15th  of  August,  1866 — the  last  Parliament  of  old  Canada  closed 
its  last  sitting. 

Thus  passed  away  in  calm  a  Constitution  which,  born  in  strife 
and  turmoil,  sprung  from  mal-administration  and  rebellion — forced 
upon  a  reluctant  Province  (the  oldest  and,  at  the  time,  most  im- 
portant section  of  the  Union),  without  consulting  its  people,  and 
against  the  wishes  of  the  majority  of  its  inhabitants — had  never- 
theless, during  twenty-five  years  of  unexampled  prosperity  and 
material  progress,  laid  the  foundation  deep  and  strong  of  true 
Constitutional  liberty — had  removed  the  asperities  of  Race,  and 
taught  the  united  descendants  of  France  and  England  that  the 
true  source  of  their  future  greatness  and  power  on  this  continent 
would  lie  in  a  mutual  regard  for  each  other's  rights,  a  mutual  for- 
bearance for  each  other's  prejudices,  and  a  generous,  strong,  con- 
joint effort  towards  consolidating  their  extensive  territories,  and 
developing  their  vast  resources,  under  one  Government  and  one 
flag. 

*  Journals,  1866,  361.     Debates,  1866,  87. 


[373] 


CHAPTER  XII. 

Vancouver  Island — Canadian  Pacific  Railway — Thunder  Bay  Mining  Region — 
Departure  of  Deputation  for  England — Legislative  action  of  Nova  Scotia 
and  New  Brunswick — Future  consideration  of  details  of  contest  in  those 
Provinces  —  Political  Acrobats  —  I  )eparture  of  Deputations  from  New 
Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia — Remonstrance  on  non-arrival  of  Canadian 
Deputation  —  Reply — Proposition  relative  to  Prince  Edward  Island  — 
Formation  of  London  Conference — Resolutions — Differences  from  Quebec 
Resolutions — Discussions  and  Bills  framed — Additional  Clauses  in  Act  as 
ultimately  passed — Propositions  on  Intercolonial  Railway — Guarantee — 
Imperial  Legislation — Return  of  Deputation — Legislation  in  New  Bruns- 
wick and  Nova  Scotia  on  Dual  Representation — Resignations  of  Members 
— Imperial  Honours — Royal  Proclamation — Charge  of  corruption  against 
Canadian  statesmen— First  of  July,  1867— A.  D.  1866  and  1867. 

The  preliminary  labours  in  the  Provinces  were  now  closed. 
The  question  was  about  to  be  transferred  to  England.  Let  us 
pause  and  look  at  its  magnitude.  Up  to  this  time  we  have  been 
dealing  only  with  old  and  settled  Provinces,  where  men  had  been  for 
years  trained  in  public  life,  where  commerce  had  its  well  established 
channels,  and  where,  resting  on  the  Atlantic,  the  people  were  in 
daily  intercourse  with  England,  with  the  United  States,  and  the 
other  well  advanced  nations  of  the  world.  We  must  now  turn  to 
regions  more  favoured  by  nature,  but  less  utilised  by  man.  Away 
over  in  the  far- west,  opposite  the  coast  of  China,  nestling  as  it 
were  under  the  wild  and  lofty  but  gold-bearing  precipices  of  the 
Rocky  Mountains,  which  threw  their  long  shadows  across  the 
little  strait  that  divided  it  from  the  continent,  in  the  bight  of  the 
warm  Gulf  Stream  from  the  Pacific,  lay  a  little  Island,  not  unlike 
England  in  size  and  climate.  It  had  no  past,  beyond  the  mere 
unchanging  roll  of  its  seasons.  A  hundred  years  ago,  Vancouver 
had  landed  on  its  shores,  and  left  it  the  heritage  of  his  name, 
nothing  more.  Its  situation  was  singularly  adapted  for  commerce, 
but  commerce  had  not  sought  it.  Between  it  and  the  civilized 
world  was  an  unbroken  wilderness.  The  trapper  had  scaled  the 
Rocky  Mountains,  and  for  many  years  the  pioneers  of  the  Hudson 
Bay  and  North- West  Territories  had  roamed  over  trackless  prai- 


374  CONFEDERATION. 

ries  of  great  beauty ;  but  for  all  purposes  of  utility,  in  the  wide 
sense  which  may  be  given  to  that  term  in  the  present  day,  the 
intervening  country  was  practically  unknown.  Some  years  before, 
in  1846,  by  the  Oregon  Treaty,  large  portions  of  this  valuable 
country  had  been  given  away  by  the  British  Government,  in  utter 
ignorance  of  its  value,  to  demands  made,  in  the  plainest  violation 
of  the  well  understood  rules  regulating  international  territorial 
boundaries,  cutting  off  the  access  of  the  products  of  well  watered 
regions  to  the  sea,  sacrificing  the  national  character  of  great  tracts 
for  a  mere  temporary  convenience,  and  producing  no  lasting  accord 
with  the  country  to  which  the  concession  was  made.  But  still 
immense  territories  were  left — territories  immense  in  extent,  and 
still  more  measureless  in  their  productive  powers.  These  terri- 
tories and  that  Island  it  was  proposed  to  bring  within  the  Con- 
federation. But  when  1  Not  the  boldest  of  the  delegates  dared 
to  suppose  it  would  be  accomplished  while  his  years  still  left  him 
the  energy  of  action.  Two  thousand  miles,  almost  without  a  road, 
and  with  but  few  human  habitations,  where  no  laws  guarded  life 
or  property,  and  no  traffic  supplied  food,  lay  between  the  western- 
most part  of  Canada  and  this  Island.  Mountains  which  were 
deemed  inaccessible ;  lakes  and  rivers,  the  depth  and  strength  of 
current  of  which  were  unknown,  were  between;  but  still  the 
original  plan  of  confederation  embraced  them. 

In  the  present  day,  reality  is  faster  than  romance.  Five  years 
had  not  passed,  from  the  day  the  delegates  were  sent  to  England, 
before  the  end  was  accomplished  ;  and  from  Halifax  on  the  Atlantic 
to  Vancouver  on  the  Pacific,  the  intervening  lands  recognized  the 
rule  of  the  Dominion.  But  the  result  of  good  government  is  yet 
to  be  seen  j  and  the  first  amid  the  undertakings  which  the  Domi- 
nion, after  its  complete  incorporation,  assumed  to  bring  about, 
was  a  thorough  union  between  its  eastern  and  western  shores  by 
the  construction  of  a  railway  between  the  two  oceans  and  across 
the  continent. 

As  the  consummation  of  this  work  is  essential  to  the  well-being 
of  Confederation,  and  as  without  it  the  original  plan  of  union 
would  be  comparatively  abortive,  it  may  not  be  out  of  place  to 
consider  it  for  a  few  moments. 


CONFEDERATION.  375 

The  great  grain-producing  countries  of  Europe,  watered  by  the 
Danube  and  its  tributaries,  Hungary,  Transylvania,  Moldavia  and 
Wallachia,  centering  their  trade  at  Odessa  on  the  Black  Sea,  and 
constituting  the  great  European  grain  market  for  the  British  Isles 
and  the  Western  kingdoms,  France,  Spain,  Portugal,  Norway 
Sweden,  Denmark  and  the  Germanic  Confederation,  afford  but  a 
faint  development  of  the  producing  powers  of  the  North -West 
Territories. 

Odessa  itself  has  no  outlet  but  through  the  Bosphorus,  com- 
manded by  foreign  forts  and  foreign  fleets.  Vancouver  Island  is 
open  to  the  Pacific,  and  while  Englishmen  and  the  descendants  of 
Englishmen  possess  it,  no  power  will  stop  them  on  the  sea. 
Through  lands  more  rich  than  Europe's  grain  fields,  to  a  port 
more  open  than  Odessa,  the  Canadian  Pacific  Railway  is  to  pass. 
Its  distance,  its  probable  cost,  its  facilities  for  construction  are 
worth  knowing. 

Exclusive  of  bays,  inlets,  and  the  estuary  of  the  St.  Lawrence, 
the  Canadian  coast  line  on  the  Atlantic,  south  of  latitude  60°,  is 
3,750  miles;  on  the  Pacific,  1,250  miles;  and  1,800  on  the  great 
lakes.*  From  several  accessible  ports  on  the  Atlantic  coast  line, 
besides  the  large  harbour  of  Halifax,  and  the  commercial  city  of 
Saint  John ;  from  the  cities,  towns  and  villages  all  along  the 
lakes  Ontario  and  Erie,  and  from  the  St.  Lawrence  at  Riviere  du 
Loup,  through  Montreal,  railways  already  constructed,  or  in  the 
course  of  construction,  converge  on,  and  connect  with  Ottawa,  the 
capital  of  the  Dominion.  A  new  road,  direct  from  Quebec  to 
Ottawa,  on  the  northern  and  eastern  side  of  the  St.  Lawrence  and 
Grand  River  has  been  explored,  and  offers  for  its  construction  are 
under  consideration.  Therefore,  starting  from  Ottawa,  both  as  a 
political  and  commercial  centre,  as  on  the  direct  line  to  the 
Pacific,  as  most  convenient  from  the  maritime  provinces,  and  in 
immediate  communication  with  the  sea-ports  of  Quebec  and 
Montreal,  the  distance  may  be  taken.  At  present  the  most 
correct  estimates,  allowing  for  sinuosities  and  necessary  deflections, 
are — 

*  Russell. 


376  CONFEDERATION. 

MILES. 

1st.    From  the  City  of  Ottawa  to  Fort  Garry 1100 

2nd.  From  Fort  Garry  to  Le  tete  Jaune,  or  the  Leather  Pass  1000 
3rd.  Thence  to  Bute  Inlet, — or  Westminster,  at  the  mouth  of 

the  Fraser  River  600 

2700 
Present  distance  by  rail  from  Ottawa  to  Montreal,  intersecting 

Grand  Trunk 180 

2880 

This  last  distance  from  Ottawa  to  Montreal  will,  within  three 
years,  be  shortened  forty  miles,  by  two  roads  explored  and 
reported  on;  for  the  building  of  which  companies  have  been 
incorporated,  and  the  preliminary  steps  taken.  Therefore,  for 
practical  calculations,  as  regards  the  Pacific  line,  the  total  dis- 
tance between  seaport  and  seaport  may  be  estimated  at  2,840 
miles.*  For  the  first  600  miles  above  Ottawa  no  very  serious 
difficulty  occurs,  thence  by  or  round  Lake  Nepigon  more  obstruc- 
tions are  met  with,  but  nothing  that  modern  skill  cannot  over- 
come ;  thence  on  to  Fort  Garry  no  impediments  of  consequence. 
Of  this  portion  of  the  line,  from  Ottawa  to  Fort  Garry,  though 
not  in  an  agricultural  point  of  view  as  attractive  as  the  prairie 
lands  beyond,  the  greater  part,  nevertheless,  possesses  fair  average 
growing  qualities,  with  abundance  of  wood  and  water,  and  the 
conveniences  for  settlement ;  but  its  main  value  is  in  its  immense 
mineral  deposits,  extending  in  a  north-westerly  direction  over  one 
hundred  miles  in  the  vicinity  of  Thunder  Bay,  in  the  Silurian  and 
Huronian  rocks  which  lie  between  the  northerly  coast  of  Lake 
Superior  and  the  Laurentian  range,  and  so  far  as  at  present 
known,  embracing  the  richest  silver  deposits  in  the  world,  yield- 
ing in  some  cases,  for  instance  at  Silver  Islet,  from  $15,000  to 
$18,000  to  the  ton  of  rock,  and  on  an  average  from  $1,000  to 
$2,000  at  the  same  place. t  Gold  and  tin  are  also  found  in  the 

*  Russell  makes  the  distance  2,846. 

t  These  statements  are  made  upon  the  best  authority,  that  of  Mr.  Dawson,  C.E.,  the 
engineer  appointed  by  the  Dominion  Government  in  charge  of  that  district,  and  the  well- 
known  constructor  of  the  Dawson  route  from  Thunder  Bay  to  Fort  Garry — a  man  of 
undoubted  competence  and  veracity — and  are  further  confirmed  by  the  reports  both  of  the 
present  and  former  managers  of  the  mine.  The  Montreal  Mining  Company's  Report  of 


CONFEDERATION.  377 

same  district,  and  the  geological  formations  indicate  that  these 
minerals  abound  in  great  quantities  throughout  an  area  of  many- 
hundred  square  miles  in  the  same  region. 

In  that  portion  through  the  prairie  lands  from  Fort  Garry  to 
the  Rocky  Mountains,  estimated  by  Mr.  Russell  before  the  late 
explorations  at  1,300  miles,  no  engineering  difficulty  of  any 
character  can  be  found.  The  fertility  and  beauty  of  these  lands 
have  been  so  often  described  by  men  well  known,  and  of  such 
undoubted  authority,  that  their  names  are  sufficient  to  render  com- 
ment unnecessary.  Sir  George  Simpson,  Professor  Hind,  Mr. 
Dawson,  C.E.,  Colonel  Synge  and  Captain  Palliser,  of  the  Royal 
Engineers,  Lord  Milton  and  Cheadle,  Captain  Pope  and  Lieutenant 
Saxon,  of  the  American  army,  all  agree  upon  the  point  of  its  rare 
productiveness. 

December  7,  1868,  says  : — The  following  table  gives  the  results  found  by  the  several  assay. 
ists,  the  ton  being  taken  at  2,240  Ibs.,  and  the  value  of  silver  at  $1.24  per  ounce  troy.  This 
value  is  based  upon  the  price  then  quoted  in  England  for  bar  silver,  namely,  5%d.  sterling 
per  ounce. 

PERCENTAGES. 

No.  1.  No.  2.  No.  3.  No.  4.  Aver. 

Prof.  Chapman 1496  7.88  5.27  1.71  5.023 

Dr.Hayes 4117  11.26  5.82  118  8.471 

Mr.  Macfarlane 13.14  7.03  4.94  1.82  5.168 

OUNCES   PER  TON. 

N».  1.  No.  2.  No.  3.  No.  4.  Aver. 

Prof.  Chapman 4,886  2,574  1,721  558  1,804 

Dr.Hayes 15,064  3,678  1,901  385  2,767 

Mr.  Macfarlane 4,292  2,384  1,613  594  1,690 

SILVER,   VALUE  PER  TON. 

No.  1.         No.  2.        No.  3.         No.  4.        Aver. 

Prof.  Chapman $5,058         $3,191        $2,134          $691         $?,236 

Dr.Hayes $18,679  4,560          2,357  477          3,431 

Mr.  Macfarlane 5,332  2,956          2,000  736  2,095 

If  the  average  of  the  results  of  the  three  assayists,  as  given  above,  is  taken,  it  amounts 
to  6.387  per  cent.  =  2.087,  or  $2,587  88  per  ton. 

Both  Dr.  Hayes  and  Professor  Chapman  are  of  opinion,  that,  no  matter  how  intimately 
the  particles  of  the  powdered  ore  may  be  mixed  together,  it  is  not  possible,  in  the  case  of 
such  rich  ores,  to  get  two  assay  portions  of  exactly  similar  composition.  With  regard  to 
No.  1  sample,  which  consisted  of  hand  specimens  not  ground  or  powdered  down,  it  was 
hardly  anticipated  that  the  various  assays  of  this  number  would  correspond  very  closely, 
and  thus  the  richer  product  obtained  by  Dr.  Hayes  is  accounted  for.  The  value  of  the 
silver  contained  in  1,336  Ibs.  of  ore,  the  product  of  one  blast  of  some  surface  pieces  taken 
from  under  water,  then  in  the  Company's  possession,  at  this  rate  amounted  to  $1,543  48. 

25 


378  CONFEDERATION. 

The  climate,  notwithstanding  its  high  northern  latitude — owing 
to  the  curvature  of  the  isothermal  line — is  not  more  severe  than 
in  central  Canada. 

In  the  passes  through  the  Rocky  Mountains  the  Canadian 
Pacific  commands  a  route  3,240  feet  lower  than  any  of  the  passes 
on  the  American  side  of  the  boundary  line — which  is  approached 
at  so  gradual  an  elevation,  that  the  traveller  is  not  aware  that  he 
has  reached  the  summit  until  he  sees  the  flow  of  the  descending 
waters  on  the  other  side. 

Of  the  remaining  distance  through  British  Columbia  to  the 
sea,  though  difficulties  do  exist  from  the  mountainous  character 
of  the  country  in  some  parts,  yet  they  are  not  such  as  the  ordinary 
engineering  skill  of  the  present  day  cannot  easily  overcome. 
"  Thus,"  says  Mr.  Russell,  in  1868,  in  a  most  able  pamphlet  on 
the  Red  River  country  and  Hudson  Bay  and  North  West  Terri- 
tories, "we  possess  a  route  to  the  Pacific  through  our  central 
prairie  country  and  British  Columbia  that,  beside  traversing  the 
Rocky  Mountains  far  more  favourably  at  half  the  elevation  of  the 
lines  through  the  United  States,  is  as  remarkable  for  passing 
through  a  great  extent  of  well  watered  fertile  country,  as  they  are 
for  the  general  aridity  and  remarkable  barrenness  of  a  great  part 
of  the  country  they  traverse."  "We  command,"  says  he,  "both 
for  the  purposes  of  defence  or  commerce,  the  best  and  shortest 
railway  route  to  the  interior  and  the  Pacific." 

The  total  distance,  as  given  by  the  same  authority,  from  the 
Pacific  to  Montreal — the  head  of  sea  navigation  on  the  St.  Law- 
rence— is  2846  miles;  whereas  the  distance  from  San  Francisco  to 
New  York  is  3,284.  And  the  distance  from  China  or  Japan  to 
Bute  Inlet,  or  the  mouth  of  the  Fraser  River,  in  British  Columbia, 
by  any  route  being  550  miles  shorter  than  to  San  Francisco,  a 
cargo  shipped  at  either  China  or  Japan  for  Liverpool,  would  have 
the  advantage  of  988  miles  less  distance  to  be  shipped  in  a  sea- 
going steamer  on  the  Atlantic,  by  the  Canadian  Pacific,  than  by 
any  American  Pacific  route.  But  if  the  distance  be  taken  from 
China  or  Japan  to  Liverpool  itself,  the  discrimination  in  favor  of 
the  former  is  still  more  striking.  For  instance : — 


CONFEDERATION.  379 

MILES.       MILES. 

From  San  Francisco  to  New  York 3,284 

"     New  York  to  Liverpool 3,073 

6,357 

From  Bute  Inlet,  or  the  mouth  of  the  Fraser  River  to 

Montreal 2,846 

"      Montreal  to  Liverpool 2,800 

5,646 


Difference  from  China  or  Japan 550 


Total  difference  in  favour  of  the  Canadian  Pacific,  from  China 

or  Japan  to  Liverpool 1,261 

In  the  session  of  1871,  the  Canadian  Parliament  made  an  ap- 
propriation for  an  exploratory  survey  of  the  route,  and  nearly 
half  a  million  of  dollars  has  been  expended  during  the  past  year 
in  its  accomplishment.  Arrangements  were  also  made  with  British 
Columbia,  on  her  coming  into  the  Union,  that  Government  aid 
should  be  afforded  to  the  construction  of  the  road,  both  by  money 
subsidies  and  land  grants,  and  that  it  should  be  proceeded  with 
and  completed  within  ten  years. 

There  is  nothing  to  indicate  that  its  cost  of  construction  will 
exceed  the  average  cost  of  construction  in  America,  namely, 
$30,000  or  $35,000  per  mile,  fully  equipped— the  extra  difficul- 
ties of  the  Rocky  Mountains  and  British  Columbia  being  more 
than  countervailed  by  the  greater  facilities  in  the  prairie  lands. 

These  details  have  been  fully  given,  because  as  the  construction 
of  the  Intercolonial  Road,  from  Halifax  to  Quebec,  was  made  one 
of  the  conditions  on  which  the  Atlantic  Provinces  came  into  the 
Union,  so  the  construction  of  the  Pacific  was  made  one  of  the  con- 
ditions on  which  British  Columbia  came  in. 

The  Canadian  looks  upon  this  road  as  the  back-bone  of  Con- 
federation. It  is  not  a  question  of  politics  or  party.  It  rises 
above  personal  considerations.  It  is  a  question  of  the  existence 
or  dissolution  of  the  Union — and  cost  what  it  may,  whether  much 
or  little,  it  must  be  built. 

We  must  now  proceed  with  the  narrative  of  what  occurred  in 
England. 


380  CONFEDERATION. 

Iii  the  month  of  November,  the  Canadian  deputation,  Messrs. 
Macdonald,  Cartier,  Gait,  Rowland,  Macdougall,  and  Langevin, 
set  out  on  their  mission.  They  were  to  meet  the  representatives 
of  the  other  Provinces  in  London,  and  finally  settle  the  terms  on 
which  the  Confederation  was  to  be  carried  out.  The  contracting 
parties  were  reduced  in  number,  Newfoundland  and  Prince 
Edward  Island  had  both  withdrawn  from  the  contemplated 
arrangements;  the  latter,  by  the  absolute  repudiation  of  its 
Government ;  the  former,  by  the  inability  of  its  Government  to 
obtain  the  assent  of  its  people. 

In  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia  long  and  arduous  contests 
had  been  carried  on.  In  the  former,  the  people  had  been  twice 
appealed  to.  On  the  first  occasion  they  had  rejected  the  proposi- 
tion by  overwhelming  majorities  at  the  polls.  On  the  second,  a 
year  afterwards,  they  had  reversed  their  previous  decision  by 
equally  overwhelming  majorities,  and  had  accepted  it.  In  Nova 
Scotia,  there  had  been  no  appeal  to  the  people.  The  Government, 
supported  by  the  leaders  of  the  opposition  who  had  been  the 
delegates  to  Quebec,  firm  in  its  adhesion  to  the  agreement  entered 
into  at  the  convention,  had,  after  the  first  defeat  in  New  Bruns- 
wick, bided  its  time,  until  the  prospect  of  the  coming  change  in 
that  province  justified  unity  of  action. 

Throughout  the  whole  of  the  Provinces,  with  the  exception  of 
Prince  Edward  Island,  the  delegates  to  the  conference,  "  fideles 
inter  perfidos" — had  stood  faithfully  to  the  arrangements  entered 
into  at  Quebec,  and  in  some  instances  sacrificed  power  and  place 
rather  than  depart  from  the  obligations  assumed  with  their  fellow 
representatives,  after  mature  deliberation,  in  the  adoption  of  a 
great  scheme  to  further  the  interests  of  British  America.  Suc- 
ceeding years  have  proved  how  right  they  were,  and  Prince 
Edward  Island  hereafter,  when  she  will  have  become  one  of  the 
brightest  ornaments  of  the  Dominion,  will  look  back  with  pain 
upon  the  vacant  places  her  recreant  representatives  have  left  on 
the  roll  of  men  who  were  instrumental  in  evolving  a  great  and 
strong  nation  out  of  the  weakness  of  disjointed  colonies. 

The  Legislatures,  both  of  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick,  had, 
in  the  sessions  of  1866,  authorized  their  respective  Governments 


CONFEDERATION.  381 

to  send  deputations  to  London ;  and  in  the  summer  those  deputa- 
tions had  proceeded  on  their  mission,  and  were  then  awaiting  the 
arrival  of  the  Canadian  deputation. 

The  details  of  the  contests  both  in  New  Brunswick  and  Nova 
Scotia  must  form  the  subject  of  distinct  chapters.  At  the 
present  moment,  perhaps,  those  details  are  of  little  importance  to 
the  main  question.  It  is  better  that  at  the  close  of  this  volume 
we  should  see  the  structure  complete  :  in  what  respect  it  differed 
from  the  original  design,  and  in  what  degree  the  alterations 
tended  to  the  public  good.  As  preliminary  to  the  more  complete 
understanding  of  the  parliamentary  discussions  after  confedera~ 
tion,  of  those  measures  introduced  by  ministers  which  were 
necessary  to  the  inauguration  of  the  constitutional  government, 
and  formation  of  the  new  Dominion,  the  history  of  those  details 
may  not  be  uninteresting,  or  without  the  benefit  which  experience 
teaches  may  be  derived  from  the  lessons  of  the  past.  Divide  et 
Impera  was  the  well-known  maxim  of  Machiavelli,  and  the  people 
are  sometimes  led  by  devious  ways  to  what  is  for  their  good.  In 
times  of  great  change,  even  though  the  revolution  be  peaceful, 
political  acrobats  nourish  best,  and  the  reward  of  personal  ambition 
is  more  frequently  found  by  opposition,  in  the  first  instance,  to 
good  measures,  than  by  supporting  them. 

The  deputations  from  the  maritime  provinces  in  the  month  of 
July,  1866,  as  already  mentioned,  in  accordance  with  the  authority 
from  their  respective  Legislatures,  and  as  was  assumed  at  the  time 
with  the  full  understanding  that  the  Canadian  deputation  would 
about  the  same  period  do  the  same,  proceeded  to  London.  Up  to 
the  12th  of  September  the  latter  had  not  arrived.  On  that  day, 
Messrs.  Tupper  and  Tilley,  on  behalf  of  themselves  and  their 
colleagues,  addressed  the  following  remonstrance  to  the  Secretary 
of  State  for  the  Colonies,  on  the  subject  of  the  delay  caused  by 
their  non-arrival : 

ALEXANDRA  HOTEL,  12th,  September,  1866. 

MY  LORD, — As  delegates  from  the  Provinces  of  Nova  Scotia  and 
New  Brunswick,  appointed  to  confer  with  delegates  from  Canada 
and  with  Her  Majesty's  Government,  upon  the  question  of  a  Con- 


382  CONFEDERATION. 

federation  of  the  British  North  American  Provinces,  we  are  natur- 
ally anxious  to  terminate  the  suspense  in  which  we  have  been  left 
since  our  arrival  here,  relative  to  the  time  when  we  may  hope  to 
accomplish  the  object  of  our  mission. 

Believing,  as  we  do,  that  the  abrogation  of  the  Reciprocity 
Treaty  and  the  Fenian  invasion  of  Canada  were  largely  owing  to 
the  failure  of  the  Provinces  we  represent  to  agree  promptly  to 
form  an  united  government,  as  proposed  by  the  Quebec  Conference 
in  1864,  and  approved  by  the  Imperial  Government,  and  that  the 
adoption  of  Confederation  would  be  the  best  means  of  securing  the 
renewal  of  the  treaty,  and  discouraging  Fenian  designs  upon 
British  America,  the  Governments  of  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Bruns- 
wick have  been  most  anxious  that  no  time  should  be  lost  in  accom- 
plishing the  Union  of  the  Provinces. 

"With  that  view,  Messrs.  Tupper  and  Archibald  visited  Ottawa 
on  the  29th  of  June  last,  and  after  conferring  with  His  Excel- 
lency the  Governor  General  and  the  Canadian  Government,  it  was 
mutually  agreed  that  delegates  from  the  two  Lower  Provinces 
should  proceed  to  England  by  the  steamer  leaving  Halifax  on  the 
19th  July,  and  that  delegates  from  Canada  should  follow  by  the 
steamer  leaving  Quebec  on  the  21st  of  July. 

Subsequently,  Lord  Monck  intimated  by  telegraph  that  the 
change  of  Government  in  England  would  render  it  necessary  to 
hear  from  England  before  the  departure  of  the  delegates.  The 
delegates  from  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick,  after  the  arrival 
of  the  latter  at  Halifax,  jointly  communicated  to  the  Canadian 
Government  their  views  as  to  the  necessity  for  immediate  action, 
and  their  intention  to  leave  on  the  19th  of  July,  as  arranged  at 
Ottawa;  and  it  was  only  on  the  eve  of  their  departure  that  they 
received  a  telegram  from  the  Hon.  J.  A.  Macdonald,  saying  that 
Lord  Monck  declined  to  go  to  England  or  to  send  a  delegation 
until  authorized  by  the  new  Secretary  of  State.  At  the  interview 
with  which  we  were  honoured  by  your  Lordship,  on-  our  arrival  in 
London  on  the  30th  of  July,  we  understood  your  Lordship  to  say 
that  you  would  send  a  message  by  the  Atlantic  cable  to  the  Gover- 
nor-General, asking  if  the  Canadian  delegates  had  left,  and  if  not, 
requesting  that  they  would  come  without  delay.  Your  Lordship 


CONFEDERATION.  383 

subsequently  did  us  the  honor  to  inform  iis  that  a  despatch  had 
been  sent  on  the  llth  of  August,  requesting  the  Governor-General 
to  arrange  for  the  Canadian  delegates  to  proceed  to  England  as 
soon  as  possible,  and  expressing  the  hope  that  in  any  case  they 
would  not  be  later  than  the  latter  part  of  September. 

Although  we  have  since  our  arrival  been  favoured  with  frequent 
opportunities  of  discussing  the  question  of  Confederation  with 
your  Lordship  and  other  members  of  Her  Majesty's  Government, 
we  have,  up  to  the  present  time,  received  no  information  as  to  the 
period  when  we  may  expect  the  delegates  from  Canada.  We  feel 
it,  therefore,  due  to  the  Provinces  we  represent,  that  we  should 
respectfully  solicit  your  Lordship  to  ascertain,  and  communicate  to 
us,  how  soon  we  may  expect  the  delegates  from  Canada  to  arrive 
here,  in  order  that  we  may  govern  ourselves  accordingly. 
We  have,  &c., 

(Signed)         CHARLES  TUPPER. 

S.  L.  TlLLEY. 

To  the  Right  Hon.  the  Earl  of  Carnarvon, 

Secretary  of  State  for  the  Colonies. 

On  the  17th  September  they  received  the  following  reply  from 
the  Under-Secretary  of  State  : 

GENTLEMEN, — With  reference  to  my  letter  of  the  12th  instant, 
I  am  directed  by  the  Earl  of  Carnarvon  to  acquaint  you  that  his 
Lordship  has  received  a  telegram  from  Lord  Monck,  to  the  effect 
that  in  the  present  state  of  Fenian  affairs,  the  principal  members 
of  the  Ministry,  who  must  be  delegates,  could  not  leave  the  Pro_ 
vince,  and  probably  not  before  the  closing  of  navigation. 

Lord  Carnarvon  regrets  the  occurrence  of  these  unforeseen 
delays,  which  must  entail  so  much  inconvenience  upon  you  and 
your  colleagues,  both  in  your  public  and  private  capacity  •  and  he 
is  most  anxious  to  help  you,  as  far  as  in  his  power,  to  meet  the 
difficulties  of  the  present  turn  of  affairs.  It  will  probably  be  your 
wish  to  deliberate  amongst  yourselves  as  to  your  joint  course  of 
action ;  having  done  which,  his  Lordship  will  be  happy  to  confer 
with  you,  and  to  give  you  his  best  co-operation. 

(Signed)         T.  FREDERICK  ELLIOT. 
The  Hon.  C.  Tupper. 
The  Hon.  S.  L.  Tilley. 


384:  CONFEDERATION. 

During  the  intervening  period,  the  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Bruns- 
wick deputations  proceeded  to  discuss  the  action  of  Prince  Edward 
Island,  which  it  was  then  well  understood  rejected  all  consideration 
of  the  terms  proposed  at  the  Quebec  Conference,  and  on  the  24th 
September  submitted  to  Lord  Carnarvon  the  following  proposition, 
with  a  request  that  he  would  transmit  the  same  to  the  Governor- 
General  and  the  Lieutenant-Governor  of  the  Island  : 

"The  Delegates  from  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick,  after 
much  consultation  and  mature  deliberation,  having  decided  to  ask 
further  pecuniary  advantages  for  the  Provinces  they  represented, 
arrived  at  the  conclusion  that,  if  successful,  similar  advantages 
might  be  extended  to  Prince  Edward  Island,  and,  therefore,  a  fur- 
ther effort  should  be  made  to  induce  Prince  Edward  Island  to  enter 
the  Confederation,  agreed  to  the  following  proposition : 

At  a  meeting  of  the  delegates  from  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Bruns- 
wick, held  at  the  Alexandra  Hotel,  London,  on  the  22nd  day  of 
September,  1866,  all  being  present  except  the  Honourable  Mr. 
Wilmot,  it  was  unanimously  resolved,  that  inasmuch  as  the  co- 
operation of  Prince  Edward  Island,  though  not  indispensable  to 
an  Union  of  the  other  North  American  Provinces,  is  on  many 
accounts  very  desirable;  and  as  the  settlement  of  the  Land  Ques- 
tion, which  has  so  long  and  so  injuriously  agitated  that  colony, 
would  be  attended  with  great  benefit,  and  at  the  same  time  place 
the  Local  Government  of  the  Island,  by  the  possession  of  the  Pro- 
prietoiy  Lands,  more  on  a  footing  with  the  other  Provinces,  which 
have  Crown  Lands  and  minerals  as  a  source  of  local  revenue; 
therefore 

Resolved,  That  in  case  the  Legislature  of  the  Island  should 
authorize  the,  appointment  of  delegates  to  act  in  conjunction  with 
those  from  the  other  Provinces,  in  arranging  a  plan  of  co-operation 
prior  to  the  meeting  of  the  Imperial  Parliament,  the  delegates 
from  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick  are  hereby  pledged  to  sup- 
port the  policy  of  providing  such  an  amount  as  may  be  necessary 
for  the  purchase  of  the  proprietory  rights,  but  not  to  exceed 
$800,000. 

(Signed,)         CHARLES  TUPPER, 
S.  L.  TILLEY. 


CONFEDERATION.  385 

The  Canadian  deputation  which  had  left  for  England  on  the  7th 
of  November  had  now  arrived,  and  the  conference  of  the  three 
Provinces  was  duly  organized  at  the  Westminster  Palace  Hotel, 
on  the  4th  of  December.  The  Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald  in  the 
chair.  It  sat  continuously  from  that  day  to  the  24th,  when  certain 
resolutions  were  formally  agreed  upon,  and  transmitted  to  the 
Secretary  of  State  for  the  Colonies. 

These  resolutions  were  substantially  a  reiteration  of  those  agreed 
upon  at  the  Quebec  Conference,  with  the  following  differences  : 

1.  The  entire  omission  of  "the  Representative  of  the  Sover- 
eign "  in  the  fifth  resolution,  relative  to  the  command  of  the  naval 
and  military  forces  of  the  Dominion,  it  being  the  intention  that 
they,  though  a  local  force,  should  be  directly  under  the  command  of 
the  Sovereign,  as  the  head  of  the  empire.    This  was  different  from 
the  old  constitution  of  the  Provinces,  under  which  the  Governor- 
General  and  the  Lieutenant-Governors  claimed,  as  representatives 
of  the  Queen,  to  exercise,  and  did  exercise  military  command  over 
the  local  forces  within  their  respective  Governments. 

2.  In  the  sixth  resolution,   constituting  the  Legislature,  the 
term  "  Sovereign  "  was  inserted  as  a  distinct  and  co-ordinate  branch 
of  the  Legislature,  a  proviso  which  under  the  constitution  was 
necessarily  understood,  but  the  declaration  of  which  was  no  doubt 
accidentally  omitted  in  the  Quebec  resolution. 

3.  The  eighth  resolution  was  altered  by  giving  to  Nova  Scotia 
and  New  Brunswick  twelve  members  in  the  Senate  instead  of  ten, 
and   making   provision  for   the   reduction   to   ten   when    Prince 
Edward  Island  came  into  confederation. 

4.  In  the  twelfth,  by  making  the  necessary  qualifications  of  a 
senator,  to  embrace  both  a  continuous  property  possession  and 
continuous  residence  in  the  Province  for  which  he  was  appointed, 
except  in  case  of  an  official  residence  at  the  capital. 

5.  The    23rd  and  24th  resolutions,   as  to  the  provisions  for 
altering  the  electoral  districts,  were  entirely  omitted,  it  being  con- 
sidered that  all  necessary  powers  in  that  direction  were  sufficiently 
embraced  in  the  general  terms,  giving  jurisdiction  to  the  General 
Parliament  and  Local  Legislatures. 


386  CONFEDERATION. 

6.  The  establishment  of  "  penitentiaries  "as  an  incident  of  the 
criminal  code,  was  withdrawn  from  the  Local  and  given  to  the 
General   Government.     And  the  powers  of  legislating  upon  the 
"  Sea  Coast  and   Inland   Fisheries  "    which,    under   the    Quebec 
resolutions,  had  been  made  concurrent,  was  limited  exclusively  to 
the  General  Parliament,  while  the  power  of  legislating  upon  the 
"solemnization  of  marriage"  was  included  in  the  property  and 
civil  rights  assigned  to  the  Local  Government,  whereas  before  it 
had  not  been. 

7.  To  the  provision  in  the  29th  section,  appropriating  to  the 
General  Government  the  power  of  legislating  for  the  uniformity 
of  the  laws,  relative  to  property  and  civil  rights,  was  added  a 
clause  that  the  power  of  altering,  repealing,  or  amending  laws  so 
legislated   upon    "  should   thereafter    remain    with    the    General 
Government  only." 

8.  The  pardoning  power,  which  under  the  44th  Quebec  resolution 
was  given  to  the  Lieutenant-Governors,  was  restricted  to  cases  not 
"capital" — and  the  provisions  of  the  43rd,  respecting  education, 
affecting  the  rights  and  privileges  of  the  Protestant  or  Catholic 
minorities  in  the  two  Canadas  were  extended  to  the  minorities  in 
any  province  having  rights  or  privileges  by  laws  as  to  denomina- 
tional Schools  at  the  time  when  the  union  went  into  operation. 
And  an  additional  provision  was  made  that  "  in  any  province 
where  a  system  of  separate  or  dissentient  schools  by  law  obtains, 
or  where  the  Local  Legislature  may  hereafter  adopt  a  system  of  se- 
parate or  dissentient  schools,  an  appeal  shall  be  to  the  Governor- 
General  in  Council  of  the  General  Government  from  the  acts  and 
decisions  of  the  local  authorities,  which  may  affect  the  rights  or 
privileges  of  the  Protestant  or  Catholic  minority  in  the  matter  of 
education,  and  the  General  Parliament  shall  have  power  in  the  last 
resort  to  legislate  on  the  subject." 

9.  An  increased  subsidy,  in  addition  to  the  80  cents  per  head,  of 
$80,000,  $70,000,  $60,000  and  $50,000  was  made  severally  to 
Upper  Canada,  Lower  Canada,  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick, 
and  the  capitation  subsidy  of  80  cents  in  both  New  Brunswick 
and  Nova  Scotia  extended  until  the  population  reached  400,000. 


CONFEDEKATION.  387 

10.  A  distinct  provision  for  an  Imperial  guarantee  of  .£3,000,0  00 
sterling  for  the  Intercolonial  Railway  closed  the  substantial  dis- 
tinctions between  the  resolutions  agreed  upon  at  Quebec  and 
those  submitted  to  the  Imperial  Government  at  London. 

Upon  these  resolutions  so  submitted,  certain  bills  were  prepared 
by  the  conference  in  conjunction  with  the  legal  officers  of  Her 
Majesty's  Government,  and  at  a  number  of  interviews  commenc- 
ing on  the  24th  of  January,  and  continuing  for  several  days  after- 
wards, their  details  were  again  discussed,  amended  and  added  to, 
until  at  last  a  draft  bill  was  finally  agreed  upon,  which  subse- 
quently became  the  British  North  America  Act  of  1867.  This 
Bill  so  agreed  upon  was  submitted  to  the  Imperial  Parliament  by 
Her  Majesty's  Ministers — carried — finally  enacted  on  the  29th  of 
March,  1867,  and  on  the  proclamation  made  in  accordance  with 
the  provisions  thereof,  became  on  the  1st  July,  1867,  the  Constitu- 
tion of  Canada. 

Apart  from  .those  formal  details  of  the  bill,  which  were  essential 
to  its  proper  construction,  it  is  only  necessary  to  observe — Firstly, 
that  power  was  given — not  provided  for  in  the  resolutions — to 
increase  the  numbers  of  the  Senate  and  House  of  Commons  under 
certain  circumstances,  but  with  express  limitations;  while  secondly, 
no  power  of  pardon  was  conceded  to  the  Lieutenant-Governors ; 
and  thirdly,  the  power  of  legislating  upon  the  subject  matter 
of  laws  of  the  several  provinces,  relating  to  property  and  civil 
rights,  which  had  once  been  legislated  upon  by  the  General  Parlia- 
ment, was  simply  made  "unrestricted,"  instead  of  exclusive,  in  the 
General  Parliament. 

But  it  was  necessary  that  there  should  be  further  Imperial 
legislation.  The  provisions  respecting  the  Intercolonial  Railway, 
though  no  part  of  the  constitution,  were  parts  of  the  agreement 
upon  which  the  constitution  was  based,  and  without  which  it 
would  not  have  been  acceded  to.  As  the  construction  of  this 
work  formed,  both  during  the  preliminary  contests  and  after 
confederation,  the  subject  of  constant  and  earnest  discussion  and 
of  much  political  conflict,  and  at  one  time  was  made  the  subject 
of  a  gross  charge  of  breach  of  faith  against  the  Canadian  Govern- 


388  CONFEDERATION. 

ment  and  Parliament,  it  is  as  well  to  examine  the  negotiations 
that  took  place  respecting  it  at  the  time  the  Imperial  Act  was 
passed,  giving  the  Imperial  guarantee. 

On  the  29th  of  January  the  chairman  submitted  to  Lord 
Carnarvon,  the  Secretary  of  State  for  the  Colonies,  the  following 
memorandum : 

In  December,  1862,  the  delegates  from  the  several  provinces 
proposed  to  Her  Majesty's  Government  that  the  Imperial  guarantee 
should  be  given  on  the  following  conditions,  viz.: — 

1.  That  the  loan  shall  be  for  £3,000,000  sterling. 

2.  That  the  liabilities  of  each  colony  shall  be  apportioned  as 
follows  : — £1,250,000  for  Canada;  £875,000  for  New  Brunswick; 
£875,000  for  Nova  Scotia. 

3.  The  debentures  shall  bear  interest  at  the  rate  of  3J  per  cent. 

4.  The  interest  shall  be  paid  half-yearly  in  London,  on  the  first 
of  May  and  on  the  first  of  November. 

5.  That  the  sum  borrowed  shall  be  re-paid  in  four  instalments: 
£250,000  in  ten  years;  £500,000  in  twenty  years;  £1,000,000 
in  thirty  years;  £1,250,000  in  forty  years. 

6.  The  net  profits  of  the  road  shall  be  applied  towards  the 
extinction  of  the  debt. 

7.  That  the  loan  shall  be  the  first  charge  on  the  revenue  of  each 
colony  after  the  existing  debts  and  charges. 

8.  That  the  Imperial  Government  shall  have  the  right  to  select 
one  of  the  engineers  to  be  appointed  to  make  the  surveys  for  the 
location  of  the  road. 

9.  That  the  selection  of  the  line  shall  rest  with  the  Imperial 
Government. 

10.  That  if  it  is  concluded  that  the  work  is  to  be  constructed 
and  managed  by  a  Joint  Commission,  it  shall  be  constituted  in 
the  following  proportions : — Canada  shall  appoint  two  of  the  Com- 
missioners; New  Brunswick  and   Nova  Scotia  each  one.     These 
four  shall  name  a  fifth  before  entering  upon  the  discharge  of  their 
duties. 

11.  That  such  portions  of  the  railways  now  owned  by  the  Gov- 
ernments of  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia,  which  may  be  re- 


CONFEDERATION.  389 

quired  to  form  part  of  the  Intercolonial  road,  will  be  worked  under 
the  above  Commission. 

12.  That  all  net  gains  or  loss  resulting  from  the  working  and 
keeping  in  repair  of  any  portion  of  the   roads   constructed  by 
Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick,  and  to  be  used  as  a  part  of  the 
Intercolonial  road,  shall  be  received  and  borne  by  these  Provinces 
respectively,  and  the  surplus,  if  any,  after  the  payment  of  interest, 
shall  go  in  abatement  of  interest  of  the  whole  line  between  Halifax 
and  Riviere  du  Loup. 

13.  That  the  rates  shall  be  uniform  over  each  respective  portion 
of  the  road. 

14.  That  the  Crown  lands  required  for  the  railway  or  stations 
shall  be  provided  by  each  Province. 

The  following  counter  proposition  was  made  on  the  part  of  Her 
Majesty's  Government : 

1.  That  bills  shall  be  immediately  submitted  to  the  Legislatures 
of  Canada,  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick,  authorizing  the  res- 
pective Governments  to  borrow  £3,000,000,  under  the  guarantee- 
of  the  British  Government,  in  the  following  proportions :  Five- 
twelfths,  Canada ;  three  and  one  half  twelfths,  Nova  Scotia ;  three 
and  one  half  twelfths,  New  Brunswick. 

2.  But  no  such  loan  to  be  contracted  on  behalf  of  any  one 
Colony,  until  corresponding  powers  have  been  given  to  the  Govern 
ments  of  the  other  two  Colonies  concerned,  nor  unless  the  Imperial 
Government  shall  guarantee  payment  of  interest  on  such  loan  until 
repaid. 

3.  The  money  to  be  applied  to  the  completion  of  the  railway 
connecting  Halifax  with  Quebec,  on  a  line  to  be  approved  by  the 
Imperial  Government. 

4.  The  interest  to  be  a  first  charge  on  the  Consolidated  Revenue 
Funds  of  the  different  Provinces  after  the  Civil  List,  and  the 
interest  of  existing  debts ;  and  as  regards  Canada,  after  the  rest  of 
the  six  charges  enumerated  in  the  5  &  6  Vic.  cap.  118,  and  3  &  4 
Vic.  cap.  35  (Act  of  Union). 

The  debentures  to  be  in  series  as  follows,  viz.  : 


390  CONFEDERATION. 

£250,000  to  be  payable  ten  years  after  contracting  loan  ; 

£500,000  "         twenty  years  " 

£1,000,000  "         thirty  years  " 

£1,250,000  "         forty  years  " 

In  the  event  of  these  debentures,  or  any  of  them,  not  being  re- 
deemed by  the  colonies  at  the  period  when  they  fall  due,  the 
amount  unpaid  shall  become  a  charge  upon  their  respective  reve- 
nues, next  after  the  loan,  until  paid.  The  principal  to  be  repaid 
as  follows  : 

1.  Decade,  say  1863  to  1872  inclusive,  £250,000  in  redemption 
of  the  first  series  at  or  before  the  close  of  the  first  decade  from  the 
contracting  of  the  loan. 

2.  Decade,   say   1873   to    1882   inclusive,   a  sinking   fund  of 
£40,000  to  be  remitted  annually,  being  an  amount  adequate,  if 
invested  at  5  per  cent,  compound  interest  to  provide  £500,000  at 
the  end  of  the  decade ;  the  sum  to  be  remitted  annually  to  be  in- 
vested in  the  names  of  trustees,  in  colonial  securities  of  any  of  the 
three  provinces  prior  to  or  forming  part  of  the  loan  now  to  be 
raised,  or  in  such  other  colonial  securities  as  Her  Majesty's  gov- 
ernment shall  direct,  and  the  then  colonial  governments  approve. 

3.  Decade,    say  1883   to    1892   inclusive,  a   sinking   fund   of 
£80,000  to  be  remitted  annually,  being  an  amount  adequate,  if  in- 
vested at  5  per  cent  compound  interest,  to  provide  £1,000,000  at 
the  end  of  the  decade.     The  amount  when  remitted  to  be  invested 
as  in  the  case  of  the  sinking  fund  for  the  proceeding  decade. 

4.  Decade,    say  1893   to    1902,   inclusive,   a   sinking  fund  of 
£100,000  to  be  remitted  annually,  being  an  amount  adequate,  if 
invested  at  5  per  cent  compound  interest,  to  provide  £1,250,000, 
being  the  balance  of  the  loan  at  the  end  of  the  decade.     This 
amount,  when  remitted  to  be  invested  as  in  the  preceding  decade. 

5.  Should  the  sinking  fund  of  any  decade  produce  a  surplus,  it 
will  go  to  the  credit  of  the  next  decade,  and  in  the  last  decade  the 
sinking  fund  will  be  remitted  or  reduced  accordingly. 

It  is  of  course  understood  that  the  assent  of  the  Treasury  to 
these  arrangements  pre-supposes  adequate  proof  of  the  sufficiency 
of  the  colonial  revenues  to  meet  the  charges  intended  to  be 
imposed  upon  them. 


CONFEDERATION.  391 

6.  'The  construction  of  the  railway  to  be  conducted  by   five 
commissioners ;  two  to  be  appointed  by  Canada,  one  by  Nova 
Scotia,  and  one  by  New  Brunswick.     These  four  to  choose  the 
remaining  commissioner. 

7.  The  preliminary  surveys  to  be  effected  at  the  expense  of  the 
colonies,  by  three  engineers  or  other  officers  nominated ;  two  by 
commissioners  and  one  by  the  Home  Government. 

8.  Fitting  provision  to  be  made  for  the  carriage  of  troops,  &c. 

9.  Parliament  not  to  be  asked  for  this  guarantee  until  the  line 
and  surveys  shall  have  been  submitted  to  and  approved  of  by  Her 
Majesty's  Government,  and  until  it  shall  have  been  shown,  to  the 
satisfaction  of  Her  Majesty's  Government,  that  the  line  can  be 
constructed  without  further  application  for  an  Imperial  guarantee. 

This  proposal  was  accepted  by  Nova  Scotia  and  New  Brunswick, 
but  objected  to  by  Canada. 

By  the  despatch  of  Mr.  Cardwell,  dated  17th  June,  1864,  the 
engagement  of  Her  Majesty's  Government  to  grant  the  guarantee 
was  renewed;  but  consideration  of  the  terms  was  postponed  for 
future  arrangement. 

In  consequence  of  the  proposed  confederation  of  the  provinces, 
many  of  the  clauses  in  both  these  propositions  appear  to  be  no 
longer  required,  and  it  is  submitted  that  the  terms  of  the  Canada 
Guarantee  Act  of  1842,  should  be  in  the  main  followed.  The 
delegates  therefore  propose  to  Her  Majesty's  Government 

1.  That  a  loan  of  £3,000,000  sterling,  to  be  negotiated  with  a 
guarantee  of  the  Imperial  Parliament,  the  proceeds  to  be  applied 
to  the  construction  of  the  Intercolonial  Railway. 

2.  The  rate  of  interest  to  be  4  per  cent.,  payable  half-yearly 
and  both  principal  and  interest  to  form  the  first  charge  upon  the 
revenue  of  the  Confederation,  after  existing  debts  and  charges. 

3.  A   sinking   fund   at   the   rate    of   1    per  cent,  per  annum 
to  be   provided   by    the    Confederation,    to   be   invested  in   the 
securities  of  the  Confederation  existing  prior  to  the  guaranteed 
loan,  or  in  such  other  securities  as   may  be  suggested   by  the 
Confederation,  and  approved  by  Her  Majesty's  Government. 


392  CONFEDERATION. 

The  trustees  of  the  sinking  funds  to  consist  of  one  officer  to  be 
appointed  by  the  Imperial  Government,  and  another  by  the 
Government  of  the  Confederation. 

(Signed)         JOHN  A.   MACDONALD, 

Chairman. 
London,  29th,  January,  1867. 

On  the  1 2th  February,  a  deputation  of  the  Conference,  consist- 
ing of  Messrs.  Gait,  Rowland,  Tupper  and  Tilley,  waited,  by  invi- 
tation, upon  the  Chancellor  of  the  Exchequer,  and  explained  fully 
the  object  of  having  the  guarantee  of  the  Imperial  Government 
placed  upon  the  footing  contained  in  the  above  memorandum. 

This  interview  was  satisfactory,  and  left  no  doubt  that  the  gua- 
rantee was  not  only  secured,  but  that  there  would  be  no  difficulty 
in  arranging  the  details  connected  therewith.  The  deputation  on 
that  occasion  left  a  memorandum  with  the  Chancellor  of  the 
Exchequer,  respecting  the  financial  position  and  trade  of  British 
North  America,  (vide  Appendix.) 

After  protracted  negotiations,  and  much  discussion  of  the  statis- 
tical information  supplied  to  Her  Majesty's  Government,  the  latter 
agreed  to  ask  Parliament  for  a  guarantee  of  £3,000,000  sterling. 
Great  difficulty  arose  with  reference  to  the  investment  of  the 
Sinking  Fund,  and  the  legislation  required  by  Canada  previous  to 
the  attaching  of  the  guarantee.  The  Treasury  Department  insisted 
that  Canada  should  provide,  by  a  special  laAv  for  raising  the  neces- 
sary revenue,  to  defray  the  interest  on  the  loan  before  any  gua- 
rantee should  be  made;  and  that  the  Sinking  Fund  should  be  in- 
vested in  British  funds.  After  a  series  of  interviews  they  were 
induced  to  abandon  their  first  condition,  as  to  proof  of  the  revenue 
required  to  meet  the  loan,  and  also  to  agree  to  the  proposal  of  the 
delegates  that  the  Sinking  Fund  should  be  invested  in  colonial 
and  other  securities,  at  the  option  of  Canada.* 

Finally,  the  draft  of  a  Bill  was  agreed  upon,  which  was  intro- 
duced and  carried  by  the  Ministers  in  the  Imperial  Parliament, 
under  the  title  of  "  An  Act  for  authorizing  a  guarantee  of  interest 
on  a  loan  to  be  raised  by  Canada  towards  the  construction  of  a 

*  New  Brunswick  Journals,  1867,  404. 


CONFEDERATION.  393 

railway  connecting  Quebec  and  Halifax/'  (12tli  April,  1867);  and 
became  the  law  under  which  the  funds  for  the  construction  of  the 
work  were  found. 

After  the  close  of  the  negotiations  in  England,  the  deputations 
returned  to  their  different  Provinces.     In  Nova  Scotia  and  New 
Brunswick,  where  the  existing  Legislatures  were  still  in  full  force 
and  in  session,  resolutions  were  almost  immediately  introduced, 
and  bills  founded  upon  them  passed  into  law,  preventing  dual 
representation,  or  the  same  individual  being  at  the  same  time  a 
member   of  the  Local  Legislature  and  of  the  Dominion  Parlia- 
ment.     The  extreme  jealousy  of  the  over-ruling  power  of  the 
Federal  Government,  the  desire  to  preserve  unfettered  the  action 
of  the  Local  Legislatures,  and  the  independent  maintenance  of 
their  rights,  and  the  rights  of  their  Provinces,  with  the  avoidance 
of  a   divided  responsibility,  were  the  inducements  to  this  legis- 
lation.    The  Provinces  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada  having  at 
that  time  no  separate  Legislatures,  no  action  could  be  taken  by 
those  Provinces  in  that   direction,  and  the  then  Legislature  of 
those  two  Provinces  under  the  old  union,  did  not  deem  it  proper 
to  express  any  opinion  on  the  point.    After  confederation  the  sub- 
ject was  one  of  repeated  discussion  in  the  Dominion  Parliament, 
but  on  all  occasions  it  was  held  to  be  a  matter  of  local  regulation, 
to  be  governed  by  the  decision  of  the  Local  Legislatures  them- 
selves.    In  reviewing  the  debates  on  this  subject  in  the  confederate 
Parliament,  in  the  subsequent  volume  of  this  work,  the  policy  of 
its  adoption  or  rejection  will  have  to  be  more  fully  entered  into. 
At  present  it  is  sufficient  to  say  that  during  the  first  three  or  four 
years  after  confederation,  the  leading  members  of  the  Local  Legis- 
latures of  both  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  then  become  Ontario 
and  Quebec,  and  the  members  of  their  Local  Governments  held 
seats  in  the  Dominion  Parliament,  and  as  a  general  rule  supported 
the  administration  of  the  day.     In  New  Brunswick,  on  the  pro- 
clamation of  the  union,  the  members  of  the  Local  Government, 
the  Speaker  of  the  House,  and  such  other  members  as  intended  to 
be  candidates  for  the  Dominion  Parliament,  forthwith  resigned 
their  ssats  in  the  Local  Legislature,  and  were  returned  by  their 
26 


394  CONFEDERATION. 

several  constituencies  to  the  Federal  Legislature.  In  Nova  Scotia 
they  did  the  same,  but  at  that  time  the  anti-confederate  hostility 
to  the  movement  had  become  a  passion.  The  leader  of  the 
Government,  Dr.  Tupper,  alone  survived  the  wreck  of  his  party, 
and  with  the  member  for  Guysboro',  Mr.  Stewart  Campbell,  repre- 
sented in  the  Dominion  Parliament,  the  confederate  element  from 
that  Province. 

Before  leaving  England,  Her  Majesty  had  been  pleased  to  confer 
the  honour  of  a  K.C.B.  on  the  chairman,  and  C.B.  on  several 
members  of  the  Conference.  On  the  22nd  day  of  May,  1867,  a 
royal  proclamation  was  issued  at  Windsor  Castle,  declaring  that, 
on  the  1st  July,  1867,  the  Imperial  Act  should  come  in  force,  and 
that  on  and  after  that  day  the  Provinces  of  Canada,  Nova  Scotia 
and  New  Brunswick  should  form  and  be  one  Dominion,  under  the 
name  of  Canada,  and  designating  the  members  of  the  old  Legisla- 
tive Councils  of  the  several  Provinces  who  were  to  constitute  the 
Senate.  A  cabinet  was  in  the  meantime  formed,  under  the  Pre. 
miership  of  Sir  John  A.  Macdonald,  composed  alike  of  Conserva- 
tives and  Liberals,  to  be  announced  with  the  inauguration  of  the 
Dominion ;  and  the  people  of  the  several  Provinces  quietly  awaited 
the  day  when  the  constitutions  under  which  they  had  prospered 
would  pass  away,  and  a  new  era  be  opened  to  British  North 
America. 

An  able  writer,  in  a  work  just  published,*  in  his  revelations  of 
the  dark  side  of  our  acquisition  of  India,  observes, — "  Events  of 
historical  importance  are  of  two  kinds,  the  silent  and  the  noisy  > 
and  all  things  considered,  the  silent  are  of  much  more  consequence 
than  those  whose  taking  place  clamors  for  observation.  In 
Bengal  a  great  event,  or  coming  into  light  of  a  new  fact  on  tlje 
scroll  of  human  destiny  noiselessly  revealed  itself."  In  Canada, 
on  the  bright  side  of  history,  may  we  not  say,  a  great  event  on 
the  scroll  of  human  destiny  was  noiselessly  revealing  itself.  No 
blood  was  shed,  no  rupture  made,  no  Clive  or  Warren  Hastings 
robbed  in  the  name  of  justice,  or  deceived  and  betrayed  in  the 
name  of  humanity ;  no  Sheridan  or  Burke  can  hereafter  arise  to 

*  Torrens'  Empire  in  Asia.     1872. 


CONFEDERATION.  395 

make  their  names  immortal  by  the  impeachment  of  its  actors. 
Yet  a  change  was  taking  place,  not  less  significant  in  its  bearing 
upon  the  interests  of  that  empire  from  which  the  conquerors  of 
India  and  the  colonists  of  Canada  came.  A  change  by  which  a 
country  far  exceeding  India  in  extent,  with  its  hardy  northern 
races,  while  forming,  for  the  future,  a  great  and  powerful  nation, 
was  yet  to  remain  an  integral  portion  of  that  empire  of  its  own 
free  will ;  with  no  wrongs  like  the  dusky  sons  of  India  to  avenge, 
no  treachery  to  repay  with  treachery,  no  blood-stained  annals 
of  mutiny  and  crime  to  darken  its  future  years.  Truly  the 
silent  events  of  history,  all  things  considered,  are  of  the  most 
importance. 

Much  has  been  said  and  written  about  the  corruption  of 
Canadian  statesmen.  If  the  charge  be  intended  for  any  thing 
beyond  a  mere  vague  assertion,  or  to  have  any  personal  applica- 
tion, it  is  utterly  untrue.  For  five  and  twenty  years,  it  cannot 
be  said  of  any  one  public  man,  who  has  been  a  member  of  a 
government  in  any  one  of  the  provinces,  that  he  has  made  use  of 
his  position  to  advance  his  own  pecuniary  interests ;  nor,  with  the 
exception  of  one  or  two,  has  even  political  malice  ventured  to 
make  the  charge.  There  is  not  one  perhaps,  who,  had  he  devoted 
the  same  attention  and  the  same  energy  exclusively  to  his  private 
affairs  that  he  has  given  to  the  public,  would  not  have  been  in 
far  more  independent  circumstances.  It  is  notorious  that  the 
salaries  of  ministers,  judges,  and  other  public  officials  in  Canada 
are  based  upon  the  circumstances  of  the  country  many  years 
since,  and  are,  at  the  present  day,  on  a  scale  totally  inadequate  to 
the  increased  expenses  of  living.  Bank  presidents-,  railway 
managers  and  others,  whose  remuneration  is  based  upon  ability  to  dis- 
charge their  duties,  receive  treble  and  quadruple  the  amount  the  best 
paid  public  man  in  Canada  can  hope  to  obtain,  though  the  services 
are  not  more  onerous,  or  the  responsibilities  so  great.  Among 
that  most  valued  class  of  public  servants  who  constitute  the 
permanent  staff  of  the  departments,  where  knowledge  and 
experience  are  invaluable  to  preserve  regularity  and  uniformity, 
the  ablest  and  the  best  frequently  leave  the  public  service,  to  find 
in  other  employments  more  adequate  compensation;  and  the 
benefit  of  long  training  and  tried  integrity  is  thus  lost. 


396  CONFEDERATION. 

It  is  true  the  remedy  is  in  the  hands  of  the  Canadian  Parlia- 
ment; but  in  Canada,  as  well  as  in  England,  the  public  service 
sometimes  suffers  from  an  injudicious  economy  in  the  public 
expenditure,  and  the  proposition  for  any  change  in  an  improved 
direction  is  at  once  met  by  reference  to  the  salaries  in  the  United 
States  and  republican  simplicity,  ignoring  the  fact  that  in  that 
country  small  salaries  are  supplemented  by  inordinate  fees,  and 
sometimes — sometimes  too  often — by  the  grossest  corruption.  That 
the  value  of  a  collectorship  of  customs  in  New  York — a  govern- 
ment and  not  a  municipal  appointment — is  estimated  at  $100, 000 
per  annum,  while  the  prime  minister  of  Canada  receives  as  a  salary 
$5,000,  and  the  highest  chief  justice  in  the  Dominion  but  $5,500, 
a  little  over  a  £1,000  sterling,  and  no  fees. 

No  public  official  in  Canada  can,  if  he  is  "  blessed  with  Solo- 
man's  quiver  full  of  them,"  possibly  bring  up,  educate  and  plant 
his  family  on  an  official  salary,  and  it  therefore  redounds  to  their 
credit  that,  Canadian  statesmen  can  challenge  the  charge  of  cor- 
ruption and  defy  the  proof.  They  are  not  open  even  to  the  im_ 
putation  of  the  Spartan  quality  conveyed  in  La  Bruyere's  subtle 
sarcasm,  "L'honnete  homme  est  celue  qui  ne  vole  pas  sur  les 
grands  chemins  et  qui  ne  tue  personne."* 

If  the  application  is  intended  in  their  political  capacity,  then 
Canadian  statesmen  may  safely  refer  to  the  practice  of  their  coun- 
trymen in  England,  and  to  the  conduct  of  the  Imperial  cabinet 
and  statesmen.  The  exercise  of  patronage  in  the  appointment  to 
office  of  the  supporters  of  Government,  where  integrity  and 
capacity  to  discharge  the  duties  of  the  office  exist,  is  simply  the 
history  of  English  parliamentary  government,  and  is  perfectly 
legitimate.  If  the  charge  be  intended  only  in  that  general  sense, 
which  it  is  impossible  to  reduce  to  anything  definite  either  indivi- 
dually or  collectively,  though  it  might  be  treated  with  indifference, 
and  reference  be  made  to  the  days  of  Walpole  and  Pelharn,  and 
even  of  the  later  Pitt,  not  forgetting  Lord  Panmure's  celebrated 
Crimean  telegram,  "Take  care  of  Dowb" — and  Canadian  states- 
men might  in  this  respect  court  comparison  with  any  Government 

*"  Honest  man,  (undetected)  pilfer,  steal  or  prig,  but  don't  rob  on  the  public  highway, 
or  commit  murder." 


CONFEDERATION.  %  397 

that  now  exists,  or  has  existed  in  England  during  the  last  half- 
century — it  is  simply  necessary  to  deny  the  charge  in  the  strongest 
terms.  Canadian  statesmen  do  not  pretend  to  be  Purists.  They 
are  principally  practical  men,  who  have  worked  their  way  to  posi- 
tion by  the  advocacy  of  progressive  measures  and  the  exercise  of 
sound  common  sense.  Very  few  of  them  can  claim  the  benefit  of 
hereditary  distinction,  and  most  of  them  are  indebted  to  their 
personal  qualities  alone  for  any  influence  they  command.  They  are 
very  much  like  their  English  prototypes ;  and  the  press  in  Canada 
would  expose  corruption,  individually  or  collectively,  if  it  really 
existed,  quite  as  readily  as  the  press  in  England.  Such  charges, 
when  made  in  Canada,  in  the  general  terms  in  which  they  are 
made,  are,  it  is  generally  considered,  used  as  election  cries,  and 
mostly  come  from  parties  who  have  been  members  of  the  same 
Government,  and,  having  separated,  like  quarrelling  members  of 
the  same  family,  abuse  each  other  with  intensest  hatred.  It  is  to 
be  regretted  that  such  a  practice  should  ever  have  obtained.  But 
it  does  more  harm  to  Canada  abroad  than  at  home.  Such  charges, 
when  made  by  English  writers,  may  in  almost  every  instance  be 
traced  to  some  disappointed  applicant  for  place.  Too  many  strangers 
come  out  to  Canada,  thinking  their  appointment  to  office  would 
be  conferring  a  great  boon  upon  the  country,  and  are  vexed  at  the 
want  of  appreciation  evinced  by  its  inhabitants.  They  forget  that 
they  must  work  on  the  soil  before  they  can  reap  its  fruits. 

On  the  1st  July,  1867,  Lord  Monck  issued  a  proclamation 
announcing  his  appointment  as  Governor-General  of  the  Dominion, 
and  Canadians  assumed  the  control  of  territories  vast  in  their 
extent  and  resources,  which,  under  wise  legislation  and  honest 
industry,  will,  with  God's  blessing,  advance  in  prosperity  and 
influence,  and  add  to  the  welfare  and  happiness  of  the  human  race. 


APPENDIX. 


2,   page  V9.) 
STATEMENTS 

Explanatory  of  the  Financial  Position  of  Canada,  and  a  comparison   thereof 
with  the  position  of  the  other  British  North  American  Colonies  in  1864. 

(Issued  by  the  Department  of  the  Minister  of  Finance,  Canada  in.  1865.) 


STATEMENT  respecting  the  Funded  Debt  of  Canada,  and  the  Sinking  Funds 
held  for  its  redemption. 


Year. 

Funded  Debt. 

Sinking  Funds 
held  fol- 
ks redemption. 

Net  Funded 
Debt. 

1861  . 

$6^626,4.78 

$7,453,4S8 

$;8,  173,020 

1862  

67,567,408 

7,620,434 

59,946,974 

186^ 

6^,238  640 

4,883,177 

00,3,^,472 

1864.. 

61,824,367 

1,536,792 

60,287,571; 

These  figures  are  from  the  "Statements  of  Affairs  of  the  Province,"  being 
Table  I.,  in  the  Public  Accounts  of  each  year,  signed  by  Wm.  Dickinson,  Esq., 
Deputy  Inspector  General. 

STATEMENT  respecting  Imports  into  Canada,  and  Duty  paid  thereon,  in  each 
year  since  1 86 1. 


Year. 

Imports. 

Duty. 

Per  Centage  of 
Duty  on 
Total  Imports. 

l86l               .               

$43,0^4,836 

$4,768,193 

II.  I 

1862  

48,600,633 

4,652,749 

9.6 

1867 

4^,964,493 

q,  l69,I73 

II.  2 

1864  .  . 

52,498,066 

6,637,503 

12.6 

The  figures  relating  to  the  Imports  and  Duty  for  1861,  1862  and  1863  are 
from  the  Trade  and  Navigation  Returns,  prepared  each  year  under  the  super- 
intendence of  R.  S.  M.  Bouchette,  Esq.,  Commissioner  of  Customs  and  Excise. 
Those  for  1864  are  from  MSS.  tables. 


APPENDIX. 


399 


STATEMENT  respecting  the  Population  of  Canada  at  the  periods  undermen- 
tioned. 

POPULATION  BY  THE  CENSUS  OF  JANUARY,  1852. 

Upper  Canada.                                  Lower  Canada.  Total. 

952,004      , 890,261      1,842,265 

POPULATION  BY  THE  CENSUS  OF  JANUARY,  1861. 

Upper  Canada.                                      Lower  Canada.  Total. 

1,396,091      1,111,566      2,507,657 

POPULATION,  ASSUMING  THE  SAME  RATE  OF  INCREASE,  IN  JANUARY  OF 
EACH  SUCCEEDING  YEAR. 


Upper  Canada. 

1862       1,456,800 

1863       1,520,100 

1864       1,586,130 


Lower  Canada.  Total. 

1,139,400      2,596,200 

1,167,800      2,687,900 

1,196,949      2,783,079 


1865       1,655,100      ,1,226,800      2,88l,900 

The  figures  for  1852  and  1861  are  from  the  Official  Reports  of  the  Census. 


CALCULATION  as  to  the  Duty  paid/^r  head  of  the  population  of  Canada,  dur- 
ing the  last  four  years  ;  also  as  to  the  Debt,  Ordinary  Revenue*  and 
Ordinary  Expenditure  fer  head. 


Year. 

Duty 
per  head. 

Debt 
per  head. 

Revenue 
per  head. 

Expenditure 
per  head. 

1861  ., 

$1   8? 

$22   "II 

$*   IS 

$4.  27 

1862 

I    T\ 

22   "?O 

3IO 
iVJ 

4Q-J 

1863     

I  8< 

21    60 

3  4.8 

•2   ye 

1864  .  . 

2    7O 

2O  Q2 

^  7Q 

•3      C2 

For  the  amount  of  Revenue  and  Expenditure  see  pages  402-3-4-5. 


400  APPENDIX. 

CONDENSED  BALANCE  SHEET  OF  THE  PROVINCE  OF 
CANADA,  ON  DECEMBER  3IST,  1864. 

DR. 

Funded  Debt — Direct   $60,950, 101   13 

Do.  Indirect    874,266  64 

-    $61,824,367  77 
Indebtedness  to  Trust  Funds  : — 

School  Funds      1,966,813  87 

Indian  Funds      1,614,519  oo 

Miscellaneous  Funds      ....  569,650  59 

4,150,983  46 

Miscellaneous  Accounts 735>239  *4 

Bank  Accounts     3>35°>5°7  26 

Liabilities  in  connection  with  the  Seigniorial  Tenure 4, 118,202  62 

Consolidated  Fund 2,043,761  40 

$76,223,061  65 

NOTE.— To  arrive  at  the  $67,500,000  at  which  Canada  is  to  enter  the  Confederation,  see 
the  Calculation  on  page  405. 

CR. 

Sinking  Funds $1,536,792  15 

Provincial  Works,  viz.  : — 

*(a)  St.  Lawrence  Canals $7,406,269  86 

(l>)  Welland  Canal    7,309,849  16 

(c)  Chambly  Canal  and  River  Richelieu 

Improvements  433,&>7  83 

(d)  Burlington  Bay  Canal    308,328  32 

(e)  Lake  St.  Peter  Improvements 1,098,225  08 

(/)  Ottawa  Works   1, 148,690  16 

Improvement  of  the  Trent    558,506  20 

(g)  Harbours  and  Light  Houses     2,549,617  42 

Roads  and  Bridges 1,726,695  34 

Government  Buildings  at  Ottawa    ..      1,812,50871 

(//)  Loans  to  Incorporated  Companies  . .         142,154  52 

Miscellaneous  Works  and  Buildings     1,860,862  13 

26,355,524  73 

Due  by  Building  and  Harbour  Funds  (/) 874,266  64 

Railway  Debenture,  Accounts  : — 

(j)    Grand    Trunk    Railway,    including 

Subsidiary  Lines   15,312,89417 

(k)  Great  Western  Railway    2,810,500  oo 

(/)   Northern  Railway 2,311,666  67 

20,435,060  84 

Railway  Interest  and  Special  Accounts    9,642,025   15 . 

Municipal  Loan  Fund  Accounts  («) 12,890,837  95 

Miscellaneous  Accounts 1,064,439  oi 

Due  by  Trust  Funds   779,439  84 

Consolidated  Fund  Investment  Account 689,635  69 

Bank  of  Upper  Canada,  Special  Account 1,250,000  oi 

Bank  Accounts,  including  Crown  Lands  ($60,036  64) , 705,039  64 

76,223,061  65 

*  For  Notes  see  succeeding  page. 


APPENDIX.  401 

(a)  The  St.  Lawrence  and  Welland  Canals— together  54  miles  long,  with  54  locks  and  a 
lockage  of  535  feet— enable  vessels  to  pass  from  the  Upper  Lakes  to  the  Ocean. 

The  St.  Lawrence  Canal  locks,  24  in  number,  besides  guard-locks,  are  9  feet  deep, 
45  broad  and  200  long,  and  can  pass  vessels  186  feet  long,  44%!  broad  and  9  deep. 

(l>)  The  Welland  Canal  locks,  are  10  feet  deep,  26%  broad  and  150  long,  and  can  pass 
vessels  142  feet  long,  26  broad  and  10  deep. 

(<:)  The  Chambly  Canal  enables  vessels  to  pass  from  the  St.  Lawrence  into  Lake  Cham- 
plain.  It  has  9  locks  (besides  the  St.  Ours),  7  feet  deep,  24  broad  and  122  long. 

(<f)  The  Burlington  Bay  Canal,  or  Cut,  opens  up  Burlington  Bay  to  the  trade  of  Lake 
Ontario. 

(e)  The  Improvements  St.  Peter  Lake  will  soon  enable  sea-going  vessels  to  go  up  to 
Montreal,  drawing  20  feet  of  water.  They  have  been  effected  by  dredging. 

(/}  The  "  Ottawa  Works "  are  Timber  Slides  and  Dams,  enabling  the  Lumber  of  the 
Ottawa  Country  to  be  floated  down  to  tide-water  without  injury  from  falls  or  rapids. 

(g )  The  Light  Houses  and  Harbours  include  those  on  the  Lakes  as  well  as  on  the  salt 
water. 

(7z)  The  principal  loan  was  to  the  Desjardin's  Canal  Company.  This  Canal  connects  the 
town  of  Dundas  with  Burlington  Bay. 

(t)  $481,426  67  of  this  is  due  by  Montreal  Harbour. 

(/)  The  Grand  Trunk  R.  R.  Co.  now  controls  1,377  miles  of  railway,  in  addition  to  the 
54  miles  of  the  Ottawa  and  Frescott  Railway,  which  it  works  for  the  Ottawa  and  Prescott 
Railway  Company. 

(k)  The  Great  Western  Railway  and  its  branches  are  345  miles  in  length. 

(I)  The  Northern  Railway  is  94  miles  long. 

(»)  The  advances  made  to  the  various  Municipalities  under  the  Municipal  Loan  Fund 
Account,  secured  the  construction  of  various  important  works,  such  as  the  Ottawa  and  Pres- 
cott Railway  ;  the  Brockville  and  Ottawa  Railway,  81  miles  ;  the  London  and  Port  Stanley 
Railway,  24  miles.  Also  Water  Works  and  other  valuable  local  improvements. 


402 


APPENDIX. 


>  tn 

O  H 


W  K 

w  ^2 


H^ 

§5 
a  i 

Ii 


OO 

•<?  CO 

l&gf^Jsilg 

00    5- 
00    (•>. 

1 

I 

1 

10,129,065 

ffSHf'fftf| 

p 

OO 

i? 

CO 

s 

t-»  IOOO  0000    O    N  VO  VO  03  CO    O\  ••}•  O    O    ro 

«sll 

3  § 

00 

10,446,459 

CO  •<?                                               M"                                   M" 

P. 

S: 

1  " 

9 

i 

SRSg^RSSSSSatfaSR 

CO  M 

o\oo 

N 

K  &  o 

J 

§ 

OO 
0 

O    CN    IOOO    ^-  UJ  CO         HCOCOCOCOMW1^- 

IO  O 
CM- 
CO  « 

i-T 

VO 

j 

1 

10  OC 

At 

.  O\  N    N    O   ^OO   M  vo   covo    M    ^-  r-xvo 
t^  CO  M    g    0  vo  VOOHVOCOMO-*- 

co  tt 

00  00 

PI 

?§3 

0        O\ 

1  10,480,643 

H    O\  CO  IO  CN    ^t-N    ON-^w    lOlOOAt^ 
)  r^  -^-vo   •*  r^oo    O    O\  N   10  -<J-  cooo   O 

M 

8 

VO  5-vo" 

vo  co  ro 

vo          CJ 

PAYMENTS. 

': 

:  :  :  II  !  j 

: 

i 

:  : 

!  i  i  ':&  ':  ': 

o 
Jrt 

;    ; 

:  :  :  :  8  :  : 

•     .     .     .13     .     . 

! 

:  : 

|  :  :  :-«  :  : 

:  : 

it: 

»  :  :  :  8  :  : 

:  : 

! 

i.  Interest  on  Public  Debt,  charges  of  Management,  i 

„  T?»^»rr,T^;nr,  nf  PllKllV  DpKl- 

it 

•  r 

!  i  :  i  £  i  i 

:  : 

1 

Reception  of  H.  R.  H.  the  Prince  of  Wales.. 

"c  :  :  •  8*  :  c- 

:  : 

3 

3.  Civil  Government,  including  Pensions.. 
4.  Administration  of  Justice,  including  Pris 

6.  Education,  Grants  to  Literary  Societies  s 
7.  Hospitals  and  Charities  
8.  Militia  and  Enrolled  Force  
9.  Agricultural  Societies,  Grants  to  
o.  Public  Works  and  Buildings,  Rents  and  I 
i.  Redemption  of  Seigniorial  Rights  
2.  Advances  and  Payments  to  Subsidiary  L 

4.  Indian  Fund  and  Indian  Annuities  
6.  Collection  of  Revenue  

Redemption  of  Public  Debt  (to  be  deducted) 
Expenditure  

Trom  this  may  also  be  deducted  the  followin 
Cost  of  the  Ottawa  Buildings  
Subsidiary  Lines  
Extraordinary  Advances  . 

APPENDIX. 


403 


I 

ij-vo   Ovot^OOCivoO     •     .    tx    .  vo  vo  00  CO    t-% 

\O     M     Tj-   M     TJ-00     MMCOTj-lO-       -VO       -MOWOVO 

W-vo  covo-4-iornMroroM|-i     .'     IN     IMMMH 

11 

1 

I      I      I    M 

§ 

o" 
c? 

10,935,300 

2 
JS 

s 

IcSHl^J^^:  iH^Sfi: 

$? 

s 

VO     •  CO     •     • 
VO      •  vo      .      . 

i 

f 

I 

a 

« 

M~CO     ?  IOO    10  ^"S  VO            m"       "       I^M'n'M'N10 

«sa 

1 

C>    '.    H      .     I 

VO 

i 

are  from 

w    rO  P.  -4-CO    MNOC--rOOOM      •      -COOSCMC^O 

fi 

J 

10  0     :     • 
N    O      •      • 
W    O     •     • 

g 

o\ 
M 

1 

I 

•W>oooc:3c40C7\'ONH   (v-.vo  "     I     !   ro  O   ^vo1  N" 

vS 

o" 

03' 

10  :  : 

0 

0? 

v2 
.1 

N   «OVO  00   rovo   ro  mvo   t^oo   O\O     -OrOiOioOvNH 
vo  vo   0(    O  c*»    rooo    t^  O   Osco   ^N     -OconiO(NTt-N 

MVO 
10  n 

m 
c? 

§||5  :. 

1 

CO* 

1 

§ 

c 

o 
o 

n  M.           i 

vo1  t5 

cf 

Mc?\o  $  : 

W  OO     M       . 

f 

co" 

to  Langton,  Esq.,  Auditor. 

:  o> 

rt 

'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.''.''''.£ 

'•'.'.'•'•'.'.'.    I    '.'.''.':'.'.'.'.'.'.> 

:  :  :  :  : 

1861,  1862,  1863  by  To 
Parliament. 

::.:.:.::      :  o 
::::::::::::::§:::::<* 

•O 
9 

i 

u 

•8 

2 

| 

3 
1 
8 

t 

1 

e 

1 

< 

'I 

M 
O 

W 

:  f|   1|§  :|1|  l||Sl  j     !| 

o 
o 

•a 

i 

b 

1 

y  eft  ""rt 

1 
8 

I 

xed  to  the  Pifl 

w|    ||g  ;.2  :|  :.•«•§<  :  I     :| 

Debentures  ai 

Revenue  
leducted  the  fc 

lailway  Advar 
ompany  Adva 
Consolidated  ( 
rust,  (Sc.  (item 
Canada  Speci 

tal  Revenue,  ', 

n  the  Table  pref 

OWf^friHMSSQcoShSowoS^Wt-H^P^ 

n   N   ro  -4-  lovd    t^od   oS  O'   M    N   ro  4-  iovo'   tied   O>  O   w 

o 

1 

o< 
'§ 

From  this  may  also  be  c 

Grand  Trunk  ] 
Ocean  Steam  C 
Investment  ex 
Received  on  T 
Bank  of  Upper 

g 

| 

rt 

1 

1 

5 
£ 

.2 
1 

404 


APPENDIX. 


STATEMENT  relating  to  the  Area,  Acres  surveyed,  and  Acres  disposed  of,  in  the 
five  Eastern  Colonies  of  British  North  America,  1865. 


Province. 

Area  in 
Square  Miles. 

Acres 
Surveyed  to 
Dec.  31,  1863. 

Acres  disposed  of 
by  Sale  or  Grant 
to  Dec.  31,  1863. 

Newfoundland    

4O,2OO 

*IOO  OOO 

Nova  Scotia   

1  8  660 

*t  7AS  «Q? 

New  Brunswick  

27,IO^ 

7  g  CQ  OOO 

7   c  r  T  QOQ 

Prince  Edward  Island  

2,  loO 

*I    36  C,  AOO 

Canada    

331  280 

4.Q  084.  ^8? 

OQ    -7^1     7QT 

Total  

419,345 

54,097,993 

The  figures  marked  with  an  asterisk  (*)  are  not  taken  from  official  sources,  but  are 
believed  to  be  approximately  correct. 

There  would  thus  remain  214,282,817  acres  in  the  hands  of  the  Crown. 

POPULATION  AND  ITS  RATE  OF  INCREASE. 


Province. 

>,3 

•°  C 

Jo 

rt  « 
13 

*i 

rt 

1  j 

ll 

Q 

Rate  of  annual 
increase 
since  previous 
Census  — 
per  cent. 

Estimated  popnla- 
tion,  Jan., 
1864.  assuming 
vthe  same 
rate  of  increase. 

Nevfoundland*  

124  288 

181:7 

I  50 

137  OOO 

Nova  Scotia            .  . 

•3-20  8^7 

1861 

I  82 

34Q  3OO 

New  Brunswick  

2^2  O4.7 

1861 

2  60 

272  78o 

Prince  Edward  Island 

80  857 

1861 

2  O7 

8c  QQ2 

Canada  

2,  CO7  6^7 

1861 

•""W 
•i  4.8 

2  783  O70 

Total  

3,295,706 

3,628,151 

*  Including  the  Labrador  Shore. 

^  The  population  is  calculated  to  the  end  of  1863,  (or  beginning  of  1864,)  in  order  to 
arrive  at  a  correct  estimate  of  the  Debt,  Revenue,  &c.,  of  the  several  Provinces  per  head, 
for  which  see  next  page. 


REVENUE,  EXPENDITURE,  DEBT,  IMPORTS.  DUTY  AND  EXPORTS  IN  1863. 


Province. 

Revenue, 

1863. 

Expendi- 
ture, 1863. 

mi 

-Sj8§£ 
-a  -fa  £ 

If.s'Jl 

Imports,  1863. 

1 

Exports, 
1863. 

Total 
Value. 

Total 
Duty. 

Newfoundland  

$480,000 
1,185,629 
899,991 

9,760,316 

$479,420 
1,072,274 
884,613 
171,718 
10,742,807 

$946,000 

4,858,547 
5,702,991 

240,573 
60,355,472 

$5,242,724 
10,201,391 
7,764,824 
1,428,028 
45,964,493 

$483,640 
861,989 
*767,354 
145,372 
5,169,173 

$6,002,212 
8,420,968 
8,964,784 
1,627,540 
41,831,532 

Nova  Scotia  
New  Brunswick  
Prince  Edward  Island 
Canada  

Total,  1863  
Canada,  1864  

12,523,320 

I3,35°,832 

72,103,583 

70,601,460!     7,427,528 

66,847,036 

10,918,337 

10,587,142 

60,287,575 

52,498,066     6,637,503 

38,665,446 

*  There  is  also  a  duty  on  Exports  (Lumber)  of  $68,634. 


APPENDIX. 


405 


CALCULATIONS  as  to  the  Revenue,  Expenditure,  Debt,  Imports,  ets.,  per  head  of 
the  Population  in  each  Province. 


Province. 


Newfoundland . 
Nova  Scotia. . . 
New  Brunswick 
Pr.  Edward  Isl. 
Canada 

Average. . . 
Canada,  1864.. 


341 

18.72 

1 0.06 

40-95 
8.40 


8.32 


8.69 


3  45 


3-79 


111 

•o  £-3 


•a  5 

"ol 


$     C. 

3  49 
3  10 
3  24 


2  OO 

3  86 


368 


3-6; 


$  c. 

6  90 

13  9i 

20  91 

2  79 

21  69 


19 


20.93 


$  C. 
38  27 
29  20 
28  46 

17  61 
16  51 


19  18 


18.23 


$  c. 

3  53 
2  46 
2  81 
i  69 
i  85 


2   04 


2.30 


The  following  calculation  shows  how  the  debt  at  which  Canada  is  to  enter 
the  Confederation  was  arrived  at.  The  figures  are  somewhat  different  from 
those  on  the  balance  sheet  on  page  400,  chiefly  because  ajarge  amount  of  debt 
has  been  paid  off  by  the  Sinking  Funds,  and  from  changes  incident  to  the 
transactions  of  the  year  1864. 

THE  AUDITOR'S  STATEMENT  OF  THE  LIABILITIES  OF  CANADA,  IN  1863. 

Debenture  Debt,  direct  and  indirect $65,238,649  21 

Miscellaneous  liabilities   64,426  14 

Common  School  Fund 1, 181,958  85 

Indian  Fund 1,577,^02  46 

Banking  Accounts 3, 396,982  81 

Seigniorial  Tenure  :  ' 

Capital  to  Seigniors $2,899,711  09 

Chargeable  on  Municipalities'  Fund   ..         196,719  66 

On  account  of  Jesuits'  Estates 140,271  87 

Indemnity  to  the  Townships 891,500  oo 

4,118,202  62 

75,578,022  09 

Less — Sinking  Funds $4,883,177  n 

Cash  and  Bank  Accounts   2,248,891  87 

Common  School  Fund 1, 181,958  85 

8,314,027  83 


Leaving  as  Net  Liabilities $67,263,994  26 


406  APPENDIX. 

COASTING  TRADE. — (Chap.  6,  page  157.) 

As  the  question  of  the  Coasting  Trade  is  of  much  importance  to 
Canada,  both  at  present  and  still  more  so  in  view  of  future  con- 
tingencies— and  her  policy  on  this  subject  differs  from  that  of  the 
Imperial  Government — it  is  as  well  to  refer  to  the  Imperial  and 
Canadian  Acts,  by  which  it  was  and  is  regulated,  namely : 

THE  CUSTOMS  CONSOLIDATION  ACT,  ( IMPERIAL ,)  16  &  17  Vic., 
Cap.  107,  A.D.,  1853. 

Sec.  163. — No  goods  or  passengers  shall  be  carried  from  one 
part  of  any  British  possession  in  Asia,  Africa,  or  America,  to  an- 
other part  of  the  same  possession,  except  in  British  ships. 

Sec.  328. — If  the  Legislature  or  proper  legislative  authority  of 
any  of  the  British  possessions  abroad  shall  present  an  address  to 
Her  Majesty,  praying  Her  Majesty  to  authorize  or  permit  the 
conveyance  of  goods  or  passengers  from  one  part  of  such  possession 
to  another  part  thereof,  in  other  than  British  ships;  or  if  the 
Legislatures  of  any  two  or  more  possessions,  which,  for  the  pur- 
poses of  this  Act,  Her  Majesty  in  Council  shall  declare  to  be 
neighbouring  possessions,  shall  present  addresses  or  a  joint  address 
to  Her  Majesty,  praying  Her  Majesty  to  place  the  trade  between 
them  on  the  footing  of  a  coasting  trade,  or  of  otherwise  regulating 
the  same,  so  far  as  relates  to  the  vessels  in  which  it  is  to  be  car- 
ried on,  it  shall  thereupon  be  lawful  for  Her  Majesty,  by  Order 
in  Council,  so  to  authorize  the  conveyance  of  such  goods  or  pas- 
sengers, or  so  to  regulate  the  trade  between  such  neighbouring 
possessions,  as  the  case  may  be,  on  such  terms  and  under  such 
conditions  as  to  Her  Majesty  may  seem  good. 

By  the  Merchants'  Shipping  Colonial  Act,  1869,  (Imperial 
Act,)  Sec.  328,  of  16  and  17  Vic.,  Cap.  107,  just  quoted,  was  at 
once  repealed. 

Sec.  163  was  declared  to  be  repealed  after  two  years,  unless  in 
the  British  possessions  some  local  Act  or  ordinance  was  in  the 
meantime  passed,  retaining  its  provisions. 

Canada,  by  the  same  Act  it  was  declared,  was  to  be  deemed  to 
be  one  British  possession,  thus  doing  away  with  any  inference 


APPENDIX.  407 

that  the  pre-existing  rights  of  the  separate  Provinces,  to  legislate 
or  act  in  this  matter,  still  continued. 

Canada,  not  concurring  in  the  views  of  the  British  Government 
and  Parliament,  that  the  coasting  trade  should  be  thrown  open  to 
the  United  States  or  other  foreign  nations— which  would  not 
reciprocate  to  the  same  degree — immediately  passed  an  Act  (Chap. 
14,  1870,  Canadian  Statutes,  Coasting  Trade,)  preserving  the  pro- 
visions of  Sec.  163,  of  Cap.  107,  16  and  17  Vic.  (A.D.  1853),  so 
far  as  applicable  to  Canada;  under  which  Act  "no  foreign  vessels 
will  be  allowed  to  carry  goods  or  passengers  between  any  parts  or 
places  in  the  Dominion,  unless  allowed  to  do  so  by  order  of  the 
Governor  in  Council,  who  has  power  under  the  Act  to  open  the 
coasting  trade  to  the  shipping  of  any  foreign  country  in  which 
British  ships  and  vessels  are  admitted  to  the  coasting  trade  of 
such  country." — (Yide  Marine  and  Fisheries1  Report,  1871,  62.) 


LOWRY'S  PAMPHLET,  p.  10. — (Page  178,  Chap.  6.) 

The  Official  Returns  show  the  real  decrease  in  1866  and  1867 
to  have  been  over  $9,000,000,  but  of  the  increase  in  1868 
$2,000,000  must  be  credited  to  the  Provinces  of  New  Brunswick 
and  Nova  Scotia,  which  had  come  into  confederation  on  the  1st  of 
July,  1867. 


TERRITORIAL  FISHERY  RIGHTS. — (Page  183,  Chap.  6.) 

The  value  of  these  fishery  rights  may  be  best  estimated  by 
reference  to  the  very  able  report  of  the  Minister  of  Marine  and 
Fisheries,  the  Hon.  Peter  Mitchell,  for  the  year  1870,  laid  before 
Parliament  in  the  session  of  1871.  He  says,  speaking  of  the  fish 
caught  by  British  and  American  fishermen,  "  The  aggregate  value 
of  the  fish  products  of  the  Provincial  fisheries  is  nearly  $17,000,000, 
and  is  susceptible  of  being  increased  to  a  very  much  greater  value." 
"  The  estimated  annual  catch  of  the  American  fishermen,  chiefly 
within  the  three  mile  limits,  is  valued  at  about  $8,000,000,'' 
employing  a  capital  of  $9,000,000.  The  actual  value  for  exporta- 
tion in  the  confederated  Provinces  alone,  exclusive  of  any  caught 
by  foreigners,  is  over  $7,000,000.  The  increase  in  Nova  Scotia, 


408  APPENDIX. 

in  the  case  of  mackerel,  is  very  marked,  having  gone  up,  as 
appears  by  the  returns  for  1871,  from  85,264  barrels  in  1870  to 
142,898  barrels  in  1871.  If  to  the  $7,000,000  for  exportation 
$1,000,000  be  added  for  home  consumption,  the  annual  value  is 
upwards  of  $8,00*0,000.  The  system  adopted  during  the  last  three 
years,  both  as  to  the  regulation  of  the  sea  coast  and  inshore,  as 
well  as  the  inland  fisheries,  has  materially  increased  their  produc- 
tiveness, and  is  improving  the  position  of  our  fishermen.  Mr. 
Mitchell  says  (page  70),  "  There  is  a  general  concurrence  of  opin- 
ion that  the  active  exclusion  of  foreign  fishermen  from  the  waters 
of  Canada,  has  enabled  Canadian  fishermen  to  pursue  their  calling 
to  much  greater  advantage  than  formerly." 

With  reference  to  the  constant  negotiations  with  the   United 
States  in  regard  to  these  fisheries,  it  may  be  observed,  there  is 
no  compensation,  pecuniary  or  commercial — except  the  most  unre- 
stricted access  to  the  markets  of  the  United  States,  on  equal  terms 
with  their  own  fisherman,  without  bounties  or   discriminating 
duties  of  any  kind  in  favor  of  the  latter — that  can  in  any  way  be 
equivalent  to  the  concession  of  the  joint  enjoyment  of  the  fisheries 
in  Canadian  waters.     It  would  be  a  mockery,  by  treaty  or  other- 
wise, to  say  that  their  markets  will  be  thrown  open,  if  the  com- 
petitors with  Canadian  fishermen  in  those  markets  are  to  receive 
exceptional  advantages,  which  neutralize  the  privileges  of  access 
thereto.     If  on  one  side  privileges  are  given,  on  the  other  the  ex- 
clusive territorial  right  equalizes  the  position;  but  if  the  joint  use 
is  added  to  the  former,  the  advantage  is  all  on  one  side.     It  is 
true,  no  one  can  prevent  the  United  States  Congress  from  legis- 
lating, by  bounties  or  otherwise,  as  they  please;  but  it  is  equally 
true  the  Canadian  territorial  fishing  rights  cannot  be  taken  away 
without  the  consent  of  the  Canadian  Parliament.     It  may  be  ques- 
tioned whether,  in  view  of  Canada's  future  position  as  a  maritime 
nation,  any  equivalent  can  be  offered  for  the  concession  of  the  joint 
use  of  the  in-shore  fisheries. 

The  exclusive  right  of  Canada  to  these  fisheries  is  so  undoubted 
under  the  law  of  nations,  that  even  the  proposition  in  the  late 
Treaty  of  Washington  (1871),  to  pay  a  pecuniary  sum  for  the  dif- 
ference in  value  that  might  be  proved  to  exist  between  the  rela- 


APPENDIX.  409 

tive  value  of  the  right  of  fishing  in  American  waters  and  of  fish- 
ing in  Canadian  waters,  though  serving  as  an  admission,  was  not 
requisite  in  any  way  to  strengthen  the  right. 

The  legal  authorities  on  this  question  have  been  most  admirably 
collated  in  a  small  pamphlet,  by  Mr.  W.  F.  Whitcher,  the  Com- 
missioner of  Fisheries  of  the  Marine  and  Fishery  Department. 


HOWE'S  COMMENTS  ON  THE  IMPERIAL  POLICY — (Page  188,  Chap.  6.) 

So  prevalent  is  this  idea  of  the  United  States  getting  the  better 
of  England  in  negotiations,  that  even  Ministers  of  the  Crown  are 
not  always  reticent.  Since  the  foregoing  was  in  press,  the  Hon. 
Joseph  Howe,  the  Secretary  of  State  for  the  Provinces,  delivered 
an  address  in  Ottawa,  from  which  the  following  extract  is  taken. 
"The  Cabinet,  it  is  said,  not  concurring  in  these  views,  had  it  sup- 
pressed immediately;  but  the  enterprise  of  the  Globe  newspaper 
disinterred  it,  before  the  sod  had  hardened,  and  it  was  published 
broadcast."  Coming  from  a  Cabinet  minister,  it  will  doubtless  be 
quoted  as  of  weight;  but  it  is  submitted  that  on  two  points  at 
least,  it  does  not  in  any  sense  represent  the  true  feelings  of  Cana- 
dians. The  latter  have  not  that  abject  dread  of  the  United  States 
which  would  be  engendered  by  such  reasoning;  nor  have  they  that 
distrust  of  the  British  Government  which  would  be  implied  from 
the  alleged  facts  as  stated.  The  withdrawal  of  the  troops  was  a 
mere  matter  of  internal  Imperial  policy,  which  has  done  Canada 
good  instead  of  harm.  If  Great  Britain  retains  the  expensive 
charge  of  the  fortifications  at  Halifax,  nothing  more  in  peace  ought 
to  be  expected.  The  British  Government  have  given  the  assu- 
rance to  Canada,  that  if  the  latter  would  do  her  duty  towards 
maintaining  an  efficient  militia,  the  former,  "in  the  event  of  war, 
would  undertake  the  defence  of  every  portion  of  Canada  with  all 
the  resources  of  the  empire."  And  there  lies  at  the  bottom  of  the 
English  character  a  principle  which,  with  all  its  forbearance,  will 
never  let  a  portion  of  the  empire  be  severed  from  it  in  dishonour : 
27 


410  APPENDIX. 

(Special  Telegraph  to  ike,  Globe.) 

OTTAWA,  February  29,  1872. 

The  following  is  an  extract  from  the  lecture  delivered  by  Hon. 
Joseph  Howe,  on  Tuesday  night,  before  the  Young  Men's  Chris- 
tian Association.  It  is  the  part  which  has  been  taken  exception 
to  in  the  Cabinet,  and  which  has  led  to  the  suppression  of  the 
entire  speech  by  the  press.  It  may  be  relied  on  as  accurate : 

"  He  (Mr.  Howe)  had  said  that  to  meet  the  requirements  of  this 
position  they  must  endeavour  to  grasp  the  whole  Dominion;  and 
he  would  add,  that  in  no  country  he  had  ever  heard  or  read  of,  in 
ancient  or  modern  times,  was  the  strain  on  the  mental  and  bodily 
powers  of  the  whole  population  greater  than  it  was  in  this  Do- 
minion.    We  could  not  afford  to  have  a  laggard,  an  idler,  or  a 
coward;  there  were  not  four  millions  of  us  all  told,  and  we  had 
undertaken  to  govern  half  a  continent,   with  forty  millions  of 
ambitious  and  agressive  people  on  the  other  side  of  a  frontier  three 
thousand  miles  long.     If  each  British  American  could  ^multiply 
himself  five-fold  we  should  not  have  more  than  half  the  brain 
power  and  physical  force  necessary  to  keep  our  rivals  in  check, 
and  to  make  our  position  secure.     To  enable  them  correctly  to 
estimate  their  true  position,  it  would  only  be  necessary  to  enquire 
into  the  reasons  why  France,  with  a  warlike  population  of  thirty 
millions,  studded  with  fortresses,  and  with  its  capital  elaborately 
protected  by  engineering  skill,  was,  during  the  last  summer,  over- 
run, beaten  down,  and  stripped  of  hundreds  of  millions  of  pounds 
by  the  victorious  Prussians.     What  was  the  explanation  of  the 
extraordinary  military  phenomena  which  had  startled  the  world  in 
1871?   Why,  simply  that  the  Prussians  contrived  to  have  one  man 
and  a-half,  and  sometimes  two,  to  one,  on  nearly  every  battle-field 
where  they  met  their  enemies.     Whether  they  were  better  pre- 
pared, whether  their  combinations  were  more  scientific,  or  their 
strategy  was  more  perfect,  may  be  a  matter  of  controversy;  but 
as  far  as  he  had  been  enabled  to  study  the  aspects  of  the  war,  the 
French  were  overpowered  because  they  were  outnumbered.     In 
any  contest  with  our  neighbours,  assuming  that  we  were  united 
to  a  man,  if  the  enemy  knew  his  business  we  must  expect  to  have 


APPENDIX.  411 

ten  men  to  one  against  us, — ten  needle-guns,  or  Sniders,  or  En- 
fields,  whatever  the  weapon  might  be, — so  that  they  would  per^ 
ceive  that  they  must  face  at  least  five  or  six  times  the  odds  by 
which  the  French  were  overpowered.     But  that  was  not  the  worst 
of  it.     Ten  children  were  born  on  the  other  side  of  the  line  for 
one  that  was  born  on  this,  and  however  we  might  change  the  pro- 
portions by  increased  energy,  five  emigrants  went  to  the  United 
States  for  every  one  that  came  to  Canada,  so  that  at  the  end  of 
•every  decade,  the  disproportions  would  be  multiplied  to  our  disad- 
vantage.    We  might  overlook  these  inequalities,  and  live  in  a 
fool's  paradise  of  imaginary  security;    but  if  we  were  wise  we 
would  face  our  dangers,  and  prepare  for  them  with  a  clear  appre- 
ciation of  their  magnitude.     But  it  might  be  said,  Were  we  not  a 
part  of  the  great  Empire  upon  which  the  sun  never  sets,  which  con- 
tains three  hundred  millions  of  people,  whose  wealth  defied  esti- 
mate, whose  army  was  perfect  in  discipline,  and  whose  great  navy 
dominated  the  sea?     What  had  we  to  fear  when  such  an  Empire 
protected  us?     This  was  our  ancient  faith  and  proud  boast.     Under 
every  trial,  in  the  full  belief  that  they  were  British  subjects,  that 
the  allegiance  which  they  had  to  the  Crown  of  England  entitled 
them  to  protection,  our  forefathers  helped  to  conquer  and  organize 
these  provinces.     But  of  late  new  doctrines  had  been  propounded 
in  the  mother  country.     The  disorganization  of  the  Empire  had 
been  openly  promulgated  in  leading  organs;  our  brethren  within 
the  narrow  seas  had  been  counselled  to  adopt  a  narrow  policy;  to 
call  home  their  legions,  and  leave  the  Provinces  without  sympathy 
or  protection;  and  under  the  influences  of  panic  and  imaginary 
Battles  of  Dorking,  troops  were  to  be  massed  in  the  British  Islands 
and  their  shores  were  to  be  surrounded  by  iron-clads.     One  Cabi- 
net Minister  told  them  that  British  America  could  not  be  depended 
upon;  another  that  he  hoped  the  whole  continent  would  peace- 
fully repose  and  prosper  under  republican  institutions;  and  the 
third,  on  the  eve  of  negotiations  that  were  to  involve  our  dearest 
interests,  stripped  Canada  of  every  soldier,  gathered  up  every  old 
sentry-box  and  gun-carriage  that  he  could  find,  and  shipped  them 
off  to  England.     He  did  not  desire  to  anticipate  the  full  discus- 
sion which  Parliament  would  give  to  England's  recent  diplomatic 


412  APPENDIX. 

efforts  to  buy  her  own  peace  at  the  sacrifice  of  our  interests,  or  to 
that  comedy  of  errors  into  which  she  had  blundered.  But  he 
might  say  that  the  time  was  rapidly  approaching  when  Canadians 
and  Englishmen  must  have  a  clear  understanding  as  to  the  obliga- 
gations  of  the  future.  If  Imperial  policy  is  to  cover  the  whole 
ground  upon  the  faith  of  which  our  forefathers  settled  and  im- 
proved, let  this  be  understood.  We  will  know  then  what  to  do. 
But  if  shadows,  clouds  and  darkness  were  to  rest  upon  the  future; 
if  thirty  millions  of  Britons  were  to  hoard  their  rascal  counters 
within  two  small  islands,  gather  round  them  the  troops  and  war 
ships  of  the  Empire,  and  leave  four  millions  of  Britons  to  face 
forty  millions,  and  to  defend  a  frontier  of  3,000  miles,  then  let  us 
know  what  they  are  at,  and  our  future  policy  would  be  governed 
"by  that  knowledge.  No  cabinet  had  yet  dared  to  shape  this 
thought  and  give  it  utterance.  Leading  newspapers  had  told  us 
that  our  presence  within  the  Empire  was  a  source  of  danger,  and 
the  time  for  separation  was  approaching,  if  it  had  not  already 
arrived.  Noble  Lords  and  Commoners  had  sneeringly  told  us  we 
might  go  when  we  were  inclined.  As  yet,  neither  the  Crown, 
Parliament,  nor  people  of  England  had  deliberately  averred  this 
policy  of  dismemberment,  although  the  tendency  of  English 
thought  and  legislation  daily  deepened  the  conviction  that  the 
drift  was  all  that  way.  His  young  friends  must  wait  for  further 
development;  not  without  anxiety  for  the  future,  but  with  a  firm 
reliance  on  the  goodness  of  Providence  and  our  own  ability  to  so 
shape  the  policy  of  our  country  as  to  protect  it  by  our  wit,  should 
Englishmen,  unmindful  of  the  past,  repudiate  their  national 
obligations." 


Chap.  8,  page  286. — From  Chalmers'.  Collection  of  Treaties,  vol.  ly 
A.D.  1555  to  1787.     (Edition  of  1790.) 

TREATIES  OF  PARIS  AND  VERSAILLES,  1763  AND  1783. 

The  definitive  treaty  of  peace  and  friendship  between  His 
Britannic  Majesty,  the  most  Christian  King,  and  the  King  of 
Spain;  concluded  at  Paris  the  10th  day  of  February,  1763.  To 
which  the  King  of  Portugal  acceded  on  the  same  day. 


APPENDIX.  413 

In  the  name  of  the  most  holy  and  undivided  Trinity,  Father, 
Son,  and  Holy  Ghost.  So  be  it. 

Be  it  known  to  all  those  to  whom  it  shall  or  may  in  any 
manner  belong. 

It  has  pleased  the  Most  High  to  diffuse  the  spirit  of  union  and 
concord  among  the  Princes,  whose  divisions  had  spread  the 
troubles  in  the  four  parts  of  the  world,  and  to  inspire  them  with 
the  inclination  to  cause  the  comforts  of  peace  to  succeed  the  mis- 
fortunes of  a  long  and  bloody  war,  which  having  arisen  between 
England  and  France,  during  the  reign  of  the  most  serene  and 
most  potent  Prince  George  the  Second,  by  the  grace  of  God, 
King  of  Great  Britain,  of  glorious  memory,  continued  under  the 
reign  of  the  most  serene  and  most  potent  Prince  George  the 
Third,  his  successor,  and,  in  its  progress,  communicated  itself  to 
Spain  and  Portugal ;  consequently  the  most  serene  and  most 
potent  Prince  George  the  Third,  by  the  grace  of  God  King  of 
Great  Britain,  France,  and  Ireland,  Duke  of  Brunswick  and 
Lurenburg,  arch-treasurer  and  elector  of  the  holy  Roman  Empire, 
the  most  serene  and  most  potent  Prince,  Lewis  the  Fifteenth,  by 
the  grace  of  God,  most  Christian  King,  and  the  most  serene  and 
most  potent  Prince  Charles  the  Third,  by  the  grace  of  God,  King 
of  Spain  and  of  the  Indies,  after  having  laid  the  foundations  of 
peace  in  the  preliminaries,  signed  at  Fontainbleau  the  3rd  of 
November  last ;  and  the  most  serene  and  most  potent  Prince  Don 
Joseph  the  First,  by  the  grace  of  God,  King  of  Portugal  and  of 
the  Algarves,  after  having  acceded  thereto,  determined  to  com- 
plete without  delay  this  great  and  important  work.  For  this 
purpose  the  high  contracting  parties  have  named  and  appointed 
their  respective  ambassadors  extraordinary  and  ministers  pleni- 
potentiary, &c.,  who  after  having  duly  communicated  their  full 
powers  in  due  form,  &c.,  agreed  upon  articles  the  tenor  of  which 
is  as  follows  : 

1.  There  shall  be  a  Christian,  universal,  and  perpetual  peace,  as 
well  by  sea  as  by  land,  and  a  sincere  and  constant  friendship  shall 
be  re-established  between  their  Britannic,  most  Christian,  Catholic 
and  most  faithful  Majesties,  and  between  their  heirs  and  succes- 
sors, kingdoms,  dominions,  provinces,  countries,  subjects,  and 


414  APPENDIX. 

vassals,  of  what  quality  and  condition  soever  they  be,  without 
exception  of  places  or  persons ;  so  that  the  high  contracting 
parties  shall  give  the  greatest  attention  to  maintain  between  them- 
selves and  their  said  dominions  and  subjects,  this  reciprocal 
friendship  and  correspondence,  without  permitting  on  either  side 
any  kind  of  hostilities  by  sea  or  by  land,  to  be  committed  from 
henceforth,  for  any  cause  or  under  any  pretence  whatsoever,  and 
everything  shall  be  carefully  avoided  which  might  hereafter  preju- 
dice the  union  happily  re-established,  applying  themselves  on  the 
contrary  on  every  occasion  to  procure  for  each  other  whatever 
may  contribute  to  their  mutual  glory,  interests,  and  advantages, 
without  giving  any  assistance  or  protection,  directly  or  indirectly, 
to  those  who  would  cause  any  piejudice  to  either  of  the  high  con- 
tracting parties  :  there  shall  be  a  general  obHvion  of  everything 
that  may  have  been  done  or  committed  before,  or  since,  the  com- 
mencement of  the  war  which  is  just  ended. 

4.  His  most  Christian  Majesty  renounces  all  rpretensions  which 
he  has  heretofore  formed,  or  might  form,  to  Nova  Scotia  or 
Acadia,  in  all  its  parts,  and  guarantees  the  whole  of  it,  and  with 
all  its  dependencies,  to  the  King  of  Great  Britain  :  moreover,  his 
most  Christian  Majesty  cedes  and  guarantees  to  his  said  Britannic 
Majesty,  in  full  right,  Canada,  with  all  its  dependencies,  as  well 
as  the  Island  of  Cape  Breton,  and  all  the  other  islands  and  coasts 
in  the  Gulf  and  River  Saint  Lawrence,  and,  in  general,  every- 
thing that  depends  on  the  said  countries,  lands,  islands,  and  coasts, 
with  the  sovereignty,  property,  possession,  and  all  rights  acquired 
by  treaty  or  otherwise,  which  the  most  Christian  King  and  the 
Crown  of  France  have  had  till  now  over  the  said  countries, 
islands,  lands,  places,  coasts,  and  their  inhabitants,  so  that  the 
most  Christian  King  cedes  and  makes  over  the  whole  to  the  said 
King  and  to  the  Crown  of  Great  Britain,  and  that  in  the  most 
ample  manner  and  form,  without  restriction,  and  without  any 
liberty  to  depart  from  the  said  cession  and  guarantee,  under  any 
pretence,  or  to  disturb  Great  Britain  in  the  possessions  above- 
mentioned.  His  Britannic  Majesty,  on  his  side,  agrees  to  grant 
the  liberty  of  the  Catholic  religion  to  the  inhabitants  of  Canada  : 
he  will  consequently  give  the  most  precise  and  most  effectual 


APPENDIX.  415 

orders,  that  his  new  Roman  Catholic  subjects  may  profess  the 
worship  of  their  religion,  according  to  the  rites  of  the  Romish 
Church,  as  far  as  the  laws  of  Great  Britain  permit.  His  Britannic 
Majesty  further  agrees,  that  the  French  inhabitants,  or  others 
who  had  been  subjects  of  the  most  Christian  King  in  Canada, 
may  retire,  with  all  safety  and  freedom,  wherever  they  shall  think 
proper,  and  may  sell  their  estates,  provided  it  be  to  subjects  of  his 
Britannic  Majesty,  and  bring  away  their  effects,  as  well  as  their 
persons,  without  being  restrained  in  their  emigration,  under  any 
pretence  whatsoever,  except  that  of  debts,  or  of  criminal  prosecu- 
tions :  the  term  limited  for  this  emigration  shall  be  fixed  to  the 
space  of  eighteen  months,  to  be  computed  from  the  day  of  the 
exchange  of  the  ratifications  of  the  present  treaty. 

5.  The  subjects  of  France  shall  have  the  liberty  of  fishing  and 
drying,  on  a  part  of  the  coasts  of  the  Island  of  Newfoundland, 
such  as  it  is  specified  in  the  1 3th  article  of  the  Treaty  of  Utrecht ; 
which  article  is  renewed  and  confirmed  by  the  present  treaty 
(except  what  relates  to  the  Island  of  Cape  Breton,  as  well  as  to 
the  other  islands  and  coasts  in  the  mouth  and  in  the  Gulf  of  the 
St.  Lawrence) :  and  His  Britannic  Majesty  consents  to  leave  to 
the  subjects  of  the  Most  Christian  King  the  liberty  of  fishing  in 
the  Gulf  of  St.  Lawrence,  on  condition  that  the  subjects  of  France 
do  not  exercise  the  said  fishery  but  at  the  distance  of  three  leagues 
from  all  the  coasts  belonging  to  Great  Britain,  as  well  those  of  the 
continent  as  those  of  the  islands  situated  in  the  said  Gulf  of  St. 
Lawrence.     And  as  to  what  relates  to  the  fishery  on  the  coasts  of 
the  Island  of  Cape  Breton  out  of  the  said  Gulf,  the  subjects  of 
the  Most  Christian  King  shall  not  be  permitted  to  exercise  the 
said  fishery  but  at  the  distance  of  fifteen  leagues  from  the  coasts 
of  the  Island  of  Cape  Breton ;  and  the  fishery  on  the  coast  of 
Nova  Scotia  or  Acadia,  and  every  where  else  out  of  the  said  Gulf, 
shall  remain  on  the  footing  of  former  treaties. 

6.  The  King  of  Great  Britain  cedes  the  Islands  of  St.  Pierre 
and  Miquelon,  in  full  right  to  His  Most  Christian  Majesty,  to 
serve  as  a  shelter  to  the  French  fishermen;   and  his  said  Most 
Christian  Majesty  engages  not  to  fortify  the  said  islands,  and  to 
erect  no  buildings  upon  them,  but  merely  for  the  convenience  of 


416  APPENDIX. 

the  fishery ;  and  to  keep  upon  them  a  guard  of  fifty  men  only  for 
the  police. 

7.  In  order  to  re-establish  peace  on  solid  and  durable  founda- 
tions, and  to  remove  forever  all  subjects  of  dispute  with  regard  to 
the  limits  of  the  British  and  French  territories  on  the  Continent 
of  America,  it  is  agreed  that  for  the  future  the  confines  between 
the  dominions  of  His  Britannic  Majesty  and  those  of  His  Most 
Christian  Majesty  in  that  part  of  the  world,  shall  be  fixed  irrevo- 
cably by  a  line  drawn  along  the  middle  of  the  River  Mississippi 
from  its  source  to  the  Iberville,  and  from  thence  by  a  line  drawn 
across  this  river  and  the  lakes  Maurepas  and  Pontchartrain,  to  the 
sea ;  and  for  this  purpose  the  Most  Christian  King  cedes  in  full 
right  and  guarantees  to  His  Britannic  Majesty  the  river  and  port 
of  Mobile,  and  everything  which  he  possesses  or  ought  to  possess 
on  the  left  side  of  the  river  Mississippi,  except  the  town  of  New 
Orleans  and  the  island  in  which  it  is  situated,  which  shall  remain 
to  France ;  provided  that  the  navigation  of  the  river  Mississippi 
shall  be  equally  free,  as  well  to  the  subjects  of  Great  Britain  as  to 
those  of  France,  in  its  whole  length  and  breadth,  from  its  source 
to  the  sea,  and  expressly  that  part  which  is  between  the  said  Island 
of  New  Orleans  and  the  right  bank  of  that  river,  as  well  as  in  the 
passage  both  in  and  out  of  its  mouth.  It  is  further  stipulated 
that  the  vessels  belonging  to  the  subjects  of  either  nation  shall  not 
be  stopped,  visited,  or  subjected  to  the  payment  of  any  duty  what- 
ever. The  stipulations  inserted  in  the  4th  article  in  favour  of  the 
inhabitants  of  Canada,  shall  also  take  place  with  regard  to  the 
inhabitants  of  the  countries  ceded  by  this  article. 


TREATY  OF  VERSAILLES,  1783. 

4.  His  Majesty  the  King  of  Great  Britain  is  maintained  in  his 
right  to  the  Island  of  Newfoundland,  and  to  the  adjacent  islands, 
as  the  whole  were  assured  to  him  by  the  thirteenth  article  of  the 
treaty  of  Utrecht,  excepting  the  islands  of  St.  Pierre  and 
Miquelon,  which  are  ceded  in  full  right  by  the  present  treaty  to 
His  Most  Christian  Majesty. 


APPENDIX.  417 

5.  His  Majesty  the  most  Christian  King,  in  order  to  prevent 
the  quarrels  which  have  hitherto  arisen  between  the  two  nations 
of  England  and  France,  consents  to  renounce  the  right  of  fishing, 
which  belongs  to  him  in  virtue  of  the  aforesaid  article  of  the 
treaty  of  Utrecht,  from  Cape  Bonavista  to  Cape  St.  John  situated 
on  the  eastern  coast  of  Newfoundland,  in  fifty  degrees  north  lati- 
tude ;  and  His  Majesty  the  King  of  Great  Britain  consents  on  his 
part,  that  the  fishery  assigned  to  the  subjects  of  His  Most  Christian 
Majesty,  beginning  at  the  said    Cape   St.   John,  passing  to  the 
north,  and  descending  by  the  western  coast  of  the  island  of  New- 
foundland, shall  extend  to  the  place  called  Cape  Raye,  situated  in 
forty  seven  degrees  fifty  minutes  latitude.     The  French  fishermen 
shall  enjoy  the  fishery  which  is  assigned  to  them  by  the  present 
article,  as  they  had  the  right  to  enjoy  that  which  was  assigned  to 
them  by  the  treaty  of  Utrecht. 

6.  With  regard  to  the  fishery  in  the  Gulf  of  Saint  Lawrence, 
the  French  shall  continue  to  exercise  it  conformably  to  the  fifth 
article  of  the  treaty  of  Paris. 

DECLARATION. 

The  King  having  entirely  agreed  with  His  Most  Christian 
Majesty  upon  the  articles  of  the  definitive  treaty,  will  seek  every 
means  which  shall  not  only  insure  the  execution  thereof,  with  his 
accustomed  good  faith  and  punctuality,  but  will  besides  give,  on 
his  part,  all  possible  efficacy  to  the  principles  which  shall  prevent 
even  the  least  foundation  of  dispute  for  the  future. 

To  this  end,  and  in  order  that  the  fishermen  of  the  two  nations 
may  not  give  cause  for  daily  quarrels,  His  Britannic  Majesty  will 
take  the  most  positive  measures  for  preventing  his  subjects  from 
interrupting  in  any  manner,  by  their  competition,  the  fishery  of 
the  French  during  the  temporary  exercise  of  it,  which  is  granted 
to  them  upon  the  coasts  of  the  island  of  Newfoundland  j  and  he 
will,  for  this  purpose,  cause  tho  fixed  settlements,  which  shall  be 
formed  there,  to  be  removed.  His  Britannic  Majesty  will  give 
orders  that  the  French  fishermen  be  not  incommoded,  in  cutting 
the  wood  necessary  for  the  repair  of  their  scaffolds,  huts,  and 
fishing  vessels. 


418  APPENDIX. 

The  thirteenth  article  of  the  treaty  of  Utrecht,  and  the  method 
of  carrying  on  the  fishery,  which  has  at  all  times  been  acknow- 
ledged, shall  be  the  plan  upon  which  the  fishery  shall  be  carried 
on  there,  and  it  shall  not  be  deviated  from  by  either  party  ;  the 
French  fishermen  building  only  their  scaffolds,  confining  them- 
selves to  the  repair  of  their  fishing  vessels,  and  not  wintering 
there  ;  the  subjects  of  His  Britannic  Majesty,  on  their  part,  not 
molesting  in  any  manner  the  French  fishermen  during  their  fish- 
ing, nor  injuring  their  scaffolds  during  their  absence. 

The  King  of  Great  Britain,  in  ceding  the  islands  of  St.  Pierre 
and  Miquelon  to  France,  regards  them  as  ceded  for  the  purpose  of 
serving  as  a  real  shelter  to  the  French  fishermen,  and  in  full  con- 
fidence that  these  possessions  will  not  become  an  object  of  jealousy 
between  the  two  nations;  and  that  the  fishery  between  the  said 
island  and  that  of  Newfoundland,  shall  be  limited  to  the  middle 
of  the  channel. 


COUNTER-  DECLARATION. 

The  principles  which  have  guided  the  King  in  the  whole  course 
of  the  negotiations  which  preceded  the  re-establishment  of  peace, 
must  have  convinced  the  King  of  Great  Britain  that  His  Majesty 
has  had  no  other  design  than  to  render  it  solid  and  lasting,  by 
preventing  as  much  as  possible,  in  the  four  quarters  of  the  world, 
every  subject  of  discussion  and  quarrel.  The  King  of  Great 
Britain  undoubtedly  places  too  much  confidence  in  the  upright- 
ness of  His  Majesty's  intentions,  not  to  rely  upon  his  constant 
.attention  to  prevent  the  islands  of  St.  Pierre  and  Miquelon  from 
becoming  an  object  of  jealousy  between  the  two  nations. 

As  to  the  fishery  on  the  coast  of  Newfoundland,  which  has  been 
the  object  of  the  new  arrangements  settled  by  the  two  sovereigns 
upon  this  matter,  it  is  sufficiently  ascertained  by  the  fifth  article 
of  the  treaty  of  peace,  signed  this  day,  and  by  the  declaration  like- 
wise delivered  to-day,  by  His  Britannic  Majesty's  Ambassador 
Extraordinary  and  Plenipotentiary;  and  His  Majesty  declares 
that  he  is  fully  satisfied  on  this  head. 


APPENDIX. 

In  regard  to  the  fishery  between  the  island  of  Newfoundland 
and  those  of  St.  Pierre  and  Miquelon,  it  is  not  to  be  carried  on, 
by  either  party,  but  to  the  middle  of  the  channel;  and  His  Majesty 
will  give  the  most  positive  orders  that  the  French  fishermen  shall 
not  go  beyond  the  line.  His  Majesty  is  firmly  persuaded  that 
the  King  of  Great  Britain  will  give  like  orders  to  the  English 
fishermen. 

The  other  articles  and  stipulations  of  these  treaties  have  no 
bearing  upon  Canada. 

The  14th  Geo.  III.,  cap.  83,  A.D.  1774— "An  Act  to  make 
more  effectual  provision  for  the  government  of  Quebec" — guaran- 
tees to  the  Canadians  the  exercise  of  the  Roman  Catholic  Reli- 
gion, subject  to  the  royal  supremacy. 

Sec.  5. — And  for  the  more  perfect  security  and  ease  of  the 
minds  of  the  inhabitants  of  the  said  Province,  it  is  hereby  de- 
clared, That  His  Majesty's  subjects,  professing  the  religion  of  the 
Church  of  Rome,  of  and  in  the  said  Province  of  Quebec,  may 
have,  hold,  and  enjoy  the  free  exercises  of  the  religion  of  the 
Church  of  Rome,  subject  to  the  King's  supremacy,  declared  and 
established  by  an  Act,  made  in  the  first  year  of  the  reign  of  Queen 
Elizabeth,  over  all  the  dominions  and  countries  which  then  did, 
or  thereafter  should,  belong  to  the  Imperial  crown  of  this  realm  ; 
and  that  the  clergy  of  the  said  Church  may  hold,  receive,  and 
enjoy  their  accustomed  dues  and  rights,  with  respect  to  such  per- 
sons only  as  shall  profess  the  same  religion. 


420 


APPENDIX. 


•paXojduia 
uoiu  jo  jaquin^ij 

»n  •*•  >0  O  >-   »0  mvo   m  t^vo   O   tx 

CO  ON  1O  CO  t^.  N  VO    W    IOVO    N  VO    M 

«o<NinOO<Ncooi»nN>3-coco 

«o 

M 
C^ 

s^s  si 

cooo\o"d\ 

CO 

tC 

N   M  co  >n  M  tt\o        »< 

w 

D 
J 

•< 
> 

Rvo  ti  R.  10  tnoo'vo  ttvo  o\  co  o\ 
O  'O   -t-  O\  covo   t^  t^  •*•  rooo   O\vO 

1 

83S2 

CO    O  1000 

23,583,062 

O\oo   *<£  »-•   ONVO   ON  »o  i^oo  vo   w   N 
...    fJlOO  >0    OCO    0)    ONVO    ONVO  CO    t^  O\ 

vr  u->  M  o  •«*•  t-s  osoo        ro 

€ 

co 

N 

t^  CO  -<4-VO 
OO    CO  O    !O 
f^VD    O  N 

cf  -^  10  o" 

OCCUPATION. 

S 
IH 

£ 

i 

I      I      I      I      I      I  CO    *°     '      •      '      I      I 

:   :  !  :  :  :S      :  :  :  :  I 

1 
* 

ScSa 
-^S 

1 

m 

0 

fc 

::::::«-    :  :  :  :  : 

vH 

H-sS 

£ 

(>. 

| 

I 

v> 

°0  %  ~    ?\0    fo  15  ^"^  5-OT"  S^. 
MVOVO    0    mrOOVO    N    ONVO    rt    M 

1 

r^  ON  0  vo 
O\  S  M   5- 

| 

M 
t^. 

WHVOt^WOro        ro 

f^ 

^ 

vo   lo'ov  O 

1 

M  •*•  -^-  t^  t^  t~»  m  o\oo  10  o  H  t-x 

SS^SSS?.10^^^^ 

! 

O  vo    t^  O 
~^t 

i 

•<? 

River  or  Lake. 

H 

&3    S  :  2£&%  5-^55^ 

•«•  O             M       •     t^CO  VO     f)     <^\O     M     M 

•«f  i-T       vo"    I   -^vo"  ro  10  «ooo"  tCoo" 
W   M                .         10        ro 

VO 
£ 

c^i^^^ 
00  VO    CO  M 

5?ia" 

vo 

N" 
t^ 

o 
fc 

2  S    8  :  ^S^S'SS: 

MM                   .         VO           ro         H    M 

00 

oo 

irp 

00 
00 

S 

ui 
I 

roi^NOftiOM-4-    

MMMMVOCSOXLO*       •       •       •       • 

\O  VO  \O    O\  "TO    1-1           

M 

OO 

i 

10  N    O\VO 

SSc^v? 

#af§ 

00 

1 

"^SR^S     :  :  :  :  : 

1 

^^vS'^^g?:*:  :  :  :  : 
*r     '.'.'.'.'. 

O  oo  oo 
com  o^ 
fn 

o> 

TOTAL.  "1 

S 

S 

^'JoS^vgPjcgS^i-^S^ 
WVOVD    O    lOrOQVO    N    OVO    M    H 

V? 

Sa^ET 

C3NVO    t^.  O\ 

vo"  >o  o"  eT 

1 

vo" 

tCoo  oo  tC  tC  tC  M  co  10  iftoo  tCoo 

NMVOt^NOO\         CO 

0 

fc 

M     -^-Tj-t^txts.l-1     WOO     IOOM     fx 

N    H  vo   O\  M   ro  fxvo    -^-vo   W   N   tx 
N    1-1   M   m  H   in  *;        ro        MM 
CO 

M  oo  vo   r** 

"t"^ 

M"       co 

& 

in 

DESCRIPTION  OF  VESSEL. 

:::::::::::::      : 

:  :  :  : 

i 

Is       •     !     i 

I 

Ontario  
Quebec  
New  Brunswick  
Nova  Scotia  

*2  S             I          I         i 

cj  y 

*.M           3N      :        3-8 
2         „    .3  b      :      x^w 

|Q&|ii||l|!1'I 

»J     ^  S'C'C'S  o  15  8  rt^£  ° 
w     wpq««wooWwPQ^^ 

APPENDIX.  421 

As  TO  THE  COUNTRY  WEST  OF  FORT  GARRY — (Chap.  12,  page  377). 

Sir  George  Simpson  speaks  in  glowing  terms  of  this  portion  of 
the  Saskatchewan  Yalley.  He  says :  "  The  rankness  of  the 
vegetation  savoured  rather  of  the  torrid  zone,  with  its  perennial 
spring,  than  of  the  northern  wilds — brushing  the  luxuriant  grass 
with  our  knees ;  and  the  hard  ground  of  the  surface  was  beauti- 
fully diversified  with  a  variety  of  flowers,  such  as  the  rose, 
hyacinth  and  tiger  lily." 

Lieutenant  Saxon  depicts  the  scenery  of  these  fertile  valleys  as 
magnificent,  and  the  banks  of  the  rivers  on  either  side  luxuriant 
beyond  description.  He  says  :  "  Vast  forests  cover  the  hill-tops 
and  fill  the  valleys ;  the  climate  is  mild,  and  cattle  keep  fat  in 
winter  as  well  as  in  the  summer  on  its  nutritious  grasses." 

In  a  work  called  "  Eighty  Years'  Progress  in  British  North 
America,"  edited  by  Hind,  Keefer,  Hodgins,  Robb,  Perley  and 
Murray,  is  the  following  description  of  the  Fertile  Belt,  a  part  of 
the  prairie  plateau  of  Rupert's  Land : 

"  The  Fertile  Belt  of  the  North- West  consists  of  the  richest 
arable  soil,  partly  in  the  form  of  open  prairie,  partly  covered  with 
groves  of  aspen.  It  stretches  from  the  Lake  of  the  Woods  to  the 
foot  of  the  Rocky  Mountains,  about  eight  hundred  miles,  and 
averages  from  eighty  to  one  hundred  miles  in  breadth.  The  North 
Saskatchewan  flows  through  this  fertile  belt  in  a  valley  varying 
from  one-fourth  of  a  mile  to  one  mile  in  breadth,  and  excavated 
to  the  depth  of  two  or  three  hundred  feet  below  the  level  of  the 
plains  or  prairie  through  which  it  flows,  until  it  reaches  the  low 
country  some  miles  east  of  Fort  La  Corne.  The  area  of  this 
remarkable  strip  of  rich  soil  and  pasturage  is  about  40,000,000 
acres.  It  was  formerly  a  wooded  country,  but  by  successive  fires 
it  has  been  partially  cleared  of  its  forest  growth,  but  abounds  with 
the  most  luxuriant  herbage,  and  generally  possesses  a  deep,  rich 
soil  of  vegetable  mould.  The  winter  of  this  region  is  not  more 
severe  than  that  of  Lower  Canada.  The  snow  is  never  very  deep, 
and  in  the  wildest  tracts  the  natural  pasturage  is  so  abundant  that 
horses  and  cattle  may  be  left  to  obtain  their  own  food  during  the 
greater  part  of  the  winter.  This  perennial  supply  of  food  for  cattle 
might  have  been  predicted  from  the  fact  that  the  North  Saskat- 


422  APPENDIX. 

chewan,  west  of  Carlton,  supports  vast  herds  of  buffalo  during  the 
winter  season ;  and  formerly  the  whole  of  the  Fertile  Belt  used  to 
be  the  favourite  winter  quarters  of  countless  herds,  who  fattened 
on  the  rich  abundance  of  the  natural  grasses — scraping  the  snow 
away  with  their  feet,  and  never  failing  to  obtain  abundance  of 
well  preserved  hay  beneath.  The  whole  of  the  Fertile  Belt  is 
well  fitted  for  settlement  and  agricultural  colonization." 


As  TO  LAND  AND  ROUTE  FROM  LAKE  SUPERIOR  TO  FORT  GARRY. 

1.  Mr.  Ryerson  says:   "Along  the  banks  of  Rainy  Lake  are 
large  quantities  of  as  rich  land  as  can  be  found  in  America." 

2.  As  to  the   Lake   of  the  Woods   and   Rainy  River — "Sir 
Geo.  Simpson  describes  this  country  as  a  gentle  slope  of  green 
sward,  finely  wooded." 

Again — Around  this  lake  "  the  shores  are  low,  with  grassy 
intervals  far  inland." 

3.  Where   the   Winnipeg   River,   running  from  the    Lake  of 
the  Woods,  joins  the  Winnipeg  Lake,   at  Fort  Maurepas — Mr. 
Ryerson  says :  "  This  district  is  very  rich — spring  wheat  being 
grown  here  to  perfection." 

4.  Of  the  land  lying  between  Fort  Garry  on  the  Red  River 
and  the  Lake  of  the  Woods — Capt.  Pope  says  :  "  The  Red  River 
valley  is  an  unbroken  level  of  rich  prairie,  intersected  by  well 
timbered  tributaries.     Elm,  oak,  maple,  ash,  &c.,  abound.     From 
richness  of  soil,  uniform  surface,  and  water,  it  is  among  the  finest 
wheat  countries  in  the  world.      All  the  cereals  and  vegetables 
grow  in  abundance.     Climate  salubrious." 

"  The  soil,"  says  Sir  Geo.  Simpson,  speaking  of  the  same  place, 
"  is  a  black  mould,  producing  extraordinary  crops ;  the  wheat 
being  plump  and  heavy  ;  it  returns  forty  bushels  to  the  acre." 

See  Dawson,  from  pages  1  to  29. 


CAPTAIN  PALLISER'S  OBSERVATIONS. 

The  basin  of  the  Winnipeg  is  920  miles  long  by  380  wide,  and 
contains  about  360,000  square  miles — about  as  large  as  Canada. 


APPENDIX.  423 

Of  this  the  Fertile  Bait,  consisting  of  the  richest  arable  soil, 
stretches  from  the  Lake  of  the  Woods  to  the  foot  of  the  Rocky 
Mountains— 800  miles,  by  80  to  100  in  width. 

The  area  of  rich  soil  and  pasturage  is  40,000,000  acres;  weather 
not  more  severe  than  Canada  (Lower);  and  pasture  so  abundant 
that  horses  and  cattle  may  be  left  to  themselves  during  the  greater 
part  of  the  winter. 

There  is  a  large  portion  of  this  Fertile  Belt  entirely  distinct 
from  Rupert's  Land.  The  valleys  of  the  Assiniboine  and  Sas- 
katchewan contain  65,000  square  miles  of  cultivable  land,  of 
which  27,000  or  17,000,000  acres  are  at  once  available  for  the 
agriculturist. 


(Chap.  12,  page  892.) 

MEMORANDUM  RESPECTING  THE  FINANCIAL  POSITION  OF 
BRITISH  NORTH  AMERICA,  REVENUE  AND  EXPENDI- 
TURE, FOR  THE  LAST  FINANCIAL  YEAR,  1866. 

REVENUE. 

Canada  .  .*. $12,432,748 

Nova  Scotia 1,665,071 

New  Brunswick 1,212,021 


$15,309,840 

EXPENDITURE. 

Canada     $11,711,320 

Nova  Scotia  (about)    1,600,000 

New  Brunswick 1,080,047 

—      14,391,367 


Surplus $918,473 

N.B. — MILITIA    EXPENDITURE, — LAST   YEAR. 

Canada $1,638,868 

Nova  Scotia 156,460 

New  Brunswick 152, 148 

—       1,947,476 

PUBLIC   DEBT  OF  CANADA  WILL  BE — 

Ontario  and  Quebec $62,500,000 

Nova  Scotia 8,000,000 

New  Brunswick * 7,000,000 

77,500,000 


424  APPENDIX. 

CHARGES   ON    PUBLIC    DEBT, — LAST   YEAR. 

Canada     $3,692,412 

Nova  Scotia 297, 580 

New  Brunswick 349,283 

4,339,275 
After  Union,  will  be  about .' $4, 350,000 

TRADE   AND   SHIPPING. — IMPORTS. 

Total  From  Great  Britain. 

Canada $48,610,477  $28,984,599 

Nova  Scotia 14,381,662  6,315,988 

New  Brunswick 7,086,595  2,284,449 


$70,078,734  837,585,036 
EXPORTS. 

Canada $53,93°,  7^9  $12,766,668 

Nova  Scotia 8,830,693  764,473 

New  Brunswick    5>534>726  2,594,651 


$68,296,208  $16,125,791 

Exclusive  of  Coin  and  Bullion. 

TONNAGE, — ENTRIES   INWARDS. 

Tons. 

Canada 938,946 

Nova  Scotia 929,929 

New  Brunswick    807, 161 

2,676,036 

OUTWARDS. 

Tons. 

Canada 1,113,386 

Nova  Scotia 772,017 

New  Brunswick 754,876 

2,640,279 


Tons   5,316,315 

SHIPPING  OWNED   IN 

Tons. 

Canada 230,429 

Nova  Scotia 403,409 

New  Brunswick    309,695 


Tons 943,533 


INDEX. 


Action  of  Imperial  Government  on  Union  undecided,  15 — Decided,  16 — On 
Confederation,  127 — On  Colonial  Taxation,  351-2  —  On  British  and 
Foreign  Trade,  153,  342,  352— On  Intercolonial  Trade,  345-6-7— On 
British  American  I  nterprovincial  Trade,  347 — On  the  West  India  Trade, 
344,  et  seq — On  the  Intercolonial  Railway,  13,  14 — Final  guarantee  on 
cost  of  Construction,  392— On  the  Boundaries  with  the  United  States, 
13,  1 88 — Effect  of  action  as  to  future  veneration  of  name,  129. 

Action  of  Canadian  Government  on  Re-construction  in  1865,  295 — Do.  on 
Confederation  on  opening  Parliament,  194 — Do.  on  Education  Bill,  367. 

Acrobats,  Political,   381. 

Additional  Clauses  in  British  North  American  Act,  1867,  387. 

Admission  of  North  West  Territories  and  British  Columbia,  60,  67. 

Adjustment  of  Financial  arrangements,  62. 

Adderly's  Speech,   162. 

Allison's  Pamphlet,  168. 

Alabama  Claims,   188. 

American  Citizens  in  Ottawa,  107. 

American  Zolverein,   357. 

Annexation,  188,  357. 

Appeal,  Court  of,  64,  72. 

Apportionment  of  Powers,  62. 

Arbitration  between  Ontario  and  Quebec,  Provision  for,  369 — Dorion's  refer- 
ence to,  241—  Langevin's  do.,  265— Gait's  do.,  219,  220-1-2— Dunkin's 
do.,  278. 

Archibald,  15,  29,  50,  90. 

Army,  Canadian,  364. 

Arthur,  H.  R.  H.  Prince,  364. 

Ashburton  Treaty,  13,  187. 

Asiatic  Trade,  182,  et  seq. 

Assent  of  Imperial  Government,  127. 

Baldwin,  n. 

Banquet  at  Quebec,  82;  do.  at  Montreal,  90;  do.  at  Ottawa,    no;  do.  at 

Toronto,  114. 
Baring's  Speech,  163. 
Belleau,  Sir  N.  F.,  293. 
Blackwood,  191. 
Boilleau,  Baron,  352. 
Boston  Commercial  Bulletin,  149. 
Bouchette's  Statement,  177. 
Breadstuffs,  177. 
28 


426  INDEX. 

British  Colonies,  Reciprocal  arrangements  with,  355. 
British  Columbia,  60 — Admission  of,  67,  198. 
British  Navy  and  Foreign  Representation,  189,  190. 
British  Prudence,  190. 
Brazil,  353-7-8. 

Brown,  Hon.  Geo. — Joins  Government  (1864)  20-23— -Speech  a^  Halifax,  33 
— Council  nominative,  60 — Speech  at  Toronto,  118 — Negotiations  for 
Reconstruction  of  Cabinet  on  death  of  Sir  E.  P.  Tach£,  287 — Resig- 
nation, 305 — Parliamentary  explanations,  and  Speech  on  do.,  313 — 
Reasons  examined,  325 — Subsequent  conduct,  329 — Painful  termination, 
330 — Speech  on  Representation  by  Population,  in  debate  on  Local  Con- 
stitutions, 371. 

Campbell,  Hon.  Alexander,  30,  50. 
Campbell,  Stewart,  394. 
Canadian  Dead  Lock,  20. 

"          Pride,  190. 

Canada,  Lower — Electoral  Divisions  of,   58. 
Canada  not  dependent,   198. 
Capital  of  Dominion,   105. 

Cartier^Hon.  George  E.,  16,  19,  26,  30 — Speech  at  Halifax,  43 ;  at  St.  John, 
46  ;  at  Montreal,  99 — Langevin's  tribute  to,  258 — Action  on  Militia,  365. 
Carter  (Newfoundland),  50 — Speech,  117. 
Chandler,  E.  B.,  29,  50,  53. 
Charlottetown  Convention,  29. 
Chapais,  50. 

Civil  Law — Lower  Canada,  63. 
Climate  of  North- Western  Territories,  see  Appendix. 
Clive,  394. 

Closed  doors  at  Convention,  Prince  Edward  Island,  30 ;  at  Quebec,  53. 
Coasting  Trade,  157— In  case  of  Treaty  with  the  United  States,  298— Ditto 
with  Brazil,  353 — British  and  Canadian  legislation  on  Do.,  see  Appendix. 
Colonial  Imperial  Policy,  9. 

"        Secretary— Despatch,  dated  1864,  127. 
"       Taxation— Gait  on,  350. 

Coles  (Prince  Edward  Island),  30,  51 — Speech,   112. 
Cockburn,  50. 

Committee  on  Commerce — United  States  Congress,  172. 
Commission  to  West  Indies  and  Brazil,   336. 

Commons,   Representation  in,  58,  59,  60 — By  the  Quebec  Resolutions,  68 — 
By  the  London  Conference,  387 — By  the  British  North  American  Act,  1867. 
Confederation,  Imperial,  354. 
Confederate  Council  on  Commercial  Treaties,  296. 
Confederation— Objections  to,  by  different  parties,   158. 
Concurrent  Progress,   n. 

Concession  to  Canada  of  increased  powers,  359. 
Contrast  of  source  of  power  with  the  United  States,  55,  56. 


INDEX.  427 

Constitution  of  Local  Governments  of  Upper  and  Lower  Canada,  367-8. 

Crisis,  Financial,  62. 

Crown  Lands,  62. 

Corruption  of  Canadian  Statesmen,  395. 

Currie,  200. 

Custom  of  Ancient  Germans,  81. 

Danubian  Grain-growing  Principalities,  375. 

Dead  Lock,  20. 

Death  of  Sir  E.  P.  Tache,    285. 

Debate  in  the  old  Canadian  Parliament  on  Confederation  in  1865,  198— Cha- 
racter of,   196-7-8 — Divisions  on,  201-2. 

Defence,  188,  332.  «=•*- 

Denison,  Major,  362. 

Delegates,  Conduct  of,  after  return  to  Provinces,  380. 

Delegation  at  Charlottetown,  29. 
"         at  Quebec,  50. 

Deputation  to  Washington,  298. 

"  to  England  on  Defence — Report,  332. 

to  London  on  Confederation,  380-5. 

Derby's  Letter,  192. 

Despatch  to  Lord  Elgin,  154. 

Despatches,  Imperial,  on  Trade,  154-6,  342-5. 

on  Confederation,  127,  333. 

Dickey,  29,  50. 

Differences  of  Quebec  and  London  Resolutions,  oo. 

Differences  of  ultimate  Bill,  387. 

D'Israeli,  Speech  of,  164. 

Direct  Taxation,  61. 

Diplomatists,  English  and  American,  188. 

Doors  closed  at  Conferences,  30,  63. 

Dorion's  Speech,  196-229 — Motions  and  Divisions  in  debate  on  Local  Consti- 
tutions of  Ontario  and  Quebec,  269-70. 

Droppings  by  the  way,  184-5. 

Dual  Representation,  393. 

Dunkin's  Speech,  271 — His  description  of  a  judge,  275-6. 

Dundas,  Lieutenant- Governor,  Prince  Edward  Island,  31. 

Durham,  Lord,  12. 

Dyde,  Colonel,  365. 

Eastern  Trade,  182-7.  — * 
Eccles  Hill,  364. 

Education  of  the  public  mind,  80,  89. 
Bill,  Lower  Canada,  365-6. 

Effect  on  Imperial  Policy  of  Trent  affair,  16,  304. 
"     of  Separation  on  Great  Britain,  181-90. 
on  Canada,  187-90, 


428  INDEX. 

Electoral  Divisions  of  Lower  Canada,  58. 

Elgin,  Lord,  105,  155. 

Empire  in  Asia,  Torrens,  394. 

England,  Sentiment  in,  on  Confederation,  130-37 — Vulnerability  in  war,  on 
account  of  Commerce  counteracted  by  possession  of  Colonies,  185-6-7. 

Englishmen,  Character  of,  81. 

Esquimault,  186. 

Exception  in  favour  of  Prince  Edward  Island,  64. 

Exports,  Canadian,  176-8. 

Export  Duty  in  New  Brunswick,  65. 

Expiry  of  old  Canadian  Parliament,  372. 

Federal  Union,  55. 

Fenian  Invasion  (1866),  361-5. 

Financial  Statement,  A.D.  1864 — see  Appendix,  398. 
"      1866  "  423. 

First  of  July,  1867. 

Fisher,  (New  Brunswick),  49,  115. 

Fisheries,  71,  183 — Value  of,  see  Appendix. 

Formation  of  London  Conference,  385. 

Forsyth,  James  Bell,  85. 

Foreign  Countries,  Reciprocal  arrangements  with,  355. 
"       Trade,  353. 

Free  Trade,  173. 

Frontier  disputes,  13. 

Future  consideration  of  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia  contests,  335. 

Gait,  Policy  (1858),  15;  at  Charlottetown,  31;  at  St.  John,  47 — Financial 
Statement  for  1864,  see  Appendix — At  Ottawa,  113;  at  Quebec,  85;  at 
Montreal,  102 — Speech  in  Debate  in  Parliament  of  Old  Canada,  215 — 
Explanations  and  Memorandum  on  Brown's  resignation,  321 — Instructions 
on  West  Indies  Commission,  336;  on  Colonial  Taxation,  348,  350;  on 
Education  Bill,  372 — Resignation  and  subsequent  conduct,  365-6. 

Gatineau  Hills,  106. 

Germans,  Ancient  custom  of,  81. 

Glasgow  manufacturers,  Remonstrance  of,  156. 

Governor-General's  Speech,  194. 

Gordon,  Lieutenant-Governor,  New  Brunswick,  32. 

Grain  growing  countries  of  Europe,  375. 

Grant's,  Message  of  President,  183. 

Gray,  (Prince  Edward  Island)  16,  29,  56,  92. 

Gray,  (St.  John)  29,  46,  50,  92. 

Great  Britain  not  called  upon  for  local  or  internal  expenses,  152,  189. 

Halifax,  Banquet  at,  32 — Fortifications  of,  186  (Appendix,  409) — Ovation  to 
Canadian  Deputation,  285. 

Haviland,  (Prince  Edward  Island)  49,  51,  99. 

Hastings,  Warren,  394. 

Haycock  and  Jones,  104. 


INDEX.  429 

Head,  Sir  Edmund,  105. 

Henry,  (Nova  Scotia)  29,  50,  no. 

Hincks,  14,  173-4-5- 

Holton,  196,  226. 

Howe,  n,  12,  14,  15  (Appendix,  409). 

Howland — Washington  Negociations,  298  ;  on  Brown's  resignation,   325. 

Honours,  Imperial,  394. 

Hope,  Admiral  Sir  James,  32,  33. 

Hunt's  Magazine,  184. 

Imperial  Policy  on  Union  undecided,  15,  16. 

"        Decided,  16,  17. 

*'        Confederation,  354 

"        Despatches  on  Intercolonial  Trade,  154-6,  342-5 ; — on  Confederation, 

127,  333- 

Imports,  174-6-7-8-9. 
Independence,   188. 
Intercolonial  Railway,  13,  14,  15,  78. 
"  Trade,  346. 

Free  Intercourse,  354. 
Inter-provincial  Trade,  347. 
Intercontinental  Carrying  Trade,  184. 
Increased  Responsibilities  of  Canada,  359. 

Irritative  Effect  of  English  Writers,  Pamphlets  and  Speeches  on  Separation,  171. 
Joly,  196,  242. 

Johnston  (New  Brunswick),  29,  50,  112. 
Jones  (North  Leeds),  371. 
Jones  and  Haycock,  104. 
Judiciary,  $Q/ 

Judge,  Dimkins'  description  of  a,  275-6. 
Kingston,   105. 
La  Bruyere's  sarcasm,  396. 
Lands,  Crown,  to  Provinces,  82. 
Langevin,  30,  50,  106  ; — Speech,  248. 
Laval  University,  86-7-8. 
Lewis,  Sir  Cornwall,  162. 
Letellier  de  St.  Just,  200. 
Legislative  Council  and  Assembly,  L.C.,  367. 

Assembly,  U.C.,  367. 

Lieutenant-Governors,  Primary  Appointment,  368-9. 
Lincoln,  President,  Assassination  of,  285. 
Lindsay,  Major- General,  364. 

Local  Constitutions  of  U.  and  L.  Canada,  now  Ontario  and  Quebec,  367. 
Londoner  and  Indian,  188. 
Loss  on  Separation,  190. 
Lowrey's  Pamphlet,  178. 


430  INDEX. 

Lumber  Establishments  at  Ottawa,  107. 

Lyell,  Sir  Charles,  106. 

Macdonald,  Hon.  John  A.,  20,  30,  43,  50,  55  —  Speech  in  debate,  202  — 
Negotiations  with  Brown  on  the  death  of  Sir  E.  P.  Tach6,  287— Explana- 
nations  on  Brown's  resignation,  306-311 ;  on  Local  Constitutions  cf  Onta- 
rio and  Quebec,  367  ;  at  London  Conference,  385— Imperial  honour,  394. 

Macdonald,  Sandfield,   18. 

Macdonald  (Prince  Edward  Island),  30,  51. 

Macdonnell,  Sir  Graves,  32,  90. 

Macdougall,  William,  28-30,  348. 

Macdougall,  Major-General  P.  L.,  365. 

Mackenzie — Limitation  of  Local  Executive  Council,  369 — On  Representation 
by  Population,  371. 

Maritime  Provinces,  Union  of,   17,  29. 

Ministerial  Explanations  in  1864,  20 — Do.  on  Sir  N.  F.  Belleau  joining  the 
Government,  293. 

Ministerial  Deputation  to  Charlottetown,  30. 

Mitchell,  50. 

Mining  Region,  376-7. 

Mines  and  Minerals,  62,  76. 

McCully  (Nova  Scotia)  29,  50,  114. 

McGee,  D'Arcy,  101. 

McKellar,  372. 

Mowatt,  28,  50. 

Morris,  20. 

Montreal,  89. 

Newfoundland,  Crown  Lands  in,  64. 

Newspapers. — London  Daily  Telegraph,  130 — London  News,  132 — London 
Star,  134  —  London  Times,  135,  166-7-8  —  London  Economist,  143  — 
Peterhead  Observer,  133— Glasgow  Mail,  137  ;  Caledonian  Mercury,  139 
— Liverpool  Journal,  147— Boston  Commercial  Bulletin,  149. 

North- West  Territories — Productiveness  of  climate,  character  and  extent,  see 
Appendix. 

North- West  Territories,  Communications  with,  78. 

Ontario,  Public  sentiment  in,   103-4. 

Ottawa— Banquet,  104-110— As  Capital,  105 — Federal  District,  no — Legis- 
lation for  Washington,  109. 

Odessa,  375. 

Pacific  Railway,  375-6-7. 

Palmer  (Prince  Edward  Island),  39,  51 — Speech,  117. 

Palmerston,  Lord,  Speech,  165. 

Panmure,  Lord,  Telegram,  396. 

Patterson's  statements,  176-8-9. 

Papineau,  n. 

Peacock,  Colonel,  i6th  Regiment,  362-3. 


INDEX.  431 

Pope  (Prince  Edward  Island),  51,  124. 

Pope  (Canada),  20. \ 

Political  storm  in  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia,  on  return  of  Delegates, 
124-5. 

Press,  Conduct  of,  80,  81. 

Prince    Edward    Island    Convention,    29 — Renewed   proposition    to,    from 
Londbn,  384. 

Provinces,  Voting  by,  54-5. 

Pumpelly,   180. 

Public  men,  Accountability  of,  for  public  statements,  89. 

Quebec,  51. 

Quebec  Conference,  49 — Remarks  on  time,  place  and  circumstance,  51-2 — 
On  men  composing  Conference,  52-3. 

Rankin,  371. 

Resignation  of  Mr.  Brown,  305. 

Representation  by  Population,  57-8-9-60,  371-2. 

Resolutions,  Quebec,  66. 

Return  of  Delegates  to  New  Brunswick  and  Nova  Scotia,  124. 

Reciprocity — Farming  interests  of  Upper  Canada  under,  295. 

Registration  of  Ships  in  Brazil,  353. 

Representation  in  Imperial  Parliament,  354. 

Representatives — House  of,  United  States  Congress  Report  as  to  Canada,  172. 

Ritchie,  296. 

Roebuck — Speech,  160. 

Rose,  196,  259. 

Robertson  Ross,  Colonel,  365. 

Russian  Interoceanic  Railway  from  China,  180. 

Sanborn,  200. 

Severance  of  Canada  from  Great  Britain,  171  to  191. 

Seward,  148. 

Senate,  Primary  selection  of,  64 — Increase  of,  387. 

Shanly's  Speech,  196,  281. 

Shipping  (Appendix),  420. 

Shipping,  American  loss  of,  attributed  to,  181. 

Scotland,  Sentiment  in,  137-8-9,  140-1-2-3. 

Shea  (Newfoundland),  50,  96,  296. 

Smith,  A.  I.,  298,  301. 

Smith,  William,  336,  340. 

Separation,  171-91. 

Sixtieth  Rifles,  364. 

Sixty-ninth  Regiment,  364. 

Somerville,  Alexander,  362. 

South  America,  Subsidising  steamers  to,  356. 

Statesmen,  American,  views  of  British  Trade,  181,  192. 

States'  Rights,  57. 


432  INDEX. 

Steves,  W.  H.,  29,  50. 

Suez  Canal,  184. 

Tach6,  SirE.  P.,  14,  50,  53,  195-8,  285-6. 

Taxation  per  Lead,  Great  Britain,  Canada,  and  United  States,  174-5. 

Tariff  uniformity,  356. 

Tea  Trade,  178-9. 

TilJey,  29,  49,  50,  62,  84. 

Times,  The,  135,  166-7-8. 

Thunder  Bay  Mining  Region,  376. 

Topography,  362. 

Torren'3  Empire  in  Asia,  394. 

Toll  Gates,  No,  in  the  Maritime  Provinces,  61. 

Toronto,  104,  114. 

Trade,  353-5 — Suggestions  for  Intercolonial  and  Foreign,  356 — Do.  of  Canada, 

Australia,  and  New  Zealand,  as  comparative  customers  of  Great  Britain 

with  the  United  States,  176. 
Transitu,  Goods  in,  183. 

Transport  of  Western  Traffic  through  Canada,  Interest  in,  184. 
Treaty  of  Washington,  Negotiations  for  Renewal  of,  298-9,  300-1. 
Treaties  of  Paris  and  Versailles,  see  Appendix. 
Trent  Affair,  16,  303 
Tupper,  29,  32,  50,  62,  88. 
Upper  Canada  College,   114. 
"  "        University,  114.    • 

"  "  "          Memorial  to  Students  of  365. 

Uniformity  of  Laws,  63,  71 — Hon.  John  A.  Macdonald  on,  212. 

"     '         Tariff,  356. 
United  States,  Dread  of,   188. 

Value  of  Colonies  to  Great  Britain,  as  consumers,  compared  with  the  United 
States,  175-8 — As  Rendezvous  for  Fleets  and  Commerce  in  case  of 
War,  1 86. 

Vancouver  Island. 

Washington  City,  109 — Treaty,  299. 
War,  Light  of,  185-6-7-8-9. 
Warren  Hastings,  394. 
West  India  Commission  Report,  340. 

«'    Indies,  Subsidizing  Steamers  to,  356. 
Whistler  at  the  Plough,  363. 
Williams,  Sir  Fenwick,  89. 
Wilmot,  L.  A.,  ii 

"        Duncan,  296. 
Wilson,  John,  13. 

Young,  Hon.  John,  14. 

Zolverein  with  the  United  States,  357. 


ERRATA. 

Page  150,  line  26,  for  "turn"  read  "time."  i 

'      154,  "     ig,    "    "has"       "      "have." 

I77>  '        3>  dele  "f"  after  $170,000,000. 

186,  "     28,  insert  comma  after  fortifications,  and  dele  comma  after  Esquiraault. 

'     186,  "     30,  for  "Gibralter"  read  "Gibraltar." 

327,  '       4»    "    "constitutional"   read   "unconstitutional." 

354,  "     10,     "    "counties"  read  "countries."